summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/55061-0.txt8821
-rw-r--r--old/55061-0.zipbin196211 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/55061-h.zipbin693600 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/55061-h/55061-h.htm10566
-rw-r--r--old/55061-h/images/cover.jpgbin46676 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/55061-h/images/illus007.jpgbin32773 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/55061-h/images/illus008.jpgbin36338 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/55061-h/images/illus009.jpgbin19534 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/55061-h/images/illus011.jpgbin24022 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/55061-h/images/illus012.jpgbin17544 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/55061-h/images/illus013.jpgbin17872 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/55061-h/images/illus014.jpgbin18677 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/55061-h/images/illus032.jpgbin54156 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/55061-h/images/illus033.jpgbin23782 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/55061-h/images/illus034.jpgbin64215 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/55061-h/images/illus035.jpgbin42996 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/55061-h/images/illus037.jpgbin14290 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/55061-h/images/illus038.jpgbin36958 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/55061-h/images/illus039.jpgbin42693 -> 0 bytes
22 files changed, 17 insertions, 19387 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..4eaad85
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #55061 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/55061)
diff --git a/old/55061-0.txt b/old/55061-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index b13bc7a..0000000
--- a/old/55061-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,8821 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Chautauquan, Vol. V, April 1885, by
-The Chautauquan Literary and Scientific Circle
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org/license
-
-
-Title: The Chautauquan, Vol. V, April 1885
-
-Author: The Chautauquan Literary and Scientific Circle
-
-Editor: Theodore L. Flood
-
-Release Date: July 6, 2017 [EBook #55061]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE CHAUTAUQUAN, VOL. V, APRIL 1885 ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Emmy, Juliet Sutherland and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
- THE CHAUTAUQUAN.
-
- _A MONTHLY MAGAZINE DEVOTED TO THE PROMOTION OF TRUE CULTURE.
- ORGAN OF THE CHAUTAUQUA LITERARY AND SCIENTIFIC CIRCLE._
-
- VOL. V. APRIL, 1885. No. 7.
-
- Officers of the Chautauqua Literary and Scientific Circle.
-
-_President_, Lewis Miller, Akron, Ohio. _Chancellor_, J. H. Vincent,
-D.D., New Haven, Conn. _Counselors_, The Rev. Lyman Abbott, D.D.;
-the Rev. J. M. Gibson, D.D.; Bishop H. W. Warren, D.D.; Prof. W. C.
-Wilkinson, D.D.; Edward Everett Hale. _Office Secretary_, Miss Kate
-F. Kimball, Plainfield, N. J. _General Secretary_, Albert M. Martin,
-Pittsburgh, Pa.
-
-
-
-
-Contents
-
-Transcriber’s Note: This table of contents of this periodical was created
-for the HTML version to aid the reader.
-
- REQUIRED READING FOR APRIL.
- Aristotle 373
- Home Studies in Chemistry and Physics
- Chemistry of Earth 375
- The Circle of the Sciences 378
- Sunday Readings
- [_April 5._] 382
- [_April 12._] 383
- [_April 19._] 384
- [_April 26._] 385
- Easy Lessons in Animal Biology
- Chapter I. 385
- Jerry McAuley and His Work 390
- Ein Feste Burg Ist Unser Gott. Translation of Luther’s Famous Hymn. 392
- The Weather Bureau 393
- How to Win
- Chapter II. 396
- Fortress, Palace and Prison 397
- Geography of the Heavens for April 400
- England and Islam 402
- The Art of Fish Culture
- Part I. 404
- The Life of George Eliot 407
- Arbor Day 409
- How to Work Alone 411
- Outline of Required Readings for April 413
- Programs for Local Circle Work 413
- Local Circles 413
- The C. L. S. C. Classes 419
- Questions and Answers 420
- Editor’s Outlook 423
- Editor’s Note-Book 425
- C. L. S. C. Notes on Required Readings for April 427
- Notes on Required Readings in “The Chautauquan” 429
- Paragraphs from New Books 431
- Talk About Books 432
- The Chautauqua University: What Are Its Claims? 433
- Special Notes 434
-
-
-
-
-REQUIRED READING FOR APRIL.
-
-
-
-
-ARISTOTLE.
-
-BY WILLIAM C. WILKINSON.
-
-
- [The “College Greek Course in English” did not, for a reason
- alluded to in the following paper, include Aristotle among the
- authors represented. The readers of THE CHAUTAUQUAN will be glad
- to get some acquaintance with so great an ancient name through
- this supplementary chapter from Prof. Wilkinson’s pen.]
-
-Philosopher, though he by eminence is ranked, Aristotle was, too,
-something of an encyclopedist. He traversed almost the whole circle of
-the sciences, as that circle existed for the ancient world. But he was
-not simply first a learner, and then a teacher, of what others had found
-out before him. He was also an explorer and discoverer. Inventor also he
-was, if between discovery and invention we are to make a difference. He
-was a great methodizer and systematizer of knowledge. He bore to Plato
-the personal relation of pupil.
-
-The history of Aristotle’s intellectual influence is remarkable. That
-influence has suffered several phases of wax and wane, several alternate
-occultations and renewals of brightness. During a certain period of time,
-covering several hundred years, he was, perhaps beyond the fortune of
-any other man that ever lived, the lord of human thought. We mean the
-time of the schoolmen[1] so called. From near the close of the thirteenth
-century, until the era of the Reformation, Aristotle reigned supreme in
-the schools of Christian theology, which is the same thing as to say that
-he was acknowledged universal monarch of the European mind. The business
-of the schoolmen may be said to have been to state the dogmas of the
-church in the forms of the Aristotelian logic, and then to reconcile
-those dogmas so stated, with the teachings of the Aristotelian philosophy.
-
-Curiously enough, the introduction of Aristotle to the doctors of the
-church was through the Mohammedan Arabs. These men had, during a term
-of centuries, been the continuers of the intellectual life of the race.
-While through the long night of those ages of darkness the Christian
-mind slept, the Arabian mind, waking, gave itself largely to the study
-of Aristotle. The Greek philosopher was posthumously naturalized a
-barbarian; for Aristotle’s writings were now translated from their
-original tongue into Arabic. In this Arabic version, the celebrated
-Ibn Roshd (chiefly famous under his latinized name A-verˈroës) knew
-Aristotle and commented on him. The Arabic commentaries of Averroes were
-translated into Latin, and the thought of Aristotle thus became once
-more accessible to European students. Averroes (A. D. 1149-1198) himself
-was of the Moors of Spain.
-
-For centuries previous to the time when the son and successor of good
-Haroun al Raschid,[2] known at least by name to the readers and lovers of
-Tennyson, collected at Bagdad all the scattered volumes of Greek letters
-that his agents could find in Armenia, Syria and Egypt—for centuries,
-we say, previous to this, Aristotle suffered an almost complete arrest
-and suspension of intellectual influence. That man would have been a
-bold prophet who should then have predicted what a resurrection to power
-awaited the slumbering philosopher.
-
-Still earlier, however, than this, that is, during the interval between
-the third Christian century and the sixth, Aristotle enjoyed a great
-vogue. He was studied and commented on as if all human wisdom was
-summed up in him. The spirit of independent and original philosophy had
-perished, and whatever philosophic aptitude survived was well content to
-exhaust itself in expounding Aristotle. Aristotle’s works became a kind
-of common Bible to the universal mind of the Roman empire. This was the
-period of the Greek scholiasts, so-called—in more ordinary language,
-commentators.
-
-Taking the reverse or regressive direction of history, we have thus run
-back to a point of time some six or seven centuries subsequent to the
-personal life and activity of Aristotle. During the latter half of these
-centuries, Aristotle’s fame was gradually growing, from total obscurity
-to its great culmination in splendor under the scholiasts.
-
-Before that growth began, the productions of Aristotle had experienced
-a fortune that is one of the romances of literary history. The great
-pupil of Plato had himself no great pupil to continue after his death the
-illustrious succession of Grecian philosophy. His writings, unduplicated
-manuscripts they seem to have been, fell into the hands of a disciple,
-who, dying, bequeathed them to a disciple of his own, residing in the
-Troad. To the Troad accordingly they went. Here, with a view to save them
-from the grasp of a ruthless royal collector of valuable parchments,
-the family having these works in possession hid them in an underground
-vault, in which they lay moldering and forgotten one hundred and fifty
-years! It was thus in all nearly two hundred years that Aristotle’s
-thoughts were lost to the world. When at last it was deemed safe, the
-precious documents were brought out and sold to a rich and cultivated
-Athenian. This gentleman, let us name him for honor, it was A-pelˈli-con,
-had unawares purchased his prize for a rapacious Roman collector. Sylla
-seized it, on his capture of Athens, and sent it to Rome. At Rome it
-had the good fortune to be appreciated. One An-dro-niˈcus edited the
-collection, and gave to the world that, probably, which is now the
-accepted text of Aristotle.
-
-But, romantic as has been the succession of vicissitudes befalling his
-productions and his fame, Aristotle is, in his extant writings, anything
-but a romantic author. A less adorned, a less succulent style, than the
-style in which the Stagirite (he was of Stagˈi-rus, in Macedonia) wrote,
-it would be difficult to find. Still it is a style invested at least with
-the charm of evident severe intentness, in the writer, on his chosen aim.
-Cicero, it is true, speaks of Aristotle’s style in language of praise
-that would well befit a characterization of Plato. But Cicero must have
-had in view works of the philosopher other than those which we possess,
-works written perhaps in the author’s more florid youth. With this
-conjecture agrees the fact that a list of Aristotle’s works, made by the
-authorities of the renowned Alexandrian library, contains numerous titles
-not appearing in the writings that remain to us attributed to Aristotle.
-
-Aristotle was not, as Plato was, properly a man of letters. Or, if he did
-bear this character, the evidence of it has perished. What we possess
-of his intellectual productions exhibits the author in the perfectly
-dry and colorless light of a man of science. Even in those treatises
-of his in which he comes nearest to the confines of pure and proper
-literature, his interest is rather scientific than literary. He discusses
-in two separate books the art of rhetoric and the art of poetry; but he
-conducts his discussion without enthusiasm, without imagination, in the
-severely strict spirit of the analyst and philosopher. The text of the
-two treatises now referred to survives in a state of great imperfection.
-Indeed, the same is the case generally with Aristotle’s works. Critics
-have even surmised that, in some instances, notes of lectures, taken
-by pupils while the master according to his wont was walking about
-and extemporizing discourse, have done duty in place of authentic
-autograph originals supplied by the hand of Aristotle himself. The title
-“Peripatetic” (walk-about), given to the Aristotelian philosophy, was
-suggested by the great teacher’s habit, thus alluded to, of doing his
-work as teacher under the stimulus of exercise on his feet in the open
-air.
-
-The non-literary character of Aristotle’s works has to a great extent
-excluded him from the course of Greek reading adopted by colleges—this,
-and moreover the fact that he occupies a position at the extreme hither
-limit, if not quite outside the extreme limit, of the Greek classic age.
-Still he is now and then read in college; and at any rate he is too
-redoubtable a name among those names which in their motions were
-
- “Full-welling fountain-heads of change,”
-
-not to be an interesting object of knowledge to the readers of THE
-CHAUTAUQUAN.
-
-The productions of Aristotle are numerous. The Alexandrian bibliography
-of him gives one hundred and forty-six titles of his works. Of the books
-thus catalogued not a vestige remains, except in an occasional quotation
-from them at the hands of some other ancient writer. The works commonly
-printed as Aristotle’s form an entirely different list. We give a few
-of the leading titles or subjects: “Organon,” a collective name for
-various writings that made up a system of logic; “Rhetoric,” “Po-etˈics”
-(art of poetry), “Ethics,” “Politics,” “Natural Philosophy,” “Biology,”
-“Metaphysics.” [This last word, which has acquired in modern use a
-very distinct meaning of its own, was originally a mere meaningless
-designation of certain investigations or discussions entered into
-by Aristotle _after_ his physical researches. The preposition _meta_
-(after), and _physica_ (physics), give the etymology of the term.] The
-comprehensive or, as we before said, encyclopædic range of Aristotle’s
-intellectual activity will to the observant reader be sufficiently
-indicated by this list of titles.
-
-For his work in natural history, Aristotle was powerfully supported by
-one of the most resplendent military geniuses that the world has ever
-seen, Alexander the Great. To this prince and warrior, when he was a lad,
-the philosopher had discharged the office of private teacher. It would
-appear that either Aristotle was courtier enough, or young Alexander was
-man enough, to make this relation a pleasant one to the boy. For, in
-later years, the conqueror of the world presented to his former teacher a
-round million of dollars to make himself comfortable withal. But who can
-tell which it was, gratitude for benefit received, or remorse for trouble
-occasioned, that prompted the _ex post facto_[3] royal munificence?
-Perhaps it was both—a tardy gratitude quickened by a generous remorse.
-
-The chief glory of Aristotle is to have at once invented and finished the
-science of logic. For this is an achievement which may justly be credited
-to the philosopher of Stagirus. It would generally be conceded that,
-since Aristotle’s day, little or nothing substantial has been added to
-the results of his labor in the field of pure logic. The name Orˈga-non
-(instrument) is not Aristotle’s word, but that of some ancient editor
-of his works. It is a noteworthy name, as having dictated to Bacon the
-title to his epoch-making work, the _Novum Organum_ (the new method or
-instrument).
-
-It would not be easy to give an exhaustive account of Aristotle’s
-productions, and make the account attractive reading. We shall not
-undertake so impracticable a task. Let our readers accept our word for it
-that Aristotle, though a justly renowned name in the history of thought,
-is not fitted to be a popular author.
-
-From his “History of Animals” we present a specimen extract that will
-perhaps with some readers go far toward confuting what we just now said.
-There are, we confess, some things in this treatise that read almost
-as if they might belong to that truly fascinating book, “Goldsmith’s
-Animated Nature:”
-
- “The cuckoo is said by some persons to be a changed hawk, because
- the hawk which it resembles disappears when the cuckoo comes, and
- indeed very few hawks of any sort can be seen during the period
- in which the cuckoo is singing, except for a few days. The cuckoo
- is seen for a short time in the summer, and disappears in winter.
- But the hawk has crooked talons, which the cuckoo has not, nor
- does it resemble the hawk in the form of its head, but in both
- these respects is more like the pigeon than the hawk, which it
- resembles in nothing but its color; the markings, however, upon
- the hawk are like lines, while the cuckoo is spotted.
-
- “Its size and manner of flight is like that of the smallest kind
- of hawk, which generally disappears during the season in which
- the cuckoo is seen. But they have both been seen at the same
- time, and the cuckoo was being devoured by the hawk, though this
- is never done by birds of the same kind. They say that no one has
- ever seen the young of the cuckoo. It does, however, lay eggs,
- but it makes no nest, but sometimes it lays its eggs in the nests
- of small birds, and devours their eggs, especially in the nests
- of the pigeon (when it has eaten their eggs). Sometimes it lays
- two, but usually only one egg; it lays also in the nest of the
- hypolais,[4] which hatches and brings it up. At this season it is
- particularly fat and sweet-fleshed; the flesh also of young hawks
- is very sweet and fat. There is also a kind of them which builds
- a nest in precipitous cliffs.”
-
-This morsel, our readers must consider, is not a very characteristic
-specimen of the feast that, take all his works together, Aristotle
-spreads for his students. But it is as toothsome as any we could offer.
-If it makes our readers wish for more, that is as friendly a feeling as
-we could possibly hope to inspire in them toward Aristotle. We shall now
-let them, in that mood, bid the great philosopher farewell.
-
-
-
-
-HOME STUDIES IN CHEMISTRY AND PHYSICS.
-
-BY PROF. J. T. EDWARDS, D.D.
-
-Director of the Chautauqua School of Experimental Science.
-
-
-CHEMISTRY OF EARTH.
-
-John B. Gough declares that a few kind words spoken to him, in a crisis
-of his life, saved him from ruin. He afterward carefully educated the
-orphan daughters of the gentleman who uttered those words.
-
-“Why,” you say, “it was a little thing.” “Yes, _little_ for him, but a
-big thing for me.”
-
-[Illustration: CRYSTALS OF ALUM.]
-
-The importance of _many_ things depends upon the point of observation.
-To a hypothetical astronomer on a distant star, this world would be
-too minute for observation. In that shining pathway of the heavens,
-called the “milky way,” there have been discovered eighteen millions of
-stars, each hundreds of times larger than our earth; yet _our_ atom in
-immensity is, just now, of marvelous interest to us. Indeed, it must be
-of interest to the highest intelligences, for such are the harmonies of
-God’s universe that the minutest planet is in many of its forces and laws
-representative of the whole. So that our world is, in a sense, both a
-microcosm and a cosmo.
-
-Let us briefly consider some characteristics of the earth, from the
-standpoint of the chemist.
-
-All substances have been divided into two great classes, the inorganic
-and organic. The latter contains two subdivisions—the vegetable and
-animal world. Nature thus comprises three great sub-kingdoms, the
-mineral, vegetable and animal.
-
-A mineral is an inorganic body (that is, one in which no parts are formed
-for special purposes), possessed of a definite chemical composition, and
-usually of a regular geometric form. It may seem at first glance that
-the last part of this definition is not correct, but there is reason to
-believe that all mineral substances may, under favorable circumstances,
-assume crystalline forms. Water and air are minerals. Other liquids and
-gases are included in the term, but as we have had already something
-to say of these latter substances, we shall, for the purposes of this
-article, use the word earth in the popular sense; namely, inorganic
-matter, which at ordinary temperature is solid. All materials are
-classified into
-
-
-ELEMENTS AND COMPOUNDS.
-
-By an element is meant a substance which has never been resolved into
-parts, and conversely, one that can not be produced by the union of two
-or more substances. There is some difference of opinion as to their
-number. It is usually given as sixty-four. There are a great many
-compounds. Nature seems to delight in surprising us by the simplicity of
-the means employed in producing marvelous results. As the mind of Milton
-combined the twenty-six letters of our alphabet to form “Paradise Lost,”
-so the Infinite arranged and re-arranged the elements to form the sublime
-poem of creation. Fifty-one of the elements are metals, and thirteen
-metalloids; gold is a familiar example of the former, and sulphur of the
-latter. A few, like hydrogen and oxygen, are gases; two are liquids;
-quicksilver and bromine: the greater number exist as solids. But few
-of them are found native, _i. e._, chemically uncombined with other
-substances. In the fierce heat of former ages they were mixed as in a
-mighty crucible, and few escaped the power of affinities thus engendered.
-Gold and copper are sometimes found pure, but even they, more frequently
-than otherwise, exist fused with other substances.
-
-Compounds are of three classes—acids, bases and salts. Sand is a specimen
-of the first, lime of the second, and clay of the third. _Fixedness_ is a
-characteristic of mineral compounds, yet they are by no means incapable
-of change; certain influences come in to promote it, of which the
-following are the most important—heat, solution, friction and percussion.
-
-Two gases, oxygen and hydrogen, may remain side by side for years
-uncombined, but a single spark will cause them to rush together with
-terrific energy.
-
-If the contents of the blue and white papers in a Seidlitz powder are
-mixed, no chemical action follows, but if dissolved separately in
-glasses of water, and then poured together, a violent effervescence
-takes place. If a small amount of potassium chlorate and a _little_
-piece of sulphur be put together in a mortar, and then pressed by the
-pestle, sharp detonations follow. Dynamite, which is nitro-glycerine
-mixed with infusorial earth, sugar or sawdust, is quite harmless when
-free from acid, unless struck. The above instances illustrate the various
-influences that stimulate chemical combination. Almost all the crust
-of the earth is formed of three substances—quartz, lime, and alumina.
-Wherever we stand on the round globe, it is safe to say that one or all
-of these are beneath our feet.
-
-
-QUARTZ.
-
-[Illustration: QUARTZ CRYSTALS.]
-
-This mineral comprises about one half the earth’s crust. Its symbol
-is SiO₂, being a compound of silicon and oxygen, in the proportions
-indicated. It is very hard, easily scratching glass, of which it forms
-an important constituent, is acted upon by only one acid—hydrofluoric;
-this attacks it eagerly, as may be shown by the following interesting
-experiment: Take a little lead saucer, or in the absence of this, spread
-lead foil carefully over the inside of an ordinary saucer, and in this
-place some powdered fluor spar. This mineral is quite abundant in nature,
-and is always to be obtained, in the form of a powder, from dealers in
-chemicals. Have a pane of glass covered by a thin film of wax. Now trace
-upon this surface with a sharp point, anything you may desire, verse
-or picture. Pour into the saucer containing the fluor spar, sufficient
-sulphuric acid to make a paste. Place over this the plate of glass, with
-the waxed side down, and let it remain for twenty-four hours. Remove the
-wax by heating, and on the glass you will find a perfect etching, the HF
-having removed the silica.
-
-The same effect may be produced in a few moments by applying to the
-bottom of the saucer a moderate heat. Care should be taken not to inhale
-the fumes, as they are highly corrosive.
-
-Quartz can be melted at a high temperature, and may be dissolved in
-certain hot solutions. It is still a question in dispute, whether the
-numerous quartz veins found in rocks were introduced there in melted
-form or in solution. Probably, sometimes in one state and sometimes in
-the other. Any visitor to a glass manufactory can see how easily glass
-in a melted state is manipulated; and travelers often bring from the
-geysers[1] fine specimens of silica called geyserite, derived from the
-material held in solution in the hot water, and deposited on the edge of
-the “basin.”
-
-[Illustration: SIDE AND TOP VIEW OF THE REGENT OR PITT DIAMOND (REDUCED
-IN SIZE)—CUT IN THE FORM OF THE “BRILLIANT.”]
-
-Quartz may be classified under two varieties—the common and the rare.
-Sand, pebbles, many conglomerates, all sandstone rocks come under the
-former head. The old red sandstone described by Hugh Miller,[2] in which
-fossil fish are so abundant, and the new red sandstone of the Connecticut
-valley, famous for its bird or reptile tracks, brought to light through
-the labors of Dr. Hitchcock,[3] were formed of sand cemented together
-under pressure by the peroxide of iron. There are many beautiful
-varieties of the rarer forms of quartz. Not a few of these were known
-to the ancients, as may be seen by reading the twenty-first chapter of
-Revelations, where a number are mentioned in the description of the
-heavenly city. “The wall of it was of jasper, and the foundations of
-the wall of the city were garnished with all manner of precious stones.
-The first foundation was jasper; the second, sapphire; the third, a
-chalcedony; the fourth, an emerald; the fifth, a sardonyx; the sixth,
-sardius; the seventh, chrysolite; the eighth, beryl; the ninth, a topaz;
-the tenth, a chrysoprasus; the eleventh, a jacinth; the twelfth, an
-amethyst.”
-
-All of these excepting the sapphire, which is crystallized alumina, are
-either pure or mixed varieties of quartz, colored with some metallic
-oxide. One of the most beautiful forms of these precious stones is
-the agate, especially that kind called the onyx, which consists of a
-succession of opaque and transparent layers. When carved into gems, this
-is called the cameo. A wonderful carved cameo was in the Tiffany exhibit
-at the Centennial Exposition, valued at four thousand dollars. The
-several layers were so cut as to represent a man looking through the bars
-of his prison.
-
-
-LIME.
-
-Another very plentiful substance in the earth is lime. It is chiefly
-found in the form of three salts, the carbonate, sulphate and phosphate
-(CaCO₃) (CaSO₄) (Ca₃(PO₄)₂), respectively. The first is familiarly known
-as limestone. When crystallized, it appears as marble. The shades of
-marble are due to the tinting of metallic oxides, and sometimes to the
-presence of fossils. The most beautiful marble is obtained from Carrara,
-Italy, which has long been famous for furnishing the material used for
-statues. It is pure white. Pure black marble is found in some ancient
-Roman sculptures. Sienna marble is yellow. Italy furnishes one kind
-that is red. Verd-antique is a mixture of green serpentine and white
-limestone, while our beautiful Tennessee marble, used so profusely in the
-new Capitol at Washington, is a blended red and white.
-
-Common limestone is almost entirely the product of minute animals[4]
-which lived in early geologic times. Ages before the Romans drove piles
-into the Thames, or the first hut was erected on the banks of the Seine,
-these little creatures laid the foundations which underlie London and
-Paris. They built the rocky barriers which gave to England the name
-Albion, derived from the white cliffs along her shore. It is a suggestive
-crumb of comfort for little folk, that the great tasks in the building of
-our earth have been performed by the smallest creatures.
-
-The wide distribution of limestone is shown from the fact that it is
-found to be an ingredient in almost all waters. It is readily dissolved,
-as is seen in the numerous caves which are found in limestone regions.
-
-When limestone is heated, the carbonic anhydride[5] is expelled, leaving
-quicklime. All are familiar with the manifold uses of this material.
-United with sand, it forms a silicate of lime, called mortar, which
-becomes harder with age. In the old stone mill[6] at Newport, R. I.,
-which is of unknown antiquity, the mortar in some places actually
-protrudes beyond the stones, showing it to be more durable than the rock
-itself. The catacombs of Rome were excavated in a very soft kind of
-limestone, called calcareous tufa.
-
-Sulphate of lime, also known as gypsum and plaster of Paris, is widely
-distributed. One beautiful variety is called satin spar, and another
-alabaster.
-
-Great quantities of sulphate of lime are quarried for use in the arts and
-for agricultural purposes. Dr. Franklin was one of the first to discover
-its value in connection with crops, and is said to have sown it with
-grain on a side hill, so that when the wheat sprang up, observers were
-surprised to see written in gigantic green letters, “Effects of Gypsum!”
-I suspect he got the hint from Dr. Beattie, who sowed seeds so that their
-flowers formed the name of his son, to prove to the boy the existence of
-a God, from evidences of design in nature.
-
-
-ALUMINA—Al₂O₃.
-
-This material is found both alone and in combination with silica. It
-forms an important ingredient in alum. Crystallized, it furnishes some
-of our most rare and beautiful gems, the color of which depends upon the
-metal combined with them.
-
-The ruby is red, the emerald green, the topaz yellow, the sapphire blue.
-
-Slate rocks consist largely of this material, and clay is a compound
-of alumina with siliceous anhydride. Among the first earthy substances
-utilized by man was clay. We find remains of pottery even as far back
-as the stone age[7]. The ingenuity of man seems to have been displayed
-constantly and successfully in the ceramic[8] art, the art of making
-pottery. Note the accounts given by Prescott, in his “Conquest of Peru
-and Mexico,” and the Cesnola collection of Cypriote remains[9] exhibited
-in the Metropolitan Museum in New York City.
-
-History is repeating itself by renewing the ancient enthusiasm for
-decoration of china and earthen ware. Bricks made from clay are found to
-rival granite in durability, and surpass it in resistance to heat, as was
-proven in the great fires of Boston and Chicago. It will be observed from
-the symbol of alumina that it is largely composed of the metal aluminum.
-If this could be readily liberated from the oxygen with which it is
-combined, the world would be immensely enriched.
-
-Every clay bank or clayey soil contains it in great quantities. Next
-to oxygen and silicon, it is the most abundant element in the earth.
-Note its valuable properties. It is but two and one-half times heavier
-than water, as bright and non-oxidizable as silver, malleable, ductile,
-tenacious, and can be welded and cast. Who will lay the world under
-obligation by doing with alumina what has been done with iron ores,
-cheaply liberate the oxygen?
-
-[Illustration: TESTING FOR IRON WITH A BORAX BEAD.—THE COMPOUNDS OF IRON
-WITH BORAX GIVE A BOTTLE GREEN COLOR.]
-
-In this brief enumeration of earth materials, we have intentionally
-omitted the forms of carbon. They constitute no insignificant portion
-of the earth’s crust, but belong to the class of organic substances. We
-introduce, however, an illustration showing one of the shapes in which
-is cut the diamond—that most costly of all forms of matter,—crystallized
-carbon.
-
-
-THE COMMON METALS.
-
-First in importance is iron. The fact already mentioned that its oxide is
-the most common coloring matter in the mineral world will also indicate
-its wide dissemination.
-
-Trap rock, gneiss, even granite, sands, clays and other rocks all borrow
-tints from this source. Iron is never found native except in meteors.
-It exists most abundantly in the form of three ores, the composition of
-which is as follows:
-
-Black or magnetic oxide (Fe₃O₄), red oxide (Fe₂O₃), hydrated sesquioxide
-(Fe₂O₃3H₂O). From all of these the oxygen is removed in a blast furnace,
-by the use of some form of carbon. As thus prepared, it is called
-cast-iron. Two other varieties are employed in the arts, wrought iron and
-steel. The last differs from the first in having less carbon, and from
-the second in having more. The general properties of this material are
-too well known to require description here. A single property of this
-substance alone has marvelously affected the commerce of the world; that
-is, the power first discovered in magnetic iron ore, of attracting iron,
-and pointing northward. The first compass, it is said, consisted of a
-piece of this metal placed on a cork floating on water.
-
-Copper seems to have been one of the few metals known to barbarous
-peoples. It is found pure, and in combination. Specimens obtained from
-the Lake Superior region, in mines worked by the mound builders,[10] have
-led some to believe that they possessed the art of hardening copper.
-Malachite is a carbonate of copper, of a beautiful mottled green color,
-and is made into elegant ornaments. Some magnificent specimens were in
-the Russian exhibit at the Philadelphia Exposition. It is found in great
-perfection in the Ural mountains.
-
-Tin is obtained from its binoxide (SnO₂). It was known to the ancients.
-Some historians claim that the Phœnicians procured it long before the
-time of Christ, from the mines of Cornwall, England. Until recently
-our country has seemed to be destitute of this valuable metal. Reports
-now indicate that Dakota is destined to supply this deficiency. It is
-a handsome metal, but little affected by oxygen, and capable of being
-rolled into thin sheets.
-
-Zinc is found in two different ores: red oxide (ZnO) and zinc blende
-(ZnS), from which it can be separated by smelting, in much the same
-manner as we obtain iron.
-
-Lead constitutes the fifth of the common metals which are preëminently
-useful. It is found in the sulphide of lead (PbS), the sulphide being
-expelled by roasting the ore. It forms numerous compounds, some of which
-are of great value. For example, lead carbonate (PbCO₃), the white lead
-which furnishes the most valuable ingredient of all paints.
-
-
-NOBLE METALS.
-
-These are so called because they retain their brilliancy and are not
-easily affected by other substances. Three of them are specially
-important: gold, silver and platinum. Gold is mentioned in the second
-chapter of Genesis: “and the gold of that land is good.” Although
-constituting an inconsiderable part of the earth, it is much more widely
-distributed than many suppose, but often exists in such small quantities
-that its production is not profitable.
-
-Australia and California are the gold lands. It is found principally in
-three situations: in sands which have been washed from the mountains,
-in little pockets in the rocks, and in veins of quartz. From the first
-it is separated by simply washing away the lighter materials, from the
-last situation it is procured by quarrying the rock, crushing it with
-stamping machines, then washing with water to remove the pulverized
-quartz, and gathering up the powdered gold with quicksilver. The mercury
-is removed by vaporizing. Gold is nineteen times heavier than water,
-extremely ductile, and the most malleable of all substances. Silver is
-abundant in the mountains of the west. It is usually found in the form
-of black sulphide (Ag₂S) or horn-silver (AgCl). When unpolished it is
-perfectly white, and is called dead or frosted silver. All are familiar
-with the properties of this attractive metal. Just now its producers in
-Colorado seem to fear its displacement from its important position in the
-coinage of the country. In nitrate of silver (AgNO₃) we have a material
-that perpetuates the faces of our friends, many a goodly landscape, and
-marvelous picture.
-
-[Illustration: MAGNET GATHERING IRON FILINGS.—A MAGNET WILL ALSO ATTRACT
-NICKEL FILINGS.]
-
-Platinum stands at the extreme limit of the elementary world in point of
-weight, being twenty-one and fifty-three hundredths times heavier than
-water. Russia has almost a monopoly of the production of this metal. It
-is about the value of gold, and to the chemist is of immense importance,
-on account of its high point of fusibility, which is over 4,000°. It is
-so ductile that it can be drawn out into wire so fine as to be invisible
-to the naked eye. This microscopic wire is used for centering the field
-of view in the finest telescopes.
-
-
-EARTH’S CRUST AND CENTER.
-
-Our earth is called “terra firma;” it is regarded as the very embodiment
-of stability, but every waving outline, every hill and mountain peak,
-not less than the rumbling of the earthquake, and the bursting forth of
-volcanic fires, indicate that it has been, and may again be, the scene
-of mighty disturbances. Indeed, upon reflection, one wonders that we can
-live on it at all. The temperature of the earth increases one degree for
-every fifty feet as we approach the center. At this rate, at the depth
-of fifty miles the heat would be sufficient, according to Humboldt,[11]
-to melt the hardest rocks. Fifty miles is one one-hundred and sixtieth
-of the earth’s diameter. It thus appears that if we should have a globe
-three feet in diameter full of molten liquid, surrounded by a covering
-of infusible material _one eighth of an inch_ in thickness, that film of
-solid matter would represent the earth’s crust. Think of it!
-
-[Illustration: A “LEAD TREE.”
-
-_Ex._—Place in a glass a dilute solution of acetate of lead; suspend in
-it a strip of zinc. Some of the lead will be precipitated in crystals
-upon the zinc. This is caused by the zinc taking a portion of the acetic
-acid, and thus forming a new compound called zinc acetate, thereby
-liberating some of the lead.]
-
-Besides, that awful, fiery sea within is subject to tides, currents and
-convulsions that constantly threaten to disrupt and destroy this crust.
-It is supposed that masses of water percolate through cracks and fissures
-until they reach the internal fires and are suddenly converted into
-steam at an enormously high temperature, which gives it such tremendous
-expansive force as to shake the globe itself. This action, combined
-with the violent explosion of gases, creates the sublime and dreadful
-phenomena of
-
-
-EARTHQUAKES AND VOLCANOES.
-
-The destruction of Lisbon and many other cities is matter of history. But
-last year a charming city in the Mediterranean was destroyed in a few
-seconds, and the stricken inhabitants of Spain are still trembling with
-horror at the recent shocks that have desolated their fair country.
-
-Man looks in vain elsewhere for such exhibitions of the power of chemical
-forces as are here displayed.
-
-Lord Lytton[12] gives a most impressive description of an eruption of
-Mount Vesuvius, in “The Last Days of Pompeii:”
-
-“In proportion as the blackness gathered, did the lightnings around
-Vesuvius increase in their vivid and scorching glare. Nor was their
-horrible beauty confined to the usual hues of fire; no rainbow ever
-rivaled their varying and prodigal dyes. Now brightly blue as the most
-azure depth of a southern sky, now of a livid and snake-like green,
-darting restlessly to and fro as the folds of an enormous serpent; now of
-a lurid and intolerable crimson, gushing forth through the columns of
-smoke, far and wide, and lighting up the whole city from arch to arch;
-then suddenly dying into sickly paleness, like the ghosts of their own
-life!
-
-“In the pauses of the showers you heard the rumblings of the earth
-beneath, and the groaning waves of the tortured sea; or, lower still, and
-audible but to the watch of intensest fear, the grinding, hissing murmur
-of the escaping gases through the chasms of the distant mountain.
-
-“Sometimes the cloud seemed to break from its solid mass, and, by the
-lightning to assume quaint and vast mimicries of human or of monster
-shapes, striding across the gloom, hurtling one upon the other, and
-vanishing swiftly into the turbulent abyss of shade; so that, to the eyes
-and fancies of the affrighted wanderers, the unsubstantial vapors were as
-the bodily forms of gigantic foes—the agents of terror and death.”
-
-[Illustration: TESTING FOR GOLD WITH PURPLE OF CASSIUS.
-
-_Ex._—When gold is placed in a solution of Stannon’s chloride and ferric
-chloride, a precipitate called Purple Cassius appears. Sometimes the
-color varies to brown or blue.]
-
-It is claimed that there are about three hundred extinct volcanoes,
-and many facts indicate that the convulsions in the earth’s crust are
-much less frequent than formerly, yet one can easily conceive of its
-destruction by internal forces, when, as the poet has said,
-
- “The cloud-capped towers, the gorgeous palaces,
- The solemn temples, _the great globe itself_,
- Yea, all which it inherit, shall dissolve,
- And like the baseless fabric of a vision,
- Leave not a wreck behind.”
-
-Revelation clearly announces the destruction of the earth: “In the which
-the heavens shall pass away with a great noise, and the elements shall
-melt with fervent heat; the earth also and the works that are therein
-shall be burned up.”
-
-
-
-
-THE CIRCLE OF THE SCIENCES.
-
-
-MENTAL SCIENCE
-
-Is the mind’s knowledge of itself, of its faculties, and states.
-_Psychology_ is now generally accepted as the most appropriate term to
-indicate that knowledge, and the studies that lead to its attainment. The
-_psyche_, as used by those ignorant of man’s higher nature, means the
-vital principle supposed to animate all living bodies, whether of men or
-the lower animals. It is, with them, the same as _life_, and is regarded
-as a result of the organizations they see, and not their cause. Others
-more consistently hold that, even in the lowest sense, vital forces
-precede, secure, and determine the organisms they animate; and that in
-the case of man there is a nobler endowment, a superadded, distinct,
-self-conscious, personal intelligence. “There is a spirit in man, and the
-inspiration of the Almighty giveth him understanding.” This _psyche_, or
-living soul, is a distinct, spiritual existence, however closely, for a
-time, allied with matter, and acting through bodily organs. It is capable
-of a separate existence, and while in the body, presents for our study
-phenomena peculiarly its own. Intellectual processes may be more subtle,
-and their analysis more difficult, than that of things external, because
-in the attempt the mind is, at once, subject and object, the observer and
-the observed. And, moreover, when greatly excited, it does not submit to
-immediate and direct investigation, as the effort at once arrests the
-excited feeling, and lowers the temperature, so that the state can be
-analyzed only as it is remembered. But, difficult of attainment as it is,
-the science that discusses the mind, proposing to show all that is known
-or may be learned respecting it, certainly challenges the interested
-attention of all who desire to know themselves. Whatever may be thought
-of the substance, or immediate origin of the active, thinking soul,
-consciousness affirms its presence, and its power to know and feel. When
-in a calm, thoughtful state, the phenomena are as real and as manifest
-as anything in physics or material things that are open to scientific
-investigation. By thorough introspection, the inquirer finds _himself_
-an invisible person, quite distinct from what is merely corporeal in
-his belongings, and of which he at once says: It is I; a person or
-being that he not only distinguishes from all others, but also from his
-own mental acts and states that are not himself. It needs no argument
-to prove that the physical frame, made of such material substances as
-gases, salts, earths, and metals, the particles of which are constantly
-changing, is not the man. It is not in the highest, truest sense, the
-body. Every particle of that frame may pass away while the body still
-remains. The real body is that which retains its organic sameness, amidst
-the incessant change of its materials. It is not the aggregation of gross
-substances, visible and tangible, but rather their connection and the
-life that unites them, that constitute a human body. We need not hesitate
-to say this life is the gift of God to man, made in his own image, and
-in his purpose an endowment far higher than mere animal life. When it is
-withdrawn, the organic structure built up as its earthly habitation is a
-ruin, and its material elements are scattered, the dust returning to dust
-again. Others may inquire for the “origin of souls,” asking questions
-over which many have wearied themselves in vain, we here only confess our
-faith that the sovereign Lord, “God of the spirits of all flesh,” has the
-relation of Fatherhood to his human children.
-
-A perfect mental science would require first, the normal action of
-the intellectual faculties to give phenomena, and then the accurate
-observation, and orderly arrangement of the phenomena given. To have a
-starting place there must be the feeling that we are, and can distinguish
-between ourselves and the mental acts of which we are capable. This
-consciousness is the root of all our soul science, and without it there
-could be no fruitful study of the human intellect. It is more than mere
-feeling, as it implies that activity of mind by which a man distinguishes
-between his body and soul, the senses and their possessor. It is the
-self-conscious act of knowing what is within; and when the phenomena
-or state is presented, the knowledge is intuitive or immediate. No
-reasoning, or other mental process, is required. The soul confronts
-itself and its acts face to face, and knows them as they are. The
-endowment is natural and universal. Though a child at first may show no
-sign of the possession, it has the capacity, and if normally developed,
-soon claims the right to be itself and not another. Like other human
-powers, this also is capable of culture, and may be raised to a state
-of higher activity and clearer discernment. This improved reflective
-consciousness brings to view the more occult phenomena within, comparing
-and classifying things, that it may have a clearer, more discriminating
-knowledge of the facts considered.
-
-Interrogating this witness, each finds in himself a power to think and
-reason. That is, an _intellectual faculty_, by the exercise of which
-there is intelligence, _memory_ to retain or recall things once known,
-and _imagination_, that creates and represents things that are not, as
-though they were. These are distinct, though inseparable, faculties or
-powers. _Thinking_ is necessary to exact or well defined knowledge, and
-until our ready impressions and conceptions are penetrated with thought,
-and we discern their nature, grounds, and connections, we have no
-science. Information may be received, facts committed to the memory, but
-if the treasures are jumbled together, and little thought given to either
-their analysis or orderly arrangement, they can be of but little value to
-their possessor. In its perceptions and sensations the mind is actively
-receptive; and by thought this normal activity is intensified. One who
-desires a correct knowledge of his own mind must connect his conceptions
-and impressions in some orderly manner, and think much. If there is an
-aversion to this, or hindrances arise from the almost incessant demands
-of business or society, and a tendency to mental dissipation is noticed,
-we may antidote the evil by mostly avoiding the popular light literature,
-and choosing, as the companions of our few leisure hours, standard works,
-in which are treasured the best thoughts of the world’s great thinkers.
-The intelligent study of the outer world, of nature, having the divine
-impress on every feature, will also do much to cure the weakness that
-many are ready to confess, to themselves at least. Nature does not
-think—has not reason, as man has, but the phenomena presented are full of
-reasons, the embodiments of God’s thoughts, that are above ours, high as
-the heavens are above the earth.
-
-The _will_ is the controlling motive power, and decides the question of
-character. A voluntary agent is responsible for his acts. Where there is
-conscious freedom, not only to _act_ as he wills, but to _will_ obedience
-to the dictates of conscience, character is possible. The freedom spoken
-of, and without which there can be no obligation or responsibility, is,
-of course, _human_ freedom. The will power is man’s, not that of the
-brute. The rational, voluntary agent, having conscience, moral ideas,
-sensibilities, and emotions, is, under law, blame- or praiseworthy, and
-personally responsible for what he is and does. His involuntary acts, if
-such are committed, are without moral character. There are some things
-that are not objects of his choice. When different ways of living are
-presented, he can freely choose which shall be his. But it is not given
-him to choose whether he himself shall have a moral character. That is
-inevitable; and his only option in the matter is as to whether it shall
-be good or bad.
-
-
-LOGIC.
-
-When the mind is employed in discriminating, arranging, judging, and
-reasoning, these several acts are all of a class, and are called rational
-or logical processes. Their importance can hardly be overestimated, as
-thus the reasoner gets assured possession of judgments or beliefs that
-are more or less general, and derives from them those that are particular
-and applicable in any exigency; or by the inductive method, from the
-particular facts within his knowledge, arrives at general propositions,
-and securely rests in them as true. In many, perhaps in most cases,
-both processes, the deductive and inductive, are used or implied. We
-understand phenomena or effects by their causes, and infer causes from
-their effects, explain the present by what has been, and anticipate the
-future by interpreting the past. We reason from what is seen to the
-unseen, from the facts of nature to nature’s laws.
-
-Systems of logic, if judiciously arranged, are of much value, and should
-be studied as guides and helps in our efforts to know the certainty
-of things. Method in reasoning is of much importance. But while
-comparatively few understand the rules, or adopt the exact technical
-terms used by scientific logicians, others, using methods and terms of
-their own, think vigorously, and reason well. The powers employed by
-the most thoroughly trained scholar and by the unlettered man may be
-equal, nor are their methods half so different as some suppose. Though
-the latter forms no expanded syllogisms,[1] says nothing of “subject,”
-“predicate,” or “copula,” he as really has his premises, reasons from
-what he knows, and in many cases reaches his conclusions with about the
-same feeling of certainty. The knowledge he gains does not differ from
-that of those who are guided in their reasonings by the best rules that
-observation and experience suggest. Some of those, who in this matter of
-logic are a law unto themselves, not only reason well, but often very
-rapidly. Judgment is given so speedily on the presentation of the case
-that it seems intuitive. There is but a step from the premises of an
-argument, securely laid in what is conceded in the statement, or what
-they already know, to the conclusion that is legitimate, and they take it
-at once. Now, if this is true, and common sense reasonings often seem so
-easy, while those conducted by men of much science are often difficult
-and tedious, it may be asked what advantage, then, is there in the
-logic of the schools? A sufficient answer is found in the fact that the
-thoroughly trained logician can solve problems the other never attempts.
-In his processes the properties and relations observed are less obvious
-or more complicated than anything presented to the other. To apprehend
-them clearly, closer attention must be given than most men, without
-such training, ever give or can give. And then, the conclusions of the
-ready, rapid, though untrained, reasoner who investigates only common
-subjects, are really less reliable, because more likely to be founded
-on too superficial observations. The man of more science, and yet slower
-progress, is expected to handle the more difficult problems, and subject
-all their elements to a sharper scrutiny.
-
-
-LANGUAGE
-
-Is intimately connected with thought, not only as its expression, but
-as an auxiliary. Thoughts always become clearer and more firmly fixed
-in the mind by being expressed. Though words are not thoughts, and,
-carelessly uttered, may be quite meaningless, thoughts not only seek
-to embody, or clothe themselves in language, but our best thinking is
-done in the use of words, uttered or unexpressed. Though there may be no
-sound for the ear nor symbol for the eye, the word inly spoken serves
-to fix the otherwise transient thought so that it can be afterward
-recalled, and perhaps uttered, to stimulate the thinking of others. Hence
-the importance of the study of language, of words and their syntax,
-as employed to express mental processes. Grammar is important as an
-intellectual science.
-
-
-ÆSTHETICS.
-
-The science of the beautiful is an important and delightful branch of
-study; the knowledge gained being mostly through immediate perceptions
-and sensible impressions. Beauty, wherever discovered, appeals to the
-sensibilities, and raises pleasant emotions. As a means of culture it
-elevates and refines. Communings with nature in her lovelier moods
-subdue asperities, and inspire gentle, kindly dispositions, while
-the beautiful creations of architecture, statuary, and painting, of
-poetry and music, fill the souls of discerning, susceptible persons
-with indescribable pleasure. But though such emotions are frequently
-excited, and seem familiar, they are of all our mental phenomena least
-understood, and most difficult to analyze. Some of our most common
-experiences are, on examination, found the most inexplicable. All, in a
-general way, know that beauty of form, proportion and color, wherever
-seen, excites pleasurable emotions. But our knowledge of sensations
-and emotions is generally, though direct and immediate, imperfect, and
-can become thorough only when the first impression is retained, and
-the higher faculties employed in studying its character and its cause.
-Dr. Porter’s[2] chapters on “Sense Perceptions” are, on the whole,
-satisfactory, and will help advance this branch of knowledge toward the
-dignity of a science. They give an analysis of beauty in objects that
-address the senses, and also of the emotions it awakens. Thoughtful
-students confess their need of more help. The science has its charms,
-but is still in its adolescence. Some things elementary are yet wanting,
-or known only by the names given them. Men talk of the “line of beauty”
-in architecture and sculpture, but do not yet know just what it is, or
-by what peculiarities it works on the sympathies of the beholder. We
-feel the exquisite pleasure but do not know just wherein the charms
-of the music that most delights us, consist, nor how it awakens the
-feeling it does. We can not tell just what it is in the poem we admire
-that gives its rhythm, figures of speech and imagery such enchanting
-power. The literature on the subject is extensive. We have, as all who
-read Ruskin’s[3] works know, a rich treasure of astute observations,
-with keen, incisive criticisms, but yet no thorough analysis of all the
-materials necessary to complete the science of Æsthetics.
-
-
-MORAL SCIENCE, OR ETHICS.
-
-The science of duty, often called _moral_ as relating to customs or
-habits of thought and action, discusses human obligations, or inquires
-what responsible voluntary agents ought to do, and why. Man has a moral
-nature; is so constituted, and placed in such relations that he feels
-certain things to be right for him, and others wrong; he says: I ought
-to do this, and that I ought not. These words, or their equivalents,
-expressive of obligation, can be traced in all languages of which we
-have any knowledge, and they voice the common sentiment of the race.
-Men differ widely in their intelligence, and consequently in their
-ability to discriminate with respect to acts or states that are purely
-intellectual. Their metaphysics may be cloudy and confused, so that their
-judgments on such matters will have neither agreement nor authority. But
-the moral sense discovers moral qualities more clearly. Its decisions are
-prompt, and their authority is acknowledged. Speculative questions on
-the subject are not all answered with the same agreement. If it is asked
-_why_ a thing is right, different persons may answer differently. One
-says because it is useful; another because it is commanded by a higher
-authority; and another because it accords with the fitness of things.
-These are questions for the intellect and not for the moral sense. Its
-province is simply to decide whether the act or state is right or not,
-and there it stops. Whether the basis of the rectitude approved is in
-some quality of the act itself, in an antecedent, or a consequent, may
-be properly asked, and reasons assigned for the answers given. But such
-questions are speculative, and the answers do not have, even when the
-best are given, the force of a moral conviction. In saying a thing is
-right because it is right, we affirm our conviction of the fact, but
-tacitly confess we may not know all the reasons why. How the fact is
-known is sufficiently explained by a reference to consciousness. We
-are so constituted that when moral qualities, in ourselves or others,
-are fairly presented and understood, there arise feelings of approval
-or condemnation, corresponding to that which excites them. Of such
-convictions and emotions we are at once conscious, and can have no more
-certain knowledge of anything than of what is thus felt. Connecting them
-with their exciting cause, it, too, is known, not by any outward or
-sense perception, yet not less certainly by an inward moral sense, whose
-decisions are promptly given, and with authority. There are frequent
-occasions for men to distinguish between what is right and what is
-merely lawful. A villain, destitute of moral rectitude, who for his own
-pleasure, or gain, robs society of its brightest jewels, spreading ruin
-and desolation through the community, may violate no statute, and escape
-legal condemnation; but, though having no fear of the law or of the
-courts, he is not less certainly a guilty man.
-
-Conscience, as a faculty of the soul, differs but little from
-consciousness. Both words are from the same root, and neither, in its
-primary, etymological meaning, implies anything as to moral character.
-Consciousness is self-knowledge, the mind’s recognition of its own state
-as it is; and that a man has a conscience, or capacity for passing moral
-judgment on himself, is a condition that makes character of any kind
-possible. Each word, however, has now an additional meaning, sanctioned
-by general usage. The former generally implies emotions of approval or
-disapproval, and the latter that there is in the mind a standard of
-action, and a clear discrimination between right and wrong, with an
-immediate feeling of responsibility, or obligatory emotions.
-
-Though thus richly endowed with intellect, sensibilities, and will, by
-nature capable of the highest mental activities, the structure of the
-soul would be strangely incomplete if the religious element were wanting.
-But it is not wanting. Man is a religious animal, and ever prone to
-worship. He has capacities that are not filled, longings unsatisfied,
-and must go out of himself for help and rest. Of all the sciences that
-concern him most, no other is half so important as the science of God, an
-infinite, all-wise, ever-present, personal God; our Creator, Redeemer,
-Benefactor. This science is transcendent, and confirmed by indubitable
-evidence. It satisfies and saves. “This is eternal life, to know the only
-true God, and Jesus Christ, whom he hath sent.”
-
-
-SOCIAL SCIENCE
-
-Investigates, in an orderly, scientific manner, the principles of
-association, and whatever relates to the interests and improvement of
-men in communities. It has its basis in psychology, as that science of
-the soul reveals most clearly the elements of a _social_ nature. By
-instinctive longings for sympathy and fellowship, men are drawn together,
-and readily consent to the restraints of society, whose earlier tacit
-agreements and maxims are at length formulated into rules and laws for
-their better government.
-
-Civil governments, incomplete at first, and encountering many hindrances,
-often progress but slowly, and sometimes even recede from vantage
-ground that has been gained. Some known in history have made but little
-advancement during the nineteenth century, and still fail to adjust their
-political machinery to the wants and demands of the people. They will
-hardly survive much longer without some promise of better progress in
-the future. All really good governments are not equally good, and that
-is regarded best which secures the greatest liberty to the individual
-citizen, consistent with the rights of others and the public security.
-That end, when honestly proposed, may be, to some extent, secured under
-very different charters or constitutions, and very much depends on the
-wisdom of the administration. When the governing power is in the hands
-of one man, and he irresponsible for his manner of exercising it, it
-is called an _autocracy_, or _despotism_. When vested in one person,
-whose executive functions are exercised by ministers responsible to a
-legislative assembly or parliament, it is a _constitutional monarchy_.
-If the nobility, or a few principal men govern by a right, in some way
-claimed, and conceded to them, it is an _oligarchy_, or an _aristocracy_.
-If the power is in the hands of the people themselves, or their immediate
-representatives, as in the United States, it is a _democracy_, or
-_republic_.
-
-Social science embraces a wide range of subjects of more than ordinary
-importance. It discusses both principles and facts, the principles that
-underlie all social institutions, and the practical, economic regulations
-that are wisely adopted in well ordered, prosperous communities. If
-the institutions are established, its province is to examine theories,
-collect, arrange, and generalize facts, that may have some bearing on
-any proposed corrective and reformatory measures. It scrutinizes public
-crimes, penal codes, judicial decisions, and prison discipline, with
-whatever else pertains to social life. It shows the relation of men to
-men, of the ruler to the governed, of the employer to his employes,
-of the rich to the poor, the fortunate to the unfortunate, and by its
-expositions instructs men how to act in their various relations. If the
-science were much better understood, the dangerous classes would be less
-dangerous; and the troublesome problems of pauperism, the liquor traffic,
-Mormonism, and the social evil, would be less appalling to average
-legislators and judges.
-
-The experience of ages shows that the ameliorating, helpful agencies
-and influences that lift communities up to higher levels, often operate
-silently as the leaven, till the whole lump is leavened. In many tribes
-the advance from savagery and the usurpation by irresponsible leaders,
-of absolute power toward complete civil liberty and personal rights,
-has been slow. The change has come by means almost imperceptible, or by
-struggles that seemed at the time fruitless. The improved condition of
-society does not bring entire security, or freedom from assault. The
-yoke once taken from the neck, and the heavy burdens from the shoulders,
-new ideas of property, justice, and personal rights are developed. The
-spirit of enterprise is awakened, because each finds himself in the
-position of affluence and influence, to which his talents, industry
-and self-denial entitle him. Men become competitors, and inequalities
-of condition are inevitable. Incompetence, idleness, and extravagance
-bring want and misery. Wealth and poverty exist side by side, the rich
-growing richer, and the poor poorer. Class distinctions become odious.
-Capital and labor, that should be allies, are often in conflict, to the
-great injury of both. There may be occasion for complaint against those
-“who oppress the hireling in his wages,” and “grind the faces of the
-poor.” But many are envious without cause, and suffer only the penalty
-of their idleness and extravagance, become enemies of the community, and
-are deaf to remonstrance if they see, or think they see, any way of
-relieving themselves at the expense of those who have acted more wisely,
-and possess large estates. Here come in the functions of government,
-that is of society, with its better notions of right and justice, and
-power to enforce them. True “social science,” founded on the experience
-of ages, recognizes the necessity of government, the obligations of the
-citizen, and the right of all to the property they have lawfully and
-honestly acquired. It demonstrates that real progress is in the way
-of a safe conservatism, while it admits the possibility of change and
-improvement, fully justifying the work of the reformer where reformation
-is needed. If existing institutions are inadequate because of some
-radical defect, have outlasted their usefulness, or become oppressive,
-revolution may be demanded. But any government, though unjust and
-despotic, is better than anarchy, and should be repudiated only when it
-is, under all the circumstances, possible to establish a better. When
-legitimate authority is resisted in the spirit of lawlessness or efforts
-at revolution prompted by an evil ambition, the actors are guilty.
-There have been many attempts, mostly abortive, to solve the problem
-of government, and reconstruct the social fabric. Some of them by good
-men, whose schemes were simply theoretical and impractical; others by
-malcontents and destructionists who mistake license for liberty. Plato,
-a man of probity and justice, but lacking the wisdom of the statesman,
-prepared a constitution for a model republic, which had too many defects
-for adoption; a republic with advantages for a select class, but slavery
-for the masses doomed to manual labor, which was made despicable. More
-wrote his “Utopia,”[4] regarded by some as a kind of program for a
-needed social reform. It had little influence with his countrymen, most
-of whom ranked it with works of the imagination, where it belonged,
-whether so intended or not. Campanella,[5] a radical communist of Stilo,
-in Calabria, wrote his Utopia, called “The City of the Sun,” a sensual
-paradise, in which there was to be a community of goods and of wives.
-For more than a century socialistic and communistic publications were
-numerous; many of them denouncing property as a sin, and advocating
-the greatest license in the intercourse of the sexes. Rousseau, in his
-discourse on the “Origin and Grounds of Inequality Amongst Men,” speaks
-with approval of “a state of nature,” something like that among our
-American Indians before they had any knowledge of civilization. He seems
-to have supposed there was no inequality, no vice, no misery, among
-untutored savages, and advised those who could, to return to a state of
-nature.
-
-The skeptical Owen,[6] and the philosophical Fourier,[7] more practical
-than others, attempted to establish communities as models or examples of
-what could be accomplished on their theory, but failure attended their
-enterprises, or the communities were saved from utter disintegration by
-the tacit admission of principles that were once disavowed.
-
-Modern socialism, akin to communism, and in all its tendencies subversive
-of good government, declaims over the poverty and misery of the unhappy
-masses, laments their insufficient shelter, food, and clothing, is
-sentimental on the subject of labor and wages, and seeks to rouse the
-abject sufferers to a sense of their sad condition. Its pictures of
-suffering are in many cases not overdrawn, and the greatest efforts can
-hardly exaggerate the facts. But socialism is not “social science.”
-It is utterly and perversely unscientific; it discusses effects,
-carefully leaving causes out of view; and would reform communities by
-corrupting and debasing individuals. With a vague notion that every man
-has a natural right to whatever he needs, it allows that the problem
-of equalization may be solved by violence, and thus all brought to a
-common level. The crimes against society, which have lately appalled us,
-are doubtless the result of the pernicious principles and teaching of
-“socialistic reformers.” But a reaction is sure to come, and the better
-instincts of the race will yet destroy the corrupt tree whose fruit is
-evil.
-
-
-
-
-SUNDAY READINGS.
-
-SELECTED BY CHANCELLOR J. H. VINCENT, D.D.
-
-
-[_April 5._]
-
- Ecclesiastics 7:29: “Lo, this only have I found, that God hath
- made man upright; but they have sought out many inventions.”
-
-If we should stand amid the uncovered treasures which mark the site of
-ancient Nineveh or Babylon we would doubtless find in the objects, as
-they are this moment, very much to engage our most interested attention.
-We would regard with wonder and pleasure the specimens of beautiful
-architecture, the evidences of human skill and industry which modern
-exploration has disclosed to view. And yet, full of interest as such an
-occupation would be, we could not prevent our minds from engaging in
-another. Without any conscious exercise of will, our thought would revert
-to the day when these fallen structures stood in all their magnificence;
-when these halls, now filled with the sand of the desert, echoed to the
-strains of music and to the voices of the noblest and greatest of the
-land; when through these arches, now crumbling, armies marched gaily to
-battle, or returned in triumph, bearing the spoils of conquest. We would
-not be insensible to the value of the columns and capitals, the statuary
-and tablets before our eyes, and yet the very grandeur of these ruins
-would evoke the genius who would lead our thought by an irresistible
-constraint to look upon the prior vision of those cities in the day of
-their pristine perfection.
-
-My friends, we do stand amid ruins. We walk day after day amid shattered
-greatness, in comparison with which the prized relics of Nineveh and
-Babylon, of Thebes, and Luxor,[1] and Troy, sink into insignificance.
-Far be it from me to underestimate the work of man, as we see him and
-know him to-day, or as we read of him in the records of the past. I am
-aware of what he is, and of what he has done. I am not insensible to his
-work, and yet I declare that man, great as he is—and he is great—is in
-certain respects not as great as he was. I mean that he is not what the
-progenitor of the race was. And viewed in comparison with that primitive
-condition—that condition at creation—man to-day, considered physically,
-intellectually, morally and spiritually, is a conspicuous instance of
-fallen grandeur—not worthless and valueless—far from that; but his
-perfection has departed; he is vastly inferior to what his great original
-was. Realizing this, we can not fail to revert in thought to that early
-day, and seek to see what the greatness was from which we have fallen.
-
-Before, however, we attempt to look upon that picture, it will be
-necessary to establish and defend the theory of man’s condition and
-history upon this earth, with which it is inseparably connected.
-
-A view of human history, which has been strongly advocated of late,
-is that our race began physically, intellectually, and morally at the
-lowest possible point. Some even maintain that the first men and women
-were but the latest and highest developments of certain species of
-brutes. But whether this phase of the theory of evolution be included
-in it or not, the essential idea of the view to which we refer is that
-the progenitors of our race were the lowest kind of savages, in their
-powers and capacities, their tastes and pursuits scarcely distinguishable
-from the brutes around them, and that from this low beginning men have
-gradually come to the height of attainment and improvement which they
-occupy to-day. If this theory be true, the statement which we have made,
-and which we proposed to consider, is false. If such were the origin
-of our race, if the first men and women were in all the parts of their
-nature but a shade removed above the brutes of the forest and the field,
-of course we of to-day are in no respect their inferiors—of course ours
-is not, as has been declared, a fallen race. We maintain, however, that
-the theory which makes our race begin in a condition of barbarism and
-imbecility is untrue. I know that it is supported by eminent names; I
-know, too, that it has been pressed upon public attention with much noisy
-and confident assertion; I know all this, and yet I declare that the
-theory is unproven; more, I declare that it is untrue.
-
-Let us look at a few considerations which may shed the light of truth
-upon this matter of the primitive condition of mankind, and by this I
-mean the condition of those who succeeded Adam himself on the stage of
-the world’s history:
-
-1. We all know how long, in families which have lost position or power,
-the memory of former greatness is cherished. You will find in your
-charitable institutions, in the depths of poverty, and, perhaps, of
-wickedness, those who will tell you by the hour of the fortunes of
-their house in remote days, of the distinction which some ancestor, far
-removed, conferred upon the name. Such memories are preserved with care,
-and transmitted from generation to generation, and they become more and
-more precious as the descendants themselves have less and less honor of
-their own. The same principle operates with nations and with the great
-tribes of men, particularly when they have themselves sunk so low that
-they are conscious of no ground of glorying in themselves. Now it is an
-instructive fact that the traditions of all nations have more or less
-reference to a golden age, from which men have fallen. This is true in
-India, in China, in Egypt, among our own Indians, among the inhabitants
-of Central and South America—wherever traditional knowledge is preserved.
-It is a vague memory—nevertheless a memory cherished by the race, handed
-down through the ages, not of an era when humanized monkeys rejoiced
-in their promotion, but of a golden age, when men as gods dwelt upon
-the earth. The only explanation of such a wide-spread tradition is that
-there must have been a fact corresponding to it; there must have been a
-substance to cast this shadow over so many generations. Those who hold
-that mankind began at the lowest point, can not satisfactorily account
-for this tradition of the race.
-
-2. Not only tradition, but history sustains our position. If the true
-explanation of man’s condition to-day, in the civilized countries, is
-that he has gradually raised himself from a state of absolute barbarism,
-we certainly ought to have in the records of authentic history the
-account of at least one nation, which, as matter of fact, before the eyes
-of the world, has done the same thing. But no such instance can be found,
-not one of a people, entirely barbarous, lifting themselves unaided,
-to the higher plane of even a comparative civilization. Archbishop
-Whately[2] says: “We have no reason to believe that any community ever
-did or ever can, emerge, unassisted by external helps, from a state of
-barbarism unto anything that can be called civilization.” And we may
-follow the course of civilization from our own land back to western
-Europe, from western Europe to Italy, from Italy to Greece, from Greece
-to Egypt and the farther East, and still, as far as history takes us we
-see the barren portions of the earth continuing to be barren—continuing
-to bear only the wild fruits of barbarism, until the stream of knowledge,
-and culture, and civilization, is led to it from some other place.
-And that stream may be followed all the way back to the beginning of
-authentic secular history, and in no one instance does the dry ground
-yield fruit and flower of itself. We maintain that the vivifying stream
-began to flow because there was in the beginning, in the East, a fountain
-filled by God himself. Or, leaving the language of allegory, we assert
-that if our race was utterly barbarous at the beginning, it never would
-have risen from its barbarism, and authentic history can not adduce a
-single instance of a nation rising unaided from barbarism to overthrow
-this position. Mankind, therefore, did not begin at the lowest point, or,
-judged by all the analogy of history, it would be there still.
-
-3. Again, the records, outside of the Bible, which have come down to us
-from early times, are few and imperfect, but the oldest of those which do
-remain indicate the existence of nations in a high state of civilization
-in the earliest periods of human history. In Egypt, China, Chaldea, these
-earliest records, whether monumental or written, bear evidence, not of
-universal barbarism in the previous ages, but of powerful and enlightened
-nationalities. Such a state of things is inconsistent with the theory
-which makes the history of our race a gradual development from a brutal
-and degraded beginning.
-
-4. Still further, the science of paleontology comes forward to prove
-the same thing. There have been found in Belgium and in France, some
-human skulls and skeletons, unquestionably of very great antiquity.
-Concerning them one of the most competent of human judges, Principal
-Dawson, of McGill University, Canada, says: “These skulls are probably
-the oldest known in the world.” But what sort of men do they indicate
-as living at that remote day? “They all represent,” he says, “a race of
-grand, physical development, and of cranial capacity equal to that of the
-average modern European.” Further he says: “They indicate also that man’s
-earlier state was the best, that he had been a high and noble creature
-before he became a savage. It is not conceivable that their great
-development of brain and mind could have spontaneously engrafted itself
-on a mere brutal and savage life. These gifts must be remnants of a noble
-organization, degraded by moral evil. They thus justify the tradition of
-a golden and Edenic age, and mutely protest against the philosophy of
-progressive development, as applied to man.” Again, he concludes from a
-careful study of these remains: “The condition, habits and structure of
-Palæocosmic[3] men correspond with the idea that they may be rude and
-barbarous offshoots of more cultivated tribes, and therefore realize, as
-much as such remains can, the Bible history of the fall and dispersion
-of antediluvian men. We need not suppose that Adam of the Bible was
-precisely like the old man of Cromagnon.[4] Rather may this man represent
-that fallen yet magnificent race which filled the antediluvian earth with
-violence, and probably the more scattered and wandering tribes of that
-race, rather than its greater and more cultivated nations.”—_Nature and
-the Bible, pp. 174-179._
-
-5. In addition to these arguments from tradition and history, and
-monumental and written records, and an actual study of human remains,
-which experts pronounce to be older, probably, than the flood, we have
-evidence within ourselves. We are not unfamiliar with stories of children
-of noble, perhaps of royal, descent, who have been abducted and brought
-up among people of low tastes and habits. But ever and anon, in gesture
-or inclination or bent of life, the blood shows itself, and to an
-attentive eye tells of the gentler and loftier sphere from which it came.
-So with us. Our consciousness reveals within us remnants of a former
-greatness; aspirations which this world has never taught us, longings for
-peace and purity which we feel we ought to have, but which we know this
-world never imparts. These things are the impress of the joys of that
-golden age which all these centuries have been powerless to erase from
-the souls of Adam’s sons. Morally, we know we are not what we ought to
-be; we are conscious of our degradation. As regards intellect, we retain
-powers which have, indeed, accomplished marvelous results; and yet, let
-some abnormal stimulus affect the brain—whether it be that produced by
-sudden excitement or passion, or that caused by powerful artificial
-agencies, and we see flashes of power yet in reserve which intimate what
-this wondrous human mind may once have been. And physically, our frail
-bodies, quickly tired and quickly crumbling to dust, tell us daily that
-here, at least, the theory of development from imperfection to perfection
-has signally failed.
-
-
-[_April 12._]
-
-From these considerations we deem it evident that the theory of man’s
-development from a primitive condition of barbarism is untrue. The
-various glimpses which we have been able to obtain of the early ages
-reveal man as in an advanced condition. To all this the representations
-of the Bible correspond. It is not the design of the inspired volume to
-give a minute description of the customs, habits, knowledge, employments
-of the nations of the world. All that it says upon these subjects is
-incidental, yet no one in reading its accounts of those early times, and
-of the people then living, could possibly imagine that the men and women
-of whom it speaks were such as the rude Hottentot or the savage Caffre of
-to-day. The picture of man in the primitive times drawn from the Bible,
-is the same as that which is drawn from all these other sources; a being
-of physical and intellectual power; not a savage, not a barbarian, but an
-enlightened, capable, efficient man. How much he knew, how much he could
-accomplish, what acquaintance he had with the forces of nature, which
-we are now beginning to understand, must be matters of conjecture. Sin
-had commenced its blighting work, but we must remember that man in those
-early days had inherited from the first man splendid powers, and probably
-varied and extensive knowledge. His physical strength and his length of
-days were still great, and doubtless in all respects, save morally and
-spiritually, he was even yet a magnificent creature, and a power upon the
-earth.
-
-Still, this was not the point which, in this discussion, we wished
-to reach. All this was the greatness of man after he had begun to
-deteriorate, after the poison of sin had begun to do its certain
-and terrible work. This vision of primitive man in his physical and
-intellectual strength is the splendor which abides a little while in
-the sky after the sun has set. Nevertheless, the sun had set, and there
-is a world-wide difference between this picture and that unto which
-we would lead you—the picture of that sun in its glory—the picture of
-unfallen man—the first man—the perfect man. Now let us look upon it.
-The long ages of preparation have rolled away and the earth is a garden
-of loveliness. Upon the splendors of its landscapes, the beauty of its
-lakes, the grandeur of its mountains and oceans, the sun looked down from
-his pavilion in the sky by day, and the moon and the stars by night. The
-magnificent domain waited in harmony and beauty for its inhabitants, “And
-God said, let us make man in our image, after our likeness.” “So God
-created man in his own image: in the image of God created he him.” “And
-God saw everything that he had made, and behold it was very good.”
-
-In the place of honor and dominion in that waiting world of beauty,
-enthrone a being who shall be the counterpart of those words of
-infallible description—a _man_, made in the image of God, and receiving
-the unqualified commendation of his divine Creator. We may, without
-danger of mistake, consider him to have been physically a being of
-magnificent stature, and of matchless perfection of feature and form,
-with a body ignorant of weakness or disease, free from the seeds of
-sickness and of death. That a change would afterward have been necessary
-to fit his body of flesh and blood for its immortality is possible, but
-such change would not have been what we understand by death. Age would
-not have brought infirmity to him. Nature would have had no debt to pay
-to the grave.
-
-Enshrined in this perfect body as in a glorious temple was a mind
-corresponding, doubtless, in excellence to its habitation and to the
-terms which describe its creation. Intellectually as well as morally,
-he was created in the image of God. He was possessed of reason and of
-actual knowledge. When the various classes of animals were passed in
-review before him, he had such an apprehension of their distinctive
-characteristics as to be able to give to them all appropriate names. And
-as he knew thus much of nature, how shall we limit his familiarity with
-her mysteries? And what shall we say of the powers of discernment, of
-intuition, of memory, of judgment, of the facility in working, of the
-unwearied and the unending delights and achievements of a mind made in
-the image of God, and not yet marred or weakened by sin!
-
-But the crowning glory of that first man, that which marks his distance
-from us more than any physical or intellectual superiority, is that in
-his moral and spiritual nature he bore a likeness to his divine Creator.
-This being, whose body knew no imperfection, whose mind was rich in its
-possessions, and mighty in its power to acquire and enjoy every kind
-of truth, was holy. No thought arose in that heart which could not be
-published in heaven—none which could mantle his cheek with the blush of
-shame, or cause his manly eye to drop in consciousness of wrong, or make
-a ripple of disquiet in the sea of perfect peace which filled his soul.
-His thoughts were God’s thoughts. His loves, his wishes, his purposes,
-in harmony with God’s, ascended and descended like the angels Jacob saw,
-in perfect and blessed communion between heaven and earth, and earth
-was heaven begun. Of this world, with its abounding life, he was the
-acknowledged king. Within him was the consciousness of peace, and joy,
-and immortality. All about him was beauty, and amid the glories of his
-Eden home, God himself condescended to walk with him and be his friend.
-
-Such is a faint outline of the picture on which I would have you look—the
-picture of man as he was in the beginning. Does not the sight justify the
-assertion that we are a fallen race? Does it not confirm the teaching of
-our text, that “God hath made man upright, but they have sought out many
-inventions?”
-
-I need not delay to prove that this picture is not a representation of
-our present condition. Think of these frail physical existences, begun
-with a cry, continued in pain and weakness, and extended with difficulty
-to their three score years and ten. Think of the ages through which the
-intellect of the most favored portion of the world has been struggling to
-its present attainments. Think particularly of the moral and spiritual
-condition of the race, in comparison with that heavenly vision of
-Godlikeness which stands at the beginning of our history. I need not
-delay then to prove that mankind has fallen. I will, however, ask you to
-remember when you reflect upon the sad disorders of the present state,
-upon the sorrows and weaknesses and wickednesses of men to-day, that God
-did not thus create the progenitors of the race. If we see ruins about
-us and within us, let us remember that the temple as it was fashioned by
-the supreme architect was perfect. Let us remember also the real and only
-cause of this terrible catastrophe. It was sin—sin that always has ruined
-and always will destroy the beautiful, the pure, the true. Men did indeed
-go from that height of exaltation into the depths of barbarism; it is
-true enough that the pages of remote history show us men living in caves,
-and almost reduced to the level of the brutes—and sin led them there!
-Men did lose the moral beauty of our first parent; they did lose much of
-the intellectual and physical strength which lingered for a season in
-his immediate descendants—and sin was the despoiler that remorselessly
-stripped from them those glorious robes! You and I might have been as
-Adam—ignorant of sorrow and of suffering, and the world still an Eden
-about us, but sin has cast us down.
-
-But let us remember also, with infinite gratitude and hope, as we look
-upon that picture of primeval perfection which we have sought to restore,
-that that condition may be regained. The crumbled arches, the fallen
-walls, the shattered foundations of Nineveh’s or Babylon’s palaces
-can never by any human skill be made to reproduce the glory that has
-departed, and yet the temple of man’s Eden estate, though cast down with
-a more fearful destruction, can be restored! Yea, made more glorious
-than it was before, and established upon a foundation, so that through
-the eternal ages it can never again be moved! Thanks be unto God, this
-is possible to us. Jesus Christ has come from heaven and has undertaken
-the accomplishment of the stupendous task. Jesus Christ has promised to
-effect it for every one who will yield to his influences. And he can do
-it, for he is the Savior, he is the Redeemer, the buyer-back of that
-which was lost, and of nations and of regions as well as of individual
-souls. … His spirit is the inspiration of the life which here is lived.
-That is enough to lift up any place or any people. And just as certainly
-will it lift up any human soul. Just as certainly will it redeem it from
-the consequences of the race’s fall. Not in this life, indeed, may we
-expect to have again the perfection of power and the freedom from sorrow
-which our first parent had; but the work of bringing men back to all the
-blessedness which Adam enjoyed, with new elements of blessing added, will
-be done—yea, it is even now going on, through the power of an indwelling
-Christ in souls that are here to-day. Let us all take the loving and
-mighty hand which is extended for our uplifting; let us seek our
-birthright, and though, through the first Adam our Paradise was lost, let
-us yield ourselves to the second Adam, by whom a better Paradise shall be
-regained.—_The Rev. Dr. E. D. Ledyard._
-
-
-[_April 19._]
-
-Monarchs reign, but their dominion is merely external. They do not and
-can not enter into the realm of the soul; but “there is another king,
-one Jesus,” whose right it is to sit enthroned in every heart, to direct
-every conscience, and to have dominion over every thought and action.
-Have you given him the sovereignty of yourself?
-
-Sin reigns, and that king, alas! holds sway in many—I ought to say in
-the vast majority of human souls. But he is an usurper; for “there is
-another king, one Jesus,” who is the rightful lord of the heart. Under
-which king are you? He who repudiates the royalty of Jesus over him is
-guilty of treason against the majesty of heaven, and is but courting his
-destruction.
-
-Death reigns, and day by day he is sweeping in new multitudes into his
-silent realm. The mightiest and the meanest alike must yield to him
-who is the terror of kings, no less than he is the king of terrors.
-At one time he rides on the hurricane, and dashes the laboring vessel
-and the freighted souls within her on the roaring reef; at another he
-drives through the city streets riding on his pestilential car, and
-spreads desolation round him. Now he careers upon the boiling flood, and
-sweeps whole villages before him into swift destruction; and again he
-leaps in the lightning-flash upon some devoted building, and kindles a
-conflagration that burns many in its flames. He laughs at men’s efforts
-to elude his grasp; and as we look upon the settled countenance of the
-loved one whom we are preparing to lay in the grave, we are almost
-compelled to own him conqueror. But no! “there is another king, one
-Jesus,” who is “the Resurrection and the Life,” and “who hath abolished
-death and brought life and immortality to light by the Gospel.” Let us,
-then, be undismayed by this last enemy. He is a vanquished foe. Our Lord
-Jesus has gone into his domain, and having conquered him there, has
-brought him back with him to his palace, to be there the page who opens
-the door for his friends into the chamber of his presence. Yes! as we
-stand by the remains of our Christian dead, and under the influence of
-sight are moved to speak of Death as king, we recall in another sense
-than they were meant, but in a sense which faith recognizes as true, the
-words “There is another king, one Jesus.”
-
-Paradoxical as it may seem, these two things always go together. Where
-Christ is owned as the sole sovereign, there his service is perfect
-freedom; but where his supremacy is either ignored or given to another,
-there comes the slavery of superstition, or the tyranny of priestcraft,
-or the cold domination of philosophy, and it is hard to say which of
-these is the most degrading.—_W. M. Taylor._
-
-
-[_April 26._]
-
-He who would preach the Gospel with power must be himself a believer in
-the Lord. The secret of true, heart-stirring eloquence in the pulpit is,
-next after the power of the Holy Ghost, that which the French Abbé has
-very happily called “the accent of conviction” in the speaker. Behind
-every appeal that Paul made to sinners, there was the memory of that
-wonderful experience through which he passed on the way to Damascus;
-and therefore we are not surprised that he _so_ preached as either to
-secure men’s faith or to rouse their antagonism. But his conversion
-alone, without his Arabian revelations, would not have made him the
-apostle he became. In the desert he met his Lord, and received from him
-many important spiritual communications. There, too, he meditated on the
-truths revealed to him, and poured out his heart in prayer for a thorough
-understanding of their meaning and a full realization of their power.
-Thus he came back to Damascus, if not with a face glowing like that of
-Moses when he descended from Sinai, at least with a heart filled and
-fired with love to Him who had there unfolded to him the mysteries of the
-Gospel. Now, what Paul thus received from the Lord has been given to us
-by evangelists and apostles in the New Testament Scriptures. Our Arabia,
-therefore, will be the study and the closet in which we pore over these
-precious pages, and seek to comprehend their many sided significance, as
-well as to imbibe the spirit by which they are pervaded. He who would
-preach to others must be much alone with his Bible and his Lord; else
-when he appears before his people, he will send them to sleep with his
-pointless platitudes, or starve them with his empty conceits. Get you
-to Arabia, then, ye who would become the instructors of your fellowmen!
-Get you to the closet and the study! Give your days and nights to the
-investigation of this book; and let everything you produce from it be
-made to glow with white heat in the forge of your own heart, and be
-hammered on the anvil of your own experience!—_W. M. Taylor._
-
-
-
-
-EASY LESSONS IN ANIMAL BIOLOGY.
-
-
-CHAPTER I.
-
-Biology is the science of life, the true doctrine concerning all living
-things. Animal biology is that branch of the science which relates to
-animals, as distinguished from plants. It tells of these animals what
-we know about them, where and how they live, what food they eat, how it
-is received, and how they grow and multiply. Of all the sciences, this
-seems most extensive, having for its field a world of numberless forms,
-alike in that they all live, and have some characteristics in common,
-yet showing great diversity in their structure, appearance, and mode of
-life. In this summary of facts we shall simply classify, or methodically
-arrange in groups, according to their distinguishing peculiarities, the
-members of this vast family.
-
-The animal kingdom is divided into the following sub-kingdoms, each
-of which is subdivided into classes. The following table shows these
-divisions in their proper order, beginning with the lowest:
-
-
- SUB-KINGDOM I—_Protozoa_. { Class I—Monera.
- { Class II—Gregarinida.
- { Class III—Rhizopoda.
- { Class IV—Infusoria.
-
- SUB-KINGDOM II—_Spongida_.
-
- SUB-KINGDOM III—_Cœlenterata_. { Class I—Hydrozoa.
- { Class II—Anthozoa.
- { Class III—Ctenophora.
-
- SUB-KINGDOM IV—_Echinodermata_. { Class I—Crinoidea.
- { Class II—Asteroidea.
- { Class III—Echinoidea.
- { Class IV—Holothuroidea.
-
- SUB-KINGDOM V—_Vermes_. { Class I—Flat Worms.
- { Class II—Round or Thread Worms.
- { Class III—Rotifera.
- { Class IV—Polyzoa.
- { Class V—Brachiopoda.
- { Class VI—Annelidæ.
-
- SUB-KINGDOM VI—_Mollusca_. { Class I—Lamellibranchiata.
- { Class II—Gasteropoda.
- { Class III—Cephalopoda.
-
- SUB-KINGDOM VII—_Articulata_. { Class I—Crustacea.
- { Class II—Arachnida.
- { Class III—Myriapoda.
- { Class IV—Insecta.
-
- SUB-KINGDOM VIII—_Tunicata_.
-
- SUB-KINGDOM IX—_Vertebrata_. { Class I—Pisces.
- { Class II—Reptilia.
- { Class III—Aves.
- { Class IV—Mammalia.
-
-
-SUB-KINGDOM I.
-
-_Protozoa_ (first animals). These earliest formed animals are
-distinguished for the simplicity of their structure. In some cases their
-animal nature was long ago in doubt, and they were, for a time, put down
-as probably belonging to the vegetable kingdom. The border line between
-the two has never been very definitely located. Biologists may fail to
-tell just what special quality distinguishes the minute animal from the
-microscopic plant. This is not wonderful, when it is remembered that
-myriads of animals, known to be such, are so small that it requires a
-lens of strong magnifying power to discover them. Three thousand of them,
-placed side by side, would make a line but little over an inch long.
-
-CLASS I.—_Monera_ (single). These are the simplest forms of microscopic
-aquatic animals. They are entirely homogeneous, and without any
-developed organs; mere particles, of a jelly-like, but living, or
-life-supporting substance, called protoplasm, or more properly, bioplasm.
-This, all admit, is the physical basis of life, and the medium of its
-manifestation, just as the conductor is a medium of manifestation
-of electricity. But is it not a stupid blunder to confound the mere
-medium of its manifestation with the life itself? In neither case is
-the recognized physical basis of the manifestation necessary to the
-existence of that manifested by its means. Electricity exists without the
-conductor, and life may exist without the bioplasm.
-
-CLASS II.—_Gregarinida_ (living in herds). Minute animals which are found
-in the intestines of the lobster, clam, and cockroach. They are worm-like
-in form, and of a very simple, cell-like structure, the only organ being
-a nucleus.
-
-CLASS III.—_Rhizopoda_ (root footed). The representative forms of this
-class are the _Amœba_[1] and _Foraminifera_. The amœba is an indefinite
-little bit of bioplasm, as structureless as the monera, only that it
-is made up of two layers of the substance, has an apparent nucleus,
-and a contractile cavity within. These first animals vindicate their
-right to be recognized as such, by moving, receiving food, growing, and
-reproducing their kind. They move by a contractile force, throwing out
-at will processes of their soft bodies, to serve them as feet and arms.
-True, these are blunt, and without digits, but they answer the purpose.
-They eat either by simple absorption, or by wrapping their soft bodies
-around the food, and holding it in the extemporized stomach till it is,
-in some way, assimilated.
-
-The work of reproduction is carried on principally by self-division, and
-budding. The animal rends itself into two or more parts, each having all
-the elements of the whole, or it throws out buds that mature and drop
-from the parent mass, having the vital element, and a portion of the
-bioplasm, or medium necessary to its development.
-
-[Illustration: FORAMINIFERA, SHOWING ROOT-LIKE FEET.]
-
-The _Foraminifera_ (perforated animals), of this class, have several
-peculiarities. The body is even more simple, being apparently without
-layers or cavity. The processes thrown out as arms and legs are not
-blunt or massive, but long and slender. And, moreover, small as it is,
-it has the wonderful property of secreting about itself an envelope,
-whose thin walls are built of the carbonate of lime. The delicate little
-structures are often singularly beautiful. Some are monads, having but a
-single shell; others, by a process of budding add new cells or chambers,
-often in a spiral coil. These are marine shells, and their numbers in
-many parts of the ocean are astounding. The bottom of the sea, for many
-degrees on both sides of the equator, wherever examined by dredging, is
-found covered with them, either still in their organic state, or ground
-by attrition to a fine lime dust. It is estimated that a single pound of
-the sea bottom in some localities contains millions of them, and they are
-the principal material of the chalk hills.
-
-CLASS IV.—_Infusoria._ This class includes _Vorticella_ (wheel animals),
-_Flagellata_ (whip-shaped animals), _Tentaculata_ (having tentacles),
-and others. Their general characteristics do not differ widely from
-those already mentioned. As the name imports, they are mostly found
-in vegetable infusions that have been exposed for some time, and are
-directly the product of invisible cells or animal germs that were
-floating in the atmosphere till a lodgment was found favorable to their
-development. Those called _Vorticella_, to the eye seem simply mould on
-the plant to which they are attached, but under the glass their animal
-qualities appear; and they multiply with amazing rapidity. Every drop
-of water from a stagnant pool is full of these animalculæ, of various
-shapes and dimensions, some of them constantly in motion, propelled
-by numerous cilia, or slender, hair-like appendages that fringe the
-circumference, and are used as oars. Their whole organism, though
-delicate, and having a thin membranous covering, is imperfect. There are
-two contractile openings, with a slight depression at the mouth, leading
-to a funnel-shaped throat, into which the nutritive substances descend.
-
-
-SUB-KINGDOM II.
-
-_Spongida_, or sponges, are especially worthy of mention. When much
-less was known of their nature and habits, they were classed with
-vegetables, but since their mode of reproduction has been discovered,
-they are known to be animals. The sponge is formed of an aggregation of
-ciliated cells, built together on a skeleton or framework of calcareous
-or silicious substance, that extends by slow external secretions as the
-animal body grows. There is a central cavity toward which there are
-numerous channels, from openings on the surface, through which water
-is continually received, and one through which it is discharged. The
-animal part is a sensitive, gelatinous film, extending through the
-growing mass, and spreads out over the surface. It is perforated, in
-places, and adapts itself to all the sinuosities and intersections of
-the canals that run in every direction. The little animals are provided
-with exceedingly fine cilia that they keep in almost constant motion; no
-one knows how, or for what, but it is supposed they thus sweep in the
-water that circulates through all the channels and chambers formed for
-it. After death, the soft matter, like all animal tissues, decays, or is
-dried up; and by beating and washing, it and any calcareous substances
-are removed. The horny, elastic fibers are found so exquisitely connected
-about the internal canals and cavities that water is freely admitted,
-or by pressure expelled. Sponges are found in every latitude, but are
-more numerous and grow larger in warm climates. Those in our markets are
-mostly from the Bahamas and the islands of the Mediterranean. They are
-obtained by diving, often to great depths.
-
-
-SUB-KINGDOM III.
-
-_Cœlenterata_ (hollow intestines). These are radiate animals, have a
-distinct digestive cavity, and always two layers of tissue in their
-walls. They have minute sacs containing a fluid, and barbed filaments
-capable of being thrown out as stings. The classes of the Cœlenterata
-are the _Hydrozoa_, _Anthozoa_, and _Ctenophora_. The best known
-representative of the former is the fresh water _hydra_ (water animal).
-It gives but slight evidence of a nervous system, has no stomach, or
-digestive sac, but is a simple tube into which the mouth opens. The
-sensitive little body is in color and texture, to the casual observer
-more like a plant than an animal. It is attached at one end to a
-submerged aquatic plant, while the mouth at the free end is provided with
-tentacles,[2] by which it feeds and moves. It buds, and also produces
-eggs. The young hydra, when hatched or thrown off, attaches itself to
-plants, as did its parents. Some hydroids attach themselves to shells,
-and are supported by horny, branching skeletons, specimens of which are
-numerous, and may be seen in almost any museum.
-
-[Illustration: HYDRA, SHOWING BUDS.]
-
-A second representative of this class is the jelly fish. It has a soft,
-gelatinous, circular body, that floats or swims on the surface in calm
-weather, with the mouth downward. Tubes radiate from the center to
-the circumference that is fringed all around with pendant tentacles,
-sometimes of great length and of considerable contractile power. They
-are of various sizes, some quite small, others as much as eight feet in
-diameter. They move about by flapping their sides, after the manner of
-opening and shutting an umbrella. When dried, the thin, filmy covering
-is very light. One variety, called _Lucernaria_, is found attached to
-grasses along the Atlantic shore. But the ordinary jelly fish is free,
-and borne on the surface of the sea.
-
-The _Anthozoa_ (flower animals) are small, but not microscopic animals,
-having a double cavity, the inner of which is the digestive sac. The
-best known of the class is the _Actinia_ (rayed), or sea anemone, so
-called from its resemblance to a plant or flower of that name. The body
-is somewhat like a flower in shape. The disc has a central orifice, very
-contractile, and surrounded with tubular tentacles of various forms,
-which it elongates, contracts, and moves in different directions. They
-are so many arms by which the animal seizes its prey, and when expanded
-for the purpose, being tinted with brilliant colors, present an elegant
-appearance, and make vast fields of the ocean look like beautiful flower
-gardens. They feed voraciously on little crabs and mollusks, that
-often seem superior to themselves in strength and bulk, but they have
-power in their little tentacles to seize and hold their prey, and when
-they engulf large bodies the stomach is distended to receive them; and
-their digestion is good. The purple sea anemone is very common on the
-southern shores of England, and one species, found on the shores of the
-Mediterranean, is said to be esteemed a great delicacy by the Italians.
-At night, or when alarmed, the animal draws in its arms, shuts the door,
-and seems but a rounded lump of flesh, a huge oyster without a shell. The
-coral polyps (many footed), belonging to this class, are little folk,
-but of importance from their well-earned reputation as reef builders.
-They are very diminutive creatures, mere drops of animal jelly, often not
-larger than the head of a pin, but their works show unmistakable evidence
-of life, and an organic structure. They live in communities, closely
-united, but each, having a distinct individuality, by the sure process
-of secreting a portion of the calcareous matter within reach, prepares
-for himself a house, as all his ancestors have done, and his neighbors
-are now doing. They build together, their foundations having strong
-connections, and thoroughly cemented. There in his own little palace the
-polyp lives, his food being brought to his lips; and, having sent out a
-numerous progeny to do likewise for themselves, there he dies. Life and
-death, as in all mundane communities, being in close proximity, the old
-dying, a new generation builds houses over their sepulchres.
-
-[Illustration: SEA ANEMONE.]
-
-The great variety of corals seen in any extensive collection, some very
-beautiful, others rough and unsightly, are from different branches of a
-very extensive family. _Astrea_ (star shaped), from the Fiji islands, is
-a kind of coral hemisphere, covered with large and beautiful cells.
-
-_Mushroom coral_ is disc shaped, not fixed or attached, and is the
-secretion, not of many, but of a single huge polyp.
-
-_Brain coral_ is globular, and the surface irregularly furrowed or
-corrugated.
-
-_Madrepora_ (spotted pores) _coral_ is neatly branched, the branches
-having pointed extremities ending in single minute cells.
-
-_Porites_, or sponge coral, is also branched, but the branches are not
-pointed, and the surface smoother.
-
-_Tubipora_, or organ pipe coral, shows some very striking peculiarities.
-A section of the vast structures built by them resembles a collection
-of regular, smooth, red colored pipes, firmly bound together by cross
-sections.
-
-Coral rocks are of slow formation, but have attained prodigious
-dimensions; whole islands are of coral origin, and in some seas the
-concealed rocks make navigation dangerous. The reefs are often 2,000 feet
-thick, though it is estimated that not more than five feet are added in a
-thousand years. The little architects were at work early.
-
-_Corallium rubrum_, or red coral, much sought after and precious, is
-shrub-like, of fine texture, and a beautiful crimson color. In a living
-state its branches are said to be covered over with bright polyps, and
-the skeleton receives a very fine polish. It is used for ornaments.
-Professor Dana says: “Some species grow in large leaves rolled round each
-other, like an open cabbage, and another foliated kind consists of leaves
-more crisped, and of more delicate structure. ‘Lettuce coral’ would be a
-significant name; each leaf has its surface covered with polyp flowers.
-The clustered leaves of acanthus and oak are at once called to mind by
-this species.”
-
-[Illustration: CORAL ISLAND.]
-
-_The Ctenophora_ (comb-bearing) are considered the highest of the
-Cœlenterata, having a more complex digestive apparatus, and better
-developed nervous system. Their long tentacles, and comb-like cilia are
-used for swimming.
-
-
-SUB-KINGDOM IV.
-
-_Echinodermata_ (spiny skinned) have all their parts symmetrically
-arranged about a central axis, a contractile heart, good digestive
-organs, and a peculiar system of radiating canals extending through the
-organism. They are a numerous family of exclusively marine animals, and
-their characteristics furnish an interesting study. Most naturalists
-mention four classes.
-
-CLASS I.—_Crinoidea_, or sea lilies, now nearly extinct, are fixed to
-rocks, or the sea bottom, by what seems simply a stem, but is the body
-of the animal. At the top is the mouth, resembling an expanding bud
-or flower that opens upward, surrounded by long tentacles, or arms,
-not unlike the sea anemone. It is supported by a calcareous skeleton
-consisting of many members, stiff-jointed, crossing and interlacing with
-one another. When living, the gelatinous animal partly envelops this
-framework.
-
-CLASS II.—_Asteroidea_, or star fish, have a flat disc, five or more
-radiating arms extending some distance from the body at the center, and
-containing a part of the viscera. The mouth is where the arms meet, and
-opens downward. The upper surface is studded over with rough knobs,
-between which are the openings of many little tubes, for the passage
-of water into and out of the body. The round mouth is very dilatable,
-enabling it to receive large and solid objects for its food, which
-there is no attempt to masticate. After the digestive organ is somehow
-wrapped around the shell fish on which it feeds, it is held in its firm
-embrace till the nutritive portion is disposed of, and then thrown out.
-They are voracious eaters, devouring all kinds of garbage that would
-otherwise accumulate along the shores, valuable as sea scavengers, though
-destructive of living crustaceans and shell fish.
-
-CLASS III.—_Echinoidea_ (hedgehog-like) are covered with spines which
-they move either by the enveloping membrane or by small muscles properly
-situated for the purpose. The thin, horny, and, when dry, very light
-skin is peculiar, in that it is composed of regularly shaped, pentagonal
-plates, arranged in radiating zones, every alternate plate perforated
-with small holes; and among the spines, but capable of extending beyond
-them, are little arms, provided at the end with forceps, probably for
-seizing their prey, or for ridding themselves of troublesome parasites.
-These are also used for locomotion. They are less active than some others
-of the family, live near the shore among rocks, or under the seaweed,
-feed on crabs, and are oviparous.[3]
-
-CLASS IV.—_Holothuroidea_ (whole mouthed). They are elongated, like
-a cucumber, and the head end terminates abruptly, the mouth being a
-circular opening surrounded with feathery tentacles. They have remarkable
-muscular power, by which they can disgorge the contents of the stomach,
-throw off their tentacles, and even eject most of their internal
-organs, and survive the loss, afterward producing others, perhaps more
-satisfactory or in a healthier condition. In tropical climates, they have
-been likened to the sea urchin, without a shell, but are proportionally
-longer, and their axis horizontal.
-
-
-SUB-KINGDOM V.
-
-_Vermes_ (worms). Animals having head and tail composed of segments. The
-digestive organ is tubular, and the nervous system a double chain of
-ganglia[4] on the ventral[5] surface. There are six classes of vermes.
-The animals differ greatly in appearance.
-
-CLASS I.—_Flat worms_ are best known as the parasites that infest
-animals, such as the liver fluke of the sheep, and the tapeworm. The flat
-worms pass through a very peculiar metamorphosis, some varieties taking
-as many as seven different forms.
-
-CLASS II.—_Round or Thread Worms_ are represented by the pin worm and
-_Trichina_. The latter is the dangerous worm which finds its way into the
-human system from pork flesh, in which it is imbedded.
-
-CLASS III.—_Wheel Animalculæ_, or _Rotifera_. A most interesting
-microscopic worm, abounding in fresh water and in the ocean. They will
-remain dried up for years, and then recover life. Their shapes are very
-peculiar.
-
-CLASS IV.—_Moss Animals_, or _Polyzoa_, are the animals which form a
-coral-like shell. They are abundant on the seashore, and are called sea
-mosses.
-
-CLASS V.—_Lamp Shells_ (_Brachiopoda_). These worms are marine, and form
-a bivalve shell, the valves being on either side of the body. The body
-has long arms on one side of the mouth, which bear fringes; the motion of
-the fringes draws food into the mouth. They are also used in respiration.
-But few species of the Brachiopods are now living, though they were once
-very plenty.
-
-CLASS VI.—_Annelidæ._ This last class includes the leeches, a flat worm,
-whose body is divided into segments; the earth or angleworm, a familiar
-worm of many segments, and the marine worms. Each segment of the latter
-bears clusters of bristles, used in swimming.
-
-
-SUB-KINGDOM VI.
-
-_Mollusca_ (soft). General characteristics—Mollusks, a numerous branch
-of the animal kingdom, are so called from the softness of their bodies,
-which usually have no internal skeleton or framework to support them.
-They are covered with a tough, muscular skin, and generally protected
-by a shell. They have a gangliated nervous system, in some cases well
-developed, the medullary[6] mass not enclosed in a cranium or spinal
-column—of which they are mostly destitute—but distributed more or
-less irregularly through the body. They have hearts, and an imperfect
-circulative system, the blood being pale or blueish. Some breathe in air,
-some in fresh, more in sea water. Some—both of those on land and those in
-water—are naked, others have a calcareous covering or shell. The larger
-marine mollusks are often guarded by very strong, heavy shells. Some are
-viviparous, others oviparous, and multiply rapidly.
-
-[Illustration: SNAIL.]
-
-Three general, and many subdivisions are recognized. The total number of
-living species is said to exceed twenty thousand, of which only a few can
-be mentioned. The classes under this division are _Lamellibranchiata_,
-_Gasteropoda_, and _Cephalopoda_. The chief representatives of the first
-class are all ordinary bivalves.
-
-_Ostrea_ (oysters) are well known bivalve mollusks. The shells are so
-irregular in surface and shape that it would be impossible, as it is
-unnecessary, to describe them. The animal itself is very simple in
-structure, proverbially stupid, low in the scale of animal life, but
-highly esteemed as a delicious article of food. They are found in almost
-all seas, and in water of from two to six fathoms, but never very far
-from some shore. They multiply so rapidly that, though the consumption
-increases with the increase of population and the facilities for
-distributing them, the supply is equal to the demand. Boston is mostly
-supplied from artificial beds, and the flats or shallow bays in the
-vicinity of our maritime cities abound in such “plants.” Baltimore and
-New York have each an immense local trade, and the oysters exported from
-the Chesapeake Bay fisheries amount to about $25,000,000 annually.
-
-CLASS II.—_Gasteropoda_ (stomach-footed). This class, including the great
-snail family, is a very large division of terrestrial, air-breathing
-mollusks. Their light shells vary much in form; when spiral and fully
-developed they have as many as five or six whorls, symmetrically
-arranged. The shell can contain the whole body, but the animal often
-partially crawls out and carries the shell on its back. The locomotion is
-slow and accomplished by the contractile muscle of the ventral foot.
-
-CLASS III.—_The Cephalopoda_ (head-footed) have distinctly formed heads,
-large, staring eyes, mouths surrounded with tentacles or feelers,
-symmetrically formed bodies wrapped in a muscular covering; they have all
-the five senses, and are carnivorous. This class is entirely marine, and
-breathes through gills on the side of the body. The naked _Cephalopoda_
-are numerous, and furnish food for many other animals. Those living
-in chambered shells, once numerous, are now known principally by
-their fossils, the pearly _Nautilus_ (sailor) being their only living
-representative. This has a smooth, pearly shell, and is much prized as
-an ornament. It is a native of the Indian Ocean, dwelling in the deep
-places of the sea, and at the bottom. The shell is too well known to
-need description, and but few specimens of the living animal have been
-obtained.
-
-[Illustration: NAUTILUS.]
-
-The following facts as to the physical organization and habits of
-this interesting species of univalves are gleaned from the American
-Cyclopædia, and given for those who have not access to any extensive work
-on the subject; they were mostly copied for the Cyclopædia from Professor
-Owen’s celebrated memoir, and the “Proceedings of the Linnæan Society of
-London:”
-
-The posterior portion of the body containing the viscera is soft, smooth
-and adapted to the anterior chamber of the shell; the anterior portion is
-muscular, including the organs of sense and locomotion, and can be drawn
-within the shell. The mantle is very thin behind, and prolonged through
-the calcareous tube of the occupied chamber as a membranous siphon,
-and through all the divisions of the shell to the central nucleus;
-on the upper part of the head is a broad, triangular, muscular hood,
-protecting the head when retracted and used as a foot for creeping at the
-bottom of the sea, with the shell uppermost. … The mouth has two horny
-mandibles, like the beak of a parrot reversed, the lower overlapping
-the upper, moving vertically, and implanted in thick, muscular walls.
-… There are ninety tentacles about the labial processes and head. The
-internal cartilaginous skeleton is confined to the lower surface of
-the head, a part of the cephalic nervous system being protected in a
-groove on its upper surface, and the two great muscles which fasten the
-body to the shell are attached to it. The funnel is very muscular and
-is the principal organ of free locomotion, the animal being propelled
-backward by the reaction of the ejected respiratory current against the
-water before it. … The nautilus, though the lowest of the Cephalopods,
-offers a nearer approach to the vertebrate animals than does any
-other invertebrate, in the perfect symmetry of the organs, the larger
-proportion of muscle, the increased bulk and concentration of the nervous
-centers in and near the head, and in the cartilaginous cephalic skeleton.
-The mature nautilus occupies but a small part of the shell, the parts
-progressively vacated during its growth are one after another partitioned
-off by their smooth plates into air tight chambers, the plates growing
-from the circumference toward the center, and pierced by the membranous
-siphon. The young animal before the formation of these chambers can not
-rise from the bottom of the sea, but the older ones come to the surface
-by the expansion and protrusion of their bodies producing a slight vacuum
-in the posterior part of the chamber unoccupied, and, some say, by the
-exhalation of some light gas into the other deserted chambers. They
-rise in the water as a balloon does in the air, because lighter than
-the element surrounding them. They float on the surface with the shell
-upward, and sink quickly by reversing it. By a nice adjustment, in the
-completed structure, between the air chambers and the dwelling chamber,
-the house and its inhabitant are nearly of the same specific gravity as
-water. … In parts of the Southern Pacific, at certain seasons of the
-year, fleets of these little ships are carried by the winds and currents
-to the island shores, where they are captured and used for food.
-
-[Illustration: ARGONAUT.]
-
-_The Paper Nautilus_, or argonaut, secretes a thin, unchambered shell in
-which its eggs are carried; has tentacles or arms with which it crawls
-on the bottom, and swims backward, usually with the back down, squirting
-water through its breathing funnel. The argonaut differs from the true
-nautilus in having larger arms of more complicated structure, with sucker
-discs, and partially connected by a membrane at the base. It has an ink
-gland and sac, for its secretion. It has a great number of little cells,
-containing pigment matter of different colors, whose contractions and
-expansions give it a remarkable power of rapidly changing its tints.
-There is no internal shell, and it is ascertained that the external shell
-is peculiar to the female, and is only an incubating and protective nest
-for the eggs. The eggs are attached to the involuted spire of the shell,
-behind and beneath the body of the female. From the fact that the animal
-has no muscular or other attachment to its shell, and has been known,
-after quitting it, to survive sometime without attempting to return, the
-argonaut has been supposed to be a parasitic occupant of the cast off
-shell of another, but is now pretty clearly proved to be the architect
-of its own shell, which it also repairs when broken by the agency of
-its palmated arms. It is said the argonaut rises to the surface, with
-the shell upward, turning it downward when it floats on the water; by
-drawing the six arms within the shell and placing the palmated ones on
-the outside, it can quickly sink. This explains why the animal is so
-seldom taken with the shell. The shell is flexible when in water, but
-very fragile when dry. The largest known specimen is in the collection of
-the Boston Society of Natural History; it is 10 by 6½ inches. For a full
-account of this animal see “Proceedings of the Boston Society of Natural
-History,” vol. v, pp. 369-381.
-
- _End of Required Reading for April._
-
-
-
-
-JERRY McAULEY AND HIS WORK.
-
-BY COLEMAN E. BISHOP.
-
-
-Extremes of life meet in a great city. “Man, the pendulum betwixt a
-smile and tear,” here swings between the utmost extremes of squalor and
-splendor, misery and enjoyment, sin and virtue. That conflict between
-good and evil—old as the human soul, its arena—is waged nowhere as
-fiercely as here, where life is intense and assailable souls are legion.
-You have to go but a little below the surface of city life to find a
-worse than Dante’s “Inferno;” and if that were the whole story, if there
-were no compensating charities, one would feel it a mercy to call down on
-the city the desolation, and the peace of Sodom.
-
-But, thank God! there _are_ those redeeming, reforming influences to give
-one new hope for civilization, new faith in humanity, or new faith in
-divine grace. Its missions and charities are the sunny side of New York.
-There are over one hundred and thirty established missions in the city,
-with a million and a half of dollars permanently invested, beside the
-other millions required to support them; and the eleemosynary and relief
-institutions of New York outshine the charities of all other cities,
-proportioned to numbers. Some liberal, devout souls seem to be looking
-after every conceivable phase of suffering and sin, and if the devil
-seems generally to be getting the advantage, let us believe that it is
-because his antagonists are not more numerous, rather than because he is
-any smarter or attends more strictly to business. Indeed, the ingenuity
-of some of the foes of sin, might put to confusion the proverbial
-originality of the great adversary. Of these exceptional efforts, perhaps
-there is none more unique than the work of the late Jerry McAuley, nor
-one that has wrought so great results with so little human aid; nor one
-to which the Christian believer can point as a testimony of divine agency
-with greater confidence.
-
-Yet, a thoughtful study of the man and his work will reveal the rationale
-of it, and help us to understand why it took hold of a certain class
-in the way it did; that is, why he proved so exact a means to that
-exact end. The characteristics and training that made Jerry McAuley
-a successful criminal made him, when his nature and purpose had been
-transformed, a successful missionary. The son of a counterfeiter, he was
-educated in the worst streets and dens, graduated a tippler and petty
-thief in his boyhood, and took his degrees of gambler, drunkard, burglar
-and wharf rat; and at the age of nineteen was convicted and sentenced
-to fifteen years’ imprisonment. Short and inglorious career of sin! To
-be followed by a long and glorious one of righteousness, and crowned at
-last with a triumphant death in faith! Here for seven years he hardened
-under perfunctory gospel ministrations and prison discipline, until at
-the right time Orville Gardner, known as “Awful Gardner, the Reformed
-Prize-fighter,” found Jerry and led him to that change which he always
-called his “transformation.” He was pardoned out, only to meet the
-killing, chilling reception that society gives to one who has passed the
-bars. Now followed seven years of struggles for an honest life. Only his
-soul and its Maker know what these were. At one time he relapsed into
-his old ways, but he was sought and reclaimed by agents of the Howard
-(“Five Points”) Mission. Strange, is it not, that good people are so much
-more alert to recall the fallen than to aid the struggling and keep the
-rescued secure? Why is it that interest in the unfortunate is deferred
-till interest seems useless?
-
-Jerry now conceived the plan of a mission to people of his own old
-life, men and women tempted in all points like unto himself. He applied
-for advice and help to one or two clergymen and some wealthy church
-members, only to meet with mortifying coldness or refusal. We can
-readily understand this caution, considering McAuley’s antecedents and
-qualifications. He could hardly read and write his own name. Churches are
-so fiercely criticised that they have to be very chary about espousing
-unpromising enterprises. It was a _natural_ caution if not a _Christian_
-charity; worldly if not spiritual wisdom. Besides, are there not still
-things that He hides from the wise and prudent, and reveals unto babes?
-At length, McAuley found men able and willing to help, and with their aid
-he opened his Water Street Mission, in 1872. This situation is one of the
-worst in the lower part of the city, in the “Bloody Eighth Ward,” the
-haunt of river thieves, sailors and abandoned women of the lowest degree.
-It was a “rum start,” indeed, to the denizens of Water Street when one of
-their leaders was graduated from prison to prayer meeting; and by scores
-they “came to scoff, and remained to pray.” This mission was a success
-from the start, and to-day remains in full tide of beneficent operation.
-
-Two years ago Jerry was able to carry out his long-entertained desire to
-“do something for up-town sinners” by the establishment of the “Cremorne
-Mission.” It was a more daring undertaking because it had to do with more
-respectable sinners. He said it was a mistake to speak of those in the
-gutter as “hard cases;” their pride and reliance are gone, and they are
-not likely to be affronted or resistant when told they need a Savior; the
-prosperous and successful are the hard hearted; as you ascend the scale
-in means, intelligence and pretension, the harder the sinner becomes.
-
-On West Thirty-Second Street, just off Third Avenue, was the infamous
-Cremorne Gardens, one of the most dangerous because _not_ one of the
-lowest resorts of abandoned men and women. In this vicinity are many
-houses of ill repute of the higher rank; gamblers and sporting men have
-their “runways” in that part of the city. Jerry “carried the war into
-Africa” by leasing a building next the “Cremorne Garden,” so that in all
-respects the sad satire of DeFoe was and is reversed,
-
- “Wherever God erects a house of prayer
- The Devil always builds a chapel there;
- And ’twill be found upon examination
- The latter has the larger congregation.”
-
-The passenger by the elevated railroad, or one of the several street car
-lines that converge at the intersection of Sixth Avenue and Broadway,
-may see any evening a brilliant prismatic sign of “Cremorne Garden,” and
-seemingly just above it this more brilliant legend:
-
- JERRY MCAULEY’S CREMORNE MISSION.
-
-He will reach the Mission first, as he approaches this strange
-conjunction of stars; Jerry said he wanted the Lord to have the first
-chance at a sinner when he could.
-
-The doors are open night and day, and some one is always there to welcome
-the visitor. A “protracted meeting” is held here all the year, and all
-the years, around. Going in, you stand in a long, narrow hall, with high
-ceilings modestly decorated; an aisle down the middle flanked by rows of
-oaken settees terminates at a low platform on which are chairs, a cheap
-desk, and a grand piano. The place seats five or six hundred. The hall
-is brilliant with electric lights, and the walls are illustrious with
-such Scripture quotations as, in the words of one of the converts, have
-been found most apt to “fetch ’em”—_i. e._, sinners. By the platform are
-conspicuous notices that speeches are limited to one minute each, a rule
-that is easily enforced in the case of the converts, because they have
-only facts to tell, and do not seem to be in love with that sweetest
-music on earth, the sound of their own voices. “One minute each,” Jerry
-would say: “Don’t be too long; cut off both ends and give us the middle;
-you need not get mad, as some people have done, if I ring this bell.”
-“All right,” replied one easy speaker; “If I get long-winded pull me down
-by my coat tails;” whereat all laughed heartily, as they frequently do.
-
-Jerry McAuley’s method, first and last, was unique, but simple and very
-effective. Testimonies are the great reliance. They teach salvation by
-object lessons, prove the truth of conversion by concrete examples.
-There is no argument, no exhortation, no didactics, no theological
-disquisition. What need of these in the presence of these living
-examples? A man stands up and says: “For twenty years I was a common
-drunkard and thief. Five years ago I found Christ here. I have not
-touched a drop nor stolen a thing since.” McAuley was won by _proof_. He
-said: “It was a testimony that brought me. I was ‘sent up’ for fifteen
-years and six months; I listened to preaching there for over seven years,
-but I was still unmoved. Then a man came along who gave his experience.
-He had been a wicked man. That man told just my history; but he was
-saved, and since there was hope for a desperate man like him, I knew
-there was hope for me. And there was! Now you have heard the biggest
-debtor to grace that is in the room, let the next heaviest debtor follow
-me.” Others were won by the undeniable transformation of Jerry. These
-things were irresistible. Men describe the effect on themselves of these
-living witnesses:
-
- “The Bible reading and the prayer did not have any effect upon
- me, but the testimonies of some who had been, as I could not help
- admitting to myself, just as I then was, did affect me. I felt
- that I was in the same boat as they had been in. The conviction
- of my state forced itself upon me, whether I wanted to think of
- it or not.”
-
- “I came to this meeting three weeks ago. I was drunk when I came
- in here, but drunk as I was, those testimonies, such as you
- have heard to-night, reached me, and I went forward to those
- chairs. There I gave my heart to Christ after serving the devil
- forty-seven years.”
-
- “When I first heard the testimonies here I thought those who
- spoke had great impudence to tell all about their past lives, but
- by and by I felt that they were describing my case. Then, as they
- told how Jesus saved them, I felt I needed to be saved.”
-
- “As testimony after testimony was given I would say to myself:
- that’s me, that’s me.”
-
- Another said that the prayer and Bible reading did not affect
- him, but the testimonies were “like shot after shot fired at him.”
-
-These effects are driven home and clinched by direct personal efforts
-with penitents, by attentions that follow them to their homes or shops,
-or into evil haunts, by relief and creature comforts—in a word, by an
-interest vigilant, ceaseless, and tender as divine love, because inspired
-by it.
-
-As the method is peculiar, the atmosphere of the meeting is. One familiar
-with ordinary devotional meetings, and, more, with revival efforts,
-can not fail to notice here the contrast. Speaking is uniformly in an
-ordinary tone, and in a conversational, matter-of-fact manner—an effect
-that is heightened by the use of phrases common in the resorts where some
-of the converts learned their vernacular. And prayer is specially subdued
-and low toned—the more impressive and reverential on account of it.
-
-Then, one feels the momentum of the exercises and the tone of
-cheerfulness and joy that prevail. There is none of that exhortation
-to “improve the precious time;” none of that dismal bewailing of
-spiritual barrenness and besetting doubts, fears and temptations, which
-sometimes make devotional exercises mechanical and dreary, and furnish
-stumbling-blocks to young believers. These converts do not dwell much on
-their _enjoyment_ of religion; albeit, they do one and all give thanks
-without ceasing for their deliverance. One notes, too, the absence of
-cant, of quotations and set phrases; everything is original. There
-is little exhortation of others. In short, like Bartimeas, they know
-“Whereas I _was_ blind, _now_ I see;” and unlike the blind man, they
-know who worked the miracle.
-
-It was the founder and leader of the two missions who gave all this
-tone to their services. He was of a medium height and slender, with a
-heavy, wiry moustache, keen eyes, a nervous temperament, energetic,
-quick-witted, sympathetic; one readily caught good feeling and
-confraternity from his presence. He would flash out at a hymn, a text, or
-a testimony, with a bit of experience. Before two sentences had passed
-his lips he probably would leap down from his place on the platform,
-saying, humorously: “I can’t talk up on that stage,” and go down the
-aisle as if to hold pleasant converse with his audience. It was a strange
-_melange_ of earnestness, experience, humility and wit, with not the
-least attempt at eloquence, and apparently no study of effects. He
-describes one case of conversion:
-
- “This man had come into the meeting with his head about twice the
- usual size, and his eyes as red as a red-hot poker. You could
- have squeezed the rum out of him. He asked me to pray with him,
- but I hadn’t much faith in the man, but that’s just where God
- disappointed me. I was deceived. The man meant business.”
-
-The missions are supported entirely by voluntary contributions left in
-the boxes by the door. Sometimes these run low. One night Jerry asked
-all who were glad to be there to hold up their hands. All hands up.
-“Now,” said he, “when you take your hands down put them way down—down
-into your pockets, and fetch something out to put in the boxes by the
-door.” He said, that to run a mission successfully required “grace, grit
-and greenbacks.” I fancy considerable of his influence was due to his
-knowledge of the secret hearts, the personal experiences of his auditors;
-he was like a priest at confessional, when out of meeting. There are no
-_verbatim_ reports of his talks extant, and if there were they would give
-the reader no proper idea of the man, because the grotesqueness of his
-language would probably be the most striking feature of them. He must
-have been heard to be understood, and even then I think he could not have
-been understood save by those whose experience and modes of life gave
-them the touchstone.
-
-Sister Maggie is a typical convert. At one of the Cremorne missions a
-Sunday-school worker from the East Side told of his class of fifteen
-street boys and girls. “I asked them,” he said, “how many of them drank
-beer, and all promptly put up their hands. I asked how many thought it a
-bad practice, and only four or five responded. I then told them of the
-evils that drink led to, and cited them numerous examples within their
-knowledge, and finally asked how many of them would resolve never to
-drink any more beer. About half of them kept their hands down, and in a
-way that showed they meant business.”
-
-This discouraging incident brought to her feet, on the platform, a tall,
-thick-set, strong-featured woman. She spoke with a strident, energetic
-voice, a Bowery accent, and a manner to which all thought of shrinking or
-embarrassment was a stranger. It was Sister Maggie. She said, as nearly
-as I recall the words: “This teaching children beer-drinking is the
-beginning of all the deviltry. I was passing a dive yesterday and I saw a
-little kid come out with a pail of beer that she had been sent for, and
-no sooner was she outside the door than the pail went to her head. That’s
-the way I used to do, and learned to drink and steal at the same time.
-But God can help us to reclaim even beings so badly educated. He helped
-me, and there can’t be a worse case on the East Side. There is not a dive
-over there that I haven’t been drunk in. Brother S. knows how often I
-have drank with him at old C.’s dead-house (rum-shop). Sixteen years ago
-I was a leper, a confirmed sot. If you had seen me you would not have
-believed that I could have been saved. Christians said I was too far
-gone; they said there was not enough woman left in me to be saved. I had
-had the jim-jams twicet. [Laughter.] The first time I had ’em I thought
-my back hair was full of mice—oh, that was awful! [More laughter.] I was
-just getting over the tremens when I first come in here. I was a walking
-rag-shop, and if you’d a seen me you’d give me plenty of room on the
-walk. I staggered in and sat down on the very backest seat. Now they let
-me sit up here on the platform. What d’ye think of that? God helped me,
-and he has helped me now for sixteen years, and I am going through. I am
-happy. I have friends and good clothes, and more than all, I have _a good
-home_, and that is what I never knew before.”
-
-At the mention of the word “home,” all the woman’s instinct asserted
-itself, and for the first time her voice softened, and her manner melted;
-she sobbed, and sat down.
-
-I can give no complete idea of the effect of this, because the reader
-can know nothing of the surroundings, the antecedents of the speaker and
-of many of her listeners, and the keen rapport that ties them together.
-These worshipers are a class and an organization by themselves; they have
-no church affiliations, and their worship is _sui generis_; many of them
-were outcasts of society in former years, they stand alone since their
-reformation, and they are drawn close together in their isolation. True,
-there are many among them who were always respectable members of society;
-many who since their conversion here have joined churches; there are
-richly dressed and cultured-looking people scattered in these audiences;
-but the fact remains that the genius and distinctive _personnel_ of the
-meetings are of the order of which Jerry McAuley and “Sister Maggie” and
-their ministrations are representatives.
-
-I know of no religious exercises better calculated to inspire the
-true religious feelings of faith, charity, humility, gratitude, and
-rejoicing—the distinguishing marks of the original Christian following.
-But they differ from the noisy demonstrations which sometimes are
-taken for “primitive Christianity,” as they do from the cold and
-conventional worship which advertises itself in brownstone structures and
-double-barred mahogany pews. If one wants to get a breath of vigorous
-faith and wholesome humility, he should attend the Sunday evening
-services at one of the McAuley Missions.
-
-Jerry McAuley died suddenly, but not unexpectedly, last September. His
-funeral, held at the great Broadway Tabernacle, was one of the largest
-ever seen in this city, and was attended by hundreds of abandoned
-characters who had been reclaimed through his instrumentality, and who
-were probably never inside of a church before, and may never be again.
-Women with painted faces, but with tears in their eyes and bits of crape
-fastened at their throats or arms, stood with downcast heads beside other
-women who, under other circumstances, would have shunned them. Thus
-did all classes testify to the power of simple faith and devotion in a
-poor, uncultured outcast. Over the platform in his chapels are his last,
-characteristic words:
-
- “IT’S ALL RIGHT.”
-
-“The workman dies, but the work goes on.” There is no calculating the
-power and extent of the influences this humble worker has set in motion.
-Beside the hundreds of living examples of his labor here, the seed has
-scattered to the four winds of heaven, and sprung up in various forms to
-bless the world—in other cities and other lands. The Missions publish
-_Jerry McAuley’s Newspaper_, which, extensively circulated, especially
-in prisons and “the slums” of cities, carries the glad tidings of the
-testimonies to do a silent and unknown work. An affecting feature of the
-private work of these converts is their efforts to hunt out and reclaim
-missing boys and girls. Letters are received from agonized parents, from
-distant points as well as the city, imploring the help of missionaries to
-find these estrays; and their efforts are often successful.
-
-I close with one example of this radiating, ramifying influence: Michael
-Dunn was an English thief by inheritance, for his parents were thieves,
-and as he expresses it, “he had thieving on the brain.” He had spent the
-greater part of thirty-five years in different prisons, and continued
-the same life after coming to this country. One evening an unconverted
-man sent him into the McAuley Mission as a joke, but it proved to Dunn a
-blessing, for he found a Savior, and the desire for stealing was all cast
-out. He was moved to undertake that most important work, the provision
-of a home for refuge and work for his brother ex-convicts. After many
-trials and difficulties he finally established the Home of Industry, No.
-40 Houston Street, New York, where many lost men who were a terror to
-society, have been made honest Christian citizens, and are working to
-save others. Nor did the work stop here. In the autumn of 1883, Dunn was
-called to San Francisco, California, to open a similar Home in that city,
-where his labors are as successful as they were in New York.
-
-
-
-
-EIN FESTE BURG IST UNSER GOTT.
-
-TRANSLATION OF LUTHER’S FAMOUS HYMN.
-
- Our God’s a fastness sure indeed,
- A trusty shield and weapon;
- He helps us free in every need
- That unto us may happen.
- The old wicked foe
- Now in earnest doth go,
- Deep wiles and great might
- In his fell store unite,—
- The earth holds not his fellow.
-
- By strength of ours is nothing done,
- Full soon are we dejected!
- But on our side’s a champion
- By God himself elected.
- And who may that be?
- Christ Jesus is he,
- The Lord God of Hosts!
- All gods else are vain boasts,
- Our camp is in his keeping.
-
- Though demons rage both far and near
- And gape our souls to swallow;
- Not all too great shall be our fear;
- Success our steps shall follow.
- The prince of this world,
- Though threats he hath hurled,
- To us can do nought,
- For if to judgment brought
- One word declares his sentence.
-
- To let the word stand they are fain,
- And small thereby their merit;
- He dwells among us on the plain
- With gifts and with his spirit.
- What though they take life,
- Goods, name, child, and wife,
- We need not rebel—
- No profit those to hell,
- While ours must be the kingdom.
-
-
-
-
-THE WEATHER BUREAU.
-
-BY OLIVER W. LONGAN,
-
-Of the War Department.
-
-
-In an article on the “War Department” in THE CHAUTAUQUAN for December,
-mention was made of the weather observations by the Signal Corps of
-the army. This novel service—novel both in its character and in its
-assignment to a military department—was commenced in 1870, under a
-resolution of Congress, approved February 9th of that year, which
-required the Secretary of War “To provide for taking meteorological
-observations at the military stations in the interior of the continent,
-and at other points in the states and territories of the United States,
-and for giving notice on the northern lakes and on the sea coast, by
-magnetic telegraph and marine signals, of the approach and force of
-storms;” and in June, 1872, the provisions of the service were extended
-to include “the agricultural and commercial interests” of the country.
-The plan of organization and the superintendence of the service were
-imposed upon the chief signal officer of the army, then General Albert J.
-Myer,[A] to whose memory the signal and the weather services are living
-monuments.
-
-If failures are of value in guiding succeeding attempts in the same
-line, General Myer had the advantage of a number, both in this country
-and Europe, but attributing those failures to a want of proper agents
-rather than to mistakes of method, and being thoroughly imbued with the
-idea that efficient service from a body of men employed in the same
-enterprise can be obtained only by enrolling them under the oath of
-enlistment as subjects of military discipline, he could adopt all the
-methods of operation which had already been tried by others, and, uniting
-with them his own, could undertake the work with a confidence in men as
-much as in measures, and make sure progress over the same road that had
-been too difficult for others to travel. The signal service, which had
-been organized by him as a special and distinct department of the army,
-was well prepared to operate the most important agent in the work, the
-magnetic telegraph, and it has constructed its lines over a great extent
-of country not yet reached by civilization, connecting frontier military
-posts with each other and with the lines owned and operated by private
-companies.
-
-The office division first established under the law of Congress, which
-has been mentioned, was called by the appropriate but too extensive name
-of “Division of Telegrams and Reports for the Benefit of Commerce,”
-but great works which have been proved and not found wanting may, like
-great men, afford to adopt simpler titles without loss of favor, or if
-they will not do so voluntarily, such titles will be fashioned for them
-and fastened to them by the people, who have not time to regard the
-official proprieties that would hold them off at a respectful distance
-by an appearance of gravity of demeanor or by an impressive name, so the
-office has come to be familiarly known as the “Weather Bureau,” and the
-officials in charge have accepted the designation without objection. It
-detracts nothing from the appreciation of the work they accomplish in
-giving information—premonitory—of wind and rain, heat and cold, frost and
-snow, river flood and ocean tide, and much more of interest and value
-day by day—yes, and night by night as well—for the inhabitants of this
-continent, and in adding to the knowledge of meteorology which is eagerly
-sought by the scientists of the world.
-
-The service contemplated by Congress was at first intended—if we may
-judge by the language of the law—only to benefit persons interested in
-the commerce upon the great lakes and the ocean. Then the agriculturists
-were permitted to take share in the advantage afforded by a prevision
-of the weather. But we are all too greatly interested personally in the
-kind of weather expected to-morrow or the next day not to seek to profit
-by the work done for those engaged in special business when there may
-be great gain for us as individuals without robbery of their peculiar
-rights. Our interest moves us to speech almost unconsciously, as we meet
-our friends by the way and tell them, what they already know as well as
-we, about the kind of weather then prevailing, or express our hopes or
-fears for what soon will be. Work and play are sources of profit and
-pleasure, according to the influences of the weather, and the signs of
-olden time are numberless, to which we give our confidence, whether they
-come from the beasts of the field, or the fowls of the air, or the fishes
-of the sea, or are indications based upon a correct philosophy, well
-known but not well understood. The masses of the people will not give up
-their attachment to these signs, nor for the old-fashioned almanac which
-their fathers consulted for their weather predictions, but now that they
-have the aid of a great government institution conducted by men who study
-the weather as a science, and who have patiently held out to them the
-benefit of their investigations until the good natured skepticism and the
-raillery of the multitude who dubbed the genius of the weather service
-“Old Probabilities,” has all been banished and has given place to full
-faith and credit, they ought to acknowledge, and no doubt do, that their
-personal wants in this respect have been recognized, and they will take
-interest in the methods by which they are met and satisfied.
-
-Every feature of the signal service has been brought into requisition
-and use for the work of weather observations and storm warnings, and
-the original bureau seems to have been so wholly absorbed in the new
-one that the corps will be known, except perhaps in official circles,
-only by its operations in this special field, until war shall call for
-the more frequent use of the flags and rockets and lights, by the aid
-of which a great part of the rapid communication pertaining to the
-business of warfare is carried on. The _personnel_ of the corps comprises
-a chief signal officer (brigadier-general), twelve second lieutenants,
-one hundred and fifty sergeants, thirty corporals, and three hundred
-and twenty privates. Prior to 1878 there were no signal officers in the
-regular establishment except the chief, but in that year authority was
-given to appoint two second lieutenants annually from the sergeants, and
-the selection for these appointments is made by competitive examination.
-Officers are assigned to duty with the corps by detail from the regiments
-of the army, and after a course of instruction return to their proper
-stations, and are succeeded by others. A few civilians are employed in
-the office in Washington city, in various capacities, including that of
-professional scientist and instructor, but the great work of observation
-is done by the army force, so called because every member of it is
-ready at any moment to lay aside his special duties and take up arms
-for any emergency. The pay of the officers is that of their grade in
-the army: $5,500 per annum for a brigadier-general; $1,400 for a second
-lieutenant, with an increase of ten per centum after each five years
-of service, until the increase reaches forty per centum (after twenty
-years’ service), when no more is added. (This increase, called longevity
-pay, is not given to any officer above the rank of colonel.) As the
-government is supposed to furnish a habitation of a certain number of
-rooms for each commissioned officer, there is quite an augmentation
-of the pay when the duty requires a station where there are no public
-quarters, as is the case in most of the service for the weather bureau,
-and commutation is paid. The pay of the enlisted men varies according to
-their rank and station of duty, but is based upon the army pay table. The
-pay of a sergeant, including all allowances, averages monthly within a
-few cents of the following amounts: At a military post where quarters and
-rations are provided in kind, $40; at an observing station, $80; at the
-office in Washington city, $100; that of a corporal $25, $65, and $85;
-that of a first class private $22, $62 and $82, and a decrease of four
-dollars for a second class private, the respective stations being those
-mentioned for the sergeant. The great difference in the pay of the same
-man at different places is made by the “extra duty pay,” and commutation
-of allowances (rations, quarters, fuel and clothing) when they can not
-be furnished in kind. The entrance into the service is by an enlistment
-of five years. Every man must pass a rigid examination into his physical
-and educational qualifications. The service presents advantages not
-found in any other branch of the army. The inducements attract a well
-educated class of men, many of them graduates of colleges, who find in
-the scientific part of the work at least, a congenial pursuit.
-
-The school of instruction is at Fort Myer (formerly Fort Whipple), a
-military station in Virginia, on the bank of the Potomac river, nearly
-opposite Washington city. The course embraces the drill and discipline
-of the soldier, the code of signals, the construction and operation of
-telegraph lines, the use of meteorological instruments, and the method
-of taking observations. The central office in Washington occupies an
-ordinary looking brick building of uncertain age, half a square west of
-the War Department building. It was originally two two-story dwelling
-houses, but has received an additional story and “Mansard” roof, and has
-been fitted for its present use. The plain and dingy exterior escapes
-critical notice by the display of the mysterious looking machinery
-and fixtures upon the roof. An immense arrow (anemoscope), with broad
-feather-tip end, turns its point ever “in the wind’s eye,” and is
-imitated by two smaller ones at a lower elevation. Several sets of
-spinning instruments of various sizes stand in different places. These
-are the anemometers for measuring the velocity of the wind. The part of
-each visible from the ground is simply a vertical rod with four branches
-on the top, each branch having a hemispherical shaped cup upon its outer
-end, so placed as to catch the wind in its convex side. The force of the
-wind gives the cups a rotary motion in a horizontal plane, which causes
-the vertical rod to revolve and record by connecting mechanism and dials
-the velocity of the wind in miles per hour. Near the center of the roof
-may be seen a vessel with a funnel shaped top into which the rain falls
-and is measured to ascertain the depth in inches, of which accurate
-record is kept. Close by is a framework supporting a small cage-like
-structure with lattice sides and tight roof, within which are hung the
-thermometers, barometers, and other instruments consulted regularly at
-intervals, to ascertain the temperature, pressure, and humidity of the
-atmosphere. These fixtures and instruments are used for the purpose
-of obtaining indications of the weather, and for the instruction of
-“Observers,” and serve as well for standards by which instruments to
-be sent to other places may be tested. Only a portion, however, of the
-business of the office is done in the building mentioned, a number of
-others in the vicinity being occupied for the several departments of the
-work.
-
-The central office is connected by telegraph with stations in the
-principal cities of the country, at the sea and lake ports, and at points
-along the Atlantic and gulf coasts, uniting with stations of the United
-States Life Saving Service, for it is there that the work of greatest
-value, the saving of human life, is done. The number of stations is
-limited only by the amount of money provided by Congress for their
-maintenance. The top of Pike’s Peak and the summit of Mount Washington
-both contribute their share of upper air phenomena, and the lowest
-valleys in the interior give up their secrets of the atmosphere at its
-greatest depth. What an ocean it is, with its surface which we are told
-is a certain number of miles above us, and its bottom, which we know is
-under our feet, its shoreless currents, some as gentle as the breath of
-an infant, others more fierce and swift than the whirlpool rapids of
-Niagara. To learn of these currents their force and direction, whence
-they come and whither they go, the laws to which they are subject, has
-been the fascinating study of amateur meteorologists and the pursuit of
-men of professional attainments in science for many years. But their
-discoveries were of little practical value before Professor Morse, on a
-May day forty years ago, sent over a telegraph wire between Washington
-and Baltimore, his first message in the form of a question which since
-has been answered in wonders by the same agent then employed, and the
-same now used to send warning of the coming storm, whose swift wings have
-no other rival.
-
-The weather stations are distinguished under a classification made by a
-special service performed at each, and are known as telegraph, printing,
-display, special river, cotton region, and sunset stations. A number of
-them may have all the special features indicated by the different names,
-while others may have but the one feature which gives it its place in the
-class. The last mentioned are so called, not, as the name may possibly
-suggest, because they are located away off toward sundown, but because of
-the special observation taken at the time of sunset which affords so good
-an indication of the probable weather for to-morrow. It recalls the fact
-that the Jews were reminded more than eighteen hundred years ago of their
-habit of observation in this particular, which was a rebuke for their
-failure to read “the signs of the times.” A great number of reports are
-received at the Weather Bureau weekly and monthly, by mail from volunteer
-observers, from medical officers at military posts, from agricultural and
-scientific societies, and at regular times from meteorological societies
-in the old world, but as none but the telegraphic reports have more than
-a relative connection with the work of weather indications for which we
-are looking day after day, it is sufficient for the purposes of this
-article to simply mention the fact that there are several hundred of
-these mail reports from which record of permanent and daily increasing
-value is made for study and information of the climate in various
-sections of the country.
-
-The station service necessarily commenced under the disadvantage of
-having no observers of experience, but there was only one way to get
-them, and the beginning of the work was the commencement of the education
-of the men who were to perform it. At this time there is not only the
-course of instruction at Fort Myer, but men as assistants at stations
-are perfecting themselves to occupy the places of those who have become
-masters in the profession, or to take charge of new places. The telegraph
-stations number about one hundred and fifty, and at each one is an
-“Observer Sergeant,” with one or more assistants. Their equipment in
-instruments is similar to that which has been mentioned in connection
-with the central office, viz.: For ascertaining the temperature of the
-air; the weight or pressure and relative humidity of the atmosphere;
-the direction, force, and velocity of the wind; and the depth of the
-rainfall; also at river stations for taking the temperature of the water,
-and for measuring its rise or fall; and at display stations signal
-flags and lanterns are included. The observers take the record from
-their instruments at regular intervals every day and night, Sundays and
-holidays included. There are three of these observations—taken at 7:00
-a. m., 3:00 p. m., and 11:00 p. m., Washington time—telegraphed to the
-central office. Those taken at other hours are not telegraphed unless
-called for, but are recorded and enter into the weekly and monthly mail
-reports. The dispatch is in cipher, which permits the sending of a long
-message in from five to twelve words, giving pressure, temperature,
-direction, and velocity of wind, depth of rain or snow fall, appearance
-and movement of clouds and any special meteorological phenomena present,
-and adding from river and coast stations the stage of water in the
-rivers and the ocean swell. By preconcerted arrangements with telegraph
-companies, the reports pass over the wires without delay or interruption,
-and all reach the central office within about forty minutes after the
-observations are taken. They are at once translated and entered upon
-graphic charts—outline maps of the United States—on which each station is
-marked by its geographical location. By the use of symbols and figures
-all the meteorological conditions of each locality are exhibited, and
-so perfect is the system of arrangement for reporting and drafting
-that in less than two hours from the time the record was taken by the
-“Observers,” the officer who is to make the weather predictions has all
-the reports before him in the central office.
-
-The ever-changing conditions of weather are in a manner photographed,
-and serve as guides for the work which immediately follows the making
-up of the charts. First the “synopsis” of conditions is made up, then
-the predictions or “indications” of the kind of weather expected, and
-the places where storm warnings are to be shown are determined, and
-in the form of a bulletin they are telegraphed to all parts of the
-country as the “Press Report,” to observing stations to be reproduced
-and furnished to local papers, posted in public offices and mailed to
-postmasters for exhibition in their offices, several hundred postoffices
-in some instances being supplied from one station. They are also placed
-in railroad stations and distributed from trains at points along their
-lines. Thus the people are advised of the kind of weather prevailing over
-the district of country in which they live, and informed of the changes
-that may be expected within twenty-four or forty-eight hours.
-
-“Observers” at their several stations publish in connection with the
-“indications” telegraphed from the central office, the conditions
-prevailing in their own localities, and in large cities where weather
-maps are hung in the rooms of boards of trade, merchants’ exchange,
-or other important offices, they place or change the symbols used to
-indicate the conditions at all the stations, as they receive them from
-reports passing them to the central office or repeated from the latter.
-
-The development and progress of all storms are as clearly delineated upon
-the charts prepared in the central office as it is possible for sensitive
-instruments to reveal them, and special attention is given to indications
-of high winds approaching the coasts. Orders are sent by telegraph to
-the maritime stations within a region likely to be visited by dangerous
-winds, and a “cautionary signal”—a square white flag with a square red
-center by day, or a red-center light by night—is displayed, remains out
-until notice is received from the central office that the danger has
-passed. This signal is used as the storm approaches. As the general
-direction of storms upon the Atlantic coast, or approaching it, is
-easterly or northeasterly, and the direction of the wind is circular and
-opposite to the motion of the hands upon a watch, with an inward tendency
-toward the “storm center,” as the storm departs from a station the wind
-will probably blow from the north or west, and a “cautionary off-shore
-signal,” a square white flag with square black center above the red
-flag, by day, or a white light above the red by night, may be ordered.
-Special record of the velocity of the wind is made at the stations when
-storm signals are ordered, and if it reaches twenty-five miles an hour
-the display of the signal is regarded as “justified.” These signals have
-become a necessity, and the occasions are exceedingly rare in which a
-vessel will leave port with one in sight until the captain or master has
-first made inquiry at the station for “particulars.” Coasting vessels are
-dependent in a great measure upon them; if they pass a station with the
-storm-signal displayed, they frequently escape encountering destructive
-gales by putting into the nearest port until the danger has passed.
-
-The coast telegraph lines connecting the signal and the life saving
-stations have been constructed by the government, and are operated by the
-signal corps. The weather stations are equipped for making connections
-with the main line at any point, and many instances may be found recorded
-in the official reports, of shipwrecks on the coast to which relief has
-been brought in a very few hours by the prompt action of “Observers”
-opening telegraphic communication from a point abreast the wreck, direct
-to the central office in Washington, and sending information to be
-repeated, with the weight of official authority, to the nearest port from
-which steamers could be sent to the rescue. A vessel in distress, or in
-need of any information, if in possession of the international code of
-marine signals—a number of nations have adopted the American code—may
-communicate with the shore stations. By this code a number of small flags
-of various shapes and colors, used singly or together, answer to certain
-words and sentences, and these being translated into other languages,
-convey from the American or Englishman to the Frenchman, German, or
-Spaniard the question or answer desired, as plainly as an affirmative nod
-of the head from one to the other would mean yes.
-
-The river reports are an important feature of the service. The
-temperature of the waters, surface and deep, taken regularly, makes
-a record for the benefit of those engaged in the propagation of food
-fishes, which is becoming an important government work. The stage of
-water taken in connection with the reports of rainfall and temperature of
-the atmosphere in their influence upon deep beds of snow and ice-locked
-streams affords ground for warnings, when needed, to persons engaged in
-any river traffic, or exposed to floods upon the banks.
-
-The “waves” of temperature have become as real to us as those upon
-the ocean, and the prosecution of very many kinds of business, or the
-transportation of perishable produce is guided by the reports of the
-Weather Bureau, as it foretells the coming of heat or cold. The interior
-of the country will no doubt soon have the benefit of signals, as well
-as “bulletins.” A large, white flag, with a square black center, is now
-displayed at stations in advance of an expected “cold wave,” and before
-a great while we may expect the “limited express” upon the different
-railroads will be made the bearer of signals to forewarn the inhabitants
-of the country through which it passes of the change of weather rapidly
-following its track. The possibilities of the service seem to be
-unlimited, but the most careful watchfulness of the “Observers,” and
-the keen vigilance of the officers who direct them have not yet brought
-the elements to reveal all their movements. Sometimes, as a wary foe,
-a storm will steal in between the sentinels, or descend from the upper
-air, and gathering all its strength into one narrow channel, will drive
-destruction through town and country, and leave behind it evidences of
-power which we can hardly credit, except by sight.
-
-One of the many specimens exhibited in the National Museum at Washington
-is a section of a young oak tree four inches in diameter, with a pine
-board, one inch thick, four inches wide at one end, and twelve inches
-wide at the other, which has been driven through the tree more than
-half its length (eight feet, the label states), and is now held as in a
-vise, the tree above and below the board being unbroken. This has been
-deposited in the Museum as an evidence of the force of the wind in a
-tornado that visited the vicinity of Wesson, Mississippi, April 22, 1883.
-
-The progress of work in the Weather Bureau has been first toward
-encompassing great interests in the fields indicated by law, then to
-take up the smaller needs pertaining to individual benefit and pleasure,
-and as time passes and the service widens there will be personal contact
-that will give an intimate knowledge and impression of its value which
-narrative can not.
-
-
-FOOTNOTES
-
-[A] Died at Buffalo, New York, August 24, 1880.
-
-
-
-
-HOW TO WIN.
-
-BY FRANCES E. WILLARD,
-
-President National W. C. T. U.
-
-
-CHAPTER II.
-
-Last month, taking the Past for a background, I tried to picture the
-opportunity which the Present holds up before the daughters of America.
-Let me now, for a brief space, coming freshly from the field of active
-service, where banners wave and squadrons wheel, try to talk about the
-conditions of success, in this wonderful battle of life. First, then,
-I would give this not at all startling bit of advice: _Keep to your
-specialty_; to the doing of the thing that you accomplish with most of
-satisfaction to yourself, and most of benefit to those about you. Keep
-to this, whether it is raising turnips or tunes; painting screens or
-battle pieces; studying political economy or domestic receipts; for, as
-we read in a great author who has a genius for common sense: “There is
-not one thing that men ought to do, there is not one thing that ought
-to be done, which a woman ought not to be encouraged to do, if she has
-the capacity for doing it. For wherever there is a gift, there is a
-prophecy pointing to its use, and a silent command of God to use it.”
-Such utterances as these are assertions of the “natural and inalienable
-rights” of the individual as such. They are deductions of the Christian
-philosophy which regards you and me, first and chiefly, as human beings,
-and makes the greatest possible account of personal identity. In all ages
-there have been minds that saw this truth. The intellects which towered
-like Alpine peaks above the mass of men, were the first to reflect its
-blessed light. Two thousand years ago, Juvenal made the heroine of a
-famous “Satire” say to the hero: “I like our Latin word for _man_, which
-equally includes your sex and mine. For you should not forget that, in
-all things highest, best, and most enduring in our natures, I am as much
-a man as you are.” The sun of truth looms high above the far horizon in
-our day, and even the plains of human thought and purpose are glowing
-with the light of this new inspiration. “Personal value,” “personal
-development,” these will be the noontide watchwords, “when the race out
-of childhood has grown.” Only yesterday I heard a fashionable butterfly,
-in the surroundings of a luxurious home, saying with sudden enthusiasm:
-“Of one thing I am sure; every woman that lives is bound to find out what
-is the very best thing she can do with her powers, and then she’s bound
-to do it.” In creating each of us with some peculiar talent, God has
-given us each “a call” to some peculiar work. Indeed, the time is almost
-here when the only call that will be recognized as valid, in any field,
-must involve in him who thinks he hears it, both adaptation and success.
-Each one of us is a marvelous bundle of aptitudes and of capacities. But,
-just as I prefer the active to the passive voice, I prefer to put the
-aptitudes first in my present inventory. Besides, the world has harangued
-us women on our capacities, from the beginning, and it is really
-refreshing to take the dilemma of our destiny by the other horn, at last!
-Civilization (by which I mean Christianity’s effect on the brains and
-hands of humanity), wonderfully develops and differentiates our powers.
-
-Among the Modocs there are but four specialties—assigned with remarkable
-fairness, in the proportion of two for the squaws and two for the braves.
-The last hunt and fight; the first do the drudgery and bring up the
-pappooses. Among the Parisians, on the contrary, the division of labor is
-almost infinite, so that the hand perfectly skilled in the most minute
-industry (as, for instance, in moulding the shoestrings of a porcelain
-statuette), needs no other resource to gain a comfortable livelihood.
-Among the Modocs, skins are about the only article of commerce. Among
-the Parisians, evolution has gone so far in the direction of separating
-employments formerly blended, that you can not buy cream and milk in the
-same shop.
-
-By some unaccountable perversion of good sense, the specialties of
-human beings who are women, have been strangely circumscribed. But they
-were _there_, all the same, and now, under the genial sun of a more
-enlightened era, they are coming airily forth, like singing birds after
-a thunder storm. And wonderfully do they help some of us to solve the
-toughest of all problems: _What is life for?_
-
-Let us see. Lift the cover of your sewing basket; there are thimble,
-scissors, spools of thread, and all the neat outfit needful to a
-seamstress, but minus the needle they have no explanation and no
-efficiency. Unlock your writing desk: what are paper, ink, and
-sealing-wax, without the pen? They are nothing but waste material and
-toys. So it is with you and me. We have no explanation that is adequate;
-we have no place in the work-box and portfolio of to-day; no place in the
-great humming hive of the land we live in, save as some predominating
-aptitude in each of us explains why we are here, and in what way we are
-to swell the inspiring song of voluntary toil and beneficent success.
-Suppose that here, and now, you proceed to take an “inventory of stock,”
-if you have not been thoughtful enough to do that already. Made up as
-you are, what is your _forte_, your “specialty,” your “best hold,” as
-men phrase it? Be sure of one thing, at the outset: The great Artificer,
-in putting together your individual nature, did not forget this crowning
-gift, any more than he forgets to add its own peculiar fragrance to the
-arbutus, or its own song to the lark. It may not lie upon the surface,
-this choicest of your treasures; diamonds seldom do. Miners lift a
-great deal of mere dust, before the sparkling jewel they are seeking
-gladdens the eye. Genius has been often and variously defined. I would
-call it _an intuition_ of one’s own best gift. Rosa Bonheur knew hers;
-Charlotte Cushman recognized hers; George Eliot was not greatly at a loss
-concerning hers. As for us, of less emphatic individuality, sometimes we
-wait until a friend’s hand leads us up before the mirror of our potential
-self; sometimes we see it reflected in another’s success (as the eaglet,
-among the flock of geese, first learned that he could fly, when he
-recognized a mate in the heaven-soaring eagle, whose shadow frightened
-all the geese away); sometimes we come upon our heritage unwittingly, as
-Diana found Endymion, but always it is there, be sure of that, and “let
-no man take thy crown.” As iron filings fall into line around a magnet,
-so make your opportunities cluster close about your magic gift. In a land
-so generous as ours, this can be done, by every woman who reads these
-lines. A sharpened perception of their own possibilities is far more
-needed by “our girls” than better means for education. But how was it in
-the past? If there is one thought which, for humanity’s sake, grieves
-me as no other can, it is this thought of God’s endowment bestowed upon
-us each, so that we might in some especial manner gladden and bless the
-world, by bestowing upon it our best; the thought of his patience all
-through the years, as he has gone on hewing out the myriad souls of a
-wayward race, that they might be lively stones in the temple of use and
-of achievement, and side by side with this, the thought of our individual
-blindness, our failure to discern the riches of brain, heart and hand,
-with which we were endowed. But most of all, I think about the gentle
-women who have lived, and died, and made no sign of their best gifts,
-but whose achievements of voice and pen, of brush and chisel, of noble
-statesmanship and great-hearted philanthropy, might have blessed and
-soothed our race through these six thousand years.
-
-There is a stern old gentleman of my acquaintance, who, if he had heard
-what I have felt called upon to say, would have entered his demurrer,
-in this fashion: “That’s all fol-de-rol, my friend; a mere rhetorical
-flourish. If women could have done all this, why didn’t they, pray
-tell? If it’s in it’s in, and will come out, but what’s wanting can’t
-be numbered. You can’t pull the wool over my eyes with your vague
-generalities. I went to the Centennial; I saw Machinery Hall, and what’s
-more for my argument (and less for yours), I saw the ‘Woman’s Pavilion,’
-too.”
-
-He would then proceed to ask me, with some asperity, if I thought that
-any of my “gentle myriads” could have invented a steam engine? Whereupon
-I would say to him, what I now say to you, “most assuredly I think so;
-why not?” And I would ask, in turn, if my old friend had studied history
-with reference to the principle that, as a rule, human beings do not rise
-above the standard implied in society’s general estimate of the class
-to which they belong. Take the nations of Eastern Europe and Western
-Asia; “civilized” nations, too, be it remembered; study the mechanic
-of Jerusalem, the merchant of Damascus and Ispahan; in what particular
-are the tools of the one or the facilities of commerce familiar to the
-others, superior to those of a thousand years ago? Surely, so far as
-oriental inventions are concerned, they have changed as little as the
-methods of the bee or the wing-stroke of the swallow. We hear no more of
-man’s inventiveness in those countries than of woman’s. Why should we,
-indeed, when we remember that both are alike untaught in the arts and
-sciences which form the basis of mechanical invention? They are inspired
-by no intellectual movement; no demand; no “modern spirit.” It is not
-“in the air” that _men_ shall be fertile of brain and skilled of hand as
-inventors there, any more than it is here that women shall be, and where
-both knowledge and incentive are not present, achievement is evermore a
-minus quantity. None but a heaven-sent genius, stimulated by a love of
-science, prepared by special education and inspired by the _prestige_ of
-belonging to the dominant sex, ever yet carved types, tamed lightning
-or imprisoned steam. Besides, in ages past, if some brave soul, man or
-woman, conscious of splendid powers, strove to bless the world by their
-free exercise, what dangers were involved! Was it Joan of Arc? the fagot
-soon became her portion; or Galileo? on came the rack; or Christopher
-Columbus? the long disdain of courtiers and jealousy of ambitious
-coadjutors followed him; or Stephenson? his fetter was the menace of
-the law; or Robert Fulton? he faced the sarcasm of the learned and the
-merriment of boors. Even for the most adventurous inventors of to-day
-(as the aeronaut experimenters), what have we but bad puns and insipid
-conundrums, until he wins, and then ready caps tossed high in air and
-fame’s loud trumpet at his ear—when death’s cold finger has closed it up
-forever.
-
-Times are changing, though. The world grows slowly better and more
-brotherly. The day is near when women will lack no high incentive to
-the best results in every branch of intellectual endeavor and skilled
-workmanship. Not a week passes but from the Patent Office comes some
-favorable verdict as to woman’s inventive power. Wisdom’s goddess deems
-herself no longer compromised because places are assigned us in her
-banquet hall. “The world is all before us where to choose,” and I, for
-one, appeal from the “Woman’s Pavilion” of the first, to that which shall
-illustrate the second hundred years of this republic.
-
-
-
-
-FORTRESS, PALACE AND PRISON.
-
-BY EDITH SESSIONS TUPPER.
-
-
-It is believed by many that the Tower of London is, as its name would
-seem to indicate, but a single lofty pile, while in reality it is a vast
-collection of grim towers and frowning bastions; a great walled town in
-the heart of busy London.
-
-The Tower, or the White Tower, built in the time of the Conqueror, is
-surrounded by twelve smaller towers—Bloody, Bell, Beauchamp, Devereux,
-Flint, Bowyer, Brick, Martin, Constable, Broadarrow, Salt and Record. In
-turn, these are environed by the ballium walls and bastions, and the moat
-guarded by Middle, Byward, St. Thomas, Cradle, Well and Devlin towers.
-
-As one descends Tower Hill, the eye takes in the whole immense and
-hoary mass, fit emblem of the stormy and tempestuous times in which
-each separate tower arose. Like black shadows of the past casting their
-gloom over the present, rise the lofty turrets above the roofs of modern
-buildings. Sternly they look down upon throbbing London, each with its
-own history, each with its own awful secrets locked in its stony breast.
-
-Amid the terrific conflict of the days when the Norman was trampling the
-Saxon under foot, the Tower, the Great Tower, or the White Tower, as it
-was variously called, arose.
-
-William the Conqueror caused it to be built as a fortress for himself
-in case his Saxon subjects might rebel against his hard and iron rule.
-Among the ecclesiastics who possessed the richest sees of those days was
-Gundulph, bishop of Rochester, who was also a fine military architect.
-To him the Conqueror gave the commission to build his New Fortress in
-1079-80. Gundulph selected the site just without the city then, and to
-the east, on the northern side of the Thames. The tower is quadrangular
-in shape, one hundred and sixteen feet from north to south, ninety-six
-from east to west, ninety-two feet in height, and its external walls
-are fifteen feet in thickness—an imposing and superb specimen of Norman
-architecture. It is three stories high, not counting the vaults. There
-are some slight traces remaining of the grand entrance on the north side,
-but visitors enter by modern doors on both the north and south sides.
-
-In the northeast corner of the White Tower is a massive staircase,
-connecting the three stories. The column around which the stairs wind is
-a remarkable and well preserved specimen of ancient masonry. A wall seven
-feet in thickness runs north and south, which divides the tower from base
-to summit. Another wall extending east and west subdivides the southern
-portion into unequal parts, forming in each story one large and two
-small rooms. The smallest division on the ground floor is called Queen
-Elizabeth’s Armory, being filled with armor and trappings of her day. On
-the north side of this room, one is shown a cell formed in the thickness
-of the wall, ten feet long and eight wide, receiving no light save from
-the entrance. In this dark and dismal room was imprisoned for twelve long
-years the gay and brilliant courtier, Sir Walter Raleigh, on suspicion
-merely of being implicated in a plot to place the Lady Arabella Stuart,
-the niece of the unfortunate Queen of Scots, on the throne of England.
-This ill-fated lady also perished in the tower, her reason having been
-dethroned by her long and cruel captivity. In the year she died, Sir
-Walter was released and sent to South America to search for gold mines;
-returning unsuccessful he was remanded to the Tower, and beheaded in
-1618 to please the Spaniards. James First wished to gain their favor,
-as his son Prince Charles was to be married to the Infanta. Raleigh’s
-bravery and valor had been too often directed against the Spaniards for
-them not to exult over his cruel fate. In this wretched and gloomy cell,
-it is said, he wrote his “History of the World.” In the center of this
-armory are various instruments of torture; about the room are stands of
-weapons, halberds, battle axes, maces and bills, and military instruments
-for cutting the bridles of horses; at the end of the room is a figure on
-horseback, representing Queen Bess. Her dress is copied from an ancient
-portrait, and she is attended by officers and pages. Just back of these
-figures hangs a very old picture of St. Paul’s cathedral. But the most
-terribly fascinating objects in this room are the block, the headsman’s
-hideous, grinning mask and the original axe. With horror the visitor
-looks upon the block, dented here and there where the executioner’s
-nervous blows struck wide of the mark, and upon the ponderous axe, whose
-blade has cleft the necks of so many royal and noble victims.
-
-One is glad to leave this chamber of horrors and go above into St.
-John’s Chapel, which is considered one of the finest specimens of Norman
-architecture left in the kingdom. It terminates in a semi-circle, and
-the twelve enormous pillars are arranged in similar fashion. These
-pillars are united by arches which admit the light into the nave from
-the windows. In the reign of Henry III. three immense windows of stained
-glass were added to the chapel. It is not known at what time or from what
-cause it ceased to be used for religious purposes. A large room directly
-above, on the third floor, was used as a council chamber by the kings,
-when they held their court in the Tower. It was in this room that the
-infamous Richard, Duke of Gloucester, ordered Lord Hastings to instant
-execution in front of St. Peter’s Chapel.
-
-This room is now used as a depository for small arms, and the arrangement
-of weapons in the form of various flowers is wonderful and artistic, the
-entire ceiling being covered by curious and intricate combinations of
-these arms.
-
-Encircling the great White Tower, as has been said, is a row of twelve
-smaller towers. Perhaps the one first in interest is that directly
-opposite the Traitor’s Gate, and rightly named, known as the Bloody
-Tower. It is rectangular in form, being the only one of that shape in the
-inner ward. It closely joins Record or Wakefield Tower on the west. Its
-grand gateway was built in the reign of Edward III., and is the entrance
-proper to the inner ward. The massive portcullis gives signs of immense
-age. It was in this tower in 1483, that the most infamous order of the
-hateful Gloucester, the murder of the innocent princes, the children of
-Edward IV., was consummated.
-
- “The tyrannous and bloody act is done—
- The most arch deed of piteous massacre
- That ever yet this land was guilty of.”
-
-The little victims are supposed to have been buried at the foot of the
-staircase in the White Tower, but a strange mystery surrounds their fate.
-
-Joining Bloody Tower is the tower next in size to the Great or White
-Tower, known as the Record Tower, from its having been for many centuries
-the depository for the records of the nation, and Wakefield Tower, from
-the imprisonment there of the Yorkists, after the victory of Margaret of
-Anjou, the Amazonian queen of the good but weak Henry VI., at Wakefield,
-in 1460. This victory gave the House of Lancaster the ascendency for
-a short time. The next year the Yorkists were successful, Henry was
-remanded to the tower, and was soon after found dead, murdered by
-Gloucester’s command, it is supposed.
-
- “Within the hollow crown
- That rounds the mortal temples of a king
- Keeps death his court; and there the antic sits,
- Scoffing his state and grinning at his pomp;
- Allowing him a breath, a little scene,
- To monarchise, be fear’d and kill with looks;
- Infusing him with self and vain conceit,
- As if this flesh which walls about our life
- Were brass impregnable; and humor’d thus,
- Comes at the last, and with a little pin
- Bores through his castle wall—and farewell, king!”
-
-Wakefield Tower is very ancient, having been built in the time of William
-Rufus, in 1087.
-
-On the opposite side of the inner ward looms up the gloomy and famous
-Bowyer Tower, so named from its having been the residence of the Master
-Provider of the King’s Bows. In a dungeon-like room of this tower,
-“false, fleeting, perjured Clarence,” younger brother of Edward IV., was
-drowned in a butt of Malmsey. Together with the detestable Gloucester,
-he stabbed the young son of Henry VI. in the field at Tewkesbury, but
-retribution was swift. He soon incurred the displeasure and jealousy of
-his royal brother, and perished in this wretched manner.
-
- “O Brackenbury, I have done these things
- That now give evidence against my soul—
- For Edward’s sake, and see, how he requites me.”
-
-But a short distance from the Bowyer is the Brick Tower, which acquires
-a mournful interest from the fact that tradition has assigned this as
-the prison of the martyr of ambition, the lovely Lady Jane Grey. Fuller
-says of her that at eighteen she possessed the innocence of childhood,
-the sedateness of age, the learning of a clerk, and the life of a saint.
-Gentle, modest and retiring, fond of her studies and books, little
-dreamed she of her short-lived honor and cruel fate. Forced upon the
-throne by the insatiable ambition of Northumberland, she ruled for ten
-days. It is asserted that Mary wished to spare her cousin’s life, but
-that Wyatt’s rebellion so alarmed her that she determined to make an
-example of Lady Jane and her boy husband, Guildford Dudley.
-
-Not only her piety, grace and beauty excite our admiration, but also her
-sublime heroism, which caused her to refuse to bid her young lover and
-husband farewell, lest the parting should unman him. Dudley was executed
-on Tower Hill, and the same day the lofty spirit of his wife joined his.
-
- “Now boast thee, death; in thy possession lies
- A lass, unparallel’d.”
-
-Next to the Brick is the Jewel or Martin Tower, where the crown jewels
-were formerly kept. They are now preserved in the Record Tower. On the
-wall of the Martin Tower we saw inscribed the name of Anne Boleyn. It is
-said that one of the unfortunate gentlemen who lost their heads on her
-account traced it there. Diagonally across the inner ward rises the Bell
-Tower, thus named from the alarm bell which crowned it. This was the
-prison of Princess Elizabeth during her enforced stay in the tower. Some
-little children used to bring her flowers here, until it came to the ears
-of Mary, who forbade this innocent service.
-
-Only a short walk from Bell loom up the frowning walls of Beauchamp
-Tower, than which there is no more interesting place in the entire
-enclosure. Its architecture is of the reign of John and Henry III. Its
-name is derived from Thomas De Beauchamp, Earl of Warwick, imprisoned
-here during the reign of Richard II. This tower is in the center of the
-western side of the inner ward, and in a half circle projects from the
-strong ballium walls, and is two stories in height. Its walls are covered
-with inscriptions made by different prisoners; some indicative of their
-mental agony during their captivity; many, indeed the most, expressing
-Christian fortitude and pious resignation to their hard lot.
-
-The first name noticed is that of Marmaduke Neville, near the entrance.
-He was one of the Nevilles, Earls of Westmoreland, and was implicated in
-a plot to place Mary Stuart upon the throne during Elizabeth’s reign. In
-the southern recess is shown an inscription in old Italian: “Dispoi che
-voie la fortuna che la mea speranza va al vento pianger, hovolio el tempo
-per dudo; e semper stel me tristo, e disconteto. Wilim: Tyrrel, 1541.”
-The mournful burden of which comes like a sigh of despair from out the
-past, “Since fortune hath chosen that my hope should go to the wind to
-complain, I wish the time were destroyed; my planet being ever sad and
-unfavorable.” Alas, unhappy one! Your words no doubt were but the echo of
-many sad hearts that found the times were indeed out of joint.
-
-Over the fireplace is a beautiful and touching inscription: “Quanto plus
-afflictionis pro Christo in hoc sæculo, tanto plus gloriæ cum Christo in
-futuro. Arundell, June 22, 1587,” which being interpreted is, “The more
-affliction for Christ in this world, the more glory with Christ in the
-next.”
-
-This was written by Philip Howard, Earl of Arundel, whose devotion to
-the Romish church during Elizabeth’s reign, brought so much odium upon
-him, and made for him so many enemies that he at last resolved to leave
-his country, friends, and his wife, to whom he was devotedly attached,
-and go into voluntary exile for his better safety. He informed the Queen
-in a most pathetic letter of his intention, designing she should not
-receive it until he was well out of way, but by some freak of fortune,
-the letter fell into the hands of his foes, and he was seized as he was
-setting sail from the coast of Sussex. He was sent to the Tower and kept
-a close prisoner for forty years, when worn out with his long and cruel
-confinement and sorrow he died, realizing at the end, we hope, the truth
-of the touching words he traced upon his prison walls.
-
-There are several interesting inscriptions made by Arthur and Edmund
-Poole, great-grandsons of the Duke of Clarence. These young gentlemen
-were also accused for conspiring for Mary Stuart, adjudged traitors, and
-pined away their lives in hopeless captivity. Well might the White Rose
-of Scotland have said with Helen of Troy:
-
- “Many drew swords and died; where’er I came,
- I brought calamity.”
-
-One inscription reads:
-
- “IHS. A passage perillus maketh a port pleasant. Ao. 1568. Arthur
- Poole, Æ sue 37, A. P.”
-
-A passage perilous indeed, hadst thou, poor soul; God grant thou madst a
-fair haven at last.
-
-Another contains these words:
-
- “IHS. Dio semine in lachrimis in exultatione meter. Æ. 21, E.
- Poole, 1562.” “That which is sown by God in tears is reaped in
- joy.”
-
-In all the inscriptions left by these ill-starred gentlemen, there
-breathes the same spirit of noble and pious submission.
-
-The greatest interest clusters about one little word, supposed to have
-been traced by the hand of one to whom that name was sacred. Directly
-under one of the Poole autographs is the word “IANE,” supposed to have
-been the royal title of Lady Jane Grey, written there by her husband,
-Lord Dudley, who was confined in this tower. Scarcely can the eyes be
-restrained at this touching reminder of the fate of those two unhappy
-children, the victims of circumstance and greedy ambition.
-
-In the corner next the Beauchamp is the Devereux Tower, named from the
-brilliant Robert Devereux, Earl of Essex, the chivalric soldier and
-courtier, first a petted favorite, then a victim of Queen Elizabeth.
-His story is one of thrilling and fascinating interest. Meteor-like he
-flashed through his court and army life, and after gaining the zenith of
-his power, sank as suddenly as he had risen. It is said that he was one
-of the many with whom the royal and fickle spinster coquetted, and that
-he really touched her haughty heart. The government of Ireland was in his
-hands, but enemies at court plotted his overthrow. He in turn plotted
-against these foes and rashly attempted to cause their removal. He was
-arrested and arraigned in Westminster Hall for high treason, pronounced
-guilty, and doomed to the block.
-
-Elizabeth had a terrific struggle between revenge and affection, but the
-baser passion got the victory, and the accomplished general, statesman,
-and courtier trod the same hard road to death that so many knew full well.
-
- “I have reached the highest point of all my greatness!
- And from that full meridian of my glory,
- I haste now to my setting: I shall fall
- Like a bright exhalation in the evening,
- And no man see me more.”
-
-The towers of the outer ward are comparatively of but little interest,
-with the exception of St. Thomas’s Tower or the Traitor’s Gate. This is
-a large, square building over the moat, the outside of which is guarded
-by two circular towers, which exhibit specimens of the architecture of
-the time of Henry III. The gate through which state prisoners entered the
-Tower is underneath this building.
-
-The rain was falling drearily on the day we visited the Tower. Somber
-and heavy skies looked sullenly down on the gloomy scene. Thoughts as
-somber and heavy weighed down our minds as we stood before the Traitor’s
-Gate; thoughts of countless numbers that had gone in at that gate never
-to come forth again. In the clang of those iron portals behind them they
-heard their death knell. The royal, the noble, the illustrious, the
-pious passed under these frowning battlements, leaving behind grandeur,
-brilliancy of courts, dreams of glory, home, friends, all that makes life
-sweet, to receive in exchange, the dungeon, the scaffold, the block, the
-axe.
-
-They who entered there left hope indeed behind.
-
-Through this gate went Elizabeth, expecting naught but death; dreaming
-little of the hour when all England should lie within the hollow of her
-white hand. Under these portals three short years after she issued from
-the Tower in all the full flush of her pride and triumph, received by
-lords and dukes, amid the blare of trumpets, and peal of bells and roar
-of guns. Elizabeth’s hapless mother, Anne Boleyn, returned to the Tower.
-No nobles in her train now; no burst of music; no chime of bells nor roar
-of artillery; alone, save with her jailers; her fair fame blackened; her
-triumphs, glories—all shrunk to this little measure. The husband she had
-stolen from another, in turn lured from her, wearied of her, longing to
-be rid of her, hurrying her to her fearful doom with brutal haste.
-
- “A dream of what thou wast; a garish flag,
- To be the aim of ever dangerous shot;
- A sign of dignity, a breath, a bubble;
- A queen in jest only to fill the scene.
- …
- Where is thy husband now?
- …
- Who sues and kneels and says God save the queen?
- Where be thy bending peers that flattered thee?
- Where be the thronging troops that followed thee?
- …
- For one being sued to, one that humbly sues;
- For queen, a very caitiff crowned with care;
- Thus hath the course of justice wheeled about
- And left thee but a very prey to time;
- Having no more but thought of what thou wert,
- To torture thee the more, being what thou art.”
-
-What thoughts must have chased each other in lightning rapidity through
-the mind of beautiful, brilliant, witty Anne Boleyn, during those
-short seventeen days she passed in the Tower before she was led out to
-execution. What experience of life had she not compressed into those
-three little years of usurpation, during which she spurned “heads like
-foot balls,” laughed, danced, and jested away her poor, butterfly life?
-What remorse must have been hers when the sad, pale face of Katharine
-arose before her! What unspeakable anguish when the coquettish features
-of Jane Seymour swam before her weeping eyes!
-
-On the 19th of May, 1536, when hedge and field were bursting into bloom,
-when birds sang and soft breezes played, when all nature must have
-breathed of beauty, hope and life—Anne Boleyn went forth the second time
-from the Tower to receive her crown; not this time an earthly diadem,
-glittering with jewels, but the thorny crown of martyrdom. Not in cloth
-of gold and blazing with gems, but in sable robes went she to this
-coronation, and her only salute was the dull boom of the cannon which
-announced to the royal ruffian waiting at Richmond that he was free.
-
-The Tower of London has been used not alone for a fortress and prison,
-but also for a palace. All of the kings from William to Charles II. held
-occasional court in the Tower. A palace occupied a space in the inner
-ward, between the southwest corner of the White Tower and the Record,
-Salt and Broadarrow Towers. The queens had a suite extending from the
-Lanthorn to the southeast of the White Tower. And near the Record Tower
-was a great hall which demanded forty fir trees to repair it at the time
-of the marriage festivities of Henry III. and Eleanore of Provence.
-
-When Edward the Black Prince took prisoner King John of France, he lodged
-his royal captive in this palace, and King John gave an entertainment for
-his captor in this great hall. The beautiful Elizabeth of York, daughter
-of Edward IV., and queen of Henry VII., resided for a time in this
-palace, and passed from thence to her coronation. Sixteen years later
-she lay in state twelve days in the royal chapel in the White Tower,
-where her knights and ladies kept solemn vigil beside her bier. What an
-impressive scene it must have been! The windows all ablaze with lights,
-and an illuminated hearse holding the royal dead.
-
-Queen Mary held court in the Tower directly after she had defeated
-Northumberland and the Dudleys. The ancient custom of a state procession
-from the Tower to Westminster was observed for the last time at the
-coronation of Charles II.
-
-Very near the Devereux Tower is a plain, unpretentious building—the
-chapel of St. Peter Ad Vincula. It is small, having but one nave and one
-side aisle, and is quite without ornamentation. But marvelous interest
-invests it. Here Lady Jane was buried; here the body of poor Anne Boleyn
-was thrust into an old chest and hastily interred in the vaults; here
-lies the dust of Northumberland, Thomas Cromwell, Somerset, Surrey, and
-Essex, teaching the terribly solemn lesson that ambition, talents, fame,
-form no sure bulwark against death.
-
- “To-morrow, and to-morrow, and to-morrow
- Creeps in this petty pace from day to day,
- To the last syllable of recorded time;
- And all our yesterdays have lighted fools
- The way to dusky death. Out, out, brief candle.”
-
-Just in front of this chapel is the spot on which the scaffold was built;
-the spot where the best blood of England flowed like water; the spot
-which mars the escutcheon of the Tudors with an ineffaceable stain; the
-spot where Englishmen first looked upon the spectacle of the blood of
-their countrywoman flowing beneath the blows of a foreign headsman. Here
-fell the heads of two of the wives of Henry VIII.; here the hapless Lady
-Jane was despatched, and the gallant Essex met his death by orders of
-Henry’s daughters, fit representatives of their father; here was enacted
-that revolting scene, the butchery of the venerable mother of Cardinal
-Pole, the Countess of Salisbury. She was sister of the Earl of Warwick,
-and daughter of the murdered Clarence. Her only crime seems to have been
-her royal blood. When brought out to execution, she refused to lay her
-head on the block, saying haughtily, “So do traitors use to do, and I
-am no traitor.” The sequel is almost too sickening to be rehearsed. The
-executioner pursued his victim around the scaffold, striking at her with
-his axe, and finally dragged her by her white hairs to the block. Thus
-miserably perished the last of the Plantagenets.
-
-Heavier fell the rain and wilder blew the wind as we slowly took our
-way toward the outer entrance to the Tower. In the patter of the rain
-upon the stone flagging beneath us, we seemed to hear the footsteps of a
-countless, headless throng; in the slow drip, drip of the raindrops from
-the gloomy walls, the drip, drip of warm life blood trickling down and
-ebbing away; borne on the wail of the wind there seemed to come sighs of
-anguish, moaning voices long since silenced, voices from out a dreadful
-past, voices that cried aloud for vengeance. And as the great gates of
-the Tower clanged behind us, in a tremendous peal of thunder, there
-seemed to come an answering voice from heaven, “Vengeance is mine, I will
-repay.”
-
-
-
-
-GEOGRAPHY OF THE HEAVENS FOR APRIL.
-
-BY PROF. M. B. GOFF,
-
-Western University of Pennsylvania.
-
-
-THE SUN,
-
-With its immediate attendants, Mercury, Venus, Earth, Mars, etc., has
-been the “theme of our discourse” for the last eighteen months. Except
-an occasional reference to one of the planets as being located near
-some fixed star, or in some constellation, little has been said about
-the 3,391 “fixed” stars, visible to the naked eye, many of which are
-located on maps of the heavens, just as villages, cities, mountains,
-rivers and plains are located on maps of the earth; nor of the somewhere
-between 30,000,000 and 50,000,000 which are visible only through powerful
-telescopes, and whose distances from the sun are so great as to make that
-of Neptune appear like a little walk “across lots” to visit a neighbor.
-Nor is it proposed now to enter upon such an extensive subject, except
-so far as may be necessary to present a single thought. As we know, our
-sun is a bright body, whose light and heat (so great is their power) we
-can hardly estimate. Both these qualities render it visible to us and
-make us realize its presence. The other bodies, as Mars, Jupiter and the
-Moon are seen only by reflected light, and were they as distant as the
-fixed stars, would not be at all visible. These 30,000,000 to 50,000,000
-stars must be suns. How many satellites has each? We do not know, for
-they can not be seen. Suppose each had as many as our sun. Then instead
-of 30,000,000 to 50,000,000 of heavenly bodies, we have within reach of
-the telescope from 240,000,000 to 400,000,000. How many are outside of
-these? No man can number them. We shall have to wait till our minds can
-grasp the infinite. Are these millions of bodies standing still, or are
-they in motion? Does our sun stand still and permit us to go around him
-once every year, or is he, and are we along with him, making our way
-through other vast multitudes and moving around some other central orb?
-Observation proves that the sun is only a sergeant in a great army of
-generals, and marches his squad in an appointed way to their assigned
-duties. How do we know? The records of patient watchers for centuries
-reveal the fact. “If we suppose the sun, attended by planets, to be
-moving through space, we ought to be able to detect this motion by an
-apparent motion of the stars in a contrary direction, as when an observer
-moves through a forest of trees, his own motion imparts an apparent
-motion to the trees in a contrary direction. All the stars would not
-be equally affected by such a motion of the solar system. The nearest
-stars would appear to have the greatest motion, but all the changes of
-position would appear to take place in the same direction. The stars
-would appear to recede from that point of the heavens _toward_ which
-the sun is moving, while in the opposite quarter the stars would seem
-to crowd more closely together.” Proceeding upon this principle, Sir
-William Herschel was in 1783 enabled to announce that the observed proper
-motion of a large portion of the stars could be accounted for on the
-supposition that the sun was moving toward the constellation _Hercules_.
-Later investigations not only established the fact that the sun moved,
-but that it was moving nearly toward the star _Rho_, in _Hercules_,
-and Struve estimated its motion at about five miles per second; though
-Professor Airy places it at about twenty-seven miles per second. It is
-also highly probable that its motion is not in a straight line, but in
-obedience to the same laws that govern the motions of its own satellites,
-it with other suns revolves about a center located nearly in the plane
-of the Milky Way, and with an orbit so great “that ages may elapse
-before it will be possible to detect any change in the direction of its
-motion.” Meantime, finite beings are interested in knowing how its light
-and heat affect their interests, and how these qualities may be made
-most profitable to mankind. For ourselves, we must at present be content
-to know that on the 1st our sun has reached a point 4° 48′ north of the
-equator, and that by the 30th he will be 14° 58′ north, an increase in
-northern declination of 10° 10′, and, as a consequence, our daylight will
-be increased about one hour and thirteen minutes, and the time “from
-early dawn to dewy” twilight will be seventeen hours and thirty-five
-minutes. On the 1st sunrise occurs at 5:43 a. m., sunset, 6:24 p. m.;
-on the 16th, sunrise, 5:19, sunset, 6:40; on the 30th, sunrise, 4:59,
-sunset, 6:54.
-
-
-THE MOON.
-
-The phases for the month are as follows: Last quarter, 7th, at 9:34 a.
-m.; new moon, 15th, at 12:43 a. m.; first quarter, 21st, at 6:12 p. m.;
-full moon, 29th, at 1:06 a. m. Rises on the 1st, at 8:38 p. m.; sets on
-the 16th, at 8:28 p. m.; rises on the 30th, at 8:21 p. m. In latitude
-41° 30′ north, least elevation on the 6th, and equals 30° 20′; greatest
-elevation on the 19th, equals 66° 44′ 29″.
-
-
-MERCURY
-
-Will be an evening star during the month; it will have a direct motion
-of 12° 25′ 59″ up to the 17th, after which, to the end of the month, a
-retrograde motion of 5° 22′ 11″. On the 8th, at 2:00 a. m., will be at
-its greatest eastern elongation (19° 26′); on the 16th, at 11:55 a. m.,
-will be 6° 21′ south of the moon; on the 17th, at 5:00 a. m., will be
-stationary; on 27th, at 10:00 p. m., will be in inferior conjunction with
-the sun—that is, will be between the earth and sun; and next day, at 1:00
-p. m., will be 1° 42′ north of Venus. A few days before and after the 8th
-may be seen as a pale, light star, near the western horizon. Its times of
-rising and setting are as follows: On the 1st, rises at 6:21 a. m., sets
-at 7:51 p. m.; on the 16th, rises at 5:50 a. m., sets at 8:00 p. m.; on
-30th, rises at 4:53 a. m., sets at 6:29 p. m. Diameter increases from
-6.4″ to 11.8″.
-
-
-VENUS,
-
-Like Mercury, will be evening star throughout the month, and near the
-28th the two will keep “close company,” but will so completely hide
-themselves in the light of “Old Sol” as to be entirely indifferent to the
-gaze of the “vulgar crowd.” On the 1st Venus rises at 5:34 a. m., and
-sets at 5:34 p. m., being just twelve hours above the horizon; on the
-16th, rises at 5:19 a. m., sets at 6:09 p. m.; on 30th, rises at 5:06 a.
-m., sets at 6:42 p. m. Diameter diminishes during the month two tenths of
-a second; motion, 34° 38′ 45″ eastwardly; on the 14th, at 3:00 p. m., six
-minutes north of the moon.
-
-MARS
-
-Has a direct motion of 21° 13′ 16″, and his diameter increases two tenths
-of one second. On the 14th, at 12:27 a. m., 12′ south of the moon. On the
-1st, rises at 5:29 a. m., sets at 5:25 p. m.; on the 16th, rises at 4:56
-a. m., sets at 5:24 p. m.; on the 30th, rises at 4:27 a. m., sets at 5:23
-p. m.; on the 14th, at 12:27 a. m., twelve minutes south of moon.
-
-
-JUPITER
-
-May well be called this month the “Ruler of the Night.” From twilight
-till near the dawn his broad face looks condescendingly upon our little
-world, and by his example cheerily bids us “pursue the even tenor of our
-way.” Jupiter rises on the 1st at 2:26 p. m., sets next morning at 4:02
-a. m.; on the 16th, rises at 1:24 p. m., sets on 17th at 3:02 a. m.;
-rises on 30th, at 12:29 p. m., and sets next morning at 2:07 a. m. Before
-the 21st, retrograde motion amounts to 36′ 26″; after that date to end of
-month, direct motion equals 8′ 42″; diameter diminishes three seconds,
-from 40.4″ to 37.4″. On 21st, at 3:00 p. m., stationary; on 23d, at 2:05
-p. m., 4° 37′ north of the moon. It might be observed in passing that as
-a mean result of five years’ observations at the Dearborn Observatory,
-Chicago, the time of Jupiter’s rotation has been discovered to be greater
-by three seconds than was supposed in 1879.
-
-
-SATURN
-
-Sets at the following times: On the 1st, at 11:49 p. m.; on 16th, at
-10:57 p. m.; on the 30th, at 10:09 p. m.; is, therefore, an evening star,
-and will remain so till the 18th of June. On the 18th, at 8:20 p. m.,
-4° 1′ north of the moon. Diameter diminishes from 16.6″ to 16″. Makes
-a forward (direct) motion of 3° 2′ 30″. For observation, this month is
-preferable to May. Can be found a little northwest of _Zeta_, in the
-constellation _Taurus_.
-
-
-URANUS,
-
-Unlike Saturn, retrogrades nearly one degree of arc during the present
-month, and shines from early eve to break of day, rising on the 1st at
-5:18 p. m., and setting on the 2d at 5:22 a. m.; on the 16th, rising at
-4:17 p. m., and setting next morning at 4:21; and on the 30th, rising at
-3:19 p. m., and setting May 1st at 3:23 a. m., and can be seen all night
-by those who know where to find him (a little southwest of _Eta_, in the
-constellation _Virgo_). On 26th, at 12:16 a. m., 1° 17′ north of moon.
-
-
-NEPTUNE,
-
-Not only the father of waters, but water himself, scarcely visible at
-best, “hangs out” all day, rising soon after the sun, and setting as
-follows: On the 1st, at 9:36 p. m.; on the 16th, at 8:40 p. m.; on the
-30th, at 7:46 p. m. Has a retrograde motion of 58′ 16″; and on the 16th,
-at 8:42 p. m., is 2° 13′ north of the moon.
-
- * * * * *
-
-We have now passed the boundary of the first century of our existence as
-an independent nation. We are as a people engaged in a confused struggle
-with the problem of our own national self-consciousness. We want to know
-what is the spirit that is in us as a nation. We must know this in order
-to be properly master of ourselves and of our destiny. We must know this
-in order to know our place in universal history.—_George S. Morris._
-
-
-
-
-ENGLAND AND ISLAM.
-
-BY PRESIDENT D. H. WHEELER, D.D., LL.D.
-
-
-Within two years there have been three prophets in Egypt. Arabi Pasha is
-in exile; Chinese Gordon is dead; El Mahdi, the mysterious voice in the
-Soudan wilderness, mutters his prayers in the mosque of Khartoum. England
-bombarded Alexandria; Arab loss in dead perhaps 5,000. Then England
-fought and conquered Arabi in the open field, captured him, and sent him
-into exile; Arab loss in dead perhaps 7,000. Next there is trouble on the
-Red Sea, and another English army killed perhaps 9,000 Arabs. And last
-a battle or series of battles in the heart of the Soudan; Arab loss in
-dead perhaps 12,000. Probably not less than 30,000 have been slaughtered
-by Englishmen in less than two years. English loss, a few hundreds. The
-butchers have been liberally rewarded; one soldier has become a “lord;”
-promotions and extra pay and pensions have fallen in a silvery shower
-on “our brave fellows” in Egypt. Only one Englishman got nothing. He
-disappeared one day in the desert, and his dromedary was said to carry
-the destiny of England; and perhaps it did. He was a soldier seeking
-peace at the meeting place of the Niles. Chinese Gordon entered Khartoum
-in triumph, and almost at once there rose a cry: “We must rescue Gordon.”
-Then came the long delayed march of an army in search of the English
-prophet at Khartoum; then the butcheries, called battles of Metemneh, and
-what not. And then in the last days of January there was a slaughter,
-not this time by Englishmen in person, and perhaps 5,000 more Moslems
-perish by Moslem steel in the sack of Khartoum. Then a wail rises on
-every breeze in Christendom; “_Alas! alas! Gordon is dead!_” The story of
-his death is a parable: “Stabbed in the back while leaving his house.”
-Make the “house” stand for England, and the knives that pierced him the
-indecisions, tergiversations, and infidelities of an English ministry
-with a great Christian statesman at its head. The world has supped full
-of the horrors of that kind of Christian statesmanship. We have believed
-in it; we have hoped that it meant something, even in those bloody
-Egyptian campaigns.
-
-We are nearly at the end of our confidence. It is not merely the shade
-of Disraeli which calls mockingly for explanations; the world that
-believed in Gladstone when Disraeli was playing at fantastic military
-statesmanship, wants to know why Christian statesmanship in Egypt has, in
-a short time, spilt almost as much blood as was shed by one army in that
-American conflict which Mr. Gladstone thought so cruel and so useless.
-We can not even condone Mr. Gladstone’s offense against civilization
-by saying that it has been a less bloody assault on humanitarian ideas
-and plans than Disraeli’s was; for Gladstone has butchered twenty men
-to Disraeli’s one. There has, in fact, been nothing so bloody in this
-century—I mean no such large butchery by a small army. Ten years of such
-statesmanship would fill the Nile valley with human bones. It is high
-time to call for a full explanation. What does Mr. Gladstone mean? What
-does he expect to accomplish? If he has intended something exalted and
-noble, which we should wish to believe, it is time to say so with the
-breadth of statement and accuracy of detail by which he obtained renown.
-The personal question stands at the front, because England is governed by
-one man. It is a happiness of Englishmen that they are able to know whom
-to blame when things go wrong. Mr. Gladstone is the head of a government
-for whose acts and failures to act he is perfectly responsible. What
-England does in Egypt Gladstone does. It is the one governmental luxury
-of the English people—they know exactly who governs them. Mr. Gladstone
-has not been compelled to do this or that by parties or circumstances. If
-he turns butcher in the Delta, on the Nile, or on the Red Sea, he alone
-does it, and he does it because he chooses to do it. For, at any moment,
-he can shift disagreeable duties to another; three lines in the form of
-a resignation will relieve him of the burden of responsible government.
-So long as he remains at the head of the English ministry he is the man
-who shoots down Arabs by the thousand. In this country politicians have
-divided, dispersed and destroyed responsibility to such an extent that
-the people know not whom to blame for evil events. It is a devil’s art,
-from whose manipulations England has by some special favor of heaven
-escaped. There the ghosts of murdered men and things can “shake” their
-“gory locks” at the Prime Minister; and he may not reply:
-
- “Thou canst not say I did it.”
-
-Many of us have expected Mr. Gladstone to retire when each of these
-bloody episodes in Egypt has begun. His retention of power may be
-explained as an old man’s insane appetite for office, or as the surrender
-of a statesman to the logic of a situation. The first explanation we
-respect Mr. Gladstone too much to accept; the second is embarrassed by
-the absence of a clearly defined policy. We should understand Disraeli;
-but he would help us to understand him by making distinct proclamation
-of his purpose to govern and bless the Moslem world. He would have
-butchered less, but he would have planted an imperial stake on every
-battle-field. We should have known that he meant conquest and dominion.
-There would have been no meaningless carnage. A humanitarian war is a
-difficult conception; but it is not impossible to conceive of wars that
-produce beneficent results. We could conceive of the subjugation of Islam
-to British sway, and rejoice to see the Soudan like India, slowly but
-surely rising into civilization under English rule. But an army thrusting
-down no imperial stakes, going home after each slaughter to be paid,
-promoted and fêted, is not doing work which opens any vistas of smiling
-peace and advancing light. It is only a bloody carnival. No petty cabinet
-differences, no outcry of public opinion, no Jingoism in the army or the
-royal family, no temporary exigencies of party, no domestic dangers nor
-foreign rivalries can explain and justify the responsible man’s conduct.
-Mr. Gladstone’s garments are dripping with Moslem blood, and the world
-can not find an explanation which explains.
-
-It seems to the spectators that England is doing the one thing she
-should most carefully avoid doing. She is uniting Islam, and teaching
-Islam how to make war. In each new campaign the Soudanese are better
-armed, fight with better method, and kill more Englishmen. England is
-training them into sturdy and disciplined soldiers. A Moslem victory
-is proclaimed in every Arab tent, and in every Indian village. Such a
-victory is not merely a victory for El Mahdi; it is a hope for the whole
-Moslem world. Moslem defeats travel less swiftly, and mean only a delayed
-victory. What fierce resolutions are begotten in Moslem bosoms by Mr.
-Gladstone’s campaigns of butchery, we can easily imagine. Meanwhile,
-Christendom can only say: “Premier of England, your garments are soaked
-with blood; and, may God forgive you, the blood is not your own. We can
-not understand you, but we are painfully certain that you are arousing
-all Islam against us.” Meanwhile, the ancient spears are giving place
-in the Prophet’s armies to repeating rifles, and Krupp guns may soon
-guard every height along the Nile. Islam is strong in numbers. There
-are 75,000,000 of Soudanese, with a very large proportion of men just
-civilized enough to make terrible soldiers. It may happen some day that
-a military leader will arise in the front of this vast army, and that
-an effeminate Europe may find that its military science has gone over
-to the Moslems. Probably no one man’s policy could effect its transfer
-more rapidly than Mr. Gladstone’s. When that dark wave of the Moslem
-millions is gathered into conquering masses by a capable leader, it
-will have mighty winds of religious enthusiasm behind it, and plenty of
-room before it. The southern and eastern shores of the Mediterranean
-would be swept clean of the petty European military establishments in a
-month. Morocco, larger than France, holds at least half of the western
-gate of the Mediterranean, while the Turk holds the eastern gate; and a
-month’s campaign might convert that sea into a Moslem lake, and leave its
-Italian, French, and Spanish and Greek shores to be ravaged again as in
-the crusading centuries, by Moslem piracy and brigandage. The one thing
-the Arab can learn thoroughly is the art of war. He was once great on
-the sea. That man may exult too soon, who, remembering the leviathans of
-the deep which destroyed Alexandria, trusts Europe’s safety to the great
-navies of Europe. Islam has some great ships in the Bosphorus, and is
-rapidly learning where the great ships grow. It is true that if splendid
-leadership does not arise, Islam may continue to bleed and die in vain;
-but wars produce great soldiers as regularly as oaks bear acorns. There
-_is_ danger. Ten years of Gladstoneism in the Nile valley would make the
-danger a terrible reality. Christendom should rise up and condemn the
-bloody education which England is imparting to Islam.
-
-Meanwhile, Germans and Frenchmen are in the armies of the Prophet,
-teaching the rude but vigorous men of the desert how to use arms of
-precision with deadly effect. In the process of creating a terrible
-peril for Europe, greed, personal ambition, and national jealousies are
-contributing to perfect the lessons in modern warfare which England is
-giving to Islam. No doubt it is true that a great man is needed to weld
-together the forces of Islam. But why should no strong man be expected
-to arise in a race so rich in warlike memories? When the Prophet is
-once crowned with the diadem of military success, there is an army
-of Mohammedans in India wearing the queen’s uniform, there are vast
-resources at Constantinople ready to fall from the helpless hands of the
-Sultan; there are millions of soldiers who require no pay, and have no
-scruples about the rights of private property. If one gives rein to his
-imagination, he is soon in a world of awful possibilities. There are
-two hundred millions of Mohammedans waiting for a leader to restore the
-glories of Islam.
-
-The relations of England to Islam are logically and historically
-friendly. England has a Moslem army in India, and has long protected the
-head of Islam at Constantinople, from the consequences of his vices,
-extravagances and follies. The Indian mutiny had a religious source, but
-this was denied, and the spring covered up so successfully that, until
-Mr. Gladstone attacked Disraeli’s policy in the name of Christianity
-(such as it is) in Bulgaria, England had successfully encountered the
-difficulties of her position as a Christian power ruling directly and
-indirectly half the Moslem world.
-
-Does Mr. Gladstone foresee an “irrepressible conflict” between England
-and Islam? Is he instinctively bringing on a conflict which will be
-the less perilous the sooner it comes? Will history add to his rare
-good fortune by making him glorious as the beginner of a defense of
-Christendom which he has never dreamed of organizing? Disraeli’s
-conception followed logic and history. He made a Christian queen empress
-of India, and he contemplated with composure a time when the descendant
-of Victoria should be born in India, and be reared in the faith of
-Mohammed, the center of the British empire having gone to its proper
-place. Against such ideas Christian England revolted. Is Mr. Gladstone
-reversing centuries of history and setting the Moslem and Christian
-worlds by the ears again? If he is moving on that line, his armies should
-conquer and hold Egypt and the Soudan, the Nile and the Red Sea, the
-ancient Delta and its modern canal, with the grip England once laid on
-North America. The audacity of the conquest would provoke diplomatic
-criminations; but it were easier far to face them than to answer the hard
-questions which are provoked by fruitless slaughter in Moslem lands.
-England is only the heart of the British empire. A quiet and gentle
-England is a possible dream; but the empire is war, conquest, dominion,
-at the expense of weak peoples. The empire can not survive the definitive
-abandonment of an imperial policy. The empire must dominate by force or
-fall to pieces.
-
-It is not worth while to seek in the history of the Egyptian debt, and
-the “grasping disposition of the English bondholders,” for the key of the
-present situation. Those who make a religion, or at least a philanthropy,
-of heaping abuse on bondholders anywhere and everywhere, are the least
-reasonable of Christians. It is not a crime to deny ourselves, save
-money and lend it to others. To refuse to pay debts freely contracted is
-not the first of virtues or the best of policies. The bondholders are
-commonly poor people who have saved a little by pinching themselves,
-and have bought bonds for the holy purposes of family forethought.
-Repudiated debts are baptised in the self-renouncing spirit which is at
-the heart of our religion, and repudiators make war on the foundations of
-character and society. In so far as England protects her money lenders,
-she protects her noble middle class, whose honest thrift lies at the
-foundation of her wealth. It is among the strangest perversions of
-feeling that prodigals and prodigal governments should get the sympathy
-of mankind. Let England foreclose her mortgage on Egypt, and the honest
-world will thank her for abolishing one nest of spendthrifts. Much is
-said of the miserable Egyptian peasants, from whom the taxes to pay
-interest are wrung with every form of despotic oppression. Let us not be
-deceived by such false-toned appeals for sympathy. The fellaheen of the
-Nile are oppressed irrespective of the bondholders. Arabi or El Mahdi
-would maintain the oppressive systems if they were in power. If there
-were no bondholders, the backs of the miserable fellaheen would smart
-under the lash of the oppressor. The despotism is Egyptian, not English.
-English rule would gradually emancipate the oppressed classes. Nowhere,
-not even in Ireland, has England conquered a people without improving
-the condition of the poor. The interest on debts which she surrenders in
-the valley of the Nile does not go to the relief of the peasants; it is
-squandered in the harems of Cairo and Alexandria. The issue is strictly
-between the splendid, many-concubined lords in Egypt and the honest and
-self-denying people who have lent honest money on the faith of England.
-
-Which way, then, will events march? Toward a war between Islam and
-Christendom, or back to the old imperial policy of England? It would
-seem that the world’s hope lies in a restoration of the ancient policy
-of the British empire. The events of 1885 in Moslem land will be full
-of interest, perhaps pregnant with destiny. A larger English army,
-perhaps 25,000 men, will soon be in Egypt. It will probably face a
-better trained foe. There will be more English graves in Egypt. To
-what end? The London _Times_ says: “Gordon must be avenged.” England
-repeats the cry. But what end will the vengeance serve? And what if
-Arabi Pasha and the Emirs killed in the late battles, and the 30,000
-to 40,000 Moslems slain, should be avenged? Soon or late—if she does
-not attempt it too late—England must return to her historical policy
-and stand among Christian powers the foremost ally of the sons of
-Mohammed. It is the inexorable logic of her greatness. Let us shut
-our eyes upon the horrible vision of the new crusades, as useless as
-the old and far bloodier. Christendom can hope for no more fortunate
-disposition of Mohammedanism than that it should be locked fast in the
-iron arms of the British empire; and on the other hand the failure of
-the British empire would involve the greatest possible disasters for
-Christendom. Many foolish things have been promised in the name of
-“manifest destiny.” Perhaps destiny is never so manifest that it may be
-read off by uninspired prophecy; but there is no other Power which seems
-fitted to play England’s imperial rôle; and it does not appear how the
-progress and happiness of mankind can go forward without such an imperial
-force as England has been for two centuries. While we deprecate the
-effects of the Jingo spirit which Disraeli fostered, and repudiate the
-indifference to the progress of Christianity which the Hebrew statesman
-scarcely concealed, we can not look with complacency upon changes of
-British policy which would disintegrate the empire. Let England’s
-drum-beat go round the earth with the sun; for the sunrise of progress
-and civilization will awaken wherever that martial music falls upon the
-ear of mankind.
-
-
-
-
-THE ART OF FISH CULTURE.
-
-BY PROF. G. BROWN GOODE.
-
-
-PART I.
-
-When any portion of the earth is colonized by civilized man, an era
-of change and readjustment at once begins. The untilled plain, the
-primeval forest, the bridgeless river, the malaria-breathing swamp, and
-the jungle—lurking place for beasts of prey—are all obstructions which
-must be removed from the highway of social and industrial progress.
-Until a new environment had been created, the colonists of Virginia
-and New England were like helpless children, compared with the Indians
-whom they had come to disinherit. The hills were soon cleared, and the
-water-courses dried up, swamps were drained, and lakes were made in the
-valleys, the plains were plowed and planted with exotic vegetation, and
-great regions of land were entirely changed in character by irrigation
-and the use of manure. The New World has in two centuries become in
-very truth a new world, for its physical features have been entirely
-reconstructed. The aboriginal man retreated before the advancing strides
-of civilization, and has now been practically exterminated, at least east
-of the Mississippi River.
-
-The manner in which the man of European descent has eliminated and
-replaced the son of the soil is fairly typical of changes which have
-occurred in the animal and vegetable life of the continent. Bear,
-moose, caribou, deer, wolf, beaver, and all other large animals have
-been entirely destroyed in many parts of the country, and the time is
-not far remote when they will exist among us only in a state of partial
-or entire domestication. The prairie chicken once reared its brood
-in Massachusetts, but is now never seen east of the Alleghenies. The
-alligator is fast being exterminated in Florida and Mississippi, and the
-buffalo is now rarely to be seen except in captivity. The sea cow of the
-north Pacific, the great auk of New England and Newfoundland stand with
-the dodo, the moa, and the zebra in the list of animals which have become
-extinct within the memory of man, and the list will continue to increase.
-A similar story might be told for birds, reptiles, and plants. The
-rattlesnake is retreating to the mountain tops, the turkey, the pigeon,
-the woodpecker and hosts of others are disappearing, the medicinal plant
-ginseng, once so important in the Alleghenies, is almost a rarity to
-botanists.
-
-The aboriginal animals and plants go. They are replaced by others,
-which in that struggle for existence which plays so important a part in
-determining careers for plants and animals, have become particularly
-well fitted to be man’s companions. The clover, the ox-eye daisy, the
-buttercup, the thistle, the mullein, the dandelion, followed the European
-to America, and with them the broad-leaved plantain, which, as every one
-knows, the Indians called “the white man’s foot,” because it sprung up at
-once in every meadow where the soles of his shoes had touched. With these
-came the European mouse, the rat, the cat, the dog. The browsing herds of
-deer and buffalo were replaced by oxen, horses and sheep, and the greedy,
-quarrelsome, impertinent sparrow was permitted to drive out the native
-birds which many of us would have been glad to keep as relics of the old
-dispensation.
-
-Not less important in many regions have been the changes in the life in
-the waters. In many of our streams and lakes the fish, formerly abundant,
-have been entirely exterminated. Sometimes, perhaps we may charitably say
-usually, this has been the result of ignorance, but often, I fear, it may
-be ascribed to recklessness or cupidity.
-
-Fishes may be grouped, according to their habits, into two
-classes—resident and migratory. Representatives of each of these classes
-may be found both in fresh water and in the sea. Among resident fresh
-water fishes may be mentioned the perch, the catfish, suckers and dace,
-the pike and pickerel, the black bass. Resident sea fishes are typified
-by the flounders, cod, sheepshead, blackfish and sea bass, which are
-found near the shore in winter as well as summer. In cold climates,
-resident fishes always retreat in winter into deeper water to avoid the
-cold, and if they can not get beyond its reach they subside into a state
-of torpidity or hibernation, in which all the vital functions are more or
-less inert. The carp, and many other kinds of fish, at this time, burrow
-into “kettles” or holes in the mud in the bottom of the pond, where they
-remain for months. A hybernating fish may be frozen solid in the middle
-of a cake of ice, and emerge when thawed out, unharmed.
-
-Migratory fishes, on the other hand, are those which wander extensively
-from season to season. There are migrating fish in the sea, which, like
-the mackerel, the bluefish, the menhaden and the porgy come near our
-northern coasts only in the summer, and in winter retreat to regions
-either in the south or far out at sea unknown; others, like the smelt and
-the sea herring, which retreat northward in summer and only appear in
-quantity on the Atlantic coast of the United States in the colder months
-of the year.
-
-Then there are migratory fishes which live part of the year in the
-rivers. Such are the shad and the river-herrings or alewives, which leave
-the sea in the spring and ascend to the river heads to spawn, and the
-salmon, which does likewise, to spawn in the brooklets in November and
-December. Still more remarkable is the eel, which breeds in the sea,
-where the male eels always remain, while the young females, when as large
-as darning needles, ascend in the spring to inland lakes and streams,
-there to remain, until, after three or four years, they are grown to
-maturity, when they descend to salt water, to reproduce their kind and
-die.
-
-There are also migratory fish in fresh water, like the white fish, the
-salmon, trout, and the siscowet, which live in the abyssal depths of the
-great lakes and swim up into the shallows and creeks in winter to spawn
-their eggs, and the brook trout and dace, which for a similar purpose
-ascend from the pools and quiet meadow stretches to the pebble-paved
-ripplets near the spring sources of the brooks in which they live.
-
-Having, in a general way, classified fish according to their habits, we
-are in a position to consider the manner in which man has succeeded in
-exterminating them. As a general rule, fish deposit their eggs in shallow
-water, and the time of egg-laying is very closely dependent upon the
-temperature of the water. The eggs of a fish are, as every one knows,
-enclosed in two sacs, or ovaries, which are situated close to the walls
-of the abdominal cavity, and separated from the water by thin walls of
-skin and flesh, rarely, even in the largest fish, more than a sixteenth
-of an inch in thickness. Experiment has shown that the temperature of
-the blood in the abdomen of a fish deviates very little from that of the
-water in which it is floating. Experiment has also shown that as soon
-as the water has reached a certain degree of warmth, variable with each
-kind of fish, the eggs are sure to be laid within a very few hours. This
-being the case, it usually happens that great schools of fish always
-congregate together at one time upon the spawning grounds. Since the
-spawning grounds of many kinds of fish are in shallow water, and the fish
-are at that time most easily caught, it happens that many of the most
-extensive fisheries are carried on in the spawning season. The delicious
-little smelts which our neighbors in Maine and New Brunswick send us by
-the hundred car-loads each winter, packed in little boxes of snow, are
-always full of eggs—so are the lake white fish, when they are caught, and
-the shad, and the Potomac herrings, and the cod, and the mullet, and the
-herring, and in early spring the mackerel.
-
-Now consider how easy it is, taking these fish so much at a disadvantage,
-to diminish their numbers, simply by catching them. The man who catches
-a spawning cod destroys anywhere from 5,000,000 to 7,000,000 of eggs, a
-spawning halibut at least 2,000,000, a shad from 50,000 to 2,000,000. Is
-not the American breakfasting on broiled shad roe a modern representative
-of him who killed the goose which laid the golden egg? When we consider
-that the yearly catch of mother-fish along the New England coast does
-not fall short of ten to fifteen millions of individuals, we may gain an
-adequate idea of the destruction of fish life by the fisheries.
-
-Still it is not necessary to be alarmed at these figures. They are
-presented simply in illustration of the immense possibilities of
-destruction when the fisheries are carried on at the spawning season. As
-a matter of fact, cod are just as abundant along our coasts as they ever
-were, and it has not yet been demonstrated that any kind of sea fish has
-ever been diminished in numbers by hook and line fishing or by netting
-them at a distance from the shore.
-
-Some kinds of fishes, however, enter narrow bays and estuaries to spawn,
-and if they are there recklessly destroyed, the local supply at least
-may be permanently interfered with. This has apparently been the case
-with certain species in Narragansett Bay, Rhode Island. For instance,
-the scuppaug or porgy has been seriously diminished in numbers in
-certain seasons, years ago; the supply will probably be replenished from
-adjoining waters by the reparative tendencies of nature, if this indeed
-has not already been done. So, too, the halibut has been exterminated
-in Massachusetts, where it was once so abundant as to be regarded as a
-nuisance by the fishermen. It is in the inland or freshwater fisheries,
-however, that the work of extermination has been thorough, and here, from
-the nature of the case, the work once accomplished, it is beyond the
-power of nature to remedy the damage. If I could take the reader with
-me next May to one of the many little streamlets of Cape Cod, flowing
-southward into Nantucket Sound, I could show him a scene which he would
-never forget. The little rill has been encased at bottom and sides with
-planks, so that it flows for a mile or two, down to its junction with the
-sea, in a straight trough not over fifteen inches wide, and a foot in
-depth. At a convenient level place a shed has been built over the trough,
-and in the floor is a kind of cistern, through which the waters of the
-brook flow as it goes on its course. In the shed stand two men, each
-with a great scoop of netting, with which they labor, dipping the fish
-out of the cistern as they fill it, swimming up the trough from the sea.
-Several barrels are taken out every day, and in some of these streams one
-or two thousand barrels always reward a season’s work, the brook being
-the property of the township, and the privilege of fishing being sold at
-auction for the benefit of the public. Dip! dip! dip it is all day long,
-and as the little alewives are tumbled into barrels and carts, the eye of
-the practiced observer notes the plump sides and the brilliant iridescent
-coloring of the silvery scales, which indicate that the fish are loaded
-with a precious burden of eggs, to deposit which in the pond at the head
-of the stream is the motive which leads them to press forward so blindly
-into the trap men have set for them.
-
-In these enlightened days the town laws generally require that the brooks
-shall be unobstructed for one or two days each week, and so a few fish
-get by the barriers and are allowed to perpetuate their kind. In the
-past, however, many excellent “herring brooks” have been completely
-deprived of their fish.
-
-This illustrates how completely man has the destinies of river fish
-under his control. Suppose that instead of a fish house with movable
-barriers, an impassable dam had been built. Of course the fish would
-have been locked out, and their kind exterminated in that immediate
-region. This is precisely what has happened in almost every river and
-stream on the Atlantic coast of the United States. Shad and salmon were
-formerly abundant in every river of New England—and shad and alewives
-in every considerable stream south to Florida. Now, they are excluded,
-either entirely or in great part from the waters in which they once
-swarmed in great schools. Take, for instance, the Connecticut River. In
-colonial days, salmon were there in immense numbers. All summer long
-they were swimming up from the sea to the headwaters of the river, to
-Massachusetts, New Hampshire, and Vermont, where they deposited their
-eggs in the cool, clear rapids of the main river and its tributaries.
-They were so abundant that the shad fishermen used to require their
-customers to take one salmon with every shad, and, as the hackneyed
-old story goes, the apprentices were accustomed to stipulate in their
-papers that they should not be required to eat salmon above three times
-a week. In 1798 a dam was built across the river at Miller’s Falls.
-Next year many salmon were seen at the base of the dam, the following
-year a smaller number, and in less than ten years salmon had entirely
-disappeared from the Connecticut. Not a salmon was seen in those waters
-until seventy years later, when, in 1871, a single artificially bred fish
-was caught at Saybrook. I could show you a map prepared by an associate
-of mine, in which the present and former limits of the shad are shown,
-and you would see how they once ranged clear up into the mountains, far
-up the Susquehanna into New York State, up the Connecticut into New
-Hampshire and Vermont, and how now, in many rivers, they are confined to
-very restrictive stretches at the river mouths.
-
-The dams operate in still another way. We have considered hitherto only
-their influence upon the sea fish which ascend the rivers to spawn.
-Their effect upon the resident fish is quite as baneful. As the suckers,
-and the bass, and the cat fish, and dace, and trout, grow large, they
-naturally go down stream in search of deeper water and wider pools, where
-they get more room and better food. If they luckily escape the baskets
-and traps set for them in every dam, they never can get back. The streams
-are gradually sifted out and left tenantless.
-
-Little need be said of the manner in which ponds are drained dry in
-order to get all the fish in them, in which immense seines are hauled
-in little lakes, clearing out everything, great and small, of the use
-of explosives, lime, or _cocculus indicus_, in the work of wholesale
-destruction. The fact stands undisputed and undisputable, that in many
-parts of the United States the native fish are actually exterminated, and
-the mud turtles, muskrats and fresh water clams left as sole occupants.
-Even the harmonious bull-frog has been devoured by man, and only his
-diminutive cousins, the cricket frogs and hylas left—the aquatic choir
-can henceforth perform only soprano and contralto songs, unless the fish
-culturist finds some way of bringing back the basso whose obligatos we
-once admired.
-
-Oysters, scallops, and lobsters are going the same way. Although they
-live in free waters, they are stationary in their habits, and wholesale
-gathering will soon complete the work of extermination so recklessly
-begun. The forthcoming census reports on the fisheries will show
-conclusively the need of immediate protection.
-
-What is the remedy for these great evils? One hundred thousand men are
-actively engaged in the fisheries of the United States, and at least
-one fiftieth of the entire population of the country are, to a large
-extent, dependent on the fishery industry. Fish is the poor man’s food,
-for unlike any other food product it may be had for the taking. A fish
-swimming in the water has cost no man labor. There floats four pounds of
-savory shad, fifty pounds of nutritious sturgeon, a hundred barrels of
-whale oil; there lies a bushel of oysters, or a barrel of sponges. They
-are God’s gift, and man has only to gather them in, and possibly submit
-them to a very simple process of preparation, to be the possessor of a
-valuable piece of property. If the matter can be properly regulated, good
-fish ought to be sold in every town and village for two thirds or half
-the price of beef and pork. As it is, poor fish often cost more than beef
-and pork, and in many localities good fish can not be had at any price.
-It is a great problem in political economy, and one which we are, as yet,
-far from thoroughly understanding.
-
-We are confronted with the question, What can be done to neutralize these
-destructive tendencies?
-
-There are evidently three things to do.
-
-1. To preserve fish waters, especially those inland, as nearly as
-possible in their normal condition.
-
-2. To prohibit wasteful or immoderate fishing.
-
-3. To employ the art of fish breeding.
-
- _a._ To aid in maintaining a natural supply;
-
- _b._ To repair the effects of past improvidence, and
-
- _c._ To increase the supply beyond its natural limits, rapidly
- enough to meet the necessities of a constantly increasing
- population.
-
-The preservation of normal conditions in inland waters is comparatively
-simple. A reasonable system of forestry and water purification is
-all that is required, and this is needed not only by the fish in the
-streams, but by the people living on the banks. It has been shown
-that a river which is too foul for fish to live in is not fit to flow
-near the habitations of man. Obstructions, such as dams, may, in most
-instances, be overcome by fish ladders. The salmon has profited much by
-these devices in Europe, and the immense dams in American rivers will
-doubtless be passable, even for shad and alewives, if the new system of
-fish-way construction devised by Col. McDonald, and now being applied on
-the Savannah, James, and Potomac, and other large rivers, fulfills its
-present promises of success.
-
-Up to the present time, however, although much ingenuity and expense
-have been lavished upon fish-ways by the various state fish commissions
-of this country, there has been little practical outcome from their use.
-Our dams are too high, and the shad and alewives, which we are especially
-desirous to carry over these obstructions, do not seem to take kindly to
-the narrow, tortuous defiles of the fish ladders.
-
-The protection of fish by law is what legislators have been trying to
-effect for many centuries, and we are bound to admit that the success of
-their efforts has been very slight indeed. Protective legislation rarely
-succeeds. The statute books of each state are crowded with laws which no
-one understands, least of all the men who made them, and which the state
-governments are powerless to enforce. Every one remembers Whittier’s
-grand old hero, Abraham Davenport, the Connecticut statesman, who, “on
-a May day of that far old year 1780,” when the earth was shrouded in
-darkness, and he and all his colleagues in the State Assembly felt that
-the judgment day had come, stood up, “albeit with trembling hands and
-shaking voice, and read an act to amend an act to regulate the shad and
-alewife fisheries”—and then went on to rebuke those around for their
-fearfulness and desire to leave the post of duty. Connecticut is as
-much at a loss now as then to know how to regulate her shad and alewife
-fisheries. Under a republican form of government, restrictive laws are
-not popular, and money would never be voted to enforce such laws, which,
-without an extensive police force, would be powerless. Some one has
-sagely remarked that the salmon is an aristocratic fish, which can only
-thrive under the shadow of a throne. Many states now have laws protecting
-fresh water fish in the breeding season, and numerous game protective
-associations are laboring with some success for their enforcement. Sales
-of fish out of season are also successfully prevented in certain city
-markets.
-
-The attempts to regulate the fisheries at the mouths of rivers, so that
-spawning fish may be allowed free passage for a few hours, generally from
-Saturday evening to Monday morning, are meeting with but little success.
-
-Maryland and Virginia attempt to some extent the protection of their
-oyster beds, and the former state keeps up an expensive police
-organization. The oyster law is founded in ignorance, however, and the
-chief effort being to keep away fishermen from other states, for the
-benefit of their own, there are small results except frequent quarrels
-and occasional bloodshed.
-
-Connecticut is making the experiment of giving to individuals personal
-title to submerged land, to be used in oyster culture, and this,
-perhaps, is the wisest step taken. Oyster production must soon cease to
-be a free grabbing enterprise, and be placed upon the same footing as
-agriculture, or the United States will lose its beloved oyster crop, and
-in this country, as in England, a fresh oyster will be worth as much as
-a new-laid egg. Great Britain has, at present, two schools of fishery
-economists, the one headed by Professor Huxley, opposed to legislation,
-save for the preservation of fish in inland waters, the other, of which
-Dr. Francis Day is the chief leader, advocating a most strenuous legal
-regulation of the sea fisheries. Continental Europe is by tradition
-and belief committed to the last named policy. In the United States,
-on the contrary, public opinion is generally antagonistic to fishery
-legislation, and our Commissioner of Fisheries, after carrying on for
-fourteen years investigations upon this very question, has not yet
-become satisfied that laws are necessary for the perpetuation of the
-sea fisheries, nor has he ever recommended to Congress enactment of any
-description. Just here we meet the test problem in fish culture. Many of
-the most important commercial fisheries of the world, the cod fishery,
-the herring fishery, the sardine fishery, the shad and alewife fishery,
-the mullet fishery, the salmon fishery, the whitefish fishery, the smelt
-fishery, and many others, owe their existence to the fact that once a
-year these fishes gather together in closely swimming schools, to spawn
-in shallow water, on shoals, or in estuaries and rivers. There is a large
-school of _quasi_ economists, who clamor for the complete prohibition of
-fishing during spawning time. This demand demonstrates their ignorance.
-Deer, game birds, and other land animals may easily be protected in the
-breeding season, so may trout and other fishes of strictly local habits.
-Not so the anadromous and pelagic fishes. If they are not caught in the
-spawning season, they can not be caught at all. I heard a prominent fish
-culturist recently advocating before a committee of the United States
-Senate, the view that shad should not be caught in the rivers, because
-they came into the rivers to spawn. When asked what would become of our
-immense shad fisheries if this were done, he said that doubtless some
-ingenious person would invent a means of catching them at sea.
-
-The fallacy in the argument of these men lies in the supposition that
-it is more destructive to the progeny of a given fish to kill it when
-its eggs are nearly ripe, than to kill the same fish eight or ten months
-earlier.
-
-We must not, however, ignore the counter argument. Such is the
-mortality among fish that only an infinitesimal percentage attain to
-maturity. Möbius has shown that for every grown oyster upon the beds of
-Schleswig-Holstein, 1,045,000 have died. Only a very small percentage,
-perhaps not greater than this, of the shad or the smelt ever come upon
-the breeding grounds. Some consideration, then, ought to be shown to the
-individuals which have escaped from their enemies and have come up to
-deposit the precious burden of eggs. How much must they be protected?
-
-Here the fish culturist comes in with the proposition “_that it is
-cheaper to make fish so plenty by artificial means that every fisherman
-may take all he can catch, than to enforce a code of protective laws_.”
-
-The salmon rivers of the Pacific slope, and the shad rivers of the east,
-and the whitefish fisheries of the lakes, are now so thoroughly under
-control by the fish culturist, that it is doubtful if any one will
-venture to contradict his assertion. The question now is, whether he can
-extend his domain to other species.
-
-Legislation and fish-ways, then, are, as yet, of little practical
-importance. Actually, they repeat the proverbial act of the clown who
-locked the stable door after his horse had been stolen. No one makes laws
-or builds fish-ways until he is of the decided opinion that the fish are
-pretty nearly gone.
-
-Artificial fish culture seems to offer the only remedy for the evils
-which have been described.
-
-[TO BE CONTINUED.]
-
-
-
-
-THE LIFE OF GEORGE ELIOT.
-
-
-There is now and then a biography so written that the reader is able to
-become intimately acquainted with the subject, to feel after reading that
-he has had a personal contact, and has formed a friendship which is warm
-and living. Such “Lives” are rare. Most works of this kind are so biased
-by the interpretations of the author, so full of facts and opinions that
-the reader loses all feeling of companionship in reading; he closes the
-book, knowing much about the subject, but rarely understanding him. A
-book which presents a man or woman in that personal way which makes a
-friendship through the medium of the book possible, confers a great gift
-upon the reading public.
-
-The peculiar fitness of Mr. Cross’s “Life of George Eliot”[B] for giving
-us a new friend, must be attributed to the really remarkable taste and
-skill of his editing. The work bears the mark of a reverential hand. It
-is an _In Memoriam_ whose only object has been to lay before the world a
-memory too strong and precious to be kept secret. But no such a biography
-could have been given the world had it not been for the peculiar nature
-of George Eliot herself. The material for this “Life” grew out of two
-strong elements in her character: the affectionate and persistent
-friendship which led her to reveal herself so fully to those she loved
-in her letters, and that constant introspection which made her journal
-often a mirror of her inner life. These materials make up the book, which
-is largely a study of her character, and, too, of her character as she
-understood it. She has verily written her own life. The interpretation
-remains for the readers.
-
-It would have been possible for Mr. Cross to have given much information
-about her character which he has withheld, her opinions and much of her
-conversation; but he has wisely given the world only what she herself
-chose to reveal to her friends.
-
-The story begins early. The first revelations in character are the
-strongest; the happiness and misery of the future life are revealed in
-the childhood traits. The earliest revelations which we find in George
-Eliot’s life are of affection and ambition; either, if strong enough to
-become a passion, drives its possessor along a thorny path until it is
-itself mastered, and where both exist in a nature, continual collision
-must occur between them. Before each is satisfied there must be a life
-struggle of the keenest sort. Such a struggle was presaged for Marian
-Evans very early. She herself tells how, when she was but four years
-of age, she played on the piano, of which she did not know a note, in
-order to impress the servant with a proper notion of her acquirements
-and generally distinguished position. As eager, too, she was for love as
-for recognition. In her reminiscences of her early life most vividly
-she portrays her earliest passion—one very common among affectionate
-girls—her love for her brother. “She used always to be at his heels,
-insisting on doing everything that he did.” When his first boyish
-craze took possession of him in shape of a pony, and she found it was
-separating them, she was nearly heart broken. Impressible, eager for work
-and ambitious for knowledge, she began life under an emotional pressure,
-which drove her into incessant distress lest those she loved should
-fail her, and which brought her devotion to her loved ones in constant
-collision with her ambition. At twenty-one, writing to a very intimate
-friend, she said: “I do not mean to be so sinful as to say that I have
-not friends most undeservedly kind and tender, and disposed to form a
-far too favorable estimate of me, but I mean I have no one who enters
-into my pleasures and griefs, no one with whom I can pour out my soul.”
-Eight years after this, having lost her father, she went abroad for a
-few months’ residence, and her letters home were full of eager longing
-for their sympathy and restless fear lest they should forget her. No
-change in her life diminished this feeling. She became an editor of the
-_Westminster Review_, and while overwhelmed with manuscripts and proofs
-she wrote: “You must know that I am not a little desponding now and then,
-and think that old friends will die off, and I shall be left with no
-power to make new ones again.” Undoubtedly this feeling tended to make
-her morbid in her younger days, and consequently dwarf her power. It
-is an important study of her life to trace the gradual melting of this
-disposition, and the final growth into a healthy happiness. When quite
-past the heyday of her life, she wrote a friend of her girlhood: “I am
-one of those, perhaps, exceptional people whose early childish dreams
-were much less happy than the outcome of life,” and again, but four years
-before her death: “I have completely lost my _personal_ melancholy. I
-often, of course, have melancholy thoughts about the destinies of my
-fellow creatures, but I am never in the mood of sadness, which used to
-be my frequent visitant, even in the midst of external happiness; and
-this, notwithstanding a very vivid sense that life is declining, and
-death close at hand.” This release from morbidness had two causes. She
-had taught her strong, affectional nature to find satisfaction in that
-commonplace, but little understood duty, loving her neighbors, and she
-had learned to enjoy things on their own account. The first article in
-this creed of happiness became George Eliot’s religion. She had abandoned
-her belief in the Christian religion when twenty-one years of age. She
-could not believe fully, and she was too independent and too reliant upon
-her own mind to conform to a religion she did not believe. The steps she
-took did not destroy the religious sense in her life. The earnestness
-which led her to write at nineteen, “May the Lord give me such an insight
-into what is truly good, that I may not rest contented with making
-Christianity a mere addendum to my pursuits, or with tacking it as a
-fringe to my garments;” which induced her to consider the novel and even
-oratorio as dangerous to spiritual development still remained, though
-without form. She was intensely in earnest, but it was many years before
-her love for mankind became a religion to her. A less strong character
-would have become flippant or scornful under this loss; hers only became
-more serious. She seems never to have forgotten what she had abandoned.
-
-Though radically differing from most of her friends on religious
-questions, she never was uncharitable. “Of all intolerance, the
-intolerance calling itself philosophical is the most odious to me,” she
-wrote, and she lived out this opinion, in no way allowing the widest
-diversity to separate her from her friends. Her sympathy and charity
-indeed seem to increase, even if the breach in their opinion widened.
-
-This habit of thought and feeling resulted in much personal moral
-benefit. “My own experience and development deepen every day my
-conviction that our moral progress may be measured by the degree in which
-we sympathize with individual suffering and individual joy.”
-
-As she grew older, she comforted herself with the thought that “with that
-renunciation of self which age inevitably brings we get more freedom
-of soul to enter into the life of others.” She tried for “a religion
-which must express less care for personal consolation and a more deeply
-awing sense of responsibility to man, springing from sympathy with that
-which of all things is most certainly known to us, the difficulty of the
-human lot.” This was the great lesson in her growth toward happiness. A
-secondary step was her appreciation of the value of things in themselves.
-It is a serious obstacle to the happiness of women, that in the main they
-care for exterior life only as it is of value in the personal life. A
-book is dear because a friend has read or recommended it. This verse is
-fine from association; this strain of music because they heard it in a
-certain connection. Take the _personal_ out of Art and Nature, and too
-often women care little for them. George Eliot learned to appreciate and
-love things for their own value. Music, to which she was from childhood
-deeply susceptible, she cultivated thoroughly, and no fine rendering of
-_good_ music ever was missed by her. She took the true, high view of
-life, which declares that from every good all possible enjoyment should
-be gained. Art was very dear to her, and we find in these quotations
-from her journal, notes on all the leading galleries of Europe, but in
-the very midst of her art studies she drops this comment, after noting
-a sight she had had of the snow covered Alps: “Sight more to me than
-all the art in Munich, though I love the _art_ nevertheless. The great,
-wide-stretching earth, and the all-embracing sky—the birthright of us
-all—are what I care most to look at.”
-
-But it would have been impossible for even her deep love for mankind,
-her fine enjoyment of the good and beautiful, to have completed her
-life. These things satisfied her affections, but there was another
-quality we have mentioned as prominent in her life: it was her ambition.
-At twenty she wrote despondently: “I feel that my besetting sin is the
-one of all others most destroying, as it is the faithful parent of them
-all—ambition, a desire insatiable for the esteem of my fellow-creatures.”
-Whatever she did, was done with all her might. Her mother died early,
-and she became housekeeper. Her struggles with the knotty questions
-of housewifery kept her in a constant worry, but she would do things
-right—whether it be currant jelly or a German translation. The same
-perfection marked her novels. Her progress was soon marked; it
-recommended her to people of standing, and gradually she had a circle of
-friends—people of strong minds and much culture—about her. Eager to do
-something, a way opened to her in 1844, when she was twenty-five years
-old. It was to translate into English a work of the German philosopher,
-Strauss. She did it, and what was better, did it well. Five years later
-she writes: “The only ardent hope I have for my future life is to have
-given me some woman’s duty.” The ambition to excel is already bending
-to the stronger emotion of affection. For a long time she worked, eager
-and anxious, but nothing seemed to open. In 1851 she went to London as
-assistant editor of _Westminster Review_, and here most satisfactory
-opportunities for culture opened. She formed lasting friendships with
-Herbert Spenser, Harriet Martineau, Florence Nightingale, and indeed with
-all the people worth knowing, who filled London in the ’fifties. But her
-editing left no opportunity to do that special work to which she was
-looking, and which she did not understand. She wrote many reviews and
-essays. This writing was a sort of safety valve for her intellect, but it
-was not until September, 1856, that the new era began in her life. It was
-when she began to write fiction. The popular idea of fiction as stories
-which will do to kill time, but which for serious reading are quite
-useless, was not the idea of George Eliot. A nature so intensely serious,
-so anxious for noble work, could not content itself with trivial story
-telling; she did not aim at that, but at studies of life. As she finely
-writes to Mr. John Blackwood, who became her publisher: “My artistic bent
-is directed not all to the presentation of irreproachable character, but
-to the presentation of mixed human beings, in such a way as to call forth
-tolerant judgment, pity, and sympathy. And I can not step aside from
-what I _feel_ to be _true_ in character.” And again: “I should like to
-touch every heart among my readers with nothing but loving humor, with
-tenderness, with belief in goodness.” The story of her great success
-is familiar—her books are well known. In rapid succession she sent out
-“Scenes of Clerical Life,” “Adam Bede,” “The Mill on the Floss,” “Silas
-Marner,” “Romola,” “Felix Holt,” “The Spanish Gypsy,” “Middlemarch,”
-“Daniel Deronda,” and “Theophrastus Such.” Her convictions about how
-she should work were intense. She wrote and _lived_ her story, and once
-when urged to re-write a tale, replied that she could no more re-write
-a book than she could live over a year in her own life. Her novels are
-the embodiment of what she had felt, written that they might strengthen
-others. The conscientiousness with which she labored made her work
-sometimes most painful to her. Despondency lest she should fail, fear
-lest she had misinterpreted a character, depression lest this chapter
-should fall below a preceding in merit, tortured her in succession, but
-she worked because she believed she had found her place, and to do her
-best for mankind was her religion. The slow-growing nature struggling
-with eager desire for human love, and with a mastering ambition,
-not often reaches so ripe a stage as did hers. The rigid system of
-self-culture which she pursued through her life was the outgrowth of her
-ambition and of her intense interest in things, an interest which we have
-noticed as being one of the leading elements in her happiness. Reading,
-study, conversation, observation, writing, travel, were in turns employed
-in her course of self-discipline. She read incessantly, and _thoroughly_.
-Notice this list of books, the work of one month, and that when she was
-nearly fifty years of age: First book of “Lucretius;” sixth book of
-the “Iliad;” “Samson Agonistes;” Warton’s “History of English Poetry;”
-“Grote,” second volume; “Marcus Aurelius;” “Vita Nuova,” vol. iv; chapter
-one of the “Politique Positive;” Guest on “English Rhythms;” Maunce’s
-“Lectures on Casuistry.” Few months fell below this in reading, and this,
-too, while she was writing, seeing people, conversing, and suffering, for
-she had the misfortune to know, as she says, that “one thing is needful:
-a good digestion.”
-
-As a life of earnest purpose, of continued struggle for a high living, of
-deepest desire to make the most of everything, and for everybody, there
-is none more marked than that of George Eliot. Non-conformity to the
-religion and the law in which we believe, must sadden her life for all,
-but an honest student of her character must, after reading this “Life,”
-accord to her what she herself never failed to give to the erring—charity.
-
-
-FOOTNOTES
-
-[B] George Eliot’s Life, as related in her Letters and Journals. Arranged
-and edited by her husband, J. W. Cross. In three volumes. New York:
-Harper & Brothers.
-
-
-
-
-ARBOR DAY.
-
-BY THE HON. B. G. NORTHROP, LL.D.
-
-
-Recent spring floods and the diminished flow of rivers in summer have
-called public attention to the cause and the remedy as never before. At
-the opening of the last session of Congress, its attention was called
-to the subject of Forestry, for the first time in any presidential
-message. Bills for the protection and extension of forests are now
-before Congress, and before many state legislatures. The last census
-presents striking facts which prove this to be a question of both state
-and national importance. The recent action of the national government
-shows a new appreciation of forestry. The marvel now is, that the general
-government did not earlier seek to protect its magnificent forests, once
-the best and most extensive in the world. Their importance to the nation
-was little understood. Even after a century of reckless waste, the United
-States government still owns 85,000,000 acres of timber—a mere fraction
-of what has been cut, or burned, without a thought of reproduction.
-The Forestry Division of the United States Department of Agriculture,
-though organized but six years ago, has already spread much valuable
-information before the country by its reports and by those of its special
-agents, commissioned to investigate the forests of the country and the
-means of their protection and extension. Ex-Governor R. W. Furnas, of
-Nebraska, for example, investigated the forests of California, Oregon,
-Washington Territory, and the western slope of the Rocky Mountains. His
-official reports on the stealing and reckless destruction of those timber
-lands, and also in regard to the new and extensive timber growing on the
-treeless plains of Nebraska, were of great public interest. The reports
-of Dr. F. B. Hough of New York, and F. B. Baker, of Kansas—also agents of
-the United States Forestry Division—have been extensively circulated and
-still more widely summarized in the press.
-
-The National Forestry Congress is another index of the growth of popular
-interest on this subject. A large volume of the proceedings of that
-association at its meeting in Montreal was officially published by
-the Dominion of Canada. The best papers given at its three subsequent
-meetings have been published by the United States Department of
-Agriculture. The subject has been ably discussed in State Agricultural
-Reports, and many state and local associations have been formed to
-further this interest. The passage of the Timber Culture Act has greatly
-increased the area of planted woodland.
-
-But of all these agencies no one has awakened so general an interest in
-agriculture as the appointment of Arbor Day, by governors of states, by
-legislatures, and by state, county and town superintendents of schools.
-The plan of Arbor Day is simple and inexpensive, and hence the more
-readily adopted and widely effective. In some states the work has been
-well done without any legislation. The best results, however, are secured
-when an act is passed requesting the Governor, each spring, to recommend
-the observance of Arbor Day, by a special message. The chief magistrate
-of the state thus most effectually calls the attention of all the people
-to its importance, and secures general and concerted action. _How_
-forests conserve the water supplies and lessen floods is aside from the
-topic of this paper. While the fact of the increase of spring freshets
-is everywhere admitted, and scientists agree as to the cause, the
-popular disbelief of the true theory is the great hindrance to remedial
-action. The bills for the protection of the Adirondack forests, in the
-legislature of New York, in 1884, failed by reason of the opposition of
-the lumbermen, and the common doubt and denial of the benefits of forests
-in the conservation of the rainfall. I often met the same skepticism in
-the Ohio valley, even among the sufferers from the flood disasters. They
-were attributed to the extensive use of tile drains. But both in 1883
-and 1884, these floods occurred when the ground was frozen deep, and the
-drains were therefore inoperative.
-
-That so simple a cause as forest denudation should produce such
-disastrous results seems at first incredible. It is only when the vast
-areas contributing to a single river are considered, that the proof of
-the forest theory seems clear. Take the Ohio River, for illustration. The
-area drained by it is 214,000 square miles, or twenty-two times as much
-as that which in Vermont, New Hampshire, Massachusetts and Connecticut
-is drained by the Connecticut River; an area which includes portions of
-New York, Pennsylvania, Ohio, Indiana, Illinois, West Virginia, Virginia,
-North Carolina, Georgia, Alabama, Mississippi, Tennessee, and Kentucky.
-The length of the Ohio is about 1,000 miles, and that of its ten leading
-tributaries nearly 4,000, and that of the many minor affluents as much
-more. The smallest influences working over such immense regions, and
-ultimately combining in one stream, may enormously swell its volume.
-As the destruction of forests has been going on for centuries, the
-remedy must be the work of time, for it must include slow processes
-and agencies, each _separately_ minute, which become important when
-multiplied by myriads and extended over broad areas. Arbor Day has proved
-such an agency.
-
-A brief history of Arbor Day will show its aims. The surprising results
-already accomplished promise a still broader influence in the near
-future. The plan originated with ex-Governor J. Sterling Morton, the
-pioneer tree-planter of Nebraska. He secured the coöperation of the State
-Board of Agriculture, some thirteen years ago, when the Governor was
-induced to appoint the second Wednesday in April as a day to be devoted
-to economic tree-planting. By pen and tongue, as editor and lecturer,
-with arguments from theory and facts from his own practice, Mr. Morton
-succeeded in awakening popular enthusiasm in this work, in which he was
-ably seconded by Ex-Governor Furnas, of Nebraska, who has long served as
-Forest Commissioner for the United States Department of Agriculture.
-
-In Nebraska a remarkable interest was awakened in the observance of
-her first Arbor Day, and over 12,000,000 trees were planted on that
-day. That enthusiasm was not a temporary effervescence. Each successive
-Governor has annually appointed such a day by an official proclamation,
-and the interest has been sustained and even increased from year to
-year. The State Board of Agriculture annually awards liberal prizes to
-encourage tree-planting. Hence Nebraska is the banner state of America
-in this work, having, according to official reports, as I am informed
-by ex-Governor Furnas, 244,353 acres of cultivated woodland, or more
-than twice that of any other state. The originator of Arbor Day is now
-recognized as a public benefactor, and hence, during the last campaign,
-as a candidate for Governor, ran some three thousand ahead of his party
-ticket. Though at first aiming at economic tree-planting, Nebraska now
-observes Arbor Day in schools. The example of Nebraska was soon followed
-by Kansas, which had over 120,000 acres of planted woodland. The Governor
-of that state issues an annual proclamation for Arbor Day, and it is
-observed by teachers and scholars and parents, in adorning both school
-and home grounds.
-
-Four years ago the legislature of Michigan requested the Governor
-to appoint an Arbor Day. Such an appointment has been repeated each
-succeeding April. For the last three years a similar day has been
-appointed by the Governor of Ohio. Many schools, especially those of
-Cincinnati and Columbus, fitly kept the designated day. No man in this
-country has had a better opportunity of observing the influence of Arbor
-Day in schools than Superintendent Peaslee, who, after a trial of three
-years, says: “The observance of Arbor Day is the most impressive means
-of interesting the young in this subject. Should this celebration become
-general, such a public sentiment would lead to the beautifying by trees
-of every city, town, and village, as well as the public highways, church,
-and school grounds, and the homes of the people. If but the youth of Ohio
-could be led to plant their two trees each, how, by the children alone,
-would the state be enriched and beautified within the next fifty years.
-By our Arbor Day observance the importance of forestry was impressed
-upon the minds of thousands of children who then learned to care for and
-protect trees. Not one of those 20,000 children in Eden Park on Arbor Day
-injured a single tree.”
-
-West Virginia furnishes another illustration of the influence of
-observing Arbor Day in schools. In the face of many difficulties, State
-School Superintendent Butcher appointed an Arbor Day in schools in April,
-1883. Without waiting for any legislative or gubernatorial sanction,
-solely on his own responsibility, he invited the school officers,
-teachers, parents, and pupils on the designated day to plant trees on
-the grounds of their schools and homes. He made the April number of
-his _School Journal_ an “Arbor” number, and circulated it gratuitously
-over the State. The results exceeded his expectations. It started good
-influences on _minds_ as well as grounds. This great success prompted
-a similar observance last April, for which greater preparations were
-made, with still better results. When called to advocate this measure In
-various parts of West Virginia last spring, I found the people and the
-press most responsive in encouraging this practical movement. On the day
-after the celebration, the papers of Wheeling, for example, commended
-the work in such terms as the following: “Arbor Day was gloriously
-celebrated yesterday, and was a splendid success. All—the oldest and the
-youngest—evinced the liveliest interest. Arbor Day will be one of the
-institutions of our schools.”
-
-At the annual meeting of the State Teachers’ Association of Indiana,
-held in December, 1883, a kindred plan was recommended and unanimously
-adopted, and an efficient committee appointed to carry it out. The State
-Board of Horticulture heartily endorsed the measure. After a statement
-of the plan, the State Board of Agriculture invited me to prepare a
-resolution in its favor, which they promptly adopted. Governor Porter
-received my suggestions with special interest, and said the measure
-should have his cordial support. He soon after gave it his official
-sanction, and issued a proclamation to the teachers and people of the
-state, in which he predicted that the appointed day would be a memorable
-one, and “the beginning of a movement for a much more extended system
-of tree-culture, and the restoration of the varieties of trees, useful
-and beautiful, which have been so recklessly sacrificed that nature
-cries aloud for redress,” closing by calling on “the teachers to do all
-in their power to make Arbor Day a day of the most ardent and inspiring
-interest.” State School Superintendent Holcombe gave his personal and
-official influence heartily to this work. The lectures given by his
-invitation on this subject were fully reported by the press, for the
-newspapers of Indiana cordially coöperated in this movement. These
-combined influences secured the general observance of the appointed day,
-and the results were most gratifying. Such combined agencies in nearly
-every state of the Union would promise similar results.
-
-At the last annual Convention of the State Teachers’ Association of
-Wisconsin, the presentation of Arbor Day in schools led to the adoption
-of a resolution in favor of such an observance, and to the appointment
-of an efficient committee to carry out the plan. At the National
-Educational Association held in Madison, Wisconsin, with an attendance of
-over five thousand, a resolution recommending the observance of Arbor Day
-in schools in all our states was unanimously adopted. Such a day has been
-observed with great interest in some of the provinces of Canada.
-
-The American Forestry Congress, which includes the leading arborists of
-Canada and the United States, adopted, at my suggestion, the following
-resolution: “In view of the wide-spread results of the observance of
-Arbor Day in many states, this Congress recommends the appointment of
-such a day in all our states and in the provinces of the dominion of
-Canada,” and appointed a committee, consisting of the Chief of the
-Forestry Division of the United States Department of Agriculture, the
-State Superintendent of Schools of West Virginia, and myself to secure
-the general adoption of this plan, and especially Arbor Day in schools.
-As chairman of that committee, I have already presented this subject to
-the Governors of many states, and the proposition has met a favorable
-response.
-
-It may be objected to Arbor Day, or to any lessons on forestry in
-schools, that the course of study is already overcrowded, and this fact
-I admit. But the requisite talks on trees, their value and beauty, need
-occupy but two or three hours. In some large cities there may be little
-or no room for tree-planting, and no call for even a half-holiday for
-this work, but even there such talks, or the memorizing of suitable
-selections, on the designated day, would be impressive and useful. The
-essential thing is to _start_ habits of observation and occupation with
-trees, which will prompt pupils in their walks, or when at work, or at
-play, to study them. The talks on this subject, which Superintendent
-Peaslee says were the most interesting and profitable lessons the pupils
-of Cincinnati ever had in a single day, occupied only the morning of
-Arbor Day, the afternoon being given to the practical work. Such talks
-will lead our youth to admire trees, and realize that they are the
-grandest products of nature, and form the finest drapery that adorns this
-earth in all lands. Thus taught, they will wish to plant and protect
-trees, and find in their own happy experience that there is a peculiar
-pleasure in their parentage, whether forest, fruit, or ornamental—a
-pleasure which never cloys, but grows with their growth. Like grateful
-children, trees bring rich filial returns, and compensate a thousand fold
-for all the care they cost. This love of trees, early implanted in the
-school, and fostered in the home, will make our youth practical arborists.
-
-They should learn that trees have been the admiration of the greatest
-and best men of all ages. The ancients understood well the beauty as
-well as the economic and hygienic value of trees. The Hebrew almost
-venerated the palm. It was the chosen symbol of Judea on their coins,
-and was graven on the doors of the Temple as the sacred sign of justice.
-The Cedar of Lebanon was justly the pride of the Jews, and became to
-them the emblem of strength and beauty. The Egyptians, Greeks, and
-Romans were proficients in tree-planting. Hence Thebes, Memphis, Athens,
-Carthage, Rome, Pompeii and Herculaneum, as their ruins still show,
-had their shaded streets or parks. Two thousand years ago, the richest
-Romans maintained a rural home, as does the wealthy Londoner, Viennese,
-or Berliner to-day, and their ancient villas were lavishly adorned. The
-Paradise of the Persians was filled with trees and roses. This taste for
-beautiful gardens was transplanted from Persia to Greece, and the Greek
-philosophers held their schools in beautiful gardens, or groves. The
-devastations of parks, the destruction of shade trees, the neglect of
-public streets and private grounds, the decay of rural tastes, and the
-utter slight of home adornments, were clearer proofs of the great relapse
-to barbarism than the vandalism which destroyed the proud monuments of
-classic art and literature.
-
-Arbor Day has already initiated a movement of vast importance in eight
-states. In tree-planting, the beginning only is difficult. The obstacles
-are all met at the outset, because they are usually magnified by the
-popular ignorance of this subject. It is the first step that costs—at
-least, it costs effort to set this thing on foot, but that step once
-taken, others are sure to follow. This very fact that the main tug is at
-the start, on account of the inertia of ignorance and indifference, shows
-that such start should be made easy, as is best done by an Arbor Day
-proclamation of the Governor, which is sure to interest and enlist the
-youth of an entire state in the good work. When the school children are
-invited each to plant at least “two trees” on the home or school grounds,
-the aggregate number planted will be more than twice that of the children
-enlisted, for parents and the public will participate in the work.
-
-Tree-planting is fitted to give a needful lesson of forethought to
-the juvenile mind. Living only in the present and for the present,
-youth are apt to sow only where they can quickly reap. A meager crop
-soon in hand, outweighs a golden harvest long in maturing. They should
-learn to forecast the future as the condition of wisdom. Arboriculture
-is a discipline in foresight—it is always planting for the future.
-There is nothing more ennobling for youth, than the consciousness of
-doing something for future generations, something which shall prove a
-_growing_ benefaction in coming years. Tree-planting is an easy way of
-perpetuating one’s memory long after he has passed away. The poorest can
-in this way provide himself with a monument grander than the loftiest
-shaft of chiseled stone which may suggest duty to the living, while it
-commemorates the dead. Such associations grow in interest from year to
-year and from generation to generation. By stimulating a general interest
-in tree-planting among our youth, Arbor Day will yield a rich harvest
-to future generations. George Peabody originated the motto, so happily
-illustrated by his munificent gifts to promote education: “Education—the
-debt of the present to future generations.” We owe it to our children
-to leave our lands the better for our tillage and tree-planting, and
-we wrong ourselves and them, if our fields are impoverished by our
-improvidence.
-
-Arbor Day in school has led youth to adorn the surroundings of their
-homes, as well as of the schools, and to extensive planting by the
-wayside. How attractive our roads may become by long avenues of trees!
-This is beautifully illustrated in many countries of Europe. In France,
-for example, the government keeps a statistical record of the trees along
-the roads. The total length of public roads in France is 18,750 miles, of
-which 7,250 are bordered with trees, while 4,500 are now being, or are
-soon to be, planted. Growing on lands otherwise running to waste, such
-trees are grateful to the traveler, but doubly so to the planter.
-
-The influence of Arbor Day in schools in awakening a just appreciation
-of trees, first among pupils and parents, and then the people at large,
-is of vast importance in another respect. The frequency of forest fires
-is the greatest hindrance to practical forestry. But let the _sentiment_
-of trees be duly cultivated, first among our youth, and then among the
-people, and they will be regarded as our friends, as is the case in
-Germany. The public need to learn that the interests of all classes are
-concerned in the conservation of forests. Through the teaching of their
-schools this result was long since accomplished in Germany, Switzerland,
-Sweden, and other European countries. The people everywhere realize the
-need of protecting trees. An enlightened public sentiment has proved
-a better guardian of their forests than the national police. A person
-wantonly setting fire to a forest would there be looked upon as an
-outlaw, like the miscreant who should poison a public drinking fountain.
-
-
-
-
-HOW TO WORK ALONE.
-
-BY CHANCELLOR J. H. VINCENT, D.D.
-
-
-Not all members of the “C. L. S. C.” can enjoy the benefits of a local
-circle. Some live in the country, or in remote parts of the city. They
-can not get out at night, through lack of company, or because the house,
-the boys, or the baby must not be left alone; the local circle is not
-under wise direction, and is unprofitable; or it may be that the only
-accessible local circle is a close corporation, and is “inaccessible.”
-Father or husband objects to the time wasted, or the long walk, or
-something else. So the student is solitary. Whatever is done must be done
-alone.
-
-This is not an unmixed evil, because it may develop power in the student,
-or drive him or her to find associates at home, associates who are not
-enrolled in Plainfield as “regulars,” and some of whom are quite too
-young to be enrolled at all. No deprivation in this world that does not
-make a place for some other unsought, unexpected blessing.
-
-I purpose to offer a few hints to these solitary readers, who may, I
-trust, find much profit out of the restrictions of providence, and do
-their work well even though it be done alone. On the blank pages of
-your necessity you may make records of your own, worth more to you than
-volumes of other people’s print.
-
-1. Although alone, remember that you are associated with a great Circle
-numbering thousands and tens of thousands of members. You are not alone,
-but one of many. This thought helps you. It sets currents of sympathy in
-motion. It annihilates distance. It fills the very air about you with
-companions with whom you are in sweet fellowship, although you have
-never seen them. They are a great cloud of witnesses. They march under
-the same banner; put their names on the same great record book in the
-central office; read the same pages; sing the same songs; answer the same
-questions; recite the same mottoes; observe the same memorial days; and
-turn with tender hearts to the same heavens, under the mystic spell of
-the vesper hour; experience the same longings after true culture, and
-have hearts full of sympathy for their fellow-students everywhere. This
-thought of oneness in work gives feelings of kinship and companionship.
-The solitary student in the little room—kitchen, sitting room, library,
-or bed chamber—is surrounded by thousands of fellow-students. They seem
-to look over the page with you. They seem to whisper words of good will
-and faith, and some of them, I assure you, are royal people. They would
-give you such greeting, if they had opportunity, as would make you proud
-and glad of your connection with the Circle. Indeed, solitariness is
-impossible to the thoughtful member of the C. L. S. C.
-
-2. This sense of fellowship is increased, and a helpful stimulus given
-to the solitary worker, by reflecting on the character of the great
-fraternity of which you are a part. We now enroll more than seventy
-thousand members. Perhaps twenty-five thousand have practically given
-up the readings. Only fifty thousand remain with us. Many thousands
-of readers are connected with local circles who have never joined as
-“regulars” at the central office in Plainfield, N. J. There are thousands
-who are reading a part of the course, but who neither belong to the local
-nor general circle. I believe that these non-recorded and irregular
-readers make up for the lapsed thousands, so that to-day we have nearly
-or quite seventy thousand people doing all or a part of the required
-reading. This, therefore, becomes a great institution. Its territorial
-extent is as vast as its numerical strength. There are “C. L. S. C.s”
-in all parts of the world. Our office records contain names from India,
-China, Japan, the Sandwich Islands, and many other outlying regions,
-while the list in Canada and on the Pacific coast runs up among the
-thousands. In every state and territory members are to be found.
-
-And who are these with whom you, my solitary student, are associated?
-They represent every calling in life, and almost every grade, social and
-intellectual. Here are lawyers, judges, physicians, clergymen, doctors of
-divinity, college graduates, literally by the thousand, who seek through
-our course to review the studies of other and earlier years. Here are
-seminary and high school graduates, and people old and young who dropped
-out of the grammar school when they were too young to understand their
-folly in doing so. Here are business men, mechanics and farmers who
-have been prospered, and who covet now a measure of culture to fit them
-for society, that their money may gain for them and their families more
-than a mere social recognition. Here are mothers good and true, who do
-not want to part hands with sons and daughters as they enter the higher
-schools, but who propose by our course of reading to keep in the literary
-and scientific world where their children are to be at home. Here are
-people of “low degree,” who toil for bread, with lengthened hours of
-service, that they may help those who are dependent upon them. They are
-in shops and kitchens, and have souls that would put honor into palaces.
-They want outlook as they go weighted down through busy and weary years.
-They do not expect always to be slaves to society and circumstance. There
-is blood-royal in every heart-beat, and power to hold princedoms in some
-near future. So, despised of men who live, they hold converse through
-books with gifted and kingly souls who, though dead, yet live, and who
-work in other kingly souls. There are many of these disguised princes and
-princesses in your Circle.
-
-Here too are sufferers in homes of bereavement and pain, where arms are
-empty and hearts are full, where love calls but receives no answer, where
-disease binds the body but leaves the mind free to grieve over its loss;
-where lack of work gives place to temptation, and renders occupation of
-some sort a moral and religious necessity; where worldliness, that makes
-the soul barren, needs thoughtfulness to moisten, beautify and fructify
-the life.
-
-In such great and gracious companionship you sit down for solitary study.
-Dismiss the thought, therefore, that this is solitude. Reach out your
-soul to greet the currents of invisible and loving influence that pour in
-upon you from every quarter.
-
-3. Select and furnish your Chautauqua corner. Do not be too anxious
-to have it harmonize with other corners of the room. Put shelves for
-your books “required” and for “review.” On the lowest shelf pile THE
-CHAUTAUQUANS. On the wall put up the motto cards, the list of memorial
-days, the Chautauqua calendar, the photograph or engraving of the Hall
-of Philosophy, and such other Chautauqua views as you approve. Put up
-busts or engravings of the great leaders—Homer, Cicero, Dante, Milton,
-Goethe. Somewhere place a picture of Bryant, the earliest distinguished
-friend of the C. L. S. C. By gradual additions fill the Chautauqua corner
-with pictures and bookshelves, busts and mottoes, all in the line of
-your reading, until the other corners and the intervening walls shall be
-filled with reminders of Chautauqua and the world of literature, science
-and art it represents. And if somehow you can place on the wall that
-matchless engraving representing the great Master with his two disciples
-on the way to Emmaus, you will, in a sense, sanctify your room, and set
-forth most effectively, the aim, scope and spirit of the great Chautauqua
-movement. In such a room, or in such a corner, can students be solitary?
-
-4. You will greatly increase your power by systematic habits. One may
-“read up” at any time, but the regular daily reading which renders
-unnecessary what is called “reading up,” is much the better way. It
-renders the work comparatively light; it makes the C. L. S. C. a help
-to other less congenial work of the day into which it falls like a
-refreshing shower. It forces life into a system which always expedites
-and lightens labor. It schools the will. It brings lower duties into
-proper subjection to the higher. It is every way better to do each day’s
-work as each day comes. Thus working alone, but systematically, one keeps
-the hand in and does not lose grasp, taste or delight.
-
-5. Though compelled to work alone, make casual contacts with others
-afford opportunities for drawing them out, for finding out what they
-know, or for corroborating your own views. Ask questions. Elicit
-opinions. Start conversation. Try to tell what you know or think. Tell
-your children. Tell your neighbors. As you interest them, you set them in
-search of knowledge, which finding, they will later on report to you, and
-you thus give them a start in lines of self-improvement.
-
-6. This setting others at work in quest of knowledge for you is a most
-practicable way of getting knowledge and doing good to the finders
-thereof.
-
-Write out ten different questions, and give one to each of ten young boys
-and girls of a high school, for example. They will ransack libraries,
-consult teachers, find out and report what you want to know, and be
-immensely helped by the knowledge found and the service rendered. Though
-alone, you need not work alone.
-
-7. Practice talking to yourself about the things you have read. Put facts
-and dates into sentences. Now and then write out these sentences, or
-speak them off. Recite a lesson to yourself every day. Make a speech with
-yourself as audience. Put facts into recitative lullabies, by which you
-sing baby to sleep. Don’t do too much of all this, lest it weary you,
-but do a little of this sentence-framing and solitary speech-making, and
-nursery-crooning every day. You will then have a local circle of you,
-and yourself and your own soul. Now one’s self makes very good society
-sometimes; there are so many powers and voices and thoughts and projects
-in a single soul.
-
-8. Lift your soul up to its height, now and then, and breathe a thought
-of the heart that may grow into a prayer as you recall the great Circle
-of which you are a member. Think in silence of their multiplied and
-varied circumstances, perils, temptations and necessities. Think of the
-disheartened, the bereaved, the suffering, the doubting; those who have
-great power, but do not know how to use it; those who are sick of sin and
-worldliness, and do not know how to get into the path of holiness and
-peace. Think of all these, and then pray. Let your heart swell toward God
-in sympathy and longing.
-
-Thus will you find in your solitude the presence of the Spirit invisible
-and eternal, whose name is love, and whose home is heaven, and whose
-children are the lowly and meek and devout, who love souls—the world full
-of souls—and who daily bear them in tender sympathy to the throne.
-
-They who do these things can not be alone.
-
- * * * * *
-
-If it were not for my love of beautiful nature and poetry, my heart would
-have died within me long ago. I never felt before what immeasurable
-benefactors these same poets are to their kind, and how large a measure,
-both of actual happiness and prevention of misery they have imparted to
-the race. I would willingly give up half my fortune, and some little of
-the fragments of health and bodily enjoyment that remain to me, rather
-than that Shakspere should not have lived before me.—_Lord Jeffrey (from
-a letter to Lord Cockburn, 1833)._
-
-
-
-
-OUTLINE AND PROGRAMS.
-
-
-OUTLINE OF REQUIRED READINGS FOR APRIL.
-
-_First Week_ (ending April 8).—1. “Chemistry,” chapters XVIII, XIX and XX.
-
-2. “History of the Reformation,” from page 1 to 27.
-
-3. “The Circle of the Sciences,” in THE CHAUTAUQUAN.
-
-4. Sunday Readings for April 5, in THE CHAUTAUQUAN.
-
- * * * * *
-
-_Second Week_ (ending April 15).—1. “Chemistry,” chapters XXI and XXII.
-
-2. “History of the Reformation,” from page 27 to 55.
-
-3. “Home Studies in Chemistry and Physics,” in THE CHAUTAUQUAN.
-
-4. Sunday Readings for April 12, in THE CHAUTAUQUAN.
-
- * * * * *
-
-_Third Week_ (ending April 22).—1. “Chemistry,” chapter XXIII.
-
-2. “History of the Reformation,” from page 55 to 88.
-
-3. “Easy Lessons in Animal Biology,” in THE CHAUTAUQUAN.
-
-4. Readings in _Our Alma Mater_.
-
-5. Sunday Readings for April 19, in THE CHAUTAUQUAN.
-
- * * * * *
-
-_Fourth Week_ (ending April 30).—1. “Chemistry,” chapters XXIV, XXV and
-XXVI.
-
-2. “History of the Reformation,” from page 88 to 117.
-
-3. “Aristotle,” in THE CHAUTAUQUAN.
-
-4. Readings in _Our Alma Mater_.
-
-5. Sunday Readings for April 26, in THE CHAUTAUQUAN.
-
-
-
-
-PROGRAMS FOR LOCAL CIRCLE WORK.
-
-
-FIRST WEEK IN APRIL.
-
-1. Essay—Easter.
-
-2. Selection—“All Fool’s Day.” By Addison.
-
-3. A Paper on the Life of Martin Luther.
-
-Music.
-
-4. Fifteen Minutes’ Talk on the Cause of the Present Troubles in the
-Soudan.
-
-5. Character Sketch—General Gordon.
-
-6. Debate—Resolved, that dynamite is more productive of evil than good.
-
-
-SECOND WEEK IN APRIL.
-
-1. Selection—“Martin Luther.” From Robertson’s “History of Charles V.”
-Found also in Chambers’s “Cyclopedia of English Literature.”
-
-2. A Paper on the Inquisition.
-
-3. Recitation—“The Prisoner of Chillon.”—By Byron.
-
-4. Character Sketch—John Knox.
-
-Music.
-
-5. Essay—The Vegetation of the Carboniferous Period.
-
-6. A General Talk on Socialism.
-
-7. Critic’s Report.
-
-
-THIRD WEEK IN APRIL.
-
-1. Essay—The Massacre of St. Bartholomew.
-
-2. Recitation—“Robinson of Leydon.”—By O. W. Holmes.
-
-3. Character Sketch.—William of Orange.
-
-Music.
-
-4. A Paper on Mount Cenis.
-
-5. Selection—“The Chambered Nautilus.” By O. W. Holmes.
-
-6. Conversation on New Books.
-
-7. Questions and Answers for the month in THE CHAUTAUQUAN.
-
-
-SHAKSPERE DAY.
-
-Music.
-
-1. Roll call—Quotations from Shakspere.
-
-2. A Paper on the Life and Times of Shakspere.
-
-Music.
-
-3. The Story of “The Tempest.”
-
-4. Recitation—“Perseverance.” Selected from “Troilus and Cressida,” Act
-III., scene 3; beginning, “Time hath, my lord, a wallet,” etc.; ending,
-“One touch of Nature makes the whole world kin.”
-
-5. Essay—Characteristics of Shakspere’s Women.
-
-Music.
-
-6. Analysis of “Winter’s Tale.”
-
-7. Court scene in “Merchant of Venice,” Act IV., scene 1; beginning, “Is
-your name Shylock?” ending with the exit of Shylock.
-
-The plan followed by many Shakspere clubs would afford a fine
-entertainment. They assign the characters in any one of the plays (that
-of “Julius Cæsar” being exceptionally fitting for an evening of this
-kind) to the different members of the circle, who read the parts assigned.
-
-To hold a Shakspere carnival would be a very interesting way in which to
-commemorate the day. Let each one come dressed in costume to represent
-any one of Shakspere’s characters and personate that character throughout
-the evening.
-
-
-
-
-LOCAL CIRCLES.
-
-
-C. L. S. C. MOTTOES.
-
-“_We Study the Word and the Works of God._”—“_Let us keep our Heavenly
-Father in the Midst._”—“_Never be Discouraged._”
-
-
-C. L. S. C. MEMORIAL DAYS.
-
-1. OPENING DAY—October 1.
-
-2. BRYANT DAY—November 3.
-
-3. SPECIAL SUNDAY—November, second Sunday.
-
-4. MILTON DAY—December 9.
-
-5. COLLEGE DAY—January, last Thursday.
-
-6. SPECIAL SUNDAY—February, second Sunday.
-
-7. FOUNDER’S DAY—February 23.
-
-8. LONGFELLOW DAY—February 27.
-
-9. SHAKSPERE DAY—April 23.
-
-10. ADDISON DAY—May 1.
-
-11. SPECIAL SUNDAY—May, second Sunday.
-
-12. SPECIAL SUNDAY—July, second Sunday.
-
-13. INAUGURATION DAY—August, first Saturday after first Tuesday;
-anniversary of C. L. S. C. at Chautauqua.
-
-14. ST. PAUL’S DAY—August, second Saturday after first Tuesday;
-anniversary of the dedication of St. Paul’s Grove at Chautauqua.
-
-15. COMMENCEMENT DAY—August, third Tuesday.
-
-16. GARFIELD DAY—September 19.
-
- * * * * *
-
-The difficulty of holding a circle together is sometimes very great. Not
-a little thorough study of the needs and natures of the members must tax
-the leader who would hold a circle which has no interest in its work.
-At RICHMOND, MAINE, our friends have experienced this difficulty. A
-circle of fifteen was formed in January, 1884, but did not continue its
-meetings. The lukewarmness of a few broke the interest of all; but ten
-of the members did their reading apart. These ten took matters into their
-own hands last fall, and now Richmond has a “Merry Meeting” circle, of
-twenty-two members, interested and promising.
-
-NASHUA, NEW HAMPSHIRE, has a Chautauqua circle. It has been in existence
-for two years past, with varying fortunes. Last fall, when reorganized
-for the season, it consisted of ten ladies, but now numbers fourteen.
-Though this number is less than one half that of the last year, the
-interest and enthusiasm are much greater. The weekly meetings are
-occasions of great interest and instruction. They follow, with frequent
-modifications, the program arranged in THE CHAUTAUQUAN, making the roll
-call and question box regular features. The only difficulty with which
-they meet is that they are all so busy that they can scarcely prepare for
-each program. They also derive much pleasure and profit in observing the
-memorial days. The circle is called the “Raymond” circle, in honor of the
-Rev. B. P. Raymond, president of Lawrence University, Appleton, Wis.,
-founder of this branch.
-
-The “Athenian Chautauqua Literary and Scientific Circle” of WEST
-ENOSBURGH, VT., has entered upon its first year in the Chautauqua
-course. Although in its infancy, it shows a great deal of interest and
-enthusiasm. The circle was organized September 29, 1884. The officers
-are president, vice president and secretary. The circle began with eight
-members and has increased to thirteen. One of the most interesting
-exercises of this circle is the pronouncing match, each person being
-allowed to try once; if he misses he sits down. The words for the next
-match are the names of the sixty-six elements in chemistry.
-
-Our travels through MASSACHUSETTS this month furnish much interesting
-circle news. The “Star” circle, in FOXBORO, reorganized in October
-with twenty-eight members, which includes all the graduates with one
-exception. They believe there in once a C. L. S. C. always a C. L. S.
-C. The weekly meetings are reported in the local paper, and more are
-inquiring about the work than in previous years. One reason may be
-that they are but eighteen miles from the “Hall on the Hill,” which
-is in process of erection in South Framingham.——The “Henry M. King”
-circle, connected with the Dudley Street church, BOSTON, was organized
-in November, and has twenty-five members. Of these the larger part are
-gentlemen, not of leisure, but business men, who bring with them into the
-bi-weekly meetings the same energy and perseverance that characterize a
-successful business enterprise. These are certainly the ones who might
-with a good show of reason say: “No time.” But on the contrary they
-_have_ time, not only for the regular work, but for the preparation of
-papers requiring much time and research.——At NORTH ATTLEBORO the new
-“Bryant” circle is four months old, and numbers twenty-six members. They
-open the meetings with reading Scripture lessons and singing Chautauqua
-songs. Roll call is responded to by quotations from a standard author,
-followed by essays, recitations, blackboard exercises, questions,
-discussions, etc., as the committee of instruction has arranged. The
-secretary writes: “If we are not great, our hopes are.”——“Profit as well
-as enjoyment we are getting from our studies,” says a member of the
-circle at NORTH WEYMOUTH. This organization is a circle of ’83, and has
-had time to thoroughly test the course. They have had recently a pleasant
-memorial service, and have been favored with chemical experiments
-by a chemist.——Pleasant notes of the work at WEST MADFORD have been
-sent us by the secretary: “Through the influence of one sturdy little
-lady, six or eight people met together last October and talked up the
-feasibility of the C. L. S. C. They elected a president and secretary,
-drew up a few by-laws, and are now in good running order. They meet
-once in two weeks. Their membership was limited to twenty, which was
-quickly reached. The opinion of these members seems to be that this
-circle is as good, if not better, than any reported in your magazine.
-We all work with a will, cull the best from the programs given for the
-local circles, and add original ideas. Each member, in the order of his
-enrollment, makes out the program. This gives each one an opportunity
-to do his share, as well as to add his own ideas. We think this feature
-much superior to the general mode of allowing the ‘chair’ to prepare all
-programs.”——AMESBURY has a circle of unusual strength. We have been so
-fortunate as to receive a letter which gives an account of a delightful
-entertainment held by them in December. Our friend says: “Thinking
-perhaps you might like to hear from us once again, we are glad to write
-you of our pleasant and prosperous winter of literary work, brought about
-by the grand C. L. S. C. movement. Our meetings are held on the second
-and fourth Tuesday of each month, the programs comprise essays, music,
-readings and conversation, and are social and very delightful, showing
-a marked improvement on our ‘feeble beginning’ a year ago. Two new
-circles have been formed this winter, one, the ‘Delphic,’ having forty or
-more members. On the 18th of December we held our first public meeting
-in honor of ‘Our Poet’s’ (Mr. John G. Whittier) birthday, to which we
-invited the ‘Delphic’ circle, also the ‘Thursday Evening Club,’ an older
-literary society of Amesbury, and other friends, about three hundred in
-all. Members from the three circles took part in the program, which had
-been carefully prepared. We were greatly pleased to receive from Mr. W.
-C. Wilkinson a paper entitled ‘Whittier at the Receipt of Customs,’ which
-was read to us by his friend, the Rev. P. S. Evans, of Amesbury. As Mr.
-Whittier, owing to a previous engagement, could not be present with us,
-resolutions were drawn up and sent to him, as follows:
-
- “‘DEAR MR. WHITTIER;—The three literary circles, together with
- a goodly company of the citizens of Amesbury as their invited
- guests, are met to celebrate the return of your birthday. We
- have talked together of all that you have done and suffered in
- the cause of freedom and of truth. We have listened to many of
- your words, rendered by living voices. We have looked at your
- ‘counterfeit presentment’ as it has hung before us covered with
- evergreen—our New England laurel. Because you were not with
- us in person, to receive them, we desire to send you our most
- hearty congratulations on the completion of your seventy-seventh
- year. We rejoice that after your “Thirty Years’ War” you have
- been spared to enjoy so many years of peace, and that in the
- prolonged “Indian Summer,” the “Halcyon” days of your life, you
- are receiving a well deserved tribute of reverence and affection.
- We think ourselves happy to have known you, not merely as a poet,
- but as a citizen, a neighbor, and a friend.
-
- “‘We feel we can not better voice our sentiments than by
- retaliating upon you the words you once so fitly spoke of one who
- has been a co-laborer with you in the cause of humanity—the mild
- “Autocrat of the Breakfast Table.”
-
- “‘“The world may keep his honored name,
- The wealth of all his varied powers;
- A stronger claim has love than fame,
- And he himself is only ours.”’
-
- “‘In the name and by the request of three hundred citizens of
- your own village.’
-
-“To which Mr. Whittier responded with the following charming letter:
-
- “‘OAK KNOLL, DANVERS, 12 MO., 23, 1884.
-
- “‘MY DEAR FRIEND:—Thy kind letter in behalf of the literary
- associations of Amesbury and Salisbury has just been received,
- and I hasten to express my thanks for the generous appreciation
- of my life work by “mine own people,” who know the man as well
- as the writer. That I am neither a prophet myself, nor the son
- of a prophet, may account perhaps for the rather remarkable fact
- that I am not without honor in my own country. I scarcely need
- say that among the many kind testimonials of regard which, on
- the occasion of my birthday, have reached me from both sides of
- the water, none have been more welcome than that conveyed in thy
- letter. If the praise awarded me is vastly beyond my due, I am
- none the less grateful for it.
-
- “‘I know too well my own deficiencies and limitations, but my
- heart is warm with thankfulness to the Divine Providence which
- so early led me to consecrate the ability given me to the cause
- of heaven, freedom, and the welfare of my fellowmen. The measure
- of literary reputation which has come to me is as far beyond my
- expectation as my desert, and I am glad to share the benefit of
- it with my home friends and neighbors. With thanks to thyself
- personally, and to those whom thee represents, I am, very truly,
- thy friend,
-
- “‘JOHN G. WHITTIER.’”
-
-The “Crescent” circle, of WAKEFIELD, grew out of a meeting held last
-September, and addressed by Mr. Fairchild, of Malden, in the interest
-of the Chautauqua movement. A circle was formed as a result of their
-meeting. About twenty members are now recorded on the books, although
-more than that proposed at first to join. The meetings are quite
-interesting, the programs being varied.——The “Alpha,” of UXBRIDGE, is a
-new name on the books. This cutting from a recent letter is suggestive
-of their spirit: “We start with six members only, but all are _very_
-enthusiastic. We propose to do thorough work. Our object is improvement
-and genuine culture. We shall use the best means to bring in others to
-reap with us the golden harvest, and not be selfishly content with ‘our
-set.’”——There are in FALL RIVER about sixty members of the C. L. S. C.,
-but the “Amity” circle is the first organization in the city. It at
-present numbers only thirteen members. A larger number certainly ought
-to be in the organization. The “Amity” will undoubtedly soon bring them
-in.——From PITTSFIELD a friend writes: “I am happy to report to you a
-constantly increasing interest in the C. L. S. C. work in Pittsfield.
-Our circle reorganized in October for another year’s work. To the
-leadership of our efficient president, the Rev. Geo. Skene, we owe our
-present prosperity. We have now sixty-four members, twenty-three of
-whom belong to Class ’88. We have one graduate, our president, who took
-his diploma at Chautauqua last summer. We also have one member of Class
-’85, making five classes represented in our circle. Our meetings are
-full of interest, and the attendance is excellent, the smallest number
-present at any meeting this year being twenty-five. Programs are arranged
-by a board of seven managers, who serve for three months. Singing,
-prayer, roll call, with responses by quotations and reading of minutes
-of last meeting, always form the opening exercises. We have also used
-the Chautauqua vesper service, and enjoyed it. Our pastor has had the
-Sunday vesper service several times, and we have found it very enjoyable
-in both church and circle. We have had, too, experiments in chemistry,
-illustrating some of the articles on that subject in THE CHAUTAUQUAN. As
-another specialty we have had ‘pronunciation of Greek names,’ conducted
-as the old fashioned spelling matches. This proved highly entertaining,
-as well as instructive. We have recently changed our name to ‘Bryant
-Chautauqua Circle.’ We think it particularly appropriate, as Cummington,
-the birthplace of Mr. Bryant, and where he spent much of his life, is
-situated only twenty miles from this town. Another circle has been formed
-here since November, taking as a president one of the members of our
-circle. They have at present thirty members. On Monday evening, February
-2d, Dr. Vincent gave a lecture, both circles attending, and after the
-lecture a joint reception was given him. It is expected that arrangements
-will soon be made for occasionally holding union meetings. Thus the C.
-L. S. C. prospers in Pittsfield. We find that here, as elsewhere, the C.
-L. S. C. is promoting the best interests of the people.”——For several
-years the two or three members of the C. L. S. C. in MARSHFIELD have been
-accustomed to meet weekly for reading, study and conversation, but they
-never dignified the gathering by the name of a local circle. Within a
-few months they have organized under the name of the “Webster” circle,
-inasmuch as they are the nearest members of the C. L. S. C. to the home
-and burial place of that great statesman. They meet once in three weeks,
-and have a membership of eight or ten, including representatives of
-nearly every class.
-
-The “Phelps” local circle, of NEW HAVEN, CONNECTICUT, of the C. L. S. C.,
-started in November with five Chautauquans, and now numbers twenty-six,
-with a number of others who are reading. So far they have kept very
-closely to the Greek part of the course, and in the meetings have had a
-number of map exercises, which they find very interesting.——WEST WINSTED,
-of the same state, has a year-old circle, from which we have had our
-first letter: “Our local circle numbers sixty, thirty of whom are regular
-members of the central Circle. Nearly all of these members belong to the
-‘Pansy’ class, and are loyal to it. We have never labored under great
-difficulties, always having had good meetings. We have a most efficient
-lady president, to whom, in a large degree, the success of our circle is
-due. Early in the fall of 1883 a few enterprising men and women sent for
-the books for the year and commenced reading, hardly daring to hope that
-a circle would be formed. Our village is not lacking in literary circles,
-having an almost countless number of different kinds, and for this very
-reason it seemed that another one would not meet with success, but at the
-first call nearly forty responded. We organized our circle that night and
-continued the meetings during the year, taking up the work in essays,
-questions and readings, and observing, as far as possible, the memorial
-days, by appropriate exercises. This year we reorganized in October, and,
-if possible, have had more interesting meetings than last year. Some of
-our members who have a long distance to walk in order to attend have
-proved themselves filled with the Chautauqua enthusiasm by their regular
-attendance, whatever the condition of the weather. At our last meeting
-we had chemistry for the topic, and devoted the evening to experiments,
-having twenty or more, nearly all of which are given in THE CHAUTAUQUAN.
-We have had sometimes, in addition to the regular literary work of the
-evening, a personation of some author given by a member, the remaining
-members guessing the author personated. One feature of our program for
-January 20th was a match, similar to an old-fashioned spelling match,
-upon the questions on ‘Preparatory Greek Course’ in THE CHAUTAUQUAN for
-October and November. From the fact that new members join our ranks
-at almost every meeting, we are encouraged in the feeling that though
-popularity is not the winning feature, the good ‘Idea’ has taken deep
-root.”
-
-A RHODE ISLAND friend writes from WARREN: “To the numerous reports from
-local organizations, I am pleased to add a few lines from the ‘Delta’
-circle, organized last October, in this part of ‘Little Rhody.’ It
-consists of nineteen ‘regular’ and four ‘local’ members, assembling on
-the second and fourth Monday evenings of each month. Our president and
-vice president are enthusiastic Chautauquans, respectively of the classes
-of ’86 and ’87, the remainder belonging to the class of ’88. Our programs
-are arranged by ‘the committee of instruction’ during the intermission,
-and reported to the circle before its adjournment each evening. In the
-arrangement of these great help is rendered by those published in THE
-CHAUTAUQUAN. Our memorial days have been pleasantly observed, and we
-shall shortly have a Sunday evening vesper service. We also intend to
-have a supper, the cooking of which is to be ‘_à la_ CHAUTAUQUAN.’ While
-waiting for the Chautauqua songs our president has carefully prepared by
-hektograph, for our use, both notes and words of several selected from
-his copy, and we are delighted with the harmonies. Should we discover
-any new departure that would be helpful to local circles, we shall write
-again.”
-
-Almost as numerous reports reach us this month from the “Empire State”
-as we received last; several are of circles hitherto unknown to our
-columns. The “DeKalb” circle, of BROOKLYN, is one of these. It was
-organized in the fall of 1883, with fifteen members. Since that time the
-membership has increased to twenty-six.——At BATAVIA a local circle was
-formed in October last, and consists of about fifty members. These are
-mostly beginners in the Chautauqua course, with a few who will finish
-next year. They have done some good work in the way of essays, readings
-and experiments, and hope to do more. The work upon Greece has been made
-particularly interesting, from the fact that the leader, the Rev. C.
-A. Johnson, has described so faithfully many of these landmarks of the
-past as seen by him in recent years.——In October, 1884, a new C. L. S.
-C. was organized at WHITESTOWN. It is called the “Hestia” circle, and
-has fifteen enthusiastic members, all ladies. At one meeting leaders are
-appointed to conduct the exercises on the various readings at the next
-meeting, having as many different leaders as there are different subjects
-in the readings for the week. The leaders are appointed in alphabetical
-order, so each member is required to lead in some exercise as often as
-once in every three or four weeks.——The “Lakeside” circle, of FAIR HAVEN,
-is to be counted “one of us.” Many readers have been at Lakeside, but the
-circle is a new organization. Thus far the work has been, most of it,
-on the Greek course; they take the questions in THE CHAUTAUQUAN, have
-essays on the leading characters, selections, questions, discussions,
-etc. The president drew for them a large map of Greece, which was a great
-help in fixing the position of the different places in their minds—an
-admirable plan, which more presidents would do well to follow.——A
-delightful circle of seventeen exists in the pleasant city of ROME.
-Unfortunately, they have recently lost their president, a gentleman of
-scholarly taste, to whom the success of the first two years of their life
-was largely due.——At LITTLE GENESEE there is an enthusiastic circle of
-sixteen members. At each circle one of the members presents a program
-for the next session, every member taking his turn in the order in which
-his name stands on the secretary’s book. Although not formally made a
-rule, it is understood that no member shall refuse to undertake any work
-assigned on the program. Chautauqua songs, roll call, and “Questions and
-Answers” from THE CHAUTAUQUAN are the standard features of the programs.
-Essays, discussions, select reading, questions, etc., furnish variety,
-and conversation is always in order. At the last circle the responses
-were to be from “Kitchen Science.” The responses assumed form, as well as
-expression, and a bountifully spread table gave opportunity for practical
-tests of kitchen science.
-
-At LATROBE, PENNSYLVANIA, a C. L. S. C. was properly organized, and went
-earnestly to work October 1, 1884, with twenty-five members. It being the
-first Chautauqua circle in the place some difficulties had to be overcome
-before getting rightly started. The circle is now under good progress,
-and doing a good work. They have enjoyable monthly meetings, where a
-regular program is carried out, consisting of readings, recitations,
-music, etc. The benefit gained by the members is far beyond expression.
-Both old and young are alike profited and pleased with the readings.
-October 22, 1884, the circle was called to mourn the sad death of Miss
-Alice Newcomer, one of their most beloved members.——A very interesting
-variation from the usual response by roll call has been introduced into
-a program of the HARRISBURG circle. It is that each person respond by
-mentioning some one important event which has occurred in the past month.
-This circle sends a very skilfully prepared program.——At BERWICK the C.
-L. S. C. pursues the plan of study laid down in THE CHAUTAUQUAN, finding
-it admirably adapted to complete the required reading in the given time.
-A friend telling of their prosperity says: “We have lost a few members by
-removals, and one or two have withdrawn, after a year’s study, but the
-backbone and sinew of the circle remain, and the body is growing vigorous
-and symmetrical. At the dawn of the Chautauqua year we were compelled
-to part with our learned and valued preceptor, Prof. L. H. Bower, who
-was called to the Dickinson College Preparatory School. The circle, with
-appropriate ceremony, presented him with a copy of ‘Knight’s Illuminated
-Pictorial Shakspere,’ in eight volumes, as a token of their appreciation
-of his services. His talented brother, Prof. A. V. Bower, was elected to
-succeed him as president of the circle, and the change was made without
-any friction whatever. We congratulate ourselves upon being members of
-the Class of ’86.”
-
-The outlook which a friend from MARYLAND sends of the new circle at
-FREDERICK is very encouraging: “Through the energy of a lady of the
-Methodist church we have organized a C. L. S. C. local circle under
-the name of ‘Mountain City.’ We organized November 24, 1884, with nine
-members, elected a president, vice president, secretary and treasurer. We
-are glad to say we now have thirteen members, and hope soon to increase
-this number. We have enthusiastic meetings every week at the homes of the
-members; read in the circle some of THE CHAUTAUQUAN required readings,
-and carry out as far as practicable the programs for local circles, and
-expect to observe all memorial days.”
-
-We have just received a very encouraging report from the MADISONVILLE,
-OHIO, circle which was organized last year. They have twenty-five
-members, all of whom take a great interest in the circle. The committee
-of instruction, composed of the officers, has a full program prepared
-for each meeting. Two ministers of the town belong and take an active
-part. Miscellaneous questions have been introduced, and beside a question
-on the lesson, each member is required to bring one on outside matters.
-All questions remaining unanswered are distributed, to be answered at
-the following meeting. There is no doubt that if the interest in the
-circle still continues there will be a second circle started in the town
-next year.——At DEFIANCE a local circle was organized October 1st, with
-a membership of twenty, all of whom belong to the general Circle of
-the C. L. S. C. The president is the Rev. B. W. Slagle, pastor of the
-Presbyterian church in the town. They have prepared special programs
-for the memorial days, which have proved very delightful, as well as
-instructive. There is a good prospect of doubling the membership by next
-year.
-
-The annual report of the work of Calvary church, DETROIT, MICHIGAN, for
-last year, includes an account of the work done by the “Calvary” circle,
-a society which has been made a part of the church organization. From
-it we learn that the society has thirty-three active members. They have
-held twenty-two meetings; the programs have included—essays, 36; select
-readings, 28; music—instrumental pieces 21, vocal pieces 17; general
-talks, 4; debates, 2. The regular CHAUTAUQUAN review questions have
-been taken up at each meeting. There has been a great deal of interest
-manifested in the meetings and a disposition on the part of officers and
-members to make them a success; every one who has attended them has been
-benefited, not only in the improvement of his or her mind, but also in
-some degree morally.
-
-INDIANA reports two circles: the “Wide Awakes,” of MOSCOW, a circle
-of four, and the “Laconia,” of GUMFIELD. Some five years ago, when
-the “Chautauqua wave” was moving westward, it reached Gumfield in a
-modified form. Eight persons began taking THE CHAUTAUQUAN, but did
-not perfect an organization; only one of the number matriculated and
-kept up the required reading. In the fall of 1882 they began the work
-vigorously, organizing a promising circle. As time advanced their
-influence gradually widened and extended, until this year there are over
-twenty enthusiastic Chautauquans enrolled at the Plainfield office. The
-“Laconia” meets weekly, and has endeavored to make thoroughness one of
-the characteristics of its work. It is composed entirely of housekeepers,
-but they feel more than compensated for sacrifice of time by inspiration
-received from the reading and study. Most memorial days have been
-observed. By this means the public has become interested in the C. L. S.
-C., and a similar society has been organized among the young people.
-
-One of the most enthusiastic circles of ILLINOIS is a quartette of
-“Irrepressibles,” at NOKOMIO. The circle had the novel experience of
-graduating in a body at Chautauqua last August. Now they are working more
-vigorously than ever, trying to cover their diplomas with seals.——ELGIN
-has four large circles, the result of the “Alpha” circle, an organization
-formed in December, 1883, with six members. Last fall this society
-increased its numbers to nine, and most zealous has been their work. A
-sad loss recently befell them in the death of one of the charter members,
-Miss Mary Warde.——The circle at SULLIVAN, was organized in October, with
-a membership of eleven—one “Progressive” and ten “Plymouth Rocks.” They
-meet once a week at the homes of the members. The president appoints
-the members in turn to act as leaders, and the circle is composed
-of enthusiastic workers. Seven members visited New Orleans in the
-holidays, and two are spending this month in the “Crescent City.”——From
-PROPHETSTOWN a friend writes: “We are a modest bouquet of ‘Pansies,’
-counting only seven, but we feel the charm of the Chautauqua Idea, and
-propose to ‘Neglect not the gift that is in us.’ One of our number, Mrs.
-Amelia K. Seely, passed ‘beyond the gates’ December 15, 1884. We sadly
-miss her cheery presence and unfailing interest in the work.”——Wednesday,
-January 21st, was a “red-letter” day for the Chautauquans of HINSDALE.
-Their usual enthusiasm was raised to a high key by the long-looked-for
-visit to their suburb of Chancellor Vincent, who made a stop of two hours
-on his way to Aurora. He was received by the class, who were out in full
-force, at the residence of the secretary. A lunch was served, and the
-time was most agreeably and profitably spent in conversation upon topics
-of interest connected with the C. L. S. C.
-
-The “Oak Branch” circle was organized at OAKFIELD, WISCONSIN, in
-November. There are only seven members, and all are busy people, but they
-are zealous and interested in the work, and thankful that they may enjoy
-the benefits of the C. L. S. C. They meet once in two weeks, their circle
-being conducted similarly to others which have been reported in THE
-CHAUTAUQUAN.
-
-The “Centenary” local circle, of MINNEAPOLIS, MINNESOTA, writes us: “Our
-city boasts no less than twelve circles, but Centenary, the pioneer
-circle, still lives, and while our members are about one half what they
-were when ours was the only one in the city, we are going on quietly and
-promptly with all our work, and expect to furnish ten graduates for the
-class of ’85. We have our cottage engaged for the coming Assembly at
-Chautauqua, and hope to send a good delegation next summer. We have some
-eight or nine members of the class of ’88, and several representatives of
-classes of ’86 and ’87.”——At SPRING VALLEY, a circle of seventeen members
-organized last fall, the president being from the class of ’84, but the
-members from ’88. The interest in the circle is decidedly increasing.
-
-The friends of THE CHAUTAUQUAN in IOWA have been unusually kind this
-month. The following brief clippings from their letters give an excellent
-outlook on the work there: “A circle was organized at AFTON, in October
-last, consisting of eleven regular and fifteen local members. Although
-nearly a month behind in organizing, we intend continuing our society
-through July, so as to be able to commence the next year at the regular
-time. In making out our program for local circle work we usually
-follow the one given in THE CHAUTAUQUAN, and find it a great help, but
-occasionally vary our exercises to adapt it to peculiar circumstances.
-The average attendance is good, and most of the members seem to take
-quite an interest. We hope the society will prove of lasting benefit to
-each member.”——“Through the energetic efforts of our village doctor,
-there was started last October a C. L. S. C. circle at LE GRAND, and
-we feel worthy of mention in your columns. The circle consists of
-eleven members of the great Circle, and four or five local members. We
-appoint a new teacher for each book. We are learning much, and very much
-enjoy the circles. We have chosen for our name ‘Philohellemon.’”——“The
-‘Ladies’ Chautauqua Reading Circle,’ of SIOUX CITY, IOWA, has seventeen
-members. We organized in October, 1884. Our society is full of earnest
-enthusiasm. We meet once a week, following with slight variations the
-programs suggested in THE CHAUTAUQUAN. Chemistry is a favorite study,
-made specially interesting by the fact that a gentleman familiar with the
-subject gives us lectures with illustrative experiments.”——The “Kelly
-Humboldt” circle, of HUMBOLDT, was reorganized last fall with renewed
-energy and vigor. About fourteen new members were admitted. “Our circle
-being now so large (numbering about twenty-six) as to almost require
-dividing, next season we intend organizing one in the adjoining town,
-just half a mile from here; then those living in that vicinity can
-withdraw from our circle to their own, leaving room for more to join
-us. To say that we enjoy our study, would be saying but very little; we
-can hardly wait for Monday evening to come, so anxious are we to meet
-and discuss the topics prepared for us. The programs arranged in THE
-CHAUTAUQUAN are a great help to us, although we vary them a little,
-generally opening by prayer and music; then, as a sentiment, we each
-give a current event of the week. We observe all the memorial days,
-and are now making extensive preparations to hold a public meeting in
-the church on Longfellow’s day. So that we may not be confused with
-the other ‘Humboldt’ circle, we have, in honor of the originator, Miss
-Mary Kelly, named our circle the ‘Kelly Humboldt’ C. L. S. C.”——WAPELLO
-has the “Qui Vive” circle, which enjoys the work. It was organized in
-September, 1884, and is composed almost entirely of members of the class
-of ’88.——In a recent letter from BURLINGTON, we find some entertaining
-news from still another Iowa friend: “You always have something in the
-local circle column from Iowa. You know Iowa has two great staples, corn
-and Chautauquans, and we think you would surely be glad to hear of our
-flourishing circle, as well as others of the thousands of Chautauquans.
-Our circle was organized for the year’s work on Garfield day. We have the
-best circle we ever had, and are conceited enough to think there are no
-better ones anywhere. Our president is a busy lawyer. Indeed, our circle
-is composed of the busiest people in the town. We meet _regularly_ and
-_promptly_ every Monday evening. Burlington is a city of seven hills.
-Then you understand what regular meetings are here, for the circle is
-comprehensive and takes in all the hills. Our chemistry lessons are
-taught by a practicing physician who is a thorough chemist and teaches
-intelligently and enthusiastically. We have the willing coöperation of
-many of the educated people of the city, and when necessary for either
-our own advancement, or more perfect instruction on a topic, we find
-them ready to give us an address or essay. Our most enthusiastic members
-are graduates of colleges, or advanced academies. We recognize each
-memorial day. One of our daily papers freely makes any announcement we
-have to make, and aids us all it can. I can not undertake to tell you the
-good our circle is doing for us individually. Some of us, deprived of
-early advantages, can not be too thankful for the C. L. S. C. It is an
-influence for good that enters into our everyday life, and overbalances
-and counteracts some of the _other_ influences that every soul must
-encounter.”
-
-With an excellent program of a regular meeting has come to us a notice
-of a circle at HATBORO, TENNESSEE. The secretary says: “With great
-pleasure I report a local circle in our little town. We started with
-two members; we now enroll thirteen. We all are deeply interested,
-and think the Chautauqua Idea a grand one. We call ourselves ‘Golden
-Flower’ (Chrysanthemum) local circle, and our badges are clusters of
-chrysanthemums.”
-
-From GREENVILLE, SOUTH CAROLINA, come very cheering reports: “Our
-circle was organized in the fall of 1883, and we are therefore of the
-‘Pansy’ order. We have twelve members, six young ladies and six young
-men. Most of the members are college graduates, and take the course to
-keep bright in their studies. We adhere, with occasional changes, to the
-following order of business: First, roll call and reading of minutes;
-second, examination of question box, in which each member is required to
-deposit at least three questions, bearing directly on the subjects for
-the time in the regular course; third, an essay; fourth, reading by two
-members appointed by the president; fifth, twenty minutes allowed for
-informal discussion of the lessons. We of course celebrate the memorial
-days with appropriate ceremonies. Some additional interest is given by
-having some extra literary entertainment. A Dickens party we had recently
-was very enjoyable. The book we selected was ‘Our Mutual Friend.’ Each
-member represented one of the leading characters in the book. Besides
-we acted several scenes, which added much to the enjoyment. We are all
-enthusiastic in our interest in Chautauqua, and fully determined to
-finish the course.”
-
-At ATLANTA, GEORGIA, there is a circle of fifteen in West End, the
-largest suburb of Atlanta. The Rev. H. C. Crumley, a pastor of the city,
-deserves the credit of founding this organization.
-
-A very kindly and graceful courtesy has been extended to those
-Chautauquans visiting New Orleans, by the “Longfellow” circle, of that
-city. It is an invitation prettily framed, which has been hung in the
-Chautauqua alcove. The placard reads:
-
- C. L. S. C.
-
- GREETING
- OF THE LONGFELLOW CIRCLE OF NEW ORLEANS.
-
- _To any and all Fellow-Chautauquans who may be visiting The
- World’s Industrial and Cotton Centennial Exposition, we offer a
- cordial invitation to attend the meetings of our Local Circle,
- which are held every Tuesday afternoon, at five o’clock, at No.
- 393 South Rampart Street, corner of Erato Street._
-
- _Also, we extend a like invitation to all Resident Chautauquans
- to join our Circle, wishing to awaken renewed interest in the
- Great Movement._
-
- O. F. GROAT, Secretary.
- J. HASAM, Cor. Sec’y.
- K. L. RIGGS, President.
-
- NEW ORLEANS, January 26, 1885.
-
-A very encouraging report of the circle at EUREKA SPRINGS, ARKANSAS, has
-reached us: “We organized the Eureka Springs Chautauqua Literary and
-Scientific Circle October 1st, 1884. Our circle has about thirty members,
-half of whom are reading the books. We follow the programs given in THE
-CHAUTAUQUAN. A great many spectators attend. Everybody is interested
-in our circle. We are talking of establishing a lecture course at this
-place for the summer months, probably in July, in the interest of the
-Chautauqua Circle. We always have between 4,000 and 6,000 people here,
-in the summer many more. We have very suitable grounds, near the purest
-water in the place. Our town is easy of access from Missouri and Kansas,
-as well as from other parts of this State. So far as known, we are the
-only organized Chautauquans in this State. Probably many persons are
-reading the course at different places, but we know of no circle.”
-
-From CLARKSVILLE, MISSOURI, a lady writes: “This Pansy bed by the ‘Father
-of Waters’ has much for which to be thankful: Fifteen earnest workers
-compose our number. We are all teachers and scholars, by turns. We
-attempt as much thoroughness as practicable in the readings, brought out
-by recitations and conversation. We carry out some parts of the programs
-in THE CHAUTAUQUAN. Some of the Pansies hope to be transplanted for a
-time to Chautauqua in ’87.”
-
-OTTAWA, KANSAS, circle was organized in time for the October work, with
-a membership of fourteen. “Our circle has increased, until now we are
-twenty-eight in number. Our meetings, held twice a month, are both
-pleasant and profitable, each member faithfully doing his part. We
-respond to roll call by quotations or class mottoes. We find the programs
-in THE CHAUTAUQUAN quite beneficial. The essays, recitations and music
-form a pleasing variety. We adopted the question match, also the question
-box, and find these not only amusing but profitable. This month we will
-try some of the chemical experiments in connection with a lecture. We are
-all looking forward to the Sunday-school Assembly, which meets here in
-June, and to the meetings of the circle conducted by the Rev. Hurlbut.
-The spirit of the C. L. S. C. is spreading, and we hope to report a large
-circle to you next year.”
-
-A friend writes from SEATTLE, WASHINGTON TERRITORY: “I notice in your
-January number a communication from Mr. K. A. Burnell, in which he
-states that at Seattle and Tacoma he found but a single reader and one
-family reading the Chautauqua course, a statement from which one might
-infer that he was indeed so much under the ‘shadow of Mount Tacoma’ as
-to obscure his vision. There are at Seattle as many as forty readers,
-at least, who have been pursuing the Chautauqua course of study since
-October last. There are three regularly organized circles in this place,
-holding weekly meetings, and a general semi-monthly meeting in which
-the members of all the circles join. One of the circles, named ‘Alki,’
-has a membership of sixteen. This circle has the honor and advantage
-of numbering among its members a noted linguist and scientist in the
-person of Dr. John C. Sundberg. Considerable interest is being awakened
-throughout the whole of the Puget Sound country in the Chautauqua
-readings, and it would not be surprising if, in another year, the regular
-Chautauquans in this section of country are numbered by hundreds.”
-
-The “Washakie” circle, of EVANSTON, WYOMING, was organized on the 10th
-of last October. The names of twenty-six members have been enrolled.
-Starting late, they were behind with their studies until lately,
-consequently the program for each week as laid down in THE CHAUTAUQUAN
-was not followed. The meetings, however, have been very interesting.
-The leaders appointed for the different subjects on each evening came
-well prepared. Essays on Milton, Burns, and others, have been read.
-Prof. Halleck, of the public schools, has delivered short lectures on
-the scientific subjects. Prof. Capen has given experiments in chemistry.
-Music, and recitations from the classic authors by a fine elocutionist,
-have rendered the meetings more entertaining. The enthusiasm has grown
-with the year.
-
-The first circle that was regularly organized in PORTLAND, OREGON,
-was that established by the Y. M. C. A., last October. This circle is
-composed of about twenty members. The other two circles which have joined
-the class of ’88 are those connected with the Taylor Street and Grace
-Methodist Episcopal Churches. The latter was organized during the month
-of December, and is composed of about twenty-five members, who seem to be
-now deeply interested in their work. The former is the largest circle in
-the State, composed of about forty active and progressive young men and
-women, who are now deeply interested in their studies, and a notable fact
-of this circle is that there is no restraint in thought by the members,
-as is often the case where freedom of opinion is withheld, thus repelling
-the progress of the meeting. The able secretary of their circle deserves
-great credit for the time and trouble he has exercised performing that
-office, and volunteering to assume all responsibility with regard to
-books, dues, and pamphlets. The Rev. G. W. Chandler, the efficient
-president, is the originator of this circle. Their efforts and untiring
-energies have made this circle most interesting, and have brought into
-it some of the best scholars in the State. By perseverance and thorough
-study, with the watchword “Forward,” they are determined to ever press
-onward and upward in this grand work, and receive their reward.
-
-
-
-
-THE C. L. S. C. CLASSES.
-
-
-CLASS OF 1885.—“THE INVINCIBLES.”
-
-“_Press on, reaching after those things which are before._”
-
-OFFICERS.
-
- _President_—J. B. Underwood, Meriden, Conn.
-
- _Vice President_—C. M. Nichols, Springfield, Ohio.
-
- _Treasurer_—Miss Carrie Hart, Aurora, Ind.
-
- _Secretary_—Miss M. M. Canfield, Washington, D. C.
-
- _Executive Committee_—Officers of the class.
-
- Class badges may be procured of either President or Treasurer.
-
-The members of the Chautauqua circles have now a third of a year only
-in which to finish their readings and fill out their papers for the
-current year. So far as we have been able to learn, a much larger number
-of persons have been pursuing the C. L. S. C. course this year than
-have been in the ranks during any previous corresponding period. Those
-connected with journalism, in looking over their exchanges, rarely pick
-up a local paper that does not have some reference to the doings of a
-local Chautauqua circle. Then it has been discovered that those who read
-the Chautauqua books and periodicals have been led to go beyond the
-lines, and to search for intellectual treasures in “pastures new”—in
-books, reviews, public journals of character and excellence, and, also,
-to seek association with people of culture. Indeed, it is pleasantly and
-encouragingly apparent that the Chautauqua system is becoming, from month
-to month, broader, deeper, more far-reaching in its wholesome and really
-powerful influence, in promoting moral as well as intellectual culture.
-
-The members of the Class of 1885 should bear these facts in mind, and
-accept the special degree of responsibility involved. Let this class be
-not only the best, but the largest that has ever passed within the Golden
-Gate on Commencement day! Why should it not be three thousand strong? If
-we begin now, in April, to make our plans and preparations, perhaps we
-can all “get there,” and present a solid phalanx of honest, thorough,
-intelligent and aggressive Chautauquans, marching toward and through
-the Gate and into the Hall, with banners and songs, that will promise
-largely and grandly for the moral and mental improvement of thousands of
-communities throughout the land.
-
- * * * * *
-
-“What would be the result if we report to Miss Canfield our intentions to
-be at Chautauqua to receive our diplomas, and something should happen to
-prevent?”
-
-The only result would be that those who expected you would be as sadly
-disappointed as you would be in not being able to come. The fact that you
-intended to come and were detained by good cause would be accepted, and
-you would “stand excused,” and would receive your diploma in good time.
-
- * * * * *
-
-MISSOURI.—As one of the “Invincibles,” I would add my testimony with
-others of Class ’85 as having received pleasure and benefit beyond
-computation in pursuing the C. L. S. C. course. I commenced alone, but
-after a few months succeeded in organizing a circle for ’86, which keeps
-up a large membership, persistent and thorough in study, with rigid class
-drill; also remembrance of memorial days.
-
- * * * * *
-
-PENNSYLVANIA.—What a well-spring of joy is the C. L. S. C. in the homes
-of those who have not enjoyed the advantages of a liberal education! The
-students born of this great movement are rising up all over this great
-land with blessings for the founder of this happy Circle. I am reading
-alone, as there are no members near me, but at some little distance I
-have interested some bright young friends of mine in the work, and I am
-glad to know that they are so much pleased with it.
-
-
-CLASS OF 1886.—“THE PROGRESSIVES.”
-
-“_We study for light, to bless with light._”
-
-CLASS ORGANIZATION.
-
- _President_—The Rev. B. P. Snow, Biddeford, Maine.
-
- _Vice Presidents_—The Rev. J. C. Whitley, Salisbury, Maryland;
- Mr. L. F. Houghton, Peoria, Illinois; Mr. Walter Y. Morgan,
- Cleveland, Ohio; Mrs. Delia Browne, Louisville, Kentucky; Miss
- Florence Finch, Palestine, Texas.
-
- _Secretary_—The Rev. W. L. Austin, New Albany, Ind.
-
-The new badge, bearing the motto and emblem of the class, is now ready
-to be sent out. The design meets hearty approval. The cost, including
-postage, will be 15 cents. For badges, address the president or the
-secretary.
-
- * * * * *
-
-The New England branch of the class will have superior headquarters at
-the Framingham Assembly in July. This important section of ’86 have plans
-and arrangements in view that will insure a most pleasant and successful
-class gathering at the Assembly.
-
-
-CLASS OF 1887.—“THE PANSIES.”
-
-“_Neglect not the gift that is in thee._”
-
-OFFICERS.
-
- _President_—The Rev. Frank Russell, Mansfield, Ohio.
-
- _Western Secretary_—K. A. Burnell, Esq., 150 Madison Street,
- Chicago, Ill.
-
- _Eastern Secretary_—J. A. Steven, M.D., 164 High Street,
- Hartford, Conn.
-
- _Treasurer_—Either Secretary, from either of whom badges may be
- procured.
-
- _Executive Committee_—The officers of the class.
-
- Class paper may be procured from Mr. Henry Hart, Atlanta, Ga.
-
-The attention of the members of ’87 is called to the letter by Mrs. Alden
-in the March number of THE CHAUTAUQUAN, page 353.
-
- * * * * *
-
-President Russell had charge of the Sunday-school Normal Department
-at the Florida Chautauqua, Lake de Funiak, and is one of the Board of
-Managers.
-
-At Milton, Mass., recently, the representatives of the Class of ’87 had a
-table at a church fair and cleared over $100.
-
-It is our painful duty to record the death of two members of the Class
-of 1887: Miss Mary Dayton, of Binghamton, N. Y., and Mrs. Lou L. Dunn,
-of Bonham, Texas. The deepest sympathy not only of the class, but of all
-members of the C. L. S. C. is with the sorrowing friends.
-
- * * * * *
-
-TO NEW ENGLAND ’87S.—The second mid-year reunion of New England ’87s will
-be held on Friday, April 3d, in Union Congregational Chapel, Stewart
-Street, Providence, R. I. The business meeting will be held at half-past
-one o’clock p. m.; the literary and musical entertainment at two o’clock.
-A social reunion will precede and follow the regular exercises. Will
-all New England members of ’87 please make a special effort to attend
-this reunion? Providence Chautauquans are enthusiastic, and will
-doubtless strive to make this meeting thoroughly enjoyable. Let us, by
-our presence, show our appreciation of their efforts. Our Providence
-classmates have kindly offered to meet at the station any strangers who
-will communicate the hour of their arrival to Miss Nellie F. Crocker, 6
-Kepler Street, Providence.
-
-
-CLASS OF 1888.—“THE PLYMOUTH ROCKS.”
-
-“_Let us be seen by our deeds._”
-
-CLASS ORGANIZATION.
-
- _President_—The Rev. A. E. Dunning, D.D., Boston, Mass.
-
- _Vice Presidents_—Prof. W. N. Ellis, 108 Gates Avenue, Brooklyn,
- N. Y.; the Rev. Wm. G. Roberts, Bellevue, Ohio.
-
- _Secretary_—Miss M. E. Taylor, Cleveland, Ohio.
-
- _Treasurer_—Miss M. E. Taylor, Cleveland, Ohio.
-
- All items for this column should be sent, in condensed form, to
- the Rev. C. C. McLean, St. Augustine, Florida.
-
-The “Chautauqua Quartette,” Avon, Indiana, organized December 5, 1884,
-writes: “We are four country girls, living two to three miles apart, but
-hold weekly meetings, alternately, at our homes.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-In Harlem, N. Y., is a class of seven, organized October 1, 1884. The
-secretary writes: “Each member in turn takes charge, assigning lessons
-and questioning the class.” In addition to the required study they take
-some prominent author, giving biography and quoting from works.
-
- * * * * *
-
-From Portland, Maine, we learn that they have a large and interesting
-circle, meeting semi-monthly.
-
- * * * * *
-
-The “Castalian,” of Philadelphia, ten members, was organized October,
-1884. This circle thinks too many members make each other timid, and
-therefore advocates many circles of few members. They are fortunate in
-having a president who makes chemical experiments.
-
- * * * * *
-
-A flourishing circle of fifty members was organized in Batavia, New York,
-October, 1884.
-
-The Rev. J. D. Gillilan, of Toocle, Utah, writes that “here among the
-Mormons a class of three is formed; one of the number was a Mormon
-when he joined the circle, but has since united himself with the M. E.
-Church.” There is a flourishing circle in Salt Lake City.
-
- * * * * *
-
-The “Wilkesbarre” circle, of Wilkesbarre, Pa., was organized October,
-1884, with sixty members. This circle meets every alternate week, each
-member responding to roll call with a quotation from the “readings.” A
-physician makes fine experiments in chemistry.
-
- * * * * *
-
-A circle has been organized in Topeka, Kan., with thirty members. The
-secretary says: “Most of us are busy girls, figuring as teachers, office
-and store clerks, but find time to take the reading course thoroughly,
-and hope to graduate with the 88s.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-KANSAS.—“I am well pleased with our class motto and name. I am a sculptor
-by profession and wish a higher aim, a sculptor of life, for I have
-caught that angel vision. I am pursuing my studies with energy and
-enthusiasm, and life to me is more pleasant since I have taken up the
-course. Whenever I feel vexed and comfortless I only need to read over
-Chancellor Vincent’s articles in THE CHAUTAUQUAN for encouragement.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-From Buffalo, Pa., a friend says that “_all_ dislike the Class name, and
-desire it changed.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-Toronto, Canada, raises a protesting voice against our name, saying, “I
-am well aware of the fact that the name stands on history’s page as a
-synonym for grand and noble qualities, but I am forced nevertheless to
-object to it on account of its ‘fowl’ association. Could we not have a
-name _unwinged_, _unplumed_, and of no marketable value.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-One of the ’88s, who is reading alone, tells us, “In the study of the
-past four months I have received more instruction and enjoyment than in
-any amount of the general reading done in the same number of years.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-“Vincent” circle, of Portland, Maine, sends us an interesting program of
-a meeting held January 16th. A most exquisite Plymouth Rock engraving
-graces its first page.
-
- * * * * *
-
-“Longfellow” circle, of Eastern Promontory, Portland, Maine, sends us
-their constitution and by-laws, including the names of its 103 members.
-
- * * * * *
-
-KANSAS.—I am pursuing the course alone, and feel that I need the stimulus
-of outside aid and correspondence. Since my school days were over my
-reading has been of too miscellaneous a character to result in the profit
-it should have done. I am enjoying the Greek History and the Preparatory
-Course very much. My husband has been brushing up his knowledge of the
-Greek language, and comes to my assistance occasionally, so it is a
-source of profit to him as well. Even my eleven-year-old boy has caught
-the spirit, and begs me to mark all the battles for him to read, and is
-learning the Greek alphabet. I am pleased with the name of our class—“The
-Plymouth Rocks.” My ancestors were among those that landed on the bleak
-old Rock, and I know something of the sturdy perseverance and uprightness
-of their character. I can only hope that the “mantle” of those old
-pilgrims will fall upon us as “Plymouth Rocks,” and that, like them, we
-may grow strong in wisdom and goodness.
-
-
-
-
-QUESTIONS AND ANSWERS.
-
-BY A. M. MARTIN,
-
-General Secretary C. L. S. C.
-
-
-I.—SEVENTY-FIVE QUESTIONS AND ANSWERS ON “SHORT HISTORY OF THE
-REFORMATION.”
-
-1. Q. What is the Reformation? A. It is that great religious and
-intellectual revolution which marks the boundary line between the Middle
-Ages and the Modern Period.
-
-2. Q. What was the first aim of the reformers, and which proved a total
-failure? A. The purification of the church within itself, and by its own
-servants.
-
-3. Q. What was the next step, and one which succeeded? A. To withdraw
-from the fold, and establish an independent confession, and a separate
-ecclesiastical structure.
-
-4. Q. Who planted the first seeds of Protestantism in France? A. The
-Paris reformers.
-
-5. Q. Who were three prominent Paris reformers? A. D’Ailly, Gerson, and
-Clémanges.
-
-6. Q. What was the most obvious cause of the failure of the Paris
-theologians? A. They never withdrew from the Roman Catholic Church, or
-took steps to establish a separate ecclesiastical organization.
-
-7. Q. How did the Mystics of the fourteenth and fifteenth centuries
-arise? A. As a spiritual reaction against the supremacy of the scholastic
-philosophy.
-
-8. Q. What was the central scene and native country of the most notable
-reformatory Mystics? A. Germany.
-
-9. Q. What four names are prominent among the early Mystics of Germany?
-A. Eckart, Ruysbroek, Suso, and Tauler.
-
-10. Q. Who were the two most notable members of the school of St. Victor?
-A. Hugo and Richard.
-
-11. Q. What was the chief of important general movements, without
-connection with prominent characters, in progress to hasten the approach
-of reform? A. In the field of intellectual progress, was the revival of
-literature, which took the name of Humanism.
-
-12. Q. In this revival, what were the studies, as distinguished from the
-theological themes which had long held sway in all the universities and
-learned circles of Europe? A. They were purely human and literary.
-
-13. Q. Who were three prominent champions of the new Humanism? A. John
-Reuchlin, of Germany, Erasmus, of Rotterdam, and Thomas More, of England.
-
-14. Q. What three councils were formal acknowledgments, on the part
-of the Roman Catholic Church, of the evils within its pale, and the
-necessity of relief from them? A. The councils of Pisa, Kostnitz, and
-Basel.
-
-15. Q. With what bitter controversy did the fourteenth century open? A. A
-controversy between the church and the leading civil rulers. It was the
-old question of authority—whether pope or king was the supreme head.
-
-16. Q. Why was the Avignon papacy popularly called by the Romanists
-“The Babylonian Captivity?” A. From the light in which it was held as
-an ecclesiastical calamity, and from its continuance of nearly seventy
-years—from 1309 to 1377.
-
-17. Q. Although the three councils failed of their prime object, what
-fact did they reveal to the world? A. The fact that no prospect for
-reform could exist in any new council.
-
-18. Q. What way was it now clear was the only one open for improvement?
-A. The independence of the individual reformer.
-
-19. Q. What now became the theater for the Reformation? A. Central
-Germany.
-
-20. Q. Who responded to the universal aspiration for a leader to guide
-into new and safe paths? A. Martin Luther.
-
-21. Q. When and where was Luther born? A. In Eisleben, Saxony, November
-11, 1483.
-
-22. Q. What wealthy lady befriended Luther in youth, and gave him the
-advantages of an excellent teacher? A. Ursula Cotta.
-
-23. Q. After finishing his course at the University of Erfurt, what did
-Luther then do? A. He bade the world farewell, and in 1505 entered the
-Augustinian cloister as a monk.
-
-24. Q. In 1508 to what place was Luther called as professor? A. To
-Wittenberg.
-
-25. Q. After two years in Wittenberg to what city did he make a visit? A.
-Rome.
-
-26. Q. What effect did this visit have upon Luther? A. He took with him,
-when he left Rome, an abhorrence of the superstition and immorality of
-the church at its fountainhead, which never left him.
-
-27. Q. In what bill of charges did Luther subsequently arraign the
-church? A. His ninety-five theses, directed principally against the sale
-of indulgences.
-
-28. Q. In an “Address to the Nobles of the German People” what did Luther
-declare which led to his excommunication by the pope? A. That the time
-had come when Germany ought to cast off allegiance to Rome, to start out
-on an independent religious and national life, and take care of its own
-interests.
-
-29. Q. Before what body was Luther summoned, where his doctrines were
-condemned, and the sentence of ban and double ban pronounced against him?
-A. The Diet of Worms.
-
-30. Q. To what place was Luther taken for safety after leaving Worms? A.
-To the Wartburg Castle, where he remained for eight months.
-
-31. Q. About how many separate writings appeared from the pen of Luther?
-A. About one hundred and twenty, among them a translation of the Bible.
-
-32. Q. To whom did Luther commit the task of formulating a systematic
-treatment of doctrine? A. To his nearest friend, Melancthon.
-
-33. Q. Of what do the annals of literature and theology not furnish
-a more beautiful illustration than we find in the case of Luther and
-Melancthon? A. Of the manner in which a great work can be performed by
-the combined action of two men.
-
-34. Q. To what were the labors of Melancthon directed, in the great
-cause of reform? A. To the improvement of the methods of study in the
-university of Wittenberg. He urged the students to the fountain-heads
-of truth, and placed before them the Bible as the only source of real
-knowledge.
-
-35. Q. What five princes of Saxony were devoted friends of the new
-movement for the liberation of the conscience? A. George, Maurice,
-Frederick the Wise, John, and John Frederick.
-
-36. Q. Who was the leader of the new movement in Switzerland? A. Ulric
-Zwingli.
-
-37. Q. Into what did the religious conflict in the eastern cantons of
-Switzerland grow? A. Into an appeal to arms, that resulted in civil war.
-
-38. Q. What followed the battle of Cappel, where Zwingli was killed? A.
-The peace of Cappel, which declared that each canton should decide its
-religion for itself.
-
-39. Q. What name is most prominent in connection with the Reformation in
-French Switzerland? A. John Calvin.
-
-40. Q. What work did Calvin publish in 1536, which became the doctrinal
-standard for all the Reformed Churches of the Continent and Great
-Britain? A. “The Institutes of the Christian Religion.”
-
-41. Q. By what great reformer was the work, left unfinished by Calvin at
-his death, taken up? A. Beza.
-
-42. Q. In the history of the Reformation, what honor belongs to
-England? A. That of having discovered the need of a universal religious
-regeneration in Europe.
-
-43. Q. In whom did the beginnings of reform in England center? A.
-Wyckliffe, who was born about 1324.
-
-44. Q. What were Wyckliffe’s greatest services to the coming Reformation?
-A. First, his translation of the New Testament, and afterward the whole
-Bible, into English.
-
-45. Q. What was a striking feature of the English Reformation, from the
-outside? A. Its political character.
-
-46. Q. What three names are prominent in the first period of the English
-Reformation? A. Colet, Sir Thomas More, and Cranmer.
-
-47. Q. What was the most powerful single agency in bringing about the
-English Reformation? A. The publication of the Bible in the language of
-the people.
-
-48. Q. What followed the ascension of Mary to the throne of England? A.
-A violent persecution of the Protestants, during which, it is estimated,
-about eight hundred persons were burned at the stake.
-
-49. Q. What faith did Elizabeth, the successor of Mary, recognize as
-national? A. Protestantism.
-
-50. Q. From what sect did the puritan Pilgrims of America come? A. The
-Brownist sect.
-
-51. Q. Who was the first Protestant leader in Scotland? A. Patrick
-Hamilton. He suffered martyrdom.
-
-52. Q. Who was the natural successor to Hamilton? A. John Knox. By the
-time of his death the triumph of the Scotch Reformation was complete.
-
-53. Q. What was the chief aim of the Brothers of the Common Life, a
-society of the Netherlands, founded in 1384? A. To improve the morals of
-the people, and looked intently upon a thorough reform.
-
-54. Q. What preparation was there for the Reformation in the Netherlands?
-A. In no land was there such a complete and popular preparation for the
-Reformation as in the Netherlands.
-
-55. Q. What character did the Reformation assume in the Netherlands? A. A
-political character.
-
-56. Q. What order against all sympathy with the Protestant cause was
-made binding upon the Netherlands? A. The Edict of Worms.
-
-57. Q. Who, of Rotterdam, belongs to the front rank of reformers? A.
-Erasmus.
-
-58. Q. How alone was Erasmus important as a Reformer? A. As a profound
-and versatile scholar.
-
-59. Q. What is one of the most unpleasant chapters in the history of the
-Reformation? A. The unfraternal relationship between Erasmus and Luther.
-
-60. Q. From what did the real danger to the French Protestants come?
-A. From a firm alliance between the authorities at Rome and the French
-throne.
-
-61. Q. What were the Protestants in France called? A. Huguenots.
-
-62. Q. What great massacre of the Protestants took place in France on the
-24th of August, 1572? A. The Massacre of St. Bartholomew.
-
-63. Q. By whom were the Italians prepared to give hearty credence to the
-new doctrines of the Reformation? A. Savonarola.
-
-64. Q. What causes led to the failure of the Reformation in the Spanish
-Peninsula? A. Protestantism was largely a measure of scholars and
-thinkers, while the persistent energy of the Spanish authorities,
-reinforced from Rome, made thorough work of suppression.
-
-65. Q. In what was the groundwork of Protestantism in the three
-Scandinavian countries—Sweden, Denmark, and Norway—already laid? A. In
-the dissatisfaction of the people with the prevailing order of civil and
-ecclesiastical government.
-
-66. Q. Into what two Scandinavian countries was the Reformation
-introduced and formally adopted? A. Sweden and Norway.
-
-67. Q. Who was the great reformer of Bohemia? A. John Huss.
-
-68. Q. As what did his followers afterward become known, under
-Zinzendorf? A. As the United Brethren.
-
-69. Q. What was the political effect of the Reformation? A. To elevate
-the people to a thirst for liberty, and a higher and purer citizenship.
-
-70. Q. Of what did the Reformation become the mother? A. Of republics.
-
-71. Q. To what does the American Union owe a large measure of its
-genesis? A. To the European struggle for reform.
-
-72. Q. What was one of not the least benefits conferred upon the world by
-the Reformation? A. The promotion of learning.
-
-73. Q. What sprang up throughout Germany, as an immediate fruit of the
-Reformation? A. Universities.
-
-74. Q. By what celebration have the memories of the Reformation been
-recently renewed? A. By the celebration on November 11, 1883, of the four
-hundredth anniversary of the birth of Luther.
-
-75. Q. How was the day observed? A. With becoming festivities in all the
-Protestant countries of the world.
-
-
-II.—TWENTY-FIVE QUESTIONS AND ANSWERS ON “CHEMISTRY,” FROM PAGE 157 TO
-THE END OF THE BOOK.
-
-76. Q. What are some of the most important uses of borax? A. In the
-manufacture of porcelain, and in other of the industrial arts, and as a
-remedial agency in medicine.
-
-77. Q. In addition to the well known substances sodium and oxygen, what
-element does borax contain? A. A special and peculiar element, called
-boron.
-
-78. Q. What are two of the most important sources of borax? A. Borax
-Lake, in California, and the borax lagos in Tuscany.
-
-79. Q. What element constitutes about eighty per cent. of our atmospheric
-air? A. Nitrogen.
-
-80. Q. As a simple and uncombined substance, by what is nitrogen
-characterized? A. By extreme inactivity. It does not burn; it does not
-support combustion; it can not be made to enter into chemical union with
-other substances, except by specially devised and circuitous processes.
-
-81. Q. Of what is nitrogen a constituent? A. Of a very large number of
-compounds, which are themselves often characterized by a high degree of
-activity.
-
-82. Q. What are two important compounds of nitrogen? A. Ammonia gas and
-nitric acid.
-
-83. Q. In addition to oxygen and nitrogen what are some of the other
-substances always present in atmospheric air? A. Vapor of water, carbon
-di-oxide, and ammonia gas; minute quantities of a vast multitude of other
-gaseous substances; and it is likewise charged most of the time with
-still more minute quantities of solid dust materials of various kinds.
-
-84. Q. To what do the principal explosives owe their activity to a very
-large degree? A. To the presence of nitrogen in them.
-
-85. Q. What are the four explosives of chief importance? A. Gunpowder,
-the fulminates, gun cotton, and nitro-glycerine.
-
-86. Q. What are the three principal constituents of gunpowder? A.
-Potassic nitrate, charcoal, and sulphur.
-
-87. Q. Why is phosphorus a most interesting chemical element? A. Because
-of its exceptional chemical properties, the very important part it plays
-in the chemistry of animal and vegetable life, and its employment in the
-friction match.
-
-88. Q. In what country is the manufacture of friction matches carried on
-to a very large extent? A. In Sweden; and that country, it is now stated,
-produces about seventy-five per cent. of all the matches made in the
-world.
-
-89. Q. What is probably the most familiar and representative form of
-carbon? A. That known as charcoal.
-
-90. Q. How is lamp-black produced? A. It is a product of the imperfect
-combustion of substances like oil, tar, resin, and the like, which are
-very rich in carbon.
-
-91. Q. What are two well known compounds of carbon? A. Anthracite coal
-and bituminous coal.
-
-92. Q. Of what origin do both of these combustibles, when carefully
-studied, show distinct evidences? A. Of their vegetable origin.
-
-93. Q. What is the diamond? A. It is nearly pure carbon, crystallized.
-
-94. Q. What are some of the other natural forms in which carbon is found
-in large quantities? A. In petroleum, marble, and limestone.
-
-95. Q. When combined with oxygen alone, what two compounds only does
-carbon form? A. Carbon mon-oxide and carbon di-oxide.
-
-96. Q. What is the material on which the manufacture of illuminating gas
-is based? A. Bituminous coal.
-
-97. Q. In the distillation of coal for the manufacture of gas, what three
-distinct classes of substances are produced? A. Solids, which are left
-in the retorts; liquids, which are condensed in the various coolers; and
-gases, which pass on to the gas holder.
-
-98. Q. What coloring matters are obtained from the liquids produced by
-these processes? A. Alzorine, affording Turkey red and other colors, and
-the well known analine colors.
-
-99. Q. To what quantity does silicon exist in our globe? A. In a quantity
-equal to about one fourth its entire weight, including its atmospheres
-and its oceans.
-
-100. Q. What is the principal earthy matter of our planet? A. The
-compound of silicon and oxygen, existing either alone in the form of
-sand, quartz crystal, and similar minerals, or else in combination with
-other well known abundant earth materials, such as oxides of calcium,
-magnesium, and aluminum.
-
-
-
-
-EDITOR’S OUTLOOK.
-
-
-PUBLIC MEN IN LITERATURE.
-
-Until recently Americans have had good grounds for complaining that
-their public servants were almost a minus quantity in literature. The
-complaint had an especially sharp edge in view of the fact that at an
-earlier period our Washington, Jefferson, Hamilton, Adams, and others,
-had been among the foremost writers of the country; and it was still
-further aggravated by the contrast we seemed to present to France,
-England, and Germany, where a public man is usually also a literary man.
-The rule in France is that an eminent politician is an author, and the
-most distinguished statesmen and princes have written books. Even Louis
-Napoleon wrote a book on Cæsar, and one of the best accounts of our late
-war is the stately volumes of Count de Paris. In England, the rule is the
-same. The queen herself takes pride in the books she has produced. John
-Bright is almost alone in having no literary tastes, but his speeches
-will long survive in the volumes they will fill. Disraeli and Gladstone,
-Bulwer and Macaulay, Fawcett and Dilke, are only a few contemporary names
-in along list of distinguished statesmen who have excelled as writers
-for periodicals and as producers of books. In this country, from about
-1830 to 1880, our public men wrote little. Benton’s “Thirty Years,”
-Webster’s speeches, and Sumner’s orations, and some other less famous
-works, do indeed redeem the half century; but when we have said all that
-can be said in praise of exceptions, the rule seems to have been that an
-American politician was not a writer, and a phrase of contempt attributed
-to an eminent Senator expresses the feelings of our politicians against
-“them literary fellers” in a form which is full of a significance from
-which we prefer to turn away our ears. Too many of our public men have
-despised literature, and justified literature in returning the sentiment
-with interest.
-
-We are entering upon a happier period. The American statesman is
-returning to authorship. It is a wholesome change. Mr. Blaine’s history
-will occur to many readers as an illustration. It is hardly less
-noteworthy that his late associate on the Republican ticket has written
-for THE CHAUTAUQUAN able papers on a public question which is a living
-issue. A very long list might be made of public men who are in good
-fame as writers. The witty S. S. Cox will at once occur to all our
-memories, and another eminent Democrat is said to be writing a history
-of his times. General Grant finds relief from the terrible strain of his
-financial misfortunes in writing the history of his battles. We have
-employed some of our most gifted authors as diplomats; as, for example,
-Motley, the historian, James Russell Lowell, the poet and literary
-critic, and George P. Marsh, the man of universal knowledge; but it may,
-probably will, come to pass that some of their stamp will more and more
-appear in our public life at home. We have kept poets, philosophers, and
-novelists alive by giving them clerkships in Custom Houses. Nathaniel
-Hawthorne, Howells, “Ik Marvel” (Donald G. Mitchell), and others, rose
-to the dignity of consulships. Francis Lieber was tolerated in a Custom
-House clerkship in New York. We are probably coming to the time when such
-men may be members of Congress and shape the legislation of the country.
-Literary men are usually the most practical of men; that they are
-dreamers of impossibilities is the strangest of our popular delusions. A
-few exceptions have been carelessly considered as making the rule for the
-class. The sort of practicality—tempered by philosophy—which the literary
-man brings to affairs is what our public life most needs. All clean
-knowledge is a light where it abides, and the value of unclean knowledge
-(such as some practical politicians boast themselves in), is a forlorn
-minus quantity.
-
-The advantages to be anticipated from the increase of the literary spirit
-in our public men are too numerous to be here set forth in detail. A
-few suggestions must suffice for our present purpose. In the first
-place, public men are experts, and have therefore valuable knowledge to
-impart. We are all well aware that General Grant knows important things
-about his battles which other men do not know. It is equally true that
-any clerk in a department, or any member of Congress has an intimate
-acquaintance with many concernments of considerable moment. A man who has
-served ten years in Congress could instruct and please us all if he had
-the art of describing the methods of law making. It is not a pleasant
-fact that the writing of a book on “Congressional Government,” which
-is at once philosophical and entertaining, should have been left to a
-college professor; nor is it pleasant to feel that the author of this
-book, Professor Woodrow Wilson, is probably the last man whom Baltimore
-will think of sending to Congress. The men who see the meaning of
-things and connect them with principles, and align them with historical
-precedents, are needed in Congress to give it dignity and character. In
-short, we ought to send our best men to Congress, and we are approaching
-an era when “best men” will generally be possessed of literary tastes
-and habits. Our public life is rich in materials for useful books and
-entertaining novels. Most of these materials lie neglected because we
-send inferior men to our public work. Another distinct advantage will be
-found in the preservation of many bright men whom we send to Congress
-from rusting out of intellectual brightness and becoming mere political
-workers. The majority of men sent to Congress are college men; they have
-had some literary tastes and habits. They have often been journalists.
-The public opinion which hedges them in converts them into office hunters
-and office peddlers, and consumes their lives in routine and political
-anxiety, to the detriment of all generous and aspiring manhood. The man
-whose brain work, in periodicals and books, will secure his position
-before his constituents, is a man saved.
-
-The change which is going on is mainly the work of the enterprising
-managers of periodicals. Most good literary work in our day first
-reaches the public in periodicals. Much excellent work is found only in
-periodicals. The editors have discovered that there is valuable matter
-to be had by encouraging public men to write. Our articles by General
-Logan, for example, contain a view of a great question which is best
-seen in all its aspects by a public man who has seen all sides of it in
-a Congressional committee. Many similar articles have in recent years
-appeared in literary periodicals. An invitation to present his views to
-the public through such a periodical as THE CHAUTAUQUAN is a challenge
-to candor and a stimulus to thoroughness. The work done educates the
-statesman while it informs the people. It creates an intelligent sympathy
-between public servants and those whom they serve. It carries on that
-form of education in which light and wisdom are put into the first place,
-while turgid bombast and self-seeking buncombe are rendered odious to the
-people whom they have deceived.
-
-
-THE DECLINE OF SPIRITUALITY IN THE CHURCH.
-
-Among the unpleasant reflections which the reading of Bishop Hurst’s
-“History of the Reformation” will be apt to awaken in many minds is
-that there has been a great decline in the spirituality of the church.
-In those days religious earnestness was at its maximum; we seem to be
-passing through a period when it is at a minimum. How far the seeming is
-accurate, it may not be easy to determine; but appearances are against
-the modern church. All our religious services lack in spirituality.
-The lack is in the sermon, the song, the prayer. Family religion has
-_apparently_ little of the intense power of the former days. The
-conversation of Christians is less frequently on religious subjects.
-We are carefully weeding out of familiar speech the old references to
-Providence, Death and Judgment. We fall into silence when one among us
-introduces such themes. Religious feeling and expression have disappeared
-_from the surface_ of our life in a most astonishing way. We are not
-made, the unconverted are not made, to feel the force and warmth of
-religious conviction. The sermons are logical, literary and cold; if
-there be warmth, it seems to be rather intellectual than religious. The
-more able religious editors complain that they can not get written for
-them articles which are at once readable and spiritual; while other
-editors condemn any articles of that type as savoring of a “dreary
-religiosity;” and others say that the expression of religious experience
-has “hopelessly gone into the keeping of cranks and weak-headed and
-morally-unsound persons.” One man says: “I can imagine nothing sweeter
-to hear than religious experience ought to be; but when I listen to it
-I hear either out-worn phrases or senseless fanaticism; and these have
-been driven from the respectable churches and are monopolized by ignorant
-egotists in the out-of-the-way corners of the country.”
-
-A partial explanation of the facts lies in the statement just quoted. But
-it is very partial. Why should fanatical zeal kill genuine earnestness?
-If we think and feel earnestly in religion, why do we not talk of what
-is burning in our hearts, as the fathers did, in language of our own?
-A round of set phrases does denote vacancy of spirit, but the earnest
-spirit is not banished from our heart by the formalism of another’s
-speech. It may be pleaded for us that we are in a transition state;
-that the Reformation did develop a form of earnestness, and that our
-earnestness can not work in that harness and is reverently silent because
-appropriate speech is wanting. But why do not hundreds of ministers
-who have all gifts of intellect utter spiritual thought and emotion?
-Why are they forever dealing rather with opinions than facts of the
-spiritual life? We ask such questions in no censorious spirit; they
-are pressed home to many anxious hearts, and the wonder grows whether
-modern Christianity is tongueless respecting its experience because it
-is backslidden and even skeptical. We could frame, as has often been
-done, explanations; but we still doubt whether they really explain. The
-spiritual activity is of all inner motions the one least likely to lose
-all power to express itself.
-
-It is true that a vast body of believers have the spirit of giving
-and of work. They make noble offerings, they teach the children in
-Sunday-schools, they make sacrifices of time and ease and money to carry
-on churches. In these things no former generation had so glorious a
-record. It is probably true that this vast body of believers contains
-as large a proportion as any Reformation body of persons who would die
-for their faith. It can not be said of such a body of persons that faith
-is not in it. Making all allowances for conventionality and religious
-fashion, there remains proof enough that the modern church believes. Nor
-can we doubt its spiritual poverty. It is poor in the divine life. This
-state of things can not last. We are in a condition where faith must fail
-if love does not come to the rescue. The greatest of all revivals may
-be at the door. The church wants nothing but vital godliness—experience
-of divine things. It has so much of zeal, benevolence, self-sacrifice,
-philanthropy, that we can not so much as hint at despair. Is it possible
-that some of our philanthropies are too consuming and exhaust us? If we
-will stop to think and take account of ourselves, we shall probably find
-that we lack spirituality because we do not want it. That discovery may
-be the one thing needed to arouse us to strenuous spiritual endeavor.
-
-
-THE SHAKSPEREAN ANNIVERSARY.
-
-The fourth century of Shakspere will be remembered either as the century
-of Shaksperean skepticism or as the one in which the play-actor was
-stripped of Bacon’s clothes and reduced to his proper condition of
-play-actor. That we can so much as entertain this latter thought proves
-that the skepticism has made considerable progress. We do not believe
-that Bacon wrote the Shaksperean plays; but we are obliged to pay to
-those who do believe it such respect as is paid to Strauss with his
-theory that Jesus is a mythical person. Another Shaksperean year is
-completed on the 23d of April, and its most significant event is an
-increase of skeptics. We are doubtless to have a thorough sifting of the
-facts and a large debate. No lover of the great dramas need regret the
-discussion. It will provoke the study of them and enlarge their fame.
-They are the great dramas of the world. No others equal them in breadth
-and fervor. Whatever stimulates the study of them must be useful to the
-higher forms of literature. One way of looking at the subject of the
-authorship of these plays is to regard the question as of no absolute
-importance. The plays are what they are, whoever wrote them; just as the
-Homeric poetry does not lose a line through the Homeric skepticism. It
-is an audacious thing to attack Shakspere as a wearer of another man’s
-clothes, after three centuries of his renown. He lived in the public eye.
-All London knew him. Some envied and sneered, but none doubted him until
-some three hundred years after his birth; if there were doubts they were
-so feeble that nothing came of them. Is it the function of the press and
-the reporter—making great and small seem alike—which has made Shaksperean
-skepticism almost respectable, if not entirely so? Whatever be the cause,
-“the news” spreads that Bacon wrote our Shaksperean works, and the debate
-is growing into bulk, if not into a serious concernment. We are not a bit
-touched with the skepticism; it seems to us unreasonable, beyond ordinary
-measure in unreason; and yet we must recognize the growth of the new
-theory of the authorship of our glorious drama.
-
-The change next to the foregoing in importance which marks the fourth
-Shaksperean century is the new way in which the great mass of his
-admirers come to know and enjoy him. He has passed from the stage to the
-study, the parlor, the school-room. He is acted a little; he is read
-a great deal. In his first and second centuries he was known almost
-exclusively through the stage; in his third, the stage and the book
-divided about equally the office of making him known; in the fourth,
-Shaksperean acting has become insignificant in comparison with the
-general reading and teaching of Shakspere. His works are coming to be
-studied in all high schools, academies and colleges. Shakspere is in
-nearly all libraries, be they large or small. One may almost say that he
-is at home in nearly every house where English is read. There is hardly
-a town in the country which does not boast at least one well-established
-“Shakspere Club.” Year after year the members meet weekly to read and
-talk over the merits of the one writer who never tires them. The scholars
-of all lands know him in the printed page; all the great tongues have
-books of criticism in which he occupies a conspicuous place. One view
-of this transition from the stage to the study and the school is that
-Shakspere was always too large for the theater. It was in the largest
-sense impossible to act his plays. All acting narrowed and misrepresented
-him. The larger field of the book is his proper home. He gains by the
-liberty and healthfulness of the modern environment. The two changes
-which we note will bear on each other. Too many persons are coming to
-know what and how Shakspere wrote to permit any star-chamber of criticism
-to settle the authorship of these plays in darkness and secrecy; the
-power to form a judgment is being created in the minds of the great jury
-whose verdict will probably kill off the Shaksperean skepticism. We
-do not believe it will survive to 1964, the end of Shakspere’s fourth
-century.
-
-
-ART IN THE UNITED STATES.
-
-If it is _possible_ for this nation to become artistic in tastes and
-habits, we shall not fail. There is no branch of special education more
-enthusiastically advocated and patronized. Of course the end in view will
-require more advocacy and more patronage—a great deal more—but we are
-doing so much that the necessary more will doubtless be done. It should
-be remembered too, that if blood tells in the matter of art culture we
-have no lack of blood drawn from the artistic nations. Flemings, Germans,
-Italians, Spaniards, and even Greeks, come to New York in large numbers;
-and if Anglo-Saxon blood were condemned as unartistic by inevitable
-natural incapacity, we should still be able to produce great artists in
-abundance—if method, zeal, and patronage could do this thing. We will not
-prophesy; let us wait and see. It is understood, of course, that much,
-perhaps most of our art, is industrial. We need to educate a large corps
-of designers for useful goods, which are also ornamental; and this type
-of artist is so well rewarded when he displays inventive faculty that we
-are likely to surpass all other peoples in this department of work. It
-is not easy to separate completely in our thinking this branch of art
-from that which aims only at artistic pleasure. A design for goods may
-be perfect art, and satisfy all the requirements of the æsthetic sense.
-But it is obvious that decorative art is very close to industrial art in
-nature and purpose. And the purpose has always been condemned by high
-art, for it looks straight at the sale of the goods at good prices.
-
-It is complained every year in New York, when the art exhibitions come
-on for criticism, that the pecuniary motive for work, and the avidity of
-artists for good sales, depress the imagination of the lovers of good
-work. In substance, then, our trouble as to art—that we are a commercial
-race—seems to get into the schools and infect their atmosphere. The evil
-is not that success is rewarded; but that success is not possible to an
-artist who thinks always of his reward. Art, like religion, requires
-a spirit of self-renunciation. Success in art is not possible to one
-who consumes his energy in thinking about the sale of his pictures. To
-become rich by art one must be first willing to starve to death in the
-service of art truth. We are not demanding such sacrifices; we are only
-suggesting that without the spirit of them the pure art of this country
-will not attain the eminence which our enthusiasm seeks to reach.
-
-“Sordid treatment” of themes is inevitable in the sordid atmosphere
-which, we are told, is breathed in all our circles of art. Besides,
-the museums are founded by good natured people who are poor guides and
-directors and yet must control, because they are patrons. One art journal
-declares that enough energy has in the last five years been expended in
-behalf of art to have given it a firm establishment. It adds that most
-of this energy has been wasted. Art students and art teachers and art
-institutions and publications multiply, but they do not give us high
-art. We read this complaint and recall the story of the oil-king in
-western Pennsylvania who ordered the teacher of his daughter to “buy her
-a capacity, without regard to expense.” If art comes to us to stay it
-will come by a slow change of thought, feeling, and aspiration. It is
-probable that this change has begun; let us hope that it will ripen to a
-gracious and mellowed maturity. The art-life will find ample room in our
-hospitable civilization, if it can acquire the courage to live its own
-life and escape being a parasite on the robust body of our commercial
-life.
-
-
-
-
-EDITOR’S NOTE-BOOK.
-
-
-The force of the “Chautauqua Idea” is not abating; on the contrary it
-works its way into new homes and distant fields—for instance, we have the
-C. L. S. C. Class of 1888, which commenced to form last July, and now
-numbers about 20,000 members. The “Florida Chautauqua,” in Florida, is a
-new plant, and now our C. L. S. C. friends in Canada are raising a fund
-of $50,000 with which to purchase and furnish grounds near Niagara Falls,
-for an Assembly after the Chautauqua fashion.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Many prominent Chautauqua workers are at the Florida Chautauqua now in
-session at Lake de Funiak. Among them are the Rev. Frank Russell, Mrs. G.
-R. Alden (Pansy), the Rev. A. A. Wright, Dean of the Chautauqua School of
-Theology, Prof. W. D. Bridge, Prof. W. F. Sherwin, Mrs. Juvia C. Hull,
-the Rev. S. G. Smith, D.D., the Meigs-Underhill Combination, Prof. C.
-E. Bolton, Mrs. Emily Huntington Miller, Dr. O. P. Fitzgerald, Prof.
-R. L. Cumnock, Wallace Bruce, Hon. John N. Stearns, Col. G. W. Bain,
-Mrs. Emma P. Ewing, Hon. Lewis Miller, etc. Many prominent lecturers,
-singers and readers as yet not known publicly at Chautauqua, are at this
-Southern Chautauqua, or on the program for the closing week. Dr. Gillet,
-in preparing the royal feast of four weeks’ continuance, has subsidized
-the country generally for his purposes, and all prominent denominations
-are tributary thereto. Nearly or quite all the departments (save the C.
-S. L.), known at Chautauqua, are in successful operation. The Assembly
-already takes high rank in design and desire, and professors, lecturers,
-readers, singers, helpers, are among the very best. No Assembly in the
-land starts off with a more brilliant outlook, or with such strong
-financial backing.
-
- * * * * *
-
-In our December issue we called attention to the effort being made to
-establish an Assembly in Canada, at Niagara. The plan is developing
-very satisfactorily. The proposition involves the acquirement from
-the Dominion Government of the piece of land known as Paradise Grove,
-containing about eighty acres, situated upon the bank of the Niagara
-River just outside the town of Niagara. The company which holds the lease
-has signified its willingness to consent to a transfer. Toronto is also
-thoroughly aroused to the importance of the movement, so much so that at
-a very largely attended public meeting called in February to discuss the
-matter the citizens pledged themselves almost unanimously to give a bonus
-of ten thousand dollars to the company. In addition to this promises of
-stock subscriptions have been made of at least as much more. It is easy
-to see that, if carried out, this project will prove a great boon to the
-old town. Already a large number of persons on both sides of the line
-have signified their intention to erect cottages and make it their summer
-home.
-
- * * * * *
-
-The Chautauqua Circle has just added a new and important branch to the
-many into which it is already divided. This is an art “circle,” to be
-called the Chautauqua Society of Fine Arts, in which it is proposed to
-give lessons in drawing and painting by correspondence. Every branch of
-art will be taught, from elementary drawing to oil-painting. The plan is
-a thoroughly practical one, and will be carried out in the best interests
-of the fine arts. Mr. Frank Fowler has been appointed director, and
-Messrs. R. Swain Gifford, Thomas Moran and Will H. Low will act as a
-committee of award. The course of study will extend over two years, at
-the end of which time diplomas will be given and prizes awarded for the
-best work in the different classes. The membership fee is fifty cents a
-year. Application for circulars and further information should be made to
-Miss K. F. Kimball, Plainfield, N. J.
-
- * * * * *
-
-With the fall of Khartoum, the death of General Gordon, the Irish
-dynamiteurs and their explosions in London, together with the land
-troubles in Ireland, a growing dissatisfaction with the Gladstone
-ministry, and the threatening aspect of Russia, England has enough of
-perplexing questions on hand to keep her Queen, Ministry and Parliament
-employed for an indefinite period of time. To be an English politician
-to-day is to have unrivaled opportunities for strong and vigorous action.
-Apropos of the Soudan trouble our readers will find the article by Dr.
-Wheeler, on England and Islam, in this impression, both spirited and
-profitable reading.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Roller skating is now claiming the attention of, first, physicians, who
-seem to be divided in their verdict as to the injurious physical effects
-of the exercise; second, of clergymen and laymen in the churches, who
-object to the “rink” on account of the associations, quite as much as
-the doctors do to the skating; third, of economists. In a railroad car
-bound west recently, we overheard a conversation between two cattle
-drovers on the “Roller Rink,” one of whom held up a paper named the
-_Rink and Roller_, the organ of the new sport. These two men discussed
-the financial side of “roller skating,” one insisting thus: “A boy will
-chop wood for seventy-five cents a day, or work at the bench for that
-amount, and then spend fifty cents in the evening for himself and girl
-to attend the rink; they keep it up; what’s the good; it is a craze.”
-Rinks are being built in all our towns and cities, but it will come to an
-end like every craze. Some will be injured physically—perhaps some will
-date a moral lapse to an unfortunate acquaintance made in the promiscuous
-company; while all who go will spend their money. _What is the profit?_
-
- * * * * *
-
-The venerable Mr. George Bancroft, having passed his eightieth birthday,
-still preserves his physical vigor and looks like one of the patriarchs
-of Washington. His mind is active and retains its strength, though now
-enjoying a much needed respite from literary work. Mr. Bancroft has
-finished his “History of the United States,” which has been a long and
-laborious task. Some new historian must appear, who can live in the midst
-of political changes, and like this great man, preserve an impartial
-judgment, as a historian, to continue Bancroft’s standard history of the
-United States.
-
- * * * * *
-
-The closing act of President Arthur’s term of office was one of simple
-justice to a worthy man. The following note explains it all:
-
- TO THE SENATE OF THE UNITED STATES—I nominate Ulysses S. Grant,
- formerly General Commanding the armies of the United States, to
- be General on the retired list of the army, with full pay of such
- rank.
-
- CHESTER A. ARTHUR.
-
- Executive Mansion, March 4, 1885.
-
-Congress had passed an act which made it possible that General Grant
-could be placed on the retired list. The Senate by a unanimous vote
-confirmed the President’s nomination.
-
- * * * * *
-
-The number of books and periodicals supported on a given subject, is
-a good sign of its interest to the public. Following this indication
-we conclude that the public interest in sports and amusements is fully
-double what it was a year ago. A tabulated statement of the publications
-of 1884, compared with the books issued in 1883, gives the works on
-sports in the two years as twenty-two in 1883 to fifty-one in 1884. This
-suggestive comparison is but one of many signs that we are awakening to
-the absolute necessity of healthful exercise, if we would lead useful
-lives ourselves, and would propagate a sturdy race.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Every summer many ladies and gentlemen engaged in educational work make
-a vacation tour to the Old World. Those having such intentions for the
-coming summer will perhaps accept a few words of advice. In order to
-economize your time and derive the full benefit of your trip abroad, the
-best thing to be done is to join a party, the management of which is
-in the hands of an experienced traveler. The question naturally arises,
-Where is there a party formed in which we will find most advantages for
-the money expended? We do not hesitate in saying that we can recommend no
-better than Professor de Potter’s parties, organized each year in Albany,
-New York, and which have the reputation of being ably conducted.
-
- * * * * *
-
-There is going on in the newspapers just now a very suggestive contest
-over the spelling of a word. Shall it be dynami_teur_ or _ter_? Both
-forms have reliable followings, though no reasons have been advanced for
-either termination. The word is a good example of several interesting
-features of word-making. It illustrates how each new development in
-history requires a vocabulary, and how the vocabulary is formed from the
-facts involved. Further, the difference in the termination shows how
-each word must have its period of instability before usage selects the
-form which shall be permanent. This Irish agitation has, by the way,
-introduced several new words into the language.
-
- * * * * *
-
-We Americans believe very firmly in ourselves. But sometimes we can not
-help wondering if this vigorous, athletic government of ours, and these
-growing institutions, seem to others a success. It will be gratifying to
-read Mr. Matthew Arnold’s opinion of us: “A people homogeneous, a people
-which had to constitute itself in a modern age, an epoch of expansion,
-and which has given to itself institutions entirely fitted for such an
-age and epoch, and which suit it perfectly—a people not in danger of war
-from without, not in danger of revolution from within—such is the people
-of the United States. The political and social problem we must surely
-allow that they solve successfully.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-Last year women were for the first time admitted to the Oxford University
-examinations. Since they have been allowed to hear certain college
-lectures, and are now finally admitted to the classes. It is a surprising
-concession, but it is the course of the future. Women in England have
-proven conclusively their ability to cope with university studies.
-They have zealously and quietly improved each added liberty. This last
-recognition comes as the inevitable effect of a law which works through
-all human affairs, viz.: a demand creates a supply.
-
- * * * * *
-
-President Arthur closed his term of service with the confidence and
-respect of the American people. He performed the difficult task of
-filling the highest office in the government with prudence and ability,
-when, in fact, he was not the choice of the people for the place, but it
-fell to his lot in the order of a mysterious providence. Among the Vice
-Presidents who have succeeded to the presidency Chester A. Arthur will
-be honored in history as a wise statesman, faithful to the people whom
-he served. President Cleveland’s administration is the dawn of a new
-political era in the country, but we believe that he will make a safe
-President.
-
- * * * * *
-
-There has been recently organized in New York State a State Forestry
-Association. President White, of Cornell University, has accepted the
-presidency. The society proposes to make a vigorous effort to arouse the
-people to the necessity of laws which shall preserve their forests from
-the lawless destruction which has robbed thousands upon thousands of
-acres in the Adirondacks of their wealth of timber. Such a society is,
-without doubt, the only means by which a proper sentiment can be aroused.
-The cause of the wholesale depredations has been lack of thought. As one
-of the lumbermen put it: “It all comes to this—it was because there was
-nobody to think about it, or do anything about it. We were all busy, and
-all to blame. But I could do nothing alone, and my neighbor could do
-nothing alone, and there was nobody to set us to work together on a plan
-to have things better; nobody to represent the common object. Why did not
-you come along to talk to us about it years and years ago?”
-
- * * * * *
-
-A look through a railroad guide shows a list of names which are a sad
-criticism on our refinement. Think of going down to posterity as born in
-such a place as You Bet, Red Hot, Fair Play, Muddy Creek, Looking Glass,
-Lone Star, or Saw Tooth. These undignified, ill-sounding names are very
-common, and in the new portion of the country it seems to be a matter
-of pride to invent absurd names. A gentleman who had the misfortune to
-reside in a town which bore one of these unmelodious names recently
-said to us: “I am actually ashamed to register myself when traveling,
-as from ‘Goose Creek,’ and for years I have had my mail sent to a town
-three miles away rather than endure the sight of that odious name on my
-letters.” There are ways of changing these names, and in the interest of
-good taste it should be done.
-
- * * * * *
-
-In spite of the difficulties in his way, the Rev. Sheldon Jackson has
-succeeded in getting into his Industrial Training School for Indian Boys
-and Girls at Sitka, Alaska. Not the least of these difficulties has been
-getting lumber for the building. Here is the story as he writes us:
-“Since coming here last August, I sent a crew of three Indians in a canoe
-a round trip of 400 miles along the coast, with a letter to a saw mill.
-The trees were felled, the logs were sawed up, a schooner chartered to
-bring the lumber, and in due time 100,000 feet of lumber was rafted from
-the schooner on the beach, through the surf, carried on men’s shoulders
-to the building site, a three story building 130x50 feet in size erected,
-and so far completed that we were able to move into it the first week
-in January. I have also in the same time organized a church of seventy
-members, of whom sixty are natives, received on confession of faith and
-baptism. These converts are largely the fruit of the work of Mr. Austin,
-one of our teachers.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-The Rev. H. M. Bacon, D.D., pastor of the Central Congregational Church,
-Toledo, Ohio, in a recent article on “Our English Tongue,” in which he
-quotes Richard Grant White’s statement in THE CHAUTAUQUAN for December,
-that “This modern English, which is the youngest, is also the greatest
-language ever spoken,” mentions several valuable confirmations of this
-opinion. Among them is the tribute of Jacob Grimm, the learned German
-lexicographer, who says: “In wealth, good sense, and closeness of
-structure, no other language at this day spoken, not even our German,
-deserves to be compared to it” (the English). He also calls attention
-to similar opinions expressed by the late Baron Humboldt, and by Guizot,
-and recalls the fact that once when the Academy of Berlin offered a prize
-for the best essay on a comparison of fourteen of the ancient and modern
-tongues, the prize was awarded to a writer who had given the first place
-to the English.
-
- * * * * *
-
-On the 23d of February the Washington Monument was formally dedicated at
-Washington, D. C. Thirty-six years have elapsed since its corner stone
-was laid. Of the Senate which attended the ceremonies on that occasion
-but nine are still living, and since that date the most trying years of
-our national life have been passed. Though the delays in completing the
-work have been annoying, now that it is complete, it is gratifying to
-know that the monument is in every way worthy of its object. Indeed, we
-have no hesitancy in pronouncing it the most beautiful structure in the
-nation’s capital. An obelisk of light gray stone, at a distance it looks
-like a clearly defined cloud lying against the sky. Its great height (555
-feet) is not realized, so perfect is the proportion. The location of the
-monument has been criticised. It stands on a Government reservation,
-adjacent to the Potomac River, and directly facing the Capitol. The land
-is low, and many believe it was a serious mistake not to have placed the
-obelisk on Capitol Hill. We can not agree with them. The advantage of
-having the monument on public grounds, where the view of the entire shaft
-will never be obstructed, is much greater than a higher location with an
-obstructed view would have been. Then, too, this site was one approved
-by Washington himself for a monument which, in 1783, the Continental
-Congress voted to be erected to him. Of course “going to the top” is,
-and will be, one of the chief features of sight seeing in Washington.
-Every half hour the steam elevator in the monument carries a crowded
-load to the top, allowing them ten minutes for looking around before the
-descent. The stairway is not yet open to the public, and even if it were
-most people would hesitate before undertaking to mount its 900 steps. The
-interior of the shaft is lighted by incandescent electric lights. Not the
-least interesting feature of the monument is the number of marble tablets
-presented by different states and institutions, and which are being
-inserted in the inside walls. Several of these have considerable artistic
-and historic value.
-
-
-
-
-C. L. S. C. NOTES ON REQUIRED READINGS FOR APRIL.
-
-
-SHORT HISTORY OF THE REFORMATION.
-
-There is so much reading on the Reformation, and it is so well known and
-easily accessible that it seems almost unnecessary to give a list of
-supplementary readings. But among so many books it is hard to choose, so
-we append the names of a few, thinking we may perhaps help some to decide
-what to read. In order to enjoy this little “History of the Reformation”
-in the required course, one ought to read many larger ones. “History
-of the Reformation.” By G. P. Fisher. $3.00; D’Aubigne’s “History of
-the Reformation;” Burnet’s “Reformation in England;” “History of the
-Christian Church.” By W. W. Blackburn. $2.50; Motley’s “Rise of the Dutch
-Republic.” $6.00; “Protestantism.” By De Quincy. “Short Studies.” By J.
-A. Froude. “History of the Rise of the Huguenots.” By Henry M. Baird.
-$3.50; “John Knox.” By Thomas McCrie. $2.00; “Martin Luther and his
-Work.” By J. H. Treadwell. $1.00; “The Massacre of St. Bartholomew.” By
-Henry White. $1.75; “Schönberg-Cotta Family.” By Mrs. Charles. $1.00;
-“The Martyrs of Spain.” By Mrs. Charles. $1.00; “Savonarola.” By W.
-R. Clarke. $1.50; “Romola.” By George Eliot. (Treats of the times of
-Savonarola); “Christians and Moors of Spain.” By Miss Yonge. $1.25.
-
-P. 3.—“Council of Constance.” A council of the Roman Catholic Church,
-opened in 1414, and closed in 1418. In its earlier sessions the doctrines
-of Wycliffe were examined and condemned. John Huss was also condemned and
-executed, as was Jerome, of Prague. The council was called to consider
-measures to remedy the division arising in the church from the long
-residence of the popes at Avignon, and the consequent desire on the part
-of the French for a national church. See page 89 in the “Short History.”
-
-“Julian, the Apostate.” (331-363.) A Roman emperor, the nephew of
-Constantine the Great. Immediately upon his accession he openly avowed
-his abandonment of Christianity, but he published an edict which granted
-perfect liberty to all sects and all religions. He, however, excluded
-Christians from civil and military offices, and compelled them to
-contribute toward sustaining pagan temples. He permitted the Jews to
-rebuild their temple at Jerusalem, and published a large volume against
-Christianity.
-
-P. 4.—“Medici,” māˈde-che. A distinguished Florentine family appearing in
-history since the close of the thirteenth century.
-
-P. 5.—“d’Ailly,” dāˈye; “John Chartier Gerson,” shär-te-ā zhair-soⁿᵍ.
-
-P. 6.—“Nicholas Clémanges,” clā-manj; “Gallican Church.” The name given
-to the Catholic Church in France.
-
-“Father Hyacinthe.” Charles Loyson, a French pulpit orator, born in
-1827. At the age of twenty-two he was ordained a priest. He was
-highly educated. Suspicions as to his doctrines were awakened, and he
-was summoned to appear before the pope, but cleared himself. Shortly
-after some speeches of his gave offense, and he was ordered to change
-his manner or be quiet, but he paid no heed. He was soon forbidden to
-preach, and threatened with excommunication. In 1869 he visited America,
-where he was warmly welcomed by many Protestants, but he declared he
-had no intention of leaving the Catholic Church. He protested against
-the doctrine of the pope’s infallibility, and defended the right of the
-clergy to marry. In 1870, on his return to France, the pope relieved him
-of his monastic vows, and he became a secular priest. In 1872 he was
-married to an American lady. He is now pastor of a church in Paris, a
-sort of independent Catholic church.
-
-P. 7.—“Huguenots,” hūˈgē-nots. The name applied to the French Reformers.
-Its origin is uncertain, some asserting that it was derived from one of
-the gates of the city of Tours, named Hugons, where the Protestants held
-their first assemblies. Others say it came from the name of their first
-leader, Hugues.
-
-P. 8.—“Dominican Order.” An order founded by St. Dominic, in 1216; “John
-Ruysbroek,” roisˈbrek.
-
-P. 12.—“Wittenberg,” vitˈten-bairg. A town in Prussia, in which there
-is an immense bronze statue of Luther, and not far from it one of
-Melancthon. It is the seat of a great university.
-
-“St. Victor.” A monastery in Paris.
-
-P. 13.—“Origen.” (185-253.) One of the fathers of the church, noted for
-his unwearied diligence and life of self-denial. For two years, during
-the persecution under Maximin, he lay concealed in a friend’s house, and
-here wrote his “Hexapla.” In the Decian persecution he was imprisoned and
-subjected to extreme torture. Many of his valuable writings have been
-lost.
-
-“Alexandrian school.” A name applied to the philosophers of Alexandria in
-the second century. It aimed to harmonize all philosophy and all religion.
-
-P. 14.—“Thomas à Kempis. (1379-1471.) A German writer, a prior in the
-monastery of Mount St. Agnes.
-
-“Kaisersheim,” kīˈzers-hīmeˌ; “Rheinfeld,” rīneˈfelt; “Pfaffenheim,”
-päfˈfen-hime.
-
-P. 17.—“Boccaccio,” bok-katˈcho. (1313-1375.) An Italian novelist, and
-friend of Petrarch; “Chrysoloras,” kris-o-loˈras.
-
-P. 18.—“Pa-læ-olˈo-gus;” “Bes-sāˈri-on.”
-
-P. 19.—“Argyropylus,” ar-ghe-ropˈoo-los; “Lasˈca-ris;” “Chalkondylas,”
-kal-konˈde-las; “Gemistus Pletho,” je-misˈtus pleˈtho; “Moschopylus,”
-mos-kopˈy-lus; “Gasperinus,” gäs-pä-reeˈnus; “Aurispa,” ow-rēsˈpä;
-“Poggius,” pojˈus; “Perothes,” perˈō-tēs; “Politianus,” po-lishˈā-nus.
-
-P. 20.—“Hierarch.” One who rules or has authority in sacred things.
-
-P. 21.—“Vulgate Bible.” One of the oldest Latin versions of the
-Scriptures. So called from its common use in the church. The Catholic
-Church claims this to be the only authentic translation.
-
-“Guizot,” gēˌzōˈ. (1787-1874.) A French historian.
-
-“Reuchlin,” roikˈlin. (1455-1522.)
-
-P. 23.—“Bordeaux,” bor-dōˈ; “Avignon,” ă-vē-nyoⁿᵍ.
-
-P. 27.—“Eisleben,” iceˈla-ben.
-
-P. 28.—“Eisenach,” īˈzen-näk.
-
-P. 30.—“Scala Santa,” sacred staircase. A staircase in the church and
-palace of the Lateran, so called because Christ was said to have ascended
-and descended it. This magnificent building was used as the residence of
-the popes, from 312 till their removal to Avignon in 1309. The staircase,
-according to tradition, belonged to the house of Pilate, and was brought
-to Rome by the mother of Constantine. It is composed of twenty-eight
-marble steps, which have been covered by order of the popes with a
-casing of wood. The wood has several times had to be replaced, having
-been worn through by the knees of ascending pilgrims. This staircase was
-preserved from the fire which destroyed the building in 1308. The Lateran
-was rebuilt, to be again burned in 1360. It was restored in 1364, and
-completely modernized in 1559. This church has always been the cathedral
-of the bishops of Rome, and takes precedence of all other churches in the
-Catholic world.
-
-P. 32.—“Schlosskirche,” schlusˈkeer-ka. The church belonging to a castle;
-“Mos-celˈla-nus.”
-
-P. 33.—“Bull.” An edict of the pope, sent to the churches over which he
-is head, containing some decree or decision.
-
-“Hapsburg.” Originally a castle in Switzerland. It gave its name to the
-imperial house of Austria.
-
-P. 35.—“Frederick the Wise.” Frederick III., elector of Saxony.
-
-P. 37.—“Zwickaw,” tswikˈkow. A city in Saxony.
-
-P. 43.—“Augsburg Confession.” The first Protestant confession of faith.
-
-“Convention at Smalcald,” smälˈkält. A confederation of the Protestants
-held in 1531, in which they were secretly aided by England and France.
-
-P. 45.—“Melancthon,” me-lankˈthon; “Pforzheim,” pfortsˈhime;
-“Tüˈbing-en;” “Œcolampadius,” ĕkˌo-lăm-pāˈdĭ-us.
-
-“Terence.” (B. C. 195-159.) A Roman comic poet.
-
-P. 50.—“Ulrich von Hutten,” oolˈrik fon hootˈen; “Si-kingˈen;” “Cranach,”
-kräˈnäk.
-
-P. 51.—“Zwingle,” tswinˈgle.
-
-P. 52.—“Wittenbach,” vitˈten-bäk; “Glarus,” gläˈroos. A canton of
-Switzerland; “Einsiedeln,” īneˈze-deln.
-
-P. 53.—“Mariolatry,” mā-rí-olˈa-try. The worship of the Virgin Mary.
-
-P. 54.—“Helvetic Confession.” This differed materially from the Lutheran
-only in holding that Christ was not bodily present in the eucharist.
-
-P. 57.—“Viret,” vē-rā; “Froment,” frō-moⁿᵍ; “Farel,” fä-rel.
-
-P. 58.—“Bourges,” boorzh; “Angoulême,” aⁿᵍ-goo-laim.
-
-“Psychopannychia,” sī-kō-pan-nikˈi-a.
-
-P. 59.—“Tillet,” til-lā; “Martianus Lucanius,” mar-she-āˈnus lu-caˈni-us;
-“Courault,” coo-rō.
-
-P. 61.—“Neuenburg,” noiˈen-boorg. A town in Germany.
-
-P. 62.—“Bucer,” booˈtser. (1491-1551.)
-
-P. 64.—“Lausanne,” lō-zanˈ.
-
-P. 66.—“Archbishop of Canterbury.” This archbishop is the primate or
-ruling officer in the national Church of England, the first peer of the
-realm, and member of the privy council. It is he who places the crown
-upon the king.
-
-P. 67.—“Lambeth Palace.” The town residence of the Archbishop of
-Canterbury. It stands on the Thames River, and is surrounded by gardens
-twelve acres in extent.
-
-P. 68.—“Ochino,” o-kīˈno; “Fagius,” fäˈge-ŏos; “Anne Boleyn,” ann bulˈlen.
-
-P. 72.—“Froschover,” froshˈo-vair.
-
-P. 78.—“Act of Uniformity.” An act enforcing observance of the English
-Church service. Severe penalties were enforced against any one who should
-conduct religious service in any other way than that prescribed by the
-Book of Common Prayer.
-
-P. 80.—“Cardinal Beatoun,” bēˈtun. Usually written Beaton. (1494-1546.)
-A persecutor of the Protestants. On the death of King James, he
-conceived the idea of seizing the government, and forged a will of the
-king’s, naming himself as successor, but he was prevented from carrying
-out his plan and was imprisoned for a time. He was shortly afterward
-reëstablished in his ecclesiastical administration. His enemies seeing no
-release from his terrible persecutions put him to death.
-
-P. 84.—“Gerard Groot,” jĕ-rardˈ grōt; “Florentius Radewin,”
-flo-ronˈshe-us räˈde-win; “Herzogenbusch,” hairts-ōˈgen-boosh.
-
-P. 85.—“Yuste,” yoosˈtā.
-
-“Inquisition.” This was a court established for the purpose of examining
-and punishing heretics.
-
-P. 87.—Luther’s doctrine concerning the will was that it has no “positive
-ability in the work of salvation, but has the negative ability of ceasing
-its resistance under the general influence of the Spirit in the Word and
-Sacraments.”
-
-P. 88.—“Momus.” In Greek mythology the god of mockery and censure. He is
-represented as raising a mask from his face.
-
-P. 89.—“Vaudois,” vo-dwä.
-
-P. 90.—“Sorbonne,” sor-bun. A school of theology in Paris, founded in
-1253, by Robert de Sorbonne, whence its name. The members were divided
-into fellows and commoners. The former were selected for their eminent
-learning, and took the position of teachers. The commoners were chosen
-from among those receiving instruction, after a severe ordeal, and
-were supported by the college, but had no voice in its government. They
-ceased to be members when they graduated as doctors. No member of any
-religious body was allowed to enter this order. The large lecture halls
-of the institution were opened free of all charges, to all poor students,
-and the professors were directed never to refuse instruction to such.
-Students who had money were required to pay regular fees. The school was
-without a rival all through the Middle Ages. Its controlling power was
-felt everywhere. It was frequently appealed to in disputes between the
-civil power and the papacy. It opposed the claims of Henry VIII. for
-a divorce from Catharine; condemned the doctrines of Luther and other
-reformers, and declared that Henry III. had forfeited his crown. It was
-suppressed in 1789, and its buildings are now used by the University of
-France.
-
-“Meaux,” mō; “Angers,” âⁿᵍ-zhā; “Poictiers,” pwä-tyā.
-
-P. 91.—“Gallic Confession.” This was essentially Calvinistic in its
-import, as were also the system of government and method of discipline
-adopted. They were, however, modified somewhat, to suit a church—not like
-that at Geneva, in union with the state, but antagonistic to it.
-
-“Bourbons.” This line of kings in France began with Henry IV. Six of his
-descendants in direct line occupied the throne after him. The Louises
-XIII., XIV., XV., XVI., XVIII., and Charles X. The last representative of
-this line was the Count de Chambord, who died in 1883. There is a younger
-branch known as the Orleans branch.
-
-“Guises,” gheez. A branch of the ducal family of Loraine, which took a
-prominent part in the civil and religious wars in France.
-
-P. 95.—“Sä-vo-nä-roˈlä,” “Brescia,” brāˈsha.
-
-P. 98.—“Chardon de la Rocette,” shar-doⁿᵍ dĕ lä rŏh-shĕt; “Brucioli,”
-broo-choˈlee; “Marmochini,” mar-mo-keeˈnee; “Teofilo,” tā-o-feeˈlo.
-
-P. 99.—“Mauricha,” mä-rēˈka; “Della Rovere,” delˈlä rō-vāˈrā; “Cherbina,”
-sher-beeˈna; “Gonzago,” gon-zäˈgō; “Ca-rafˈfa;” “Paschali,” pas-caˈlēe.
-
-P. 100.—“Paolo di Colli,” pä-oˈlo dē colˈlee; “Gratarole,” grät-ä-rōˈlee;
-“Cor-räˈdo;” “Teglio,” täˈglē-o.
-
-P. 103.—“Vives,” vēˈvace; “Ponce de la Fuente,” pōnˈthā dā lā fwenˈtā;
-“Enzinas,” en-zēˈnas; “Valladolid,” väl-yä-dō-leedˈ; “Varelo,” vä-rāˈlo;
-“Ægidius,” ē-gidˈē-us.
-
-P. 104.—“Hernandez,” her-nanˈdā; “Boborguez,” bō-borˈgā.
-
-P. 110.—“Cyriace,” si-rēˈä-see.
-
-P. 116.—“Dollinger,” dolˈling-er. A learned Catholic theologian, born at
-Bamberg, in 1799. He has published a church history, and several other
-works.
-
-
-CHEMISTRY.
-
-P. 169.—The formula (N₂O₂) shows that two atoms of nitrogen have united
-with two atoms of oxygen to form a molecule of nitrogen di-oxide. The
-formula Cu (NO₃)₂ shows that one atom of copper has united with two
-molecules, each composed of one atom of nitrogen and three atoms of
-oxygen, to form one molecule of cupric nitrate. In like manner Fe₂
-(NO₃)₆ indicates that two atoms of iron have united with six molecules,
-each composed of one atom of nitrogen and three atoms of oxygen, to form
-one molecule of ferric nitrate.
-
-P. 173.—“Refractive power” of water. When a ray of light strikes the
-surface of a new medium, a portion of it is turned out of its original
-course or refracted. This gives rise to some well-known effects. When any
-object is placed in water and viewed obliquely it looks to be nearer the
-surface than it is, because the light in passing from the denser medium
-takes a direction more inclined to the horizontal, and an object always
-appears directly in line with the ray of light entering the eye.
-
-P. 178.—“Crécy,” kresˈse. This battle took place August 26, 1346, between
-the English under Edward III. and the French under Philip VI. It is said
-that Edward had six pieces of artillery. Artillery had probably not been
-used in the field before this time.
-
-P. 182.—“Trinˌi-tro-cĕlˈlu-lose.”
-
-P. 185.—“Mont Cenis,” mōⁿᵍ sŭh-nē. This tunnel under the Alps is in
-reality some sixteen miles from Mont Cenis, whose name it bears. The
-first mine was fired in 1857, and for four years the piercing was done
-by hand; the need of a quicker method led to the invention of a machine
-drill—a perforating machine worked by compressed air. The work was
-carried on by day and night, from both sides of the mountains, until the
-two bodies of workmen met, December 26, 1870. The tunnel was opened for
-railway travel September 17, 1871. Its length is nearly eight miles, and
-the cost of the tunnel was $15,000,000.
-
-“St. Gotˈhard.” This tunnel is also through the Alps. The length is nine
-and one fourth miles. Its construction was begun in 1872, and it was
-completed in eight years.
-
-P. 189.—“Phosphorus ne-croˈsis.” The latter term is derived from a Greek
-word, meaning to make dead, to mortify, and is a disease which attacks
-bony tissues, as gangrene effects the soft parts. “The acid fumes
-thrown off from phosphorus in the various processes of making matches,
-frequently cause among the people employed a terrible disease, which
-attacks the teeth and jaws.… Its natural course is to rot the entire jaw
-bone away.”
-
-P. 190.—“Al-lŏtˈro-pĭsm.” Dana says allotropism is “the property of
-existing in two or more conditions which are distinct in their physical
-or chemical relations. Thus, carbon occurs crystallized in octahedron,
-and other related forms, in a state of extreme hardness, in the diamond;
-it occurs in hexagonal forms, and of little hardness, in black lead; and
-again occurs in a third form, with entire softness, in lamp-black and
-charcoal. In some cases one of these is peculiarly an active state, and
-the others a passive one. Thus, ozone is an active state of oxygen, and
-is distinct from ordinary oxygen, which is the element in its passive
-state.”
-
-P. 194.—“Chemicking,” kemˈik-ing.
-
-P. 203.—Translation of French sentence: “This last virtue I believe it
-still to possess, if the husband is rich enough to buy the jewel which
-his wife is ambitious to own.”
-
-P. 217.—“Boussingault,” booˌsănˈgoˌ; Jean Baptiste. A noted French
-chemist of this century.
-
-
-
-
-NOTES ON REQUIRED READINGS IN “THE CHAUTAUQUAN.”
-
-
-ARISTOTLE.
-
-1. “Schoolmen.” Philosophers and divines who in the middle ages adopted
-the principles of Aristotle and dwelt much upon abstract speculation.
-Scholasticism was a philosophy of dogmas. “Its elements were doctrines
-which the authority of the church made indisputable,” and which were
-looked upon as absolute truth. Facts in nature were set aside and an
-artificial, logical scheme developed. Scholiasts thought experiment only
-fit to follow and illustrate theories.
-
-2. “Haroun-al-Raschid,” Aaron the Just. (765-809.) The caliph who raised
-Bagdad to its greatest splendor, and whose reign was looked upon as the
-golden era of the Mohammedan nation. He reigned twenty-three years and
-performed the pilgrimage to Mecca nine times. He is famous as the hero of
-the Arabian tales. Tennyson wrote of him in his “Recollections of Arabian
-Nights.”
-
-3. “Ex post facto.” A Latin expression, meaning an after act or thing
-done afterward. An _ex post facto_ law is a law enacted after the
-commission of a crime, for the purpose of being enforced upon the person
-having committed the crime, who could not be held a criminal, or at least
-a criminal in the same degree, until after the enaction of the law. All
-such laws are forbidden by the constitution of the United States.
-
-4. Transcriber’s Note: This note (presumably “Hypolais.”) was omitted
-in the original. _Hippolais_ is a scientific genus of tree warblers.
-
-
-CHEMISTRY.
-
-[ERRATA.—A few typographical errors in articles of this series have
-escaped correction. Page 254, change “300,000,000” to 3,000,000; for
-“alcohol,” thirty-third line, page 325, substitute paraffine; same page,
-eighth line, second column, use not for “but;” in “experiment,” same
-column, use heat for “sensation,” and in next to the last line of the
-article change “topics” to optics.—_Prof. J. T. Edwards._]
-
-1. “Geysers,” gīˈsers. Intermittent hot springs, found in different
-parts of the world. Those of Iceland are the best known. More than one
-hundred of these springs are there found, within a space of two miles.
-The geysers of the Yellowstone are the most wonderful ever discovered.
-The country lying between latitude 43° and 47° north, and longitude 110°
-and 114° west, is dotted with groups of springs. Some of them, when in
-action, send up columns of water to a height of 200 feet.
-
-2. “Hugh Miller.” (1802-1856.) A British geologist. He was by trade
-a stone mason, but he devoted all his leisure hours to study. Soon
-“detecting the wonders of the fossil world” in the quarries in which he
-worked, he made them the special subject of his thought, and soon became
-an eminent geologist. He published many works, most of them bearing on
-this subject. He worked so incessantly, taking little sleep or exercise,
-that his mind was on the verge of giving way. Realizing this with terror,
-he took his own life. A note left for his wife read as follows: “A
-fearful dream rises upon me. I can not bear the horrible thought.”
-
-The old red sandstone is the name given to the rock in Great Britain
-formed in the Devonian age, or age of fishes. Its thickness is in some
-parts 8,000 to 10,000 feet. It includes sandstone, marlytes of red and
-other colors, and some limestone.
-
-The sandstone of the Triassic period, which includes the latest
-formations of the earth’s crust, is also characterized by fossils, and is
-often red in color; hence the name, new red sandstone, has been applied
-to it.
-
-3. “Dr. Hitchcock.” (1793-1864.) An American geologist and author.
-
-4. “Minute animals.” The carbonate of lime which is found in rocks is
-most of it formed directly of shells, corals, and other animal remains.
-These little creatures take their stony-like structures from the water
-or from their food through the power of secretion, just as man forms his
-bones, and after their death they are given over to be made into rocks.
-The great extent and thickness of the limestone rocks of the earth give
-some idea of the amount of life that flourished there in past time.
-
-5. “Anhydride.” For definition see “Chemistry,” page 151.
-
-6. “Old Stone Mill.” It is asserted by some antiquaries that this
-structure was built by the Northmen, 500 years before Columbus landed on
-these shores. Its purpose, as well as its origin, has been a theme of
-much discussion. Its present appearance is that of a large round tower
-overgrown with vines.
-
-7. “The Stone age.” One of the divisions of prehistoric time. In this age
-men were not acquainted with the use of metal and fashioned their rude
-implements exclusively out of stone.
-
-8. “Ceramic,” se-ramˈic.
-
-9. “Cesnola collection.” Cesnola was an American soldier and
-archæological explorer, born in Italy in 1832. He served in the Crimean
-war, and in the civil war, was for a long time in Libby Prison. At the
-close of the war he was sent as consul to Cyprus. Having his attention
-attracted by some fragments of terra cotta and some coins, he began
-making excavations in search of relics. He met with such rewards that he
-continued his work for three years, employing hundreds of men. Among his
-discoveries were statues, lamps, vases, coins, glassware, gold ornaments,
-bronzes, and inscriptions, in all about 13,000 articles. This remarkable
-collection is now in the Metropolitan Museum of Art in New York.
-
-10. “The mound builders.” The race of people found in America by its
-first settlers had clearly been preceded by a race of higher type and
-attainments. Relics proving this have been discovered throughout the
-Mississippi valley. Earthworks are their principal testimony, of which
-many thousands have been found in Ohio alone. These mounds vary in size
-and shape, but are always regularly formed, sometimes being square,
-sometimes round, hexagonal, octagonal, or truncated. They are ascended by
-spiral paths, and frequently contain skeletons. Sometimes the earthworks
-are thrown up so as to represent in outline men and animals, and appear
-as huge “bas-reliefs on the surface of the ground.”
-
-11. “Humboldt,” Baron von. (1769-1859.) A German naturalist, the most
-distinguished scholar of the nineteenth century. After a thorough
-education, under the best masters in different universities, he
-determined to devote himself to finance as a business, and familiarized
-himself with everything pertaining to this calling. He changed his career
-and wished to engage in practical mining. And again he went through
-with a full preparation for this work. He was sent to explore several
-mining districts, and made many experiments to discover the nature of
-fire-damp. Later he made a great scientific expedition which only led the
-way to others, until he had visited as a scientist almost every land. He
-is distinguished for the comprehensiveness of his researches. During his
-travels he made astronomical, botanical and magnetic researches, measured
-elevations, investigated the nature of the soil, and the thermometrical
-relations; he also collected herbariums, and founded the new science of
-the geography of plants. Of his numerous published works, “Kosmos” has
-perhaps attracted public attention most widely. It has been without an
-equal in giving an impulse to natural studies.
-
-12. “Lord Lytton,” Sir Edward George. Earle Lytton, son of General
-William Earle Bulwer, born in 1805. Upon his succeeding to the vast
-estates of his mother, the heiress of the Lyttons, he by royal license
-assumed this name, writing it after his own. He is the author of several
-works, mostly of fiction.
-
-
-THE CIRCLE OF THE SCIENCES.
-
-1. “Syllogism.” Every argument, to be valid, must be placed in regular
-logical form, which consists of three propositions, two called the
-_premises_, and the third the _conclusion_. The conclusion follows from
-the premises, so that if the former are true, the conclusion must be.
-For example: Major premise—It was not lawful to scourge a Roman citizen;
-minor premise—Paul was a Roman citizen; conclusion—Therefore, it was not
-lawful to scourge Paul.
-
-2. “Dr. Porter.” An American scholar and author, born in 1811. The
-eleventh president of Yale College.
-
-3. “Ruskin,” John. (1819-⸺.) An English author. He has given much
-attention to the study of art, many of his numerous books being written
-on that subject.
-
-4. “Utopia.” See THE CHAUTAUQUAN for February, 1885.
-
-5. “Campanella.” (1568-1639.) An Italian philosopher. He was suspected
-of joining a conspiracy against the Spanish government, was put to the
-rack, and finally imprisoned in Spain. Later he was transferred to the
-inquisition at Rome. On gaining his liberty he went to France. He was
-famous for undermining other systems of philosophy rather than for
-establishing one of his own.
-
-6. “Owen,” Robert. (1771-1858.) An English social reformer. He lived for
-a few years in Scotland, where he advocated his theory of communism,
-an absolute equality in all rights and duties. By the aid of his large
-fortune he was enabled to distribute great numbers of tracts explaining
-his views, and these soon won him a large following. He was, however,
-opposed and attacked on all sides. In 1823 he came to the United States,
-bought 20,000 acres of land in Indiana, intending to found his community
-there, but the scheme proved a failure and he returned to England. He
-spent the rest of his life as a traveler, advocating his views both by
-his books and public lecturing.
-
-7. “Fourier,” (foo-ri-ā) Charles. (1772-1837.) A French writer on social
-science.
-
-
-SUNDAY READINGS.
-
-1. “Thebes and Luxor.” Thebes was a celebrated Egyptian city, formerly
-the capital of Upper Egypt. Its ruins are among the most magnificent in
-the world, and comprise what form now nine villages, among which Luxor is
-one. The large and costly palaces of the Luxor quarter were founded by
-Amenophis III., and from here was taken the obelisk which stands in Place
-de la Concorde in Paris.
-
-2. “Archbishop Whately.” (1787-1863.) An English prelate. He was for some
-years a professor at Oxford, and in 1831 was consecrated archbishop of
-Dublin. He was the author of many important works.
-
-3. “Paˌlæ-o-cosˈmic.” Pertaining to the ancient universe.
-
-4. “Old Man of Cromagnon.” “In the _Reliquiæ Aquitanicæ_, by Messrs.
-Lartet and Christy, there is a full account of the archæology of the
-old Stone age, as exhibited in the south of France, especially in the
-caves in the valley of Cro-Magnon. … Bones of the reindeer are abundant,
-and the co-existence of man with this animal in latitudes so much lower
-than its present habitat implies a certain degree of elevation above
-savages, as not only food, clothing and implements, but materials for
-ornamentation were obtained from it. The domestic economy of these
-earlier races is shown by their hearths, boiling stones, rough hammers,
-and hollow, dish-like pebbles. … M. Pruner-Bey, from the examination of
-skeletons found in the cave of Cro-Magnon maintains that the crania of
-the reindeer age belong to a double series, one approaching the Lapp and
-the other the Finn of the present day. He concludes that they had massive
-bones, long, flat feet, comparatively short arms and long forearms, with
-powerful muscles, greatly developed jaws, widely opened nostrils, and
-were of unbridled passions.”
-
-
-ANIMAL BIOLOGY.
-
-PRONUNCIATION OF NAMES IN TABLE.
-
-Pro-to-zoˈa, mo-neˈra, greg-a-rinˈi-da, rhiz-opˈo-da, in-fu-sōˈri-a,
-spon-gĭˈda, cœ(kē)lenˈte-rā-ta, hy-dro-zoˈa, an-tho-zoˈa,
-mad-re-poˈra, poˈrites, tuˌbi-pōˈra, cor-ralˈle-um, ruˈbrum,
-cte(te)-nophˈo-ra, e-chinˌ(kin)o-dermˈa-ta, crī-noidˈe-a, as-ter-oidˈe-a,
-e-chen(ken)-oidˈe-a, holˈo-thu-roidˌe-a, verˈmēs, ro-tifˈe-ra,
-pol-y-zoˈa, brachˌ(brak)-i-opˈo-da, an-nelˈi-dæ, mol-lusˈca,
-la-melˌle-bran(g)-chi(ki)-āˈta, gas-ter-opˈo-da, ceph(sef)-a-lopˈo-da,
-ar-ticˈu-lāˈta, crus-taˈcē(se)-a, a-rachˈ(rak)-ni-da, myr-i-opˈo-da,
-tu-ni-cāˈta, ver-te-brāˈta, pisˈ-cēs(sēs), aˈvēs.
-
-1. “Amœba.” This little animal is known to microscopists under the name
-of proteus, from the rapid and continuous changes of shapes which it
-presents to their notice.
-
-2. “Tentacles.” Processes usually slender and thread-like, proceeding
-from the head of invertebrate animals, such as insects, snails and crabs,
-being used for the purpose of feeling, prehension or motion.
-
-3. “Oviparous.” An adjective applied to all animals which produce eggs,
-as distinguished from _viviparous_, producing young in the living state.
-
-4. “Ganglia.” Collections of nerve cells, from which nerve fibers are
-given off in different directions. They are thought to be the organs in
-which all action originates.
-
-5. “Ventral surface.” The surface of the body opposite the back. The back
-is called the dorsal surface.
-
-6. “Medˈul-la-ry.” Consisting of marrow. The fibrous nervous matter of
-the brain contains nerve tubes, within which is a layer of thick, fluid,
-highly refractive matter, called the medullary layer.
-
-
-
-
-PARAGRAPHS FROM NEW BOOKS.
-
-
-PORTRAITS FROM CARLYLE.—If Carlyle had taken to the brush instead of
-to the pen he would probably have left a gallery of portraits such as
-this century has not seen. In his letters and journals, reminiscences,
-etc., for him to mention a man is to describe his face, and with what
-graphic pen and ink sketches they abound. Let me extract a few of them.
-Here is Rousseau’s face, from “Heroes and Hero Worship:” “A high but
-narrow contracted intensity in it; bony brows; deep, straight-set eyes,
-in which there is something bewildered looking—bewildered, peering with
-lynx-eagerness—a face full of misery, even ignoble misery, and also of an
-antagonism against that; something mean, plebeian there, redeemed only by
-_intensity_: the face of what is called a fanatic—a sadly _contracted_
-hero!…”
-
-Here we have Dickens in 1840: “Clear-blue, intelligent eyes; eyebrows
-that he arches amazingly; large, protrusive, rather loose mouth; a face
-of most extreme _mobility_, which he shuttles about—eyebrows, eyes,
-mouth, and all—in a very singular manner while speaking. Surmount this
-with a loose coil of common-colored hair, and set it on a small, compact
-figure, very small, and dressed à la D’Orsay rather than well—this is
-Pickwick.”
-
-Here is a glimpse of Grote, the historian of Greece: “A man with straight
-upper lip, large chin, and open mouth (spout mouth); for the rest, a tall
-man, with dull, thoughtful brows and lank, disheveled hair, greatly the
-look of a prosperous Dissenting minister.”
-
-In telling Emerson whom he shall see in London, he says: “Southey’s
-complexion is still healthy mahogany brown, with a fleece of white hair,
-and eyes that seem running at full gallop; old Rogers, with his pale
-head, white, bare, and cold as snow, with those large blue eyes, cruel,
-sorrowful, and that sardonic shelf chin.”
-
-In another letter he draws this portrait of Webster: “As a logic-fencer,
-advocate, or parliamentary Hercules, one would incline to back him, at
-first sight, against all the extant world. The tanned complexion; that
-amorphous, crag-like face; the dull black eyes under their precipice of
-brows, like dull anthracite furnaces, needing only to be _blown_; the
-mastiff mouth, accurately closed; I have not traced as much of silent
-_Berserkir rage_, that I remember of, in any other man.”—_From John
-Burroughs’s “Fresh Fields.”_
-
- * * * * *
-
-SCOTT AT WORK.—I never can forget the description Sir Adam Fergusson
-gave me of a morning he had passed with Scott at Abbottsford, which at
-that time was still unfinished, and swarming with carpenters, painters,
-masons, and bricklayers, was surrounded with all the dirt and disorderly
-discomfort inseparable from the process of house-building. The room they
-sat in was in the roughest condition which admitted of their occupying it
-at all; the raw, new chimney smoked intolerably. Out-of-doors the whole
-place was one chaos of bricks, mortar, scaffolding, tiles, and slates.
-A heavy mist shrouded the whole landscape of lovely Tweed side, and
-distilled in a cold, persistent and dumb drizzle.
-
-Maida, the well beloved stag-hound, kept fidgeting in and out of the
-room. Walter Scott every five minutes exclaiming, “Eh, Adam! the puir
-beast’s just wearying to get out;” or, “Eh, Adam! the puir creature’s
-just crying to come in;” when Sir Adam would open the door to the raw,
-chilly air for the wet, muddy hound’s exit or entrance, while Scott with
-his face swollen with a grievous toothache, and one hand pressed hard to
-his cheek, with the other was writing the inimitably humorous opening
-chapters of “The Antiquary,” which he passed across the table, sheet
-by sheet, to his friend, saying, “Now, Adam, d’ye think that will do?”
-Such a picture of mental triumph over outward circumstances has surely
-seldom been surpassed. House-builders, smoky chimney, damp draughts,
-restless, dripping dog, and toothache form what our friend Miss Masson
-called a “concatenation of exteriorities,” little favorable to literary
-composition of any sort; but considered as accompaniments or inspiration
-of that delightfully comical beginning of “The Antiquary,” they are all
-but incredible.—_From Mason’s “Traits of British Authors.”_
-
- * * * * *
-
-PARADISE FOUND.—Could it once be proven that the Arctic terminus of
-the earth has always been the ice-bound region that it is, and which
-for thousands of years it has been, it would of course be useless to
-entertain for a moment the hypothesis that the cradle of the human
-race was there located. Probably the popular impression that from the
-beginning of the world the far North has been the region of unendurable
-cold has been one of the chief reasons why our hypothesis is so late
-in claiming attention. At the present time, however, so far as this
-difficulty is concerned, scientific studies have abundantly prepared the
-way for the new theory.
-
-That the earth is a slowly cooling body is a doctrine now all but
-universally accepted. In saying this we say nothing for or against
-the so-called nebular hypothesis of the origin of the world, for both
-friends and foes of this unproven hypothesis believe in what is termed
-the secular cooling or refrigeration of the earth. All authorities in
-this field hold and teach that the time was when the slowly solidifying
-planet was too hot to support any form of life, and that only in some
-particular time in the cooling process was there a temperature reached
-which was adapted to the necessities of living things. On what portion
-of the earth’s surface, now, would this temperature first be reached? Or
-would it everywhere be reached at the same time? … We asked the geologist
-this question: “Is the hypothesis of a primeval polar Eden admissible?”
-Looking at the slowly cooling earth alone, he replies: “Eden conditions
-have probably at one time or another been found everywhere upon the
-surface of the earth. Paradise may have been anywhere.” Looking at the
-cosmic environment, however, he adds: “But while Paradise may have been
-anywhere, the _first_ portions of the earth’s surface sufficiently
-cool to present the conditions of Eden life were assuredly at the
-Poles.”—_From Warren’s “Paradise Found.”_
-
- * * * * *
-
-SEPARATION OF DE LONG AND MELVILLE.—De Long verbally directed both of
-us to keep, if possible, within hail, and reiterated his orders in case
-of separation: “Make the best of your way,” said he, “to Cape Barkin,
-which is eighty or ninety miles off, southwest true. Don’t wait for me,
-but get a pilot from the natives, and proceed up the river to a place of
-safety as quick as you can; and be sure that you and your parties are all
-right before you trouble yourselves about any one else. If you reach Cape
-Barkin you will be safe, for there are plenty of natives there winter and
-summer.” Then addressing me particularly, he continued: “Melville, you
-will have no trouble in keeping up with me, but if anything should happen
-to separate us, you can find your way in without any difficulty by the
-trend of the coast-line; and you know as much about the natives and their
-settlements as any one else.” This was our last conversation in a body.
-
-So when De Long waved me permission to leave him, I hoisted sail, shook
-out one reef, and as we gathered way the boat shot forward like an arrow,
-and the spray flew about us like feathers. Heretofore we had been running
-dead before the wind on our southwest course for the land, but the heavy
-sea and lively motion of the boat caused the sail to jibe and fill on
-the other tack, whereupon we would broach to and ship water. For this
-reason I hauled up the boat several points, or closer to the wind, and
-our condition at once improved. Now that we were separated I resolved
-to concern myself directly with the safety of my own boat; so that when
-one of the men said that De Long was signaling us, I told him he must be
-wrong, and further directed that no one should see any signals now that
-we were cast upon our own resources.
-
-When last seen, the second cutter was about one thousand yards astern of
-us, the first cutter probably midway between, and there is no doubt in my
-mind that she then foundered. A conversation with the only two surviving
-members of the first cutter (Nindemann and Noras) has confirmed me in
-this belief; for they witnessed the scene as I have described it, and
-state that it was the general opinion of DeLong’s crew that I had shared
-the same fate simultaneously with Chipp.—_Melville’s “In the Lena Delta.”_
-
-
-
-
-TALK ABOUT BOOKS.
-
-
-There can scarcely be a sadder story than that of the loss of the
-Jeannette and the subsequent search for DeLong and his party. No event of
-recent years has caused more horror in the public mind and led to more
-urgent expostulation against further Arctic exploration. We believe,
-however, that as a better knowledge of the aim and value of these
-undertakings grows on the public, censure will be removed. Certainly
-a careful reading of Melville’s “In the Lena Delta”[C] produces this
-result. The book is perhaps more full of horror than most readers
-imagine, but after reading there can be but one opinion; terrible as it
-all is, it has been worth the suffering. It is worth while to have died
-bravely in carrying out orders. The unflinching resolution of those men
-places them among the heroes of modern history. You can not help feeling
-that there is a wonderful amount of unusual heroism in the story. The
-Jeannette expedition has furnished a much needed lesson on the nobility
-of endurance. The results to our knowledge of these regions have been
-considerable, the people of Siberia, the Russian exile, the homes and
-customs of various tribes are more fully explained to us in Melville’s
-notes than elsewhere; again, no future exploration will be open to equal
-dangers.
-
-We have never experienced a greater shock in our book reviewing than that
-which came to us when, on turning from Melville’s description of the
-Arctic regions, we were told that Paradise had been found[D]—at the North
-Pole. It will be a long time before the public mind with its present
-ideas of the Pole will be willing to consent to this conclusion, even if
-President Warren is able to advance still more skillful arguments than
-he yet has in proof of his theory. And the arguments are skillful. He
-has quoted high authority to prove that Eden conditions once existed on
-every portion of the earth, and first of all at the Pole; he has done his
-best to remove our prejudices against a night of six months by showing
-that not more than “four fortnights” is the probable length of the night
-there; he shows us that palæontology teaches that life first began at
-the polar regions, and quotes the mythical lore of Egyptian, Assyrian,
-Babylonian, Buddhist, Greek, and Roman, to support his theory. The
-hypothesis is certainly entertaining, and this attempt at demonstrating
-it contains some very probable arguments.
-
-A book bearing the title “Personal Traits of British Authors”[E] is
-sufficient of itself to win the attention and awaken the interest of
-all book lovers, but when, on turning its leaves, it is found that
-these traits have been noted and given to the world by other authors,
-the desire to know what they are is doubled. What great men think and
-say about other great men is a matter of interest to all well informed
-persons. That pardonable, commendable curiosity to know “what about”
-earth’s gifted ones, that lurks in human hearts, has a sort of double
-chance to satisfy itself with such an arrangement as this. The persons
-of whom this book treats are seven in number: Scott, Hogg, Campbell,
-Chalmers, Wilson, DeQuincey, and Jeffrey. In a tabulated form all the
-leading events of their lives are given. Several pages are devoted to
-sketches of each one, all filled with exquisite little pen pictures,
-drawn by master hands at widely differing periods, and from widely
-differing scenes in life, giving the greatest contrasts in attitudes,
-words, and expression. Indeed, one has hard work sometimes to make
-himself believe they were intended to represent the same person. It would
-be difficult to find a finer collection of character studies than Mr.
-Mason has given in this volume.
-
-There is considerable probability in the suggestion which Mr. Lang makes
-in his “Custom and Myth.”[F] He has attempted to find the key to myths
-in customs which have prevailed among early tribes, in opposition to
-those scholars who find their solutions in the names which they claim
-were once applied to objects, and of which the original meaning has been
-lost. The essays are made valuable by a great deal of material gathered
-evidently by much research in the lore of remote tribes, but they are
-singularly unsatisfactory. The work is loosely done. The solutions are
-mere suggestions, although such interesting suggestions that one feels
-loath to give up the search without more work. In some cases the myths
-presented simply show that similar tales exist in many nations. Until Mr.
-Lang does more work on this entertaining theory he must not expect a very
-wide following.
-
-A good work on English cathedrals has for a long time been in demand. The
-interest in architecture which recent years has developed, the increase
-in travel and the large scale on which the English people have carried on
-the restoration of their cathedrals have made such a work necessary. “The
-Cathedral Churches of England and Wales”[G] quite fills the demand. A
-book of superior make up, a very handsome parlor book, indeed, it is yet
-full of information. Thirty-five cathedrals are described, and so fully
-illustrated as to give very satisfactory ideas of the leading features of
-each. The articles, written in an encyclopedic style that seems slightly
-out of place in the company of such illustrations, paper, and letter
-press, are historic and architectural, concerning themselves very little
-with poetic associations and fine descriptions. They are, however, all
-the more useful for that.
-
-Two little books, helpful to all persons and bearing comfort for stricken
-hearts, and for those weary with the burdens of life, are to be found
-in “Meditations on Life, Death and Eternity.”[H] They are like friends
-to whom one would turn for companionship. The books were translated and
-compiled from the larger work of a distinguished German writer, and were
-arranged in their present form at the request of Queen Victoria, who
-prizes them very highly, as the original was a great favorite of the
-Prince Consort.
-
-That Mr. Barnes fully accomplished what he set out to do when he produced
-the “Hand-Book of Bible Biography,”[I] a brief examination of the work
-will satisfy any one. His aim was to produce a book that would be
-complete as to names, that should contain all the facts, and that should
-be within the means of all Bible students. Each biography is a story
-complete in itself, with many illustrations and maps.
-
-
-FOOTNOTES
-
-[C] In the Lena Delta. A narrative of the search for Lieutenant Commander
-De Long and his companions. Followed by an account of the Greely Relief
-Expedition and a Proposed Method of Reaching the North Pole. By George W.
-Melville. Boston: Houghton, Mifflin & Co. 1885.
-
-[D] Paradise Found. The Cradle of the Human Race at the North Pole. By
-William F. Warren, S. T. D., LL D. Boston: Houghton, Mifflin & Co. 1885.
-
-[E] Personal Traits of British Authors. By Edward T. Mason. New York:
-Charles Scribner’s Sons. 1885.
-
-[F] Custom and Myth. By Andrew Lang, M.A. New York: Harper & Brothers.
-1885.
-
-[G] The Cathedral Churches of England and Wales. Cassell & Company. New
-York: 1884. Price, $5.00.
-
-[H] Meditations on Life, Death and Eternity. By Johann Heinrich Daniel
-Zschokkè. Translated by Frederika Rowan. New York: Phillips & Hunt.
-Cincinnati: Cranston & Stowe.
-
-[I] Hand-Book of Bible Biography. By the Rev. C. R. Barnes, A.B. New
-York: Phillips & Hunt. Cincinnati: Cranston & Stowe. Price, $2.25.
-
-
-
-
-THE CHAUTAUQUA UNIVERSITY.
-
-WHAT ARE ITS CLAIMS?
-
-BY PROF. R. S. HOLMES, A.M.
-
-
-We shall be careful in what we say to make no claim for the
-correspondence system of teaching, as against any other. We claim for it
-simply a place as a co-laborer in the work of education. Lest any one
-should be misled by any utterances we may have made, or may hereafter
-make, and think that here was cast up a royal road over which one
-could pass with flying feet to the goal of educational culture, and
-enter it, to find only a narrow path, rough, stony, and filled with
-difficulties, we wish to plainly state what we claim for this system of
-instruction. Lest any one should conceive that the need for university
-and college has passed, and that results can be obtained by a home
-correspondence-university course, as good or better than can be obtained
-from actual college residence, we wish to plainly state what we do not
-claim. It may place our positive claims in a stronger light, if we set
-them forth against what we do not claim, as a background. Accordingly,
-our first statements will be negatives, as follows:
-
-1. We do not claim that the correspondence system of teaching is the
-superior of oral teaching;
-
-2. Nor that it is destined to supersede oral teaching;
-
-3. Nor that it has wrought or will work any revolution in educational
-methods;
-
-4. Nor that it can compete with oral teaching, on anything like equal
-terms;
-
-5. Nor that by this method, years of study in classroom, under able,
-living teachers are made unnecessary;
-
-6. Nor that it uses newer and better methods of instruction than are used
-in the classroom;
-
-7. Nor that it is freer from defects than other existing systems;
-
-8. Nor that a class, school, college, or university, dependent for its
-entire work upon pen, paper and post, should be sought by the student in
-preference to established resident institutions;
-
-9. Nor that it is without serious disadvantages, even to the student most
-favorably circumstanced;
-
-10. Nor, finally, that it is able to teach all branches of study without
-other than postal facilities.
-
-We might carry this line of disclaimer farther, but are persuaded
-that enough has been said to enable us to make our claims for the
-correspondence system, without danger of being misunderstood. Still
-further, we desire the power of voice and pen, as far as it may reach,
-to be felt on the side of the college and university. To all who can go
-to college, our word is most emphatically—go; and having gone, stay; let
-nothing come between you and the completion of the course. Still further,
-we will say to such as are so limited by circumstances as to feel
-unable to devote the requisite time, means, and presence, to a college
-course, “If possible, let not circumstance compel you, but do you compel
-circumstance, till the desired way shall open; and this though years be
-occupied in the struggle. The goal is worth the race.”
-
-Here, then, we present what we claim for the correspondence system of
-teaching:
-
-1. We claim that the majority of those who are likely to avail themselves
-of this system, are men and women of mature mind, and hence are able to
-make the very best use of whatever advantages are offered them;
-
-2. That the majority of those who are likely to avail themselves of the
-advantages we offer, are actuated by an earnest purpose to obtain an
-advanced education, by _any_ means which are available to them;
-
-3. That wise direction through correspondence, by competent and
-experienced teachers, is calculated to produce better results than can be
-expected ordinarily from unaided individual effort;
-
-4. That teaching by correspondence can be successfully applied to a
-course of study so wide and comprehensive that one who masters it will
-secure a culture that would be rightly called liberal;
-
-5. That this system of teaching is therefore entitled to a place, as
-associate, in the ranks of the teaching systems of the age;
-
-6. That as a system, it is no untried experiment, but has been so tested
-that it can point to tangible results with no fear of discomfiture if
-these results be examined;
-
-7. That it requires determined effort, and calls for rigid
-self-discipline, to insure success;
-
-8. That it tends to form critical habits of study;
-
-9. That it tends to produce self-reliance, and to develop individuality
-in methods of study;
-
-10. That it affords marked opportunity for deliberation, and so fosters
-the judicial habit in study;
-
-11. That it tends to systematize and render methodical all habits,
-whether of study or of life;
-
-12. That opportunities for _mal-application_ are reduced to a minimum;
-
-13. That its possibilities are such as to warrant corporate effort to
-extend its advantages to those who would be otherwise deprived of any
-advanced educational opportunities;
-
-14. That such a corporation is entitled to be called a School of Liberal
-Arts;
-
-15. That it allows tests of the student’s acquirement, as rigid as can be
-desired by the highest standard of educational excellence;
-
-16. That the student who has submitted to such tests, and successfully
-borne them, is entitled to the reward of a diploma and a degree;
-
-17. Finally, that the corporation or institution which can prepare the
-student for such an ordeal is entitled to confer such diploma and degree.
-
-The claims which we have now presented are sufficient to show the
-spirit and belief which have led to the incorporation of the Chautauqua
-University. We have attempted to state them logically, clearly, and
-forcibly. There is in them no element of disputation.
-
-We appeal to a vast, an eager and earnest constituency. To know, only
-to know, is the earnest cry of multitudes of our fellows. Lament for
-lack of early opportunities, and consequent self-depreciation, is the
-undertow that sweeps to ruin the possibilities of many a life. High
-purposes and noble ambitions have been thwarted on life’s threshold by
-the cruel limitations of circumstance. Mistaken views of life’s best
-aims, in days when opportunities were possible, have been dispelled
-when the opportunities have long been left behind. To each of these
-classes the Chautauqua University brings the correspondence system of
-teaching, and says: for you, it is possible to supplement the lack of
-early years; for you, to realize your ambitions, even within the bond by
-which circumstance has bound you; and for you, in the new light which
-experience has given, to see other opportunities for obtaining that
-culture which, years ago, you neglected and passed by.
-
-
-
-
-SPECIAL NOTES.
-
-
- THE ACADEMY OF LATIN AND GREEK,
- Summer Term of Six Weeks.
-
- TO THE CHANCELLOR OF CHAUTAUQUA UNIVERSITY:
-
- _My Dear Doctor Vincent_:
-
- It gives me great pleasure to be able to offer this summer, at
- Chautauqua, a course in Latin and Greek of unusual merit. Of the
- assistant teachers, Mr. Otto is already favorably known to our
- pupils of last summer, and to many correspondence students as
- an energetic and thorough teacher. Dr. Bevier will be a great
- acquisition for Chautauqua. He was graduated from Rutgers with
- first honors, having also during his course won honors in Latin
- and Greek at the inter-collegiate contest. After graduation he
- studied at Johns Hopkins University (which conferred on him the
- degree Ph.D.), and then continued his studies in Europe. He was a
- student at the American School at Athens, Greece, and is now an
- enthusiastic and successful teacher.
-
- Although our session in Latin last year began a week late, and we
- suffered from other disadvantages, I believe our numbers in Latin
- reached a total unparalleled in the history of Chautauqua.
-
- What was, however, especially gratifying, was the improved
- quality of scholarship manifested by students.
-
- For this summer we offer the following course:
-
- 1. ROMAN LAW (using the Institutes of Justinian) with
- information. Not only every lawyer, but every teacher of Latin
- to-day should familiarize “_thon_”self with Roman law, lying, as
- it does, _at the base of Roman civilization_.
-
- 2. THE LATIN OF THE EARLY CHURCH FATHERS.—Recent publication and
- discussion have rendered so prominent the influence of the early
- Latin Fathers on church doctrine that _every clergyman_, present
- or prospective, will do well to examine this question for himself.
-
- 3. COMPARATIVE PHILOLOGY.—(Every student preparing to enter
- either of these three classes should at once communicate with
- the principal, that there may be no delay at the opening of the
- session, in securing apparatus.)
-
- 4. PLATO.—Apology and Crito, Tyler’s Ed. (Appletons.)
-
- 5. CICERO.—_De Natura Deorum_, Stickney’s Ed. (Ginn, Heath & Co.)
-
- 6. HOMER.—Odyssey.
-
- 7. VIRGIL.—Æneid.
-
- 8. HORACE.—Chase’s Ed. (Eldridge & Bro’s.)
-
- 9. CICERO.—Orations.
-
- 10. XENOPHON.—Anabasis.
-
- 11. CÆSAR.—_De Bello Gallico_ (two hours per day).
-
- 12. BEGINNERS IN GREEK. Harkness’s Text-Book, last ed.
- (Appletons.)
-
- 13. BEGINNERS IN LATIN (THREE HOURS PER DAY BY THE INDUCTION
- METHOD).
-
- 🖙 Latin students must have the “Hand-Book of Latin Synonyms.”
- (Ginn, Heath & Co.)
-
- I hope you will give us at Chautauqua zealous students, who
- will concentrate their work on Latin and Greek, but especially
- two classes: TEACHERS of Latin and Greek, and those who are
- absolutely BEGINNERS. A clear-headed student who doesn’t know a
- word of Latin, can, by devoting six weeks to it, secure FIVE
- HOURS per day (_Beginners_ and _Cæsar_) or ONE HUNDRED AND FIFTY
- HOURS in six weeks—quite as much time as the average school gives
- in one year.
-
- It is thought that teachers of Latin and Greek will find not only
- the method of value, but also the inspiration which indubitably
- does arise when teachers gather.
-
- Your ob’t servant,
-
- EDGAR S. SHUMWAY, Principal.
-
- RUTGERS COLLEGE, February 23, 1885.
-
- * * * * *
-
-The C. L. S. C. Correspondence Department, though not often heard from
-publicly, is doing an important work. Several hundred students are
-enrolled upon its books, and the work is being prosecuted this year
-with renewed vigor. An Illinois lady writes: “Having enjoyed and been
-benefited by the letters of my C. L. S. C. correspondent, I very much
-wish to continue that branch of the work this year. We followed no
-special plan, but the letters I received encouraged and strengthened
-me, and kept me from falling by the wayside. I love the C. L. S. C. and
-am proud to say I have gained for it some members. In my judgment the
-Correspondence Circle is grand, good and beneficial.” From New Hampshire
-comes the following: “I tender hearty thanks to the originator of the
-Correspondence Circle. The frequent letters of my two correspondents are
-a continual stimulus. The sympathetic words, the exchange of essays, the
-comparing of work done, I find very helpful, while the questions of my
-bright girl correspondent have led me to search for and find many items
-of information I should have otherwise neglected.” These and many similar
-letters received from members of the Correspondence Department show how
-helpful this work is proving to many isolated members of the Circle, shut
-out from all other means of communication with their fellow students.
-
- * * * * *
-
-From a circle in Connecticut numbering five members comes the suggestion
-that Local Circles be put in communication with each other, the
-correspondence to be carried on, of course, through the respective
-secretaries. There is no reason why a correspondence of this sort should
-not prove both interesting and valuable, as it will serve to increase the
-feeling of fraternity among local circles, give opportunities for the
-exchange of programs, the discussion of difficulties, and in other ways
-make the circles of practical benefit to each other.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Members of the C. L. S. C. or local circles wishing to join the
-Correspondence Department should report to the office of the C. L. S. C.
-at Plainfield, N. J.
-
- * * * * *
-
-The list of C. L. S. C. graduates in the Class of ’84 has been lengthened
-by the following names:
-
- Daniels, Mrs. Margaret P. S. New York.
- Longee, Mrs. Mary P. New Hampshire.
- McConnell, Edward B. Pennsylvania.
- Smith, Miss Anna Michigan.
- Van Ingen, M. Gertrude New York.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Communications intended for the “Local Circles” of THE CHAUTAUQUAN should
-be sent directly to our office. Any circle which has not reported this
-year we should be glad to have do so at once.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Transcriber’s Notes:
-
-Obvious punctuation errors repaired.
-
-Page 388, “II” changed to “IV” (Class IV.)
-
-Page 389, “carniverous” changed to “carnivorous” (they have all the five
-senses, and are carnivorous)
-
-Page 398, “Fate” changed to “Gate” (Traitor’s Gate)
-
-Page 398, “Tewksbury” changed to “Tewkesbury” (in the field at Tewkesbury)
-
-Page 403, “ahd” changed to “and” (and have bought bonds)
-
-Page 405, “extirminated” changed to “exterminated” in two places (and
-their kind exterminated / the native fish are actually exterminated)
-
-Page 406, “extirmination” changed to “extermination” (extermination so
-recklessly begun)
-
-Page 406, “their” changed to “the” (the narrow, tortuous defiles)
-
-Page 407, “neans” changed to “means” (by artificial means)
-
-Page 408, “Mariner” changed to “Marner” (Silas Marner)
-
-Page 413, “Easer” changed to “Easter” (1. Essay—Easter.)
-
-Page 424, “make” changed to “made” (which has made Shaksperean skepticism
-almost respectable)
-
-Page 429, “with” added (two atoms of nitrogen have united with two atoms
-of oxygen)
-
-Page 429, “hydrogen” changed to “oxygen” (The formula Cu(NO₃)₂ … three
-atoms of oxygen)
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Chautauquan, Vol. V, April 1885, by
-The Chautauquan Literary and Scientific Circle
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE CHAUTAUQUAN, VOL. V, APRIL 1885 ***
-
-***** This file should be named 55061-0.txt or 55061-0.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/5/5/0/6/55061/
-
-Produced by Emmy, Juliet Sutherland and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
-will be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
-one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
-(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
-permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
-set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
-copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
-protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
-Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
-charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
-do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
-rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
-such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
-research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
-practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
-subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
-redistribution.
-
-
-
-*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
-http://gutenberg.org/license).
-
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
-all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
-If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
-terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
-entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
-and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
-or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
-collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
-individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
-located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
-copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
-works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
-are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
-Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
-freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
-this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
-the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
-keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
-a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
-the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
-before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
-creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
-Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
-the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
-States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
-access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
-whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
-copied or distributed:
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org/license
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
-from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
-posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
-and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
-or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
-with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
-work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
-through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
-Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
-1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
-terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
-to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
-permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
-word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
-distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
-"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
-posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
-you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
-copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
-request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
-form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
-that
-
-- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
- owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
- has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
- Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
- must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
- prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
- returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
- sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
- address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
- the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or
- destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
- and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
- Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
- money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
- of receipt of the work.
-
-- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
-forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
-both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
-Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
-Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
-collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
-"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
-corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
-property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
-computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
-your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
-your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
-the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
-refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
-providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
-receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
-is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
-opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
-WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
-WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
-If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
-law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
-interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
-the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
-provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
-with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
-promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
-harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
-that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
-or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
-work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
-Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
-
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
-including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
-because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
-people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need, are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
-To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
-and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
-Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
-http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
-permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
-Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
-throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
-809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
-business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
-information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
-page at http://pglaf.org
-
-For additional contact information:
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
-SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
-particular state visit http://pglaf.org
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
-To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
-
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
-with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
-Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
-
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
-unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
-keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
-
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
-
- http://www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/old/55061-0.zip b/old/55061-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index b41a1f9..0000000
--- a/old/55061-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/55061-h.zip b/old/55061-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index ad7bd10..0000000
--- a/old/55061-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/55061-h/55061-h.htm b/old/55061-h/55061-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index bdad96f..0000000
--- a/old/55061-h/55061-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,10566 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
- <title>
- The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Chautauquan, Vol. V, April 1885, by The Chautauquan Literary and Scientific Circle.
- </title>
-
- <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
-
-<style type="text/css">
-
-body {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
-p {
- margin-top: .75em;
- text-align: justify;
- text-indent: 1.25em;
- margin-bottom: .75em;
-}
-
-img {
- border: 0;
-}
-
-.caption {
- text-align: center;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- font-size: 90%;
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-
-.caption2 {
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- font-size: 80%;
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-
-.tnote {
- border: dashed 1px;
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- padding: 0.5em;
-}
-
-.blockquote {
- margin-left: 5%;
- margin-right: 10%;
- text-align: justify;
- text-indent: 0;
-}
-
-.maintitle {
- font-size: 200%;
- font-weight: bold;
- text-align: center;
- text-indent: 0;
-}
-
-.center {
- text-align: center;
- text-indent: 0;
-}
-
-.right {
- text-align: right;
- text-indent: 0;
-}
-
-.smcap {
- font-variant: small-caps;
-}
-
-.smcapuc {
- font-variant: small-caps;
- font-style: normal;
- text-transform: lowercase;
-}
-
-.unindent {
- margin-top: .75em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: .75em;
- text-indent: 0;
-}
-
-.faux {
- visibility: hidden;
-}
-
-.footnotes {
- border: dashed 1px;
-}
-
-.footnote {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
- font-size: 0.9em;
-}
-
-.footnote .label {
- position: absolute;
- right: 84%;
- text-align: right;
-}
-
-.fnanchor {
- vertical-align:baseline;
- position: relative;
- bottom: 0.33em;
- font-size: .8em;
- text-decoration: none;
-}
-
-.indent2 {
- margin-left: 2em;
-}
-
-h1,h2,h3 {
- text-align: center;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-h4 {
- margin-bottom: 0;
- text-align: center;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-hr {
- width: 95%;
- margin-top: .5em;
- margin-bottom: .5em;
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-hr.double {
- width: 95%;
- border: double 2px;
-}
-
-hr.tb {
- width: 45%;
-}
-
-hr.chap {
- width: 65%;
-}
-
-hr.shorter {
- width: 8%;
- border: thin solid;
-}
-
-.poetry .stanza {
- margin: 1em auto;
-}
-
-.poetry .verse {
- text-indent: -3em;
- padding-left: 3em;
-}
-
-.poetry .i1 {
- text-indent: -2.5em;
-}
-
-.poetry .indent1 {
- text-indent: -2em;
-}
-
-.poetry .indent2 {
- text-indent: -1em;
-}
-
-.poetry .indent3 {
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-
-.poetry-container {
- text-align: center;
-}
-
-.poetry {
- text-align: left;
- display: inline-block;
- text-align: left;
-}
-
-.smaller {
- font-size: 80%;
-}
-
-.spacer {
- margin-left: 4em;
- margin-right: 4em;
-}
-
-ul {
- list-style-type: none;
-}
-
-table {
- margin: 1em auto 1em auto;
- max-width: 40em;
- border-collapse: collapse;
-}
-
-td {
- padding-left: 0.25em;
- padding-right: 0.25em;
-}
-
-.science td {
- padding: 0.25em;
-}
-
-.tdr {
- text-align: right;
-}
-
-.pagenum {
- position: absolute;
- left: 92%;
- font-size: smaller;
- text-align: right;
-}
-
-.figcenter {
- margin: auto;
- text-align: center;
-}
-
-@media handheld
-
-{
-
-.poetry {
- display: block;
- margin-left: 1.5em;
-}
-}
- </style>
- </head>
-<body>
-
-
-<pre>
-
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Chautauquan, Vol. V, April 1885, by
-The Chautauquan Literary and Scientific Circle
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org/license
-
-
-Title: The Chautauquan, Vol. V, April 1885
-
-Author: The Chautauquan Literary and Scientific Circle
-
-Editor: Theodore L. Flood
-
-Release Date: July 6, 2017 [EBook #55061]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE CHAUTAUQUAN, VOL. V, APRIL 1885 ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Emmy, Juliet Sutherland and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
-
-
-
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-
-<h1 class="faux">The Chautauquan, April 1885</h1>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 522px;">
-<img src="images/cover.jpg" width="522" height="800" alt="Cover" />
-</div>
-
-<div class="tnote">
-<div class="center"><small><b>Transcriber’s Note:</b> This cover has been
-created by the transcriber and is placed in the public domain.</small></div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_373" id="Page_373">[373]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="maintitle"><span class="smcap">The Chautauquan.</span></div>
-
-<p class="center"><i>A MONTHLY MAGAZINE DEVOTED TO THE PROMOTION OF TRUE CULTURE. ORGAN OF
-THE CHAUTAUQUA LITERARY AND SCIENTIFIC CIRCLE.</i></p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Vol. V.</span> <span class="spacer">APRIL, 1885.</span> No. 7.</p>
-
-<hr />
-
-<h2>Officers of the Chautauqua Literary and Scientific Circle.</h2>
-
-<p><i>President</i>, Lewis Miller, Akron, Ohio. <i>Chancellor</i>, J. H. Vincent, D.D., New Haven, Conn. <i>Counselors</i>, The Rev. Lyman Abbott, D.D.;
-the Rev. J. M. Gibson, D.D.; Bishop H. W. Warren, D.D.; Prof. W. C. Wilkinson, D.D.; Edward Everett Hale. <i>Office Secretary</i>, Miss Kate
-F. Kimball, Plainfield, N. J. <i>General Secretary</i>, Albert M. Martin, Pittsburgh, Pa.</p>
-
-<hr class="double" />
-
-<h2>Contents</h2>
-
-<div class="tnote"><b>Transcriber’s Note:</b> This table of contents
-of this periodical was created for the HTML version to aid the reader.</div>
-
-<table summary="Contents">
- <tr>
- <td colspan="2" class="center"><a href="#REQUIRED_READING_FOR_APRIL">REQUIRED READING FOR APRIL.</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Aristotle</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#ARISTOTLE">373</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Home Studies in Chemistry and Physics</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="indent2">Chemistry of Earth</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#HOME_STUDIES_IN_CHEMISTRY_AND_PHYSICS">375</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">The Circle of the Sciences</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#THE_CIRCLE_OF_THE_SCIENCES">378</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Sunday Readings</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="indent2">[<i>April 5.</i>]</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#APR5">382</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="indent2">[<i>April 12.</i>]</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#APR12">383</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="indent2">[<i>April 19.</i>]</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#APR19">384</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="indent2">[<i>April 26.</i>]</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#APR26">385</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Easy Lessons in Animal Biology</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="indent2">Chapter I.</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#EASY_LESSONS_IN_ANIMAL_BIOLOGY">385</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Jerry McAuley and His Work</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#JERRY_McAULEY_AND_HIS_WORK">390</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Ein Feste Burg Ist Unser Gott. Translation of Luther’s Famous Hymn.</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#EIN_FESTE_BURG_IST_UNSER_GOTT">392</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">The Weather Bureau</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#THE_WEATHER_BUREAU">393</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">How to Win</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="indent2">Chapter II.</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#HOW_TO_WIN">396</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Fortress, Palace and Prison</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#FORTRESS_PALACE_AND_PRISON">397</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Geography of the Heavens for April</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#GEOGRAPHY_OF_THE_HEAVENS_FOR_APRIL">400</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">England and Islam</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#ENGLAND_AND_ISLAM">402</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">The Art of Fish Culture</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="indent2">Part I.</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#THE_ART_OF_FISH_CULTURE">404</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">The Life of George Eliot</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#THE_LIFE_OF_GEORGE_ELIOT">407</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Arbor Day</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#ARBOR_DAY">409</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">How to Work Alone</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#HOW_TO_WORK_ALONE">411</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Outline of Required Readings for April</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#OUTLINE_AND_PROGRAMS">413</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Programs for Local Circle Work</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#PROGRAMS_FOR_LOCAL_CIRCLE_WORK">413</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Local Circles</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#LOCAL_CIRCLES">413</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">The C. L. S. C. Classes</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#THE_C_L_S_C_CLASSES">419</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Questions and Answers</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#QUESTIONS_AND_ANSWERS">420</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Editor’s Outlook</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#EDITORS_OUTLOOK">423</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Editor’s Note-Book</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#EDITORS_NOTE-BOOK">425</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">C. L. S. C. Notes on Required Readings for April</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#C_L_S_C_NOTES_ON_REQUIRED_READINGS_FOR_APRIL">427</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Notes on Required Readings in “The Chautauquan”</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#NOTES_ON_REQUIRED_READINGS_IN_THE_CHAUTAUQUAN">429</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Paragraphs from New Books</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#PARAGRAPHS_FROM_NEW_BOOKS">431</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Talk About Books</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#TALK_ABOUT_BOOKS">432</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">The Chautauqua University: What Are Its Claims?</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#THE_CHAUTAUQUA_UNIVERSITY">433</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Special Notes</span></td>
- <td class="tdr"><a href="#SPECIAL_NOTES">434</a></td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<h2 id="REQUIRED_READING_FOR_APRIL">REQUIRED READING FOR APRIL.</h2>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<h2 id="ARISTOTLE">ARISTOTLE.</h2>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<p class="center">BY WILLIAM C. WILKINSON.</p>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p>[The “College Greek Course in English” did not, for a reason
-alluded to in the following paper, include Aristotle among the authors
-represented. The readers of <span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span> will be glad to get
-some acquaintance with so great an ancient name through this supplementary
-chapter from Prof. Wilkinson’s pen.]</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Philosopher, though he by eminence is ranked, Aristotle
-was, too, something of an encyclopedist. He traversed almost
-the whole circle of the sciences, as that circle existed for
-the ancient world. But he was not simply first a learner, and
-then a teacher, of what others had found out before him. He
-was also an explorer and discoverer. Inventor also he was,
-if between discovery and invention we are to make a difference.
-He was a great methodizer and systematizer of knowledge.
-He bore to Plato the personal relation of pupil.</p>
-
-<p>The history of Aristotle’s intellectual influence is remarkable.
-That influence has suffered several phases of wax and
-wane, several alternate occultations and renewals of brightness.
-During a certain period of time, covering several hundred
-years, he was, perhaps beyond the fortune of any other
-man that ever lived, the lord of human thought. We mean
-the time of the schoolmen<a href="#aristotle1" id="anch_aristotle1" class="fnanchor">[1]</a> so called. From near the close of
-the thirteenth century, until the era of the Reformation, Aristotle
-reigned supreme in the schools of Christian theology,
-which is the same thing as to say that he was acknowledged
-universal monarch of the European mind. The business of
-the schoolmen may be said to have been to state the dogmas
-of the church in the forms of the Aristotelian logic, and then
-to reconcile those dogmas so stated, with the teachings of the
-Aristotelian philosophy.</p>
-
-<p>Curiously enough, the introduction of Aristotle to the doctors
-of the church was through the Mohammedan Arabs. These
-men had, during a term of centuries, been the continuers of
-the intellectual life of the race. While through the long night
-of those ages of darkness the Christian mind slept, the Arabian
-mind, waking, gave itself largely to the study of Aristotle.
-The Greek philosopher was posthumously naturalized a barbarian;
-for Aristotle’s writings were now translated from their
-original tongue into Arabic. In this Arabic version, the celebrated
-Ibn Roshd (chiefly famous under his latinized name
-A-verˈroës) knew Aristotle and commented on him. The
-Arabic commentaries of Averroes were translated into Latin,
-and the thought of Aristotle thus became once more accessible
-to European students. Averroes (A. D. 1149-1198) himself was
-of the Moors of Spain.</p>
-
-<p>For centuries previous to the time when the son and successor
-of good Haroun al Raschid,<a href="#aristotle2" id="anch_aristotle2" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> known at least by name to
-the readers and lovers of Tennyson, collected at Bagdad all
-the scattered volumes of Greek letters that his agents could
-find in Armenia, Syria and Egypt—for centuries, we say, previous
-to this, Aristotle suffered an almost complete arrest
-and suspension of intellectual influence. That man would
-have been a bold prophet who should then have predicted
-what a resurrection to power awaited the slumbering philosopher.</p>
-
-<p>Still earlier, however, than this, that is, during the interval
-between the third Christian century and the sixth, Aristotle
-enjoyed a great vogue. He was studied and commented on
-as if all human wisdom was summed up in him. The spirit of
-independent and original philosophy had perished, and whatever
-philosophic aptitude survived was well content to exhaust
-itself in expounding Aristotle. Aristotle’s works became a
-kind of common Bible to the universal mind of the Roman
-empire. This was the period of the Greek scholiasts, so-called—in
-more ordinary language, commentators.</p>
-
-<p>Taking the reverse or regressive direction of history, we
-have thus run back to a point of time some six or seven centuries
-subsequent to the personal life and activity of Aristotle.
-During the latter half of these centuries, Aristotle’s fame was
-gradually growing, from total obscurity to its great culmination
-in splendor under the scholiasts.</p>
-
-<p>Before that growth began, the productions of Aristotle had
-experienced a fortune that is one of the romances of literary
-history. The great pupil of Plato had himself no great pupil
-to continue after his death the illustrious succession of Grecian
-philosophy. His writings, unduplicated manuscripts they seem
-to have been, fell into the hands of a disciple, who, dying, bequeathed
-them to a disciple of his own, residing in the Troad.
-To the Troad accordingly they went. Here, with a view to
-save them from the grasp of a ruthless royal collector of valuable
-parchments, the family having these works in possession
-hid them in an underground vault, in which they lay moldering
-and forgotten one hundred and fifty years! It was thus in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_374" id="Page_374">[374]</a></span>
-all nearly two hundred years that Aristotle’s thoughts were
-lost to the world. When at last it was deemed safe, the precious
-documents were brought out and sold to a rich and cultivated
-Athenian. This gentleman, let us name him for honor,
-it was A-pelˈli-con, had unawares purchased his prize for a rapacious
-Roman collector. Sylla seized it, on his capture of
-Athens, and sent it to Rome. At Rome it had the good fortune
-to be appreciated. One An-dro-niˈcus edited the collection,
-and gave to the world that, probably, which is now the accepted
-text of Aristotle.</p>
-
-<p>But, romantic as has been the succession of vicissitudes befalling
-his productions and his fame, Aristotle is, in his extant
-writings, anything but a romantic author. A less adorned, a
-less succulent style, than the style in which the Stagirite (he
-was of Stagˈi-rus, in Macedonia) wrote, it would be difficult to
-find. Still it is a style invested at least with the charm of evident
-severe intentness, in the writer, on his chosen aim.
-Cicero, it is true, speaks of Aristotle’s style in language of
-praise that would well befit a characterization of Plato. But
-Cicero must have had in view works of the philosopher other
-than those which we possess, works written perhaps in the
-author’s more florid youth. With this conjecture agrees the
-fact that a list of Aristotle’s works, made by the authorities of
-the renowned Alexandrian library, contains numerous titles not
-appearing in the writings that remain to us attributed to
-Aristotle.</p>
-
-<p>Aristotle was not, as Plato was, properly a man of letters.
-Or, if he did bear this character, the evidence of it has perished.
-What we possess of his intellectual productions exhibits
-the author in the perfectly dry and colorless light of a man
-of science. Even in those treatises of his in which he comes
-nearest to the confines of pure and proper literature, his interest
-is rather scientific than literary. He discusses in two separate
-books the art of rhetoric and the art of poetry; but he
-conducts his discussion without enthusiasm, without imagination,
-in the severely strict spirit of the analyst and philosopher.
-The text of the two treatises now referred to survives in a state
-of great imperfection. Indeed, the same is the case generally
-with Aristotle’s works. Critics have even surmised that, in
-some instances, notes of lectures, taken by pupils while the
-master according to his wont was walking about and extemporizing
-discourse, have done duty in place of authentic autograph
-originals supplied by the hand of Aristotle himself. The
-title “Peripatetic” (walk-about), given to the Aristotelian philosophy,
-was suggested by the great teacher’s habit, thus
-alluded to, of doing his work as teacher under the stimulus of
-exercise on his feet in the open air.</p>
-
-<p>The non-literary character of Aristotle’s works has to a
-great extent excluded him from the course of Greek reading
-adopted by colleges—this, and moreover the fact that he
-occupies a position at the extreme hither limit, if not quite
-outside the extreme limit, of the Greek classic age. Still he is
-now and then read in college; and at any rate he is too redoubtable
-a name among those names which in their motions
-were</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">“Full-welling fountain-heads of change,”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="unindent">not to be an interesting object of knowledge to the readers of
-<span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span>.</p>
-
-<p>The productions of Aristotle are numerous. The Alexandrian
-bibliography of him gives one hundred and forty-six
-titles of his works. Of the books thus catalogued not a vestige
-remains, except in an occasional quotation from them at the
-hands of some other ancient writer. The works commonly
-printed as Aristotle’s form an entirely different list. We give
-a few of the leading titles or subjects: “Organon,” a collective
-name for various writings that made up a system of logic;
-“Rhetoric,” “Po-etˈics” (art of poetry), “Ethics,” “Politics,”
-“Natural Philosophy,” “Biology,” “Metaphysics.” [This last
-word, which has acquired in modern use a very distinct meaning
-of its own, was originally a mere meaningless designation
-of certain investigations or discussions entered into by Aristotle
-<i>after</i> his physical researches. The preposition <i>meta</i>
-(after), and <i>physica</i> (physics), give the etymology of the term.]
-The comprehensive or, as we before said, encyclopædic
-range of Aristotle’s intellectual activity will to the observant
-reader be sufficiently indicated by this list of titles.</p>
-
-<p>For his work in natural history, Aristotle was powerfully
-supported by one of the most resplendent military geniuses
-that the world has ever seen, Alexander the Great. To this
-prince and warrior, when he was a lad, the philosopher had
-discharged the office of private teacher. It would appear that
-either Aristotle was courtier enough, or young Alexander was
-man enough, to make this relation a pleasant one to the boy.
-For, in later years, the conqueror of the world presented to his
-former teacher a round million of dollars to make himself comfortable
-withal. But who can tell which it was, gratitude for
-benefit received, or remorse for trouble occasioned, that
-prompted the <i>ex post facto</i><a href="#aristotle3" id="anch_aristotle3" class="fnanchor">[3]</a> royal munificence? Perhaps it
-was both—a tardy gratitude quickened by a generous remorse.</p>
-
-<p>The chief glory of Aristotle is to have at once invented and
-finished the science of logic. For this is an achievement
-which may justly be credited to the philosopher of Stagirus.
-It would generally be conceded that, since Aristotle’s day,
-little or nothing substantial has been added to the results of
-his labor in the field of pure logic. The name Orˈga-non (instrument)
-is not Aristotle’s word, but that of some ancient editor
-of his works. It is a noteworthy name, as having dictated
-to Bacon the title to his epoch-making work, the <i>Novum
-Organum</i> (the new method or instrument).</p>
-
-<p>It would not be easy to give an exhaustive account of Aristotle’s
-productions, and make the account attractive reading.
-We shall not undertake so impracticable a task. Let our
-readers accept our word for it that Aristotle, though a justly
-renowned name in the history of thought, is not fitted to be a
-popular author.</p>
-
-<p>From his “History of Animals” we present a specimen extract
-that will perhaps with some readers go far toward confuting
-what we just now said. There are, we confess, some
-things in this treatise that read almost as if they might belong
-to that truly fascinating book, “Goldsmith’s Animated Nature:”</p>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p>“The cuckoo is said by some persons to be a changed hawk, because
-the hawk which it resembles disappears when the cuckoo comes,
-and indeed very few hawks of any sort can be seen during the period
-in which the cuckoo is singing, except for a few days. The cuckoo is
-seen for a short time in the summer, and disappears in winter. But the
-hawk has crooked talons, which the cuckoo has not, nor does it resemble
-the hawk in the form of its head, but in both these respects is more
-like the pigeon than the hawk, which it resembles in nothing but its
-color; the markings, however, upon the hawk are like lines, while the
-cuckoo is spotted.</p>
-
-<p>“Its size and manner of flight is like that of the smallest kind of
-hawk, which generally disappears during the season in which the
-cuckoo is seen. But they have both been seen at the same time, and
-the cuckoo was being devoured by the hawk, though this is never done
-by birds of the same kind. They say that no one has ever seen the
-young of the cuckoo. It does, however, lay eggs, but it makes no nest,
-but sometimes it lays its eggs in the nests of small birds, and devours
-their eggs, especially in the nests of the pigeon (when it has eaten their
-eggs). Sometimes it lays two, but usually only one egg; it lays also in
-the nest of the hypolais,<a href="#aristotle4" id="anch_aristotle4" class="fnanchor">[4]</a> which hatches and brings it up. At this season
-it is particularly fat and sweet-fleshed; the flesh also of young
-hawks is very sweet and fat. There is also a kind of them which
-builds a nest in precipitous cliffs.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>This morsel, our readers must consider, is not a very characteristic
-specimen of the feast that, take all his works together,
-Aristotle spreads for his students. But it is as toothsome
-as any we could offer. If it makes our readers wish for
-more, that is as friendly a feeling as we could possibly hope
-to inspire in them toward Aristotle. We shall now let them, in
-that mood, bid the great philosopher farewell.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_375" id="Page_375">[375]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 id="HOME_STUDIES_IN_CHEMISTRY_AND_PHYSICS">HOME STUDIES IN CHEMISTRY AND PHYSICS.</h2>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<p class="center">BY PROF. J. T. EDWARDS, D.D.<br />
-Director of the Chautauqua School of Experimental Science.</p>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<h3>CHEMISTRY OF EARTH.</h3>
-
-<p>John B. Gough declares that a few kind words spoken to
-him, in a crisis of his life, saved him from ruin. He afterward
-carefully educated the orphan daughters of the gentleman who
-uttered those words.</p>
-
-<p>“Why,” you say, “it was a little thing.” “Yes, <i>little</i> for
-him, but a big thing for me.”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 300px;">
-
-<img src="images/illus007.jpg" width="300" height="300" alt="" />
-
-<p class="caption">CRYSTALS OF ALUM.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The importance of <i>many</i> things depends upon the point of
-observation. To a hypothetical astronomer on a distant star,
-this world would be too minute for observation. In that shining
-pathway of the heavens, called the “milky way,” there
-have been discovered eighteen millions of stars, each hundreds
-of times larger than our earth; yet <i>our</i> atom in immensity
-is, just now, of marvelous interest to us. Indeed, it must
-be of interest to the highest intelligences, for such are the harmonies
-of God’s universe that the minutest planet is in many of
-its forces and laws representative of the whole. So that our
-world is, in a sense, both a microcosm and a cosmo.</p>
-
-<p>Let us briefly consider some characteristics of the earth, from
-the standpoint of the chemist.</p>
-
-<p>All substances have been divided into two great classes, the
-inorganic and organic. The latter contains two subdivisions—the
-vegetable and animal world. Nature thus comprises
-three great sub-kingdoms, the mineral, vegetable and animal.</p>
-
-<p>A mineral is an inorganic body (that is, one in which no
-parts are formed for special purposes), possessed of a definite
-chemical composition, and usually of a regular geometric
-form. It may seem at first glance that the last part of this
-definition is not correct, but there is reason to believe that all
-mineral substances may, under favorable circumstances, assume
-crystalline forms. Water and air are minerals. Other
-liquids and gases are included in the term, but as we have had
-already something to say of these latter substances, we shall,
-for the purposes of this article, use the word earth in the popular
-sense; namely, inorganic matter, which at ordinary temperature
-is solid. All materials are classified into</p>
-
-<h3>ELEMENTS AND COMPOUNDS.</h3>
-
-<p>By an element is meant a substance which has never been
-resolved into parts, and conversely, one that can not be produced
-by the union of two or more substances. There is some
-difference of opinion as to their number. It is usually given
-as sixty-four. There are a great many compounds. Nature
-seems to delight in surprising us by the simplicity of the means
-employed in producing marvelous results. As the mind of
-Milton combined the twenty-six letters of our alphabet to form
-“Paradise Lost,” so the Infinite arranged and re-arranged the
-elements to form the sublime poem of creation. Fifty-one of
-the elements are metals, and thirteen metalloids; gold is a
-familiar example of the former, and sulphur of the latter. A
-few, like hydrogen and oxygen, are gases; two are liquids;
-quicksilver and bromine: the greater number exist as solids.
-But few of them are found native, <i>i. e.</i>, chemically uncombined
-with other substances. In the fierce heat of former ages they
-were mixed as in a mighty crucible, and few escaped the
-power of affinities thus engendered. Gold and copper are
-sometimes found pure, but even they, more frequently than
-otherwise, exist fused with other substances.</p>
-
-<p>Compounds are of three classes—acids, bases and salts.
-Sand is a specimen of the first, lime of the second, and clay of
-the third. <i>Fixedness</i> is a characteristic of mineral compounds,
-yet they are by no means incapable of change; certain
-influences come in to promote it, of which the following are
-the most important—heat, solution, friction and percussion.</p>
-
-<p>Two gases, oxygen and hydrogen, may remain side by side
-for years uncombined, but a single spark will cause them to
-rush together with terrific energy.</p>
-
-<p>If the contents of the blue and white papers in a Seidlitz
-powder are mixed, no chemical action follows, but if dissolved
-separately in glasses of water, and then poured together, a
-violent effervescence takes place. If a small amount of potassium
-chlorate and a <i>little</i> piece of sulphur be put together in
-a mortar, and then pressed by the pestle, sharp detonations
-follow. Dynamite, which is nitro-glycerine mixed with infusorial
-earth, sugar or sawdust, is quite harmless when free from
-acid, unless struck. The above instances illustrate the various
-influences that stimulate chemical combination. Almost
-all the crust of the earth is formed of three substances—quartz,
-lime, and alumina. Wherever we stand on the round globe,
-it is safe to say that one or all of these are beneath our feet.</p>
-
-<h3>QUARTZ.</h3>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 340px;">
-
-<img src="images/illus008.jpg" width="340" height="300" alt="" />
-
-<p class="caption">QUARTZ CRYSTALS.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>This mineral comprises about one half the earth’s crust. Its
-symbol is SiO₂, being a compound of silicon and oxygen, in
-the proportions indicated. It is very hard, easily scratching<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_376" id="Page_376">[376]</a></span>
-glass, of which it forms an important constituent, is acted upon
-by only one acid—hydrofluoric; this attacks it eagerly, as may
-be shown by the following interesting experiment: Take a
-little lead saucer, or in the absence of this, spread lead foil
-carefully over the inside of an ordinary saucer, and in this
-place some powdered fluor spar. This mineral is quite abundant
-in nature, and is always to be obtained, in the form of a
-powder, from dealers in chemicals. Have a pane of glass covered
-by a thin film of wax. Now trace upon this surface with
-a sharp point, anything you may desire, verse or picture.
-Pour into the saucer containing the fluor spar, sufficient sulphuric
-acid to make a paste. Place over this the plate of
-glass, with the waxed side down, and let it remain for twenty-four
-hours. Remove the wax by heating, and on the glass you
-will find a perfect etching, the HF having removed the silica.</p>
-
-<p>The same effect may be produced in a few moments by applying
-to the bottom of the saucer a moderate heat. Care
-should be taken not to inhale the fumes, as they are highly
-corrosive.</p>
-
-<p>Quartz can be melted at a high temperature, and may be
-dissolved in certain hot solutions. It is still a question in dispute,
-whether the numerous quartz veins found in rocks were
-introduced there in melted form or in solution. Probably,
-sometimes in one state and sometimes in the other. Any visitor
-to a glass manufactory can see how easily glass in a
-melted state is manipulated; and travelers often bring from
-the geysers<a href="#chemistry1" id="anch_chemistry1" class="fnanchor">[1]</a> fine specimens of silica called geyserite, derived
-from the material held in solution in the hot water, and deposited
-on the edge of the “basin.”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 250px;">
-
-<img src="images/illus009.jpg" width="175" height="300" alt="" />
-
-<p class="caption">SIDE AND TOP VIEW OF THE REGENT OR PITT DIAMOND (REDUCED IN
-SIZE)—CUT IN THE FORM OF THE “BRILLIANT.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Quartz may be classified under two varieties—the common
-and the rare. Sand, pebbles, many conglomerates, all sandstone
-rocks come under the former head. The old red sandstone
-described by Hugh Miller,<a href="#chemistry2" id="anch_chemistry2" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> in which fossil fish are so
-abundant, and the new red sandstone of the Connecticut valley,
-famous for its bird or reptile tracks, brought to light
-through the labors of Dr. Hitchcock,<a href="#chemistry3" id="anch_chemistry3" class="fnanchor">[3]</a> were formed of sand cemented
-together under pressure by the peroxide of iron. There
-are many beautiful varieties of the rarer forms of quartz. Not
-a few of these were known to the ancients, as may be seen by
-reading the twenty-first chapter of Revelations, where a number
-are mentioned in the description of the heavenly city.
-“The wall of it was of jasper, and the foundations of the wall
-of the city were garnished with all manner of precious stones.
-The first foundation was jasper; the second, sapphire; the
-third, a chalcedony; the fourth, an emerald; the fifth, a sardonyx;
-the sixth, sardius; the seventh, chrysolite; the eighth,
-beryl; the ninth, a topaz; the tenth, a chrysoprasus; the
-eleventh, a jacinth; the twelfth, an amethyst.”</p>
-
-<p>All of these excepting the sapphire, which is crystallized
-alumina, are either pure or mixed varieties of quartz, colored
-with some metallic oxide. One of the most beautiful forms of
-these precious stones is the agate, especially that kind called
-the onyx, which consists of a succession of opaque and transparent
-layers. When carved into gems, this is called the cameo.
-A wonderful carved cameo was in the Tiffany exhibit at the
-Centennial Exposition, valued at four thousand dollars. The
-several layers were so cut as to represent a man looking
-through the bars of his prison.</p>
-
-<h3>LIME.</h3>
-
-<p>Another very plentiful substance in the earth is lime. It is
-chiefly found in the form of three salts, the carbonate, sulphate
-and phosphate (CaCO₃) (CaSO₄) (Ca₃(PO₄)₂), respectively.
-The first is familiarly known as limestone. When
-crystallized, it appears as marble. The shades of marble are
-due to the tinting of metallic oxides, and sometimes to the
-presence of fossils. The most beautiful marble is obtained
-from Carrara, Italy, which has long been famous for furnishing
-the material used for statues. It is pure white. Pure black
-marble is found in some ancient Roman sculptures. Sienna
-marble is yellow. Italy furnishes one kind that is red. Verd-antique
-is a mixture of green serpentine and white limestone,
-while our beautiful Tennessee marble, used so profusely in the
-new Capitol at Washington, is a blended red and white.</p>
-
-<p>Common limestone is almost entirely the product of minute
-animals<a href="#chemistry4" id="anch_chemistry4" class="fnanchor">[4]</a> which lived in early geologic times. Ages before the
-Romans drove piles into the Thames, or the first hut was erected
-on the banks of the Seine, these little creatures laid the
-foundations which underlie London and Paris. They built
-the rocky barriers which gave to England the name Albion,
-derived from the white cliffs along her shore. It is a suggestive
-crumb of comfort for little folk, that the great tasks in the
-building of our earth have been performed by the smallest
-creatures.</p>
-
-<p>The wide distribution of limestone is shown from the fact that
-it is found to be an ingredient in almost all waters. It is
-readily dissolved, as is seen in the numerous caves which are
-found in limestone regions.</p>
-
-<p>When limestone is heated, the carbonic anhydride<a href="#chemistry5" id="anch_chemistry5" class="fnanchor">[5]</a> is expelled,
-leaving quicklime. All are familiar with the manifold
-uses of this material. United with sand, it forms a silicate of
-lime, called mortar, which becomes harder with age. In the
-old stone mill<a href="#chemistry6" id="anch_chemistry6" class="fnanchor">[6]</a> at Newport, R. I., which is of unknown antiquity,
-the mortar in some places actually protrudes beyond
-the stones, showing it to be more durable than the rock itself.
-The catacombs of Rome were excavated in a very soft kind of
-limestone, called calcareous tufa.</p>
-
-<p>Sulphate of lime, also known as gypsum and plaster of
-Paris, is widely distributed. One beautiful variety is called
-satin spar, and another alabaster.</p>
-
-<p>Great quantities of sulphate of lime are quarried for use in
-the arts and for agricultural purposes. Dr. Franklin was one
-of the first to discover its value in connection with crops, and
-is said to have sown it with grain on a side hill, so that when the
-wheat sprang up, observers were surprised to see written in gigantic
-green letters, “Effects of Gypsum!” I suspect he got
-the hint from Dr. Beattie, who sowed seeds so that their flowers
-formed the name of his son, to prove to the boy the existence
-of a God, from evidences of design in nature.</p>
-
-<h3>ALUMINA—Al₂O₃.</h3>
-
-<p>This material is found both alone and in combination with
-silica. It forms an important ingredient in alum. Crystallized,
-it furnishes some of our most rare and beautiful gems, the color
-of which depends upon the metal combined with them.</p>
-
-<p>The ruby is red, the emerald green, the topaz yellow, the
-sapphire blue.</p>
-
-<p>Slate rocks consist largely of this material, and clay is a
-compound of alumina with siliceous anhydride. Among the
-first earthy substances utilized by man was clay. We find remains
-of pottery even as far back as the stone age<a href="#chemistry7" id="anch_chemistry7" class="fnanchor">[7]</a>. The ingenuity
-of man seems to have been displayed constantly and
-successfully in the ceramic<a href="#chemistry8" id="anch_chemistry8" class="fnanchor">[8]</a> art, the art of making pottery.
-Note the accounts given by Prescott, in his “Conquest of Peru
-and Mexico,” and the Cesnola collection of Cypriote remains<a href="#chemistry9" id="anch_chemistry9" class="fnanchor">[9]</a>
-exhibited in the Metropolitan Museum in New York City.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_377" id="Page_377">[377]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>History is repeating itself by renewing the ancient enthusiasm
-for decoration of china and earthen ware. Bricks made
-from clay are found to rival granite in durability, and surpass
-it in resistance to heat, as was proven in the great fires of
-Boston and Chicago. It will be observed from the symbol of
-alumina that it is largely composed of the metal aluminum.
-If this could be readily liberated from the oxygen with which
-it is combined, the world would be immensely enriched.</p>
-
-<p>Every clay bank or clayey soil contains it in great quantities.
-Next to oxygen and silicon, it is the most abundant element
-in the earth. Note its valuable properties. It is but two
-and one-half times heavier than water, as bright and non-oxidizable
-as silver, malleable, ductile, tenacious, and can
-be welded and cast. Who will lay the world under obligation
-by doing with alumina what has been done with iron ores,
-cheaply liberate the oxygen?</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 400px;">
-
-<img src="images/illus011.jpg" width="400" height="325" alt="" />
-
-<p class="caption">TESTING FOR IRON WITH A BORAX BEAD.—THE COMPOUNDS OF IRON
-WITH BORAX GIVE A BOTTLE GREEN COLOR.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>In this brief enumeration of earth materials, we have intentionally
-omitted the forms of carbon. They constitute no insignificant
-portion of the earth’s crust, but belong to the class
-of organic substances. We introduce, however, an illustration
-showing one of the shapes in which is cut the diamond—that
-most costly of all forms of matter,—crystallized carbon.</p>
-
-<h3>THE COMMON METALS.</h3>
-
-<p>First in importance is iron. The fact already mentioned
-that its oxide is the most common coloring matter in the
-mineral world will also indicate its wide dissemination.</p>
-
-<p>Trap rock, gneiss, even granite, sands, clays and other
-rocks all borrow tints from this source. Iron is never found
-native except in meteors. It exists most abundantly in the
-form of three ores, the composition of which is as follows:</p>
-
-<p>Black or magnetic oxide (Fe₃O₄), red oxide (Fe₂O₃), hydrated
-sesquioxide (Fe₂O₃3H₂O). From all of these the oxygen is removed
-in a blast furnace, by the use of some form of carbon.
-As thus prepared, it is called cast-iron. Two other varieties
-are employed in the arts, wrought iron and steel. The last
-differs from the first in having less carbon, and from the second
-in having more. The general properties of this material
-are too well known to require description here. A single
-property of this substance alone has marvelously affected the
-commerce of the world; that is, the power first discovered in
-magnetic iron ore, of attracting iron, and pointing northward.
-The first compass, it is said, consisted of a piece of this metal
-placed on a cork floating on water.</p>
-
-<p>Copper seems to have been one of the few metals known to
-barbarous peoples. It is found pure, and in combination.
-Specimens obtained from the Lake Superior region, in mines
-worked by the mound builders,<a href="#chemistry10" id="anch_chemistry10" class="fnanchor">[10]</a> have led some to believe that
-they possessed the art of hardening copper. Malachite is a
-carbonate of copper, of a beautiful mottled green color, and is
-made into elegant ornaments. Some magnificent specimens
-were in the Russian exhibit at the Philadelphia Exposition. It
-is found in great perfection in the Ural mountains.</p>
-
-<p>Tin is obtained from its binoxide (SnO₂). It was known to
-the ancients. Some historians claim that the Phœnicians
-procured it long before the time of Christ, from the mines of
-Cornwall, England. Until recently our country has seemed
-to be destitute of this valuable metal. Reports now indicate
-that Dakota is destined to supply this deficiency. It is a
-handsome metal, but little affected by oxygen, and capable of
-being rolled into thin sheets.</p>
-
-<p>Zinc is found in two different ores: red oxide (ZnO) and
-zinc blende (ZnS), from which it can be separated by smelting,
-in much the same manner as we obtain iron.</p>
-
-<p>Lead constitutes the fifth of the common metals which are
-preëminently useful. It is found in the sulphide of lead (PbS),
-the sulphide being expelled by roasting the ore. It forms
-numerous compounds, some of which are of great value. For
-example, lead carbonate (PbCO₃), the white lead which furnishes
-the most valuable ingredient of all paints.</p>
-
-<h3>NOBLE METALS.</h3>
-
-<p>These are so called because they retain their brilliancy and
-are not easily affected by other substances. Three of them are
-specially important: gold, silver and platinum. Gold is mentioned
-in the second chapter of Genesis: “and the gold of
-that land is good.” Although constituting an inconsiderable
-part of the earth, it is much more widely distributed than
-many suppose, but often exists in such small quantities that
-its production is not profitable.</p>
-
-<p>Australia and California are the gold lands. It is found
-principally in three situations: in sands which have been
-washed from the mountains, in little pockets in the rocks, and
-in veins of quartz. From the first it is separated by simply
-washing away the lighter materials, from the last situation it
-is procured by quarrying the rock, crushing it with stamping
-machines, then washing with water to remove the pulverized
-quartz, and gathering up the powdered gold with quicksilver.
-The mercury is removed by vaporizing. Gold is nineteen
-times heavier than water, extremely ductile, and the most
-malleable of all substances. Silver is abundant in the mountains
-of the west. It is usually found in the form of black sulphide
-(Ag₂S) or horn-silver (AgCl). When unpolished it is
-perfectly white, and is called dead or frosted silver. All are
-familiar with the properties of this attractive metal. Just now
-its producers in Colorado seem to fear its displacement from its
-important position in the coinage of the country. In nitrate of
-silver (AgNO₃) we have a material that perpetuates the faces of
-our friends, many a goodly landscape, and marvelous picture.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 400px;">
-
-<img src="images/illus012.jpg" width="400" height="215" alt="" />
-
-<p class="caption">MAGNET GATHERING IRON FILINGS.—A MAGNET WILL ALSO ATTRACT
-NICKEL FILINGS.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Platinum stands at the extreme limit of the elementary
-world in point of weight, being twenty-one and fifty-three
-hundredths times heavier than water. Russia has almost a
-monopoly of the production of this metal. It is about the
-value of gold, and to the chemist is of immense importance, on
-account of its high point of fusibility, which is over 4,000°. It
-is so ductile that it can be drawn out into wire so fine as to be
-invisible to the naked eye. This microscopic wire is used for
-centering the field of view in the finest telescopes.</p>
-
-<h3>EARTH’S CRUST AND CENTER.</h3>
-
-<p>Our earth is called “terra firma;” it is regarded as the very
-embodiment of stability, but every waving outline, every hill
-and mountain peak, not less than the rumbling of the earthquake,
-and the bursting forth of volcanic fires, indicate that it
-has been, and may again be, the scene of mighty disturbances.
-Indeed, upon reflection, one wonders that we can live on it at
-all. The temperature of the earth increases one degree for<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_378" id="Page_378">[378]</a></span>
-every fifty feet as we approach the center. At this rate, at the
-depth of fifty miles the heat would be sufficient, according to
-Humboldt,<a href="#chemistry11" id="anch_chemistry11" class="fnanchor">[11]</a> to melt the hardest rocks. Fifty miles is one
-one-hundred and sixtieth of the earth’s diameter. It thus appears
-that if we should have a globe three feet in diameter full
-of molten liquid, surrounded by a covering of infusible material
-<i>one eighth of an inch</i> in thickness, that film of solid matter
-would represent the earth’s crust. Think of it!</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 400px;">
-
-<img src="images/illus013.jpg" width="400" height="290" alt="" />
-
-<p class="caption">A “LEAD TREE.”</p>
-
-<p class="caption2"><i>Ex.</i>—Place in a glass a dilute solution of acetate of lead; suspend in it a strip of
-zinc. Some of the lead will be precipitated in crystals upon the zinc. This is
-caused by the zinc taking a portion of the acetic acid, and thus forming a new compound
-called zinc acetate, thereby liberating some of the lead.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Besides, that awful, fiery sea within is subject to tides, currents
-and convulsions that constantly threaten to disrupt and
-destroy this crust. It is supposed that masses of water percolate
-through cracks and fissures until they reach the internal
-fires and are suddenly converted into steam at an enormously
-high temperature, which gives it such tremendous expansive
-force as to shake the globe itself. This action, combined with
-the violent explosion of gases, creates the sublime and dreadful
-phenomena of</p>
-
-<h3>EARTHQUAKES AND VOLCANOES.</h3>
-
-<p>The destruction of Lisbon and many other cities is matter
-of history. But last year a charming city in the Mediterranean
-was destroyed in a few seconds, and the stricken inhabitants
-of Spain are still trembling with horror at the recent shocks
-that have desolated their fair country.</p>
-
-<p>Man looks in vain elsewhere for such exhibitions of the
-power of chemical forces as are here displayed.</p>
-
-<p>Lord Lytton<a href="#chemistry12" id="anch_chemistry12" class="fnanchor">[12]</a> gives a most impressive description of an
-eruption of Mount Vesuvius, in “The Last Days of Pompeii:”</p>
-
-<p>“In proportion as the blackness gathered, did the lightnings
-around Vesuvius increase in their vivid and scorching glare.
-Nor was their horrible beauty confined to the usual hues of
-fire; no rainbow ever rivaled their varying and prodigal dyes.
-Now brightly blue as the most azure depth of a southern sky,
-now of a livid and snake-like green, darting restlessly to and
-fro as the folds of an enormous serpent; now of a lurid and
-intolerable crimson, gushing forth through the columns of
-smoke, far and wide, and lighting up the whole city from arch
-to arch; then suddenly dying into sickly paleness, like the
-ghosts of their own life!</p>
-
-<p>“In the pauses of the showers you heard the rumblings of the
-earth beneath, and the groaning waves of the tortured sea; or,
-lower still, and audible but to the watch of intensest fear,
-the grinding, hissing murmur of the escaping gases through
-the chasms of the distant mountain.</p>
-
-<p>“Sometimes the cloud seemed to break from its solid mass,
-and, by the lightning to assume quaint and vast mimicries of
-human or of monster shapes, striding across the gloom, hurtling
-one upon the other, and vanishing swiftly into the turbulent
-abyss of shade; so that, to the eyes and fancies of the
-affrighted wanderers, the unsubstantial vapors were as the
-bodily forms of gigantic foes—the agents of terror and death.”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 400px;">
-
-<img src="images/illus014.jpg" width="400" height="400" alt="" />
-
-<p class="caption">TESTING FOR GOLD WITH PURPLE OF CASSIUS.</p>
-
-<p class="caption2"><i>Ex.</i>—When gold is placed in a solution of Stannon’s chloride and ferric chloride, a
-precipitate called Purple Cassius appears. Sometimes the color varies to brown or
-blue.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>It is claimed that there are about three hundred extinct
-volcanoes, and many facts indicate that the convulsions in
-the earth’s crust are much less frequent than formerly, yet one
-can easily conceive of its destruction by internal forces, when,
-as the poet has said,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">“The cloud-capped towers, the gorgeous palaces,</div>
-<div class="verse i1">The solemn temples, <i>the great globe itself</i>,</div>
-<div class="verse i1">Yea, all which it inherit, shall dissolve,</div>
-<div class="verse i1">And like the baseless fabric of a vision,</div>
-<div class="verse i1">Leave not a wreck behind.”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Revelation clearly announces the destruction of the earth:
-“In the which the heavens shall pass away with a great noise,
-and the elements shall melt with fervent heat; the earth also
-and the works that are therein shall be burned up.”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<h2 id="THE_CIRCLE_OF_THE_SCIENCES">THE CIRCLE OF THE SCIENCES.</h2>
-
-<h3>MENTAL SCIENCE</h3>
-
-<p>Is the mind’s knowledge of itself, of its faculties, and states.
-<i>Psychology</i> is now generally accepted as the most appropriate
-term to indicate that knowledge, and the studies that lead to
-its attainment. The <i>psyche</i>, as used by those ignorant of
-man’s higher nature, means the vital principle supposed to
-animate all living bodies, whether of men or the lower animals.
-It is, with them, the same as <i>life</i>, and is regarded as a
-result of the organizations they see, and not their cause. Others
-more consistently hold that, even in the lowest sense, vital
-forces precede, secure, and determine the organisms they animate;
-and that in the case of man there is a nobler endowment,
-a superadded, distinct, self-conscious, personal intelligence.
-“There is a spirit in man, and the inspiration of the
-Almighty giveth him understanding.” This <i>psyche</i>, or living
-soul, is a distinct, spiritual existence, however closely, for a
-time, allied with matter, and acting through bodily organs. It
-is capable of a separate existence, and while in the body, presents
-for our study phenomena peculiarly its own. Intellectual
-processes may be more subtle, and their analysis more difficult,
-than that of things external, because in the attempt the
-mind is, at once, subject and object, the observer and the observed.
-And, moreover, when greatly excited, it does not submit
-to immediate and direct investigation, as the effort at once
-arrests the excited feeling, and lowers the temperature, so that
-the state can be analyzed only as it is remembered. But, difficult
-of attainment as it is, the science that discusses the mind,
-proposing to show all that is known or may be learned respecting
-it, certainly challenges the interested attention of all who
-desire to know themselves. Whatever may be thought of the
-substance, or immediate origin of the active, thinking soul,
-consciousness affirms its presence, and its power to know and
-feel. When in a calm, thoughtful state, the phenomena are as
-real and as manifest as anything in physics or material things
-that are open to scientific investigation. By thorough introspection,
-the inquirer finds <i>himself</i> an invisible person, quite
-distinct from what is merely corporeal in his belongings, and of
-which he at once says: It is I; a person or being that he not
-only distinguishes from all others, but also from his own mental
-acts and states that are not himself. It needs no argument<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_379" id="Page_379">[379]</a></span>
-to prove that the physical frame, made of such material substances
-as gases, salts, earths, and metals, the particles of
-which are constantly changing, is not the man. It is not in
-the highest, truest sense, the body. Every particle of that frame
-may pass away while the body still remains. The real body is
-that which retains its organic sameness, amidst the incessant
-change of its materials. It is not the aggregation of gross
-substances, visible and tangible, but rather their connection
-and the life that unites them, that constitute a human body.
-We need not hesitate to say this life is the gift of God to man,
-made in his own image, and in his purpose an endowment far
-higher than mere animal life. When it is withdrawn, the organic
-structure built up as its earthly habitation is a ruin, and
-its material elements are scattered, the dust returning to dust
-again. Others may inquire for the “origin of souls,” asking
-questions over which many have wearied themselves in vain,
-we here only confess our faith that the sovereign Lord, “God
-of the spirits of all flesh,” has the relation of Fatherhood to his
-human children.</p>
-
-<p>A perfect mental science would require first, the normal action
-of the intellectual faculties to give phenomena, and then
-the accurate observation, and orderly arrangement of the phenomena
-given. To have a starting place there must be the
-feeling that we are, and can distinguish between ourselves and
-the mental acts of which we are capable. This consciousness
-is the root of all our soul science, and without it there could be
-no fruitful study of the human intellect. It is more than mere
-feeling, as it implies that activity of mind by which a man distinguishes
-between his body and soul, the senses and their
-possessor. It is the self-conscious act of knowing what is
-within; and when the phenomena or state is presented, the
-knowledge is intuitive or immediate. No reasoning, or other
-mental process, is required. The soul confronts itself and its
-acts face to face, and knows them as they are. The endowment
-is natural and universal. Though a child at first may
-show no sign of the possession, it has the capacity, and if normally
-developed, soon claims the right to be itself and not another.
-Like other human powers, this also is capable of culture,
-and may be raised to a state of higher activity and clearer
-discernment. This improved reflective consciousness brings
-to view the more occult phenomena within, comparing and
-classifying things, that it may have a clearer, more discriminating
-knowledge of the facts considered.</p>
-
-<p>Interrogating this witness, each finds in himself a power to
-think and reason. That is, an <i>intellectual faculty</i>, by the exercise
-of which there is intelligence, <i>memory</i> to retain or recall
-things once known, and <i>imagination</i>, that creates and represents
-things that are not, as though they were. These are distinct,
-though inseparable, faculties or powers. <i>Thinking</i> is
-necessary to exact or well defined knowledge, and until our
-ready impressions and conceptions are penetrated with
-thought, and we discern their nature, grounds, and connections,
-we have no science. Information may be received, facts
-committed to the memory, but if the treasures are jumbled together,
-and little thought given to either their analysis or orderly
-arrangement, they can be of but little value to their possessor.
-In its perceptions and sensations the mind is actively
-receptive; and by thought this normal activity is intensified.
-One who desires a correct knowledge of his own mind must
-connect his conceptions and impressions in some orderly manner,
-and think much. If there is an aversion to this, or hindrances
-arise from the almost incessant demands of business or
-society, and a tendency to mental dissipation is noticed, we
-may antidote the evil by mostly avoiding the popular light literature,
-and choosing, as the companions of our few leisure
-hours, standard works, in which are treasured the best thoughts
-of the world’s great thinkers. The intelligent study of the
-outer world, of nature, having the divine impress on every feature,
-will also do much to cure the weakness that many are
-ready to confess, to themselves at least. Nature does not
-think—has not reason, as man has, but the phenomena presented
-are full of reasons, the embodiments of God’s thoughts,
-that are above ours, high as the heavens are above the earth.</p>
-
-<p>The <i>will</i> is the controlling motive power, and decides the
-question of character. A voluntary agent is responsible for
-his acts. Where there is conscious freedom, not only to <i>act</i> as
-he wills, but to <i>will</i> obedience to the dictates of conscience,
-character is possible. The freedom spoken of, and without
-which there can be no obligation or responsibility, is, of course,
-<i>human</i> freedom. The will power is man’s, not that of the
-brute. The rational, voluntary agent, having conscience,
-moral ideas, sensibilities, and emotions, is, under law, blame-
-or praiseworthy, and personally responsible for what he is and
-does. His involuntary acts, if such are committed, are without
-moral character. There are some things that are not objects
-of his choice. When different ways of living are presented,
-he can freely choose which shall be his. But it is not
-given him to choose whether he himself shall have a moral
-character. That is inevitable; and his only option in the matter
-is as to whether it shall be good or bad.</p>
-
-<h3>LOGIC.</h3>
-
-<p>When the mind is employed in discriminating, arranging,
-judging, and reasoning, these several acts are all of a class,
-and are called rational or logical processes. Their importance
-can hardly be overestimated, as thus the reasoner gets assured
-possession of judgments or beliefs that are more or less general,
-and derives from them those that are particular and
-applicable in any exigency; or by the inductive method, from
-the particular facts within his knowledge, arrives at general
-propositions, and securely rests in them as true. In many, perhaps
-in most cases, both processes, the deductive and inductive,
-are used or implied. We understand phenomena or effects
-by their causes, and infer causes from their effects, explain
-the present by what has been, and anticipate the future
-by interpreting the past. We reason from what is seen to the
-unseen, from the facts of nature to nature’s laws.</p>
-
-<p>Systems of logic, if judiciously arranged, are of much value,
-and should be studied as guides and helps in our efforts to
-know the certainty of things. Method in reasoning is of much
-importance. But while comparatively few understand the
-rules, or adopt the exact technical terms used by scientific logicians,
-others, using methods and terms of their own, think
-vigorously, and reason well. The powers employed by the
-most thoroughly trained scholar and by the unlettered man
-may be equal, nor are their methods half so different as some
-suppose. Though the latter forms no expanded syllogisms,<a href="#circle1" id="anch_circle1" class="fnanchor">[1]</a>
-says nothing of “subject,” “predicate,” or “copula,” he as
-really has his premises, reasons from what he knows, and in
-many cases reaches his conclusions with about the same feeling
-of certainty. The knowledge he gains does not differ from
-that of those who are guided in their reasonings by the best
-rules that observation and experience suggest. Some of those,
-who in this matter of logic are a law unto themselves, not only
-reason well, but often very rapidly. Judgment is given so
-speedily on the presentation of the case that it seems intuitive.
-There is but a step from the premises of an argument, securely
-laid in what is conceded in the statement, or what they already
-know, to the conclusion that is legitimate, and they take
-it at once. Now, if this is true, and common sense reasonings
-often seem so easy, while those conducted by men of much science
-are often difficult and tedious, it may be asked what advantage,
-then, is there in the logic of the schools? A sufficient
-answer is found in the fact that the thoroughly trained
-logician can solve problems the other never attempts. In his
-processes the properties and relations observed are less obvious
-or more complicated than anything presented to the other.
-To apprehend them clearly, closer attention must be given than
-most men, without such training, ever give or can give. And
-then, the conclusions of the ready, rapid, though untrained,
-reasoner who investigates only common subjects, are really<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_380" id="Page_380">[380]</a></span>
-less reliable, because more likely to be founded on too superficial
-observations. The man of more science, and yet slower
-progress, is expected to handle the more difficult problems,
-and subject all their elements to a sharper scrutiny.</p>
-
-<h3>LANGUAGE</h3>
-
-<p>Is intimately connected with thought, not only as its expression,
-but as an auxiliary. Thoughts always become clearer
-and more firmly fixed in the mind by being expressed. Though
-words are not thoughts, and, carelessly uttered, may be quite
-meaningless, thoughts not only seek to embody, or clothe themselves
-in language, but our best thinking is done in the use of
-words, uttered or unexpressed. Though there may be no sound
-for the ear nor symbol for the eye, the word inly spoken serves
-to fix the otherwise transient thought so that it can be afterward
-recalled, and perhaps uttered, to stimulate the thinking of
-others. Hence the importance of the study of language, of
-words and their syntax, as employed to express mental processes.
-Grammar is important as an intellectual science.</p>
-
-<h3>ÆSTHETICS.</h3>
-
-<p>The science of the beautiful is an important and delightful
-branch of study; the knowledge gained being mostly through
-immediate perceptions and sensible impressions. Beauty,
-wherever discovered, appeals to the sensibilities, and raises
-pleasant emotions. As a means of culture it elevates and refines.
-Communings with nature in her lovelier moods subdue
-asperities, and inspire gentle, kindly dispositions, while the
-beautiful creations of architecture, statuary, and painting,
-of poetry and music, fill the souls of discerning, susceptible
-persons with indescribable pleasure. But though such emotions
-are frequently excited, and seem familiar, they are of all
-our mental phenomena least understood, and most difficult to
-analyze. Some of our most common experiences are, on examination,
-found the most inexplicable. All, in a general way,
-know that beauty of form, proportion and color, wherever
-seen, excites pleasurable emotions. But our knowledge of sensations
-and emotions is generally, though direct and immediate,
-imperfect, and can become thorough only when the first
-impression is retained, and the higher faculties employed in
-studying its character and its cause. Dr. Porter’s<a href="#circle2" id="anch_circle2" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> chapters on
-“Sense Perceptions” are, on the whole, satisfactory, and will
-help advance this branch of knowledge toward the dignity of
-a science. They give an analysis of beauty in objects that
-address the senses, and also of the emotions it awakens.
-Thoughtful students confess their need of more help. The science
-has its charms, but is still in its adolescence. Some things
-elementary are yet wanting, or known only by the names
-given them. Men talk of the “line of beauty” in architecture
-and sculpture, but do not yet know just what it is, or by what
-peculiarities it works on the sympathies of the beholder.
-We feel the exquisite pleasure but do not know just wherein
-the charms of the music that most delights us, consist, nor how
-it awakens the feeling it does. We can not tell just what it
-is in the poem we admire that gives its rhythm, figures of speech
-and imagery such enchanting power. The literature on the
-subject is extensive. We have, as all who read Ruskin’s<a href="#circle3" id="anch_circle3" class="fnanchor">[3]</a>
-works know, a rich treasure of astute observations, with keen,
-incisive criticisms, but yet no thorough analysis of all the materials
-necessary to complete the science of Æsthetics.</p>
-
-<h3>MORAL SCIENCE, OR ETHICS.</h3>
-
-<p>The science of duty, often called <i>moral</i> as relating to customs
-or habits of thought and action, discusses human obligations,
-or inquires what responsible voluntary agents ought to
-do, and why. Man has a moral nature; is so constituted, and
-placed in such relations that he feels certain things to be right
-for him, and others wrong; he says: I ought to do this, and
-that I ought not. These words, or their equivalents, expressive
-of obligation, can be traced in all languages of which we
-have any knowledge, and they voice the common sentiment
-of the race. Men differ widely in their intelligence, and consequently
-in their ability to discriminate with respect to acts or
-states that are purely intellectual. Their metaphysics may be
-cloudy and confused, so that their judgments on such matters
-will have neither agreement nor authority. But the moral
-sense discovers moral qualities more clearly. Its decisions are
-prompt, and their authority is acknowledged. Speculative
-questions on the subject are not all answered with the same
-agreement. If it is asked <i>why</i> a thing is right, different persons
-may answer differently. One says because it is useful;
-another because it is commanded by a higher authority; and
-another because it accords with the fitness of things. These
-are questions for the intellect and not for the moral sense. Its
-province is simply to decide whether the act or state is right or
-not, and there it stops. Whether the basis of the rectitude approved
-is in some quality of the act itself, in an antecedent, or
-a consequent, may be properly asked, and reasons assigned
-for the answers given. But such questions are speculative,
-and the answers do not have, even when the best are given,
-the force of a moral conviction. In saying a thing is right because
-it is right, we affirm our conviction of the fact, but tacitly
-confess we may not know all the reasons why. How the fact
-is known is sufficiently explained by a reference to consciousness.
-We are so constituted that when moral qualities, in ourselves
-or others, are fairly presented and understood, there
-arise feelings of approval or condemnation, corresponding to
-that which excites them. Of such convictions and emotions
-we are at once conscious, and can have no more certain knowledge
-of anything than of what is thus felt. Connecting them
-with their exciting cause, it, too, is known, not by any outward
-or sense perception, yet not less certainly by an inward moral
-sense, whose decisions are promptly given, and with authority.
-There are frequent occasions for men to distinguish between
-what is right and what is merely lawful. A villain, destitute of
-moral rectitude, who for his own pleasure, or gain, robs society
-of its brightest jewels, spreading ruin and desolation through
-the community, may violate no statute, and escape legal condemnation;
-but, though having no fear of the law or of the
-courts, he is not less certainly a guilty man.</p>
-
-<p>Conscience, as a faculty of the soul, differs but little from
-consciousness. Both words are from the same root, and neither,
-in its primary, etymological meaning, implies anything as to
-moral character. Consciousness is self-knowledge, the mind’s
-recognition of its own state as it is; and that a man has a conscience,
-or capacity for passing moral judgment on himself, is
-a condition that makes character of any kind possible. Each
-word, however, has now an additional meaning, sanctioned by
-general usage. The former generally implies emotions of approval
-or disapproval, and the latter that there is in the mind
-a standard of action, and a clear discrimination between right
-and wrong, with an immediate feeling of responsibility, or
-obligatory emotions.</p>
-
-<p>Though thus richly endowed with intellect, sensibilities, and
-will, by nature capable of the highest mental activities, the
-structure of the soul would be strangely incomplete if the religious
-element were wanting. But it is not wanting. Man is
-a religious animal, and ever prone to worship. He has capacities
-that are not filled, longings unsatisfied, and must go out of
-himself for help and rest. Of all the sciences that concern him
-most, no other is half so important as the science of God, an infinite,
-all-wise, ever-present, personal God; our Creator, Redeemer,
-Benefactor. This science is transcendent, and confirmed
-by indubitable evidence. It satisfies and saves. “This
-is eternal life, to know the only true God, and Jesus Christ,
-whom he hath sent.”</p>
-
-<h3>SOCIAL SCIENCE</h3>
-
-<p>Investigates, in an orderly, scientific manner, the principles of
-association, and whatever relates to the interests and improvement
-of men in communities. It has its basis in psychology,
-as that science of the soul reveals most clearly the elements of
-a <i>social</i> nature. By instinctive longings for sympathy and fellowship,
-men are drawn together, and readily consent to the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_381" id="Page_381">[381]</a></span>
-restraints of society, whose earlier tacit agreements and maxims
-are at length formulated into rules and laws for their better
-government.</p>
-
-<p>Civil governments, incomplete at first, and encountering
-many hindrances, often progress but slowly, and sometimes
-even recede from vantage ground that has been gained. Some
-known in history have made but little advancement during
-the nineteenth century, and still fail to adjust their political
-machinery to the wants and demands of the people. They
-will hardly survive much longer without some promise of better
-progress in the future. All really good governments are
-not equally good, and that is regarded best which secures the
-greatest liberty to the individual citizen, consistent with the
-rights of others and the public security. That end, when
-honestly proposed, may be, to some extent, secured under
-very different charters or constitutions, and very much depends
-on the wisdom of the administration. When the governing
-power is in the hands of one man, and he irresponsible
-for his manner of exercising it, it is called an <i>autocracy</i>, or
-<i>despotism</i>. When vested in one person, whose executive functions
-are exercised by ministers responsible to a legislative assembly
-or parliament, it is a <i>constitutional monarchy</i>. If the
-nobility, or a few principal men govern by a right, in some
-way claimed, and conceded to them, it is an <i>oligarchy</i>, or an
-<i>aristocracy</i>. If the power is in the hands of the people themselves,
-or their immediate representatives, as in the United
-States, it is a <i>democracy</i>, or <i>republic</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Social science embraces a wide range of subjects of more
-than ordinary importance. It discusses both principles and
-facts, the principles that underlie all social institutions, and
-the practical, economic regulations that are wisely adopted in
-well ordered, prosperous communities. If the institutions are
-established, its province is to examine theories, collect, arrange,
-and generalize facts, that may have some bearing on any proposed
-corrective and reformatory measures. It scrutinizes
-public crimes, penal codes, judicial decisions, and prison discipline,
-with whatever else pertains to social life. It shows
-the relation of men to men, of the ruler to the governed, of the
-employer to his employes, of the rich to the poor, the fortunate
-to the unfortunate, and by its expositions instructs men how
-to act in their various relations. If the science were much
-better understood, the dangerous classes would be less dangerous;
-and the troublesome problems of pauperism, the liquor
-traffic, Mormonism, and the social evil, would be less appalling
-to average legislators and judges.</p>
-
-<p>The experience of ages shows that the ameliorating, helpful
-agencies and influences that lift communities up to higher levels,
-often operate silently as the leaven, till the whole lump is leavened.
-In many tribes the advance from savagery and the usurpation
-by irresponsible leaders, of absolute power toward complete
-civil liberty and personal rights, has been slow. The
-change has come by means almost imperceptible, or by struggles
-that seemed at the time fruitless. The improved condition of society
-does not bring entire security, or freedom from assault.
-The yoke once taken from the neck, and the heavy burdens from
-the shoulders, new ideas of property, justice, and personal rights
-are developed. The spirit of enterprise is awakened, because
-each finds himself in the position of affluence and influence,
-to which his talents, industry and self-denial entitle him. Men
-become competitors, and inequalities of condition are inevitable.
-Incompetence, idleness, and extravagance bring want
-and misery. Wealth and poverty exist side by side, the rich
-growing richer, and the poor poorer. Class distinctions become
-odious. Capital and labor, that should be allies, are often
-in conflict, to the great injury of both. There may be occasion
-for complaint against those “who oppress the hireling
-in his wages,” and “grind the faces of the poor.” But many
-are envious without cause, and suffer only the penalty of their
-idleness and extravagance, become enemies of the community,
-and are deaf to remonstrance if they see, or think they see,
-any way of relieving themselves at the expense of those who
-have acted more wisely, and possess large estates. Here come
-in the functions of government, that is of society, with its better
-notions of right and justice, and power to enforce them.
-True “social science,” founded on the experience of ages,
-recognizes the necessity of government, the obligations of the
-citizen, and the right of all to the property they have lawfully
-and honestly acquired. It demonstrates that real progress is
-in the way of a safe conservatism, while it admits the possibility
-of change and improvement, fully justifying the work of
-the reformer where reformation is needed. If existing institutions
-are inadequate because of some radical defect, have outlasted
-their usefulness, or become oppressive, revolution may
-be demanded. But any government, though unjust and despotic,
-is better than anarchy, and should be repudiated only
-when it is, under all the circumstances, possible to establish a
-better. When legitimate authority is resisted in the spirit of
-lawlessness or efforts at revolution prompted by an evil ambition,
-the actors are guilty. There have been many attempts,
-mostly abortive, to solve the problem of government, and reconstruct
-the social fabric. Some of them by good men, whose
-schemes were simply theoretical and impractical; others by
-malcontents and destructionists who mistake license for liberty.
-Plato, a man of probity and justice, but lacking the wisdom
-of the statesman, prepared a constitution for a model republic,
-which had too many defects for adoption; a republic with
-advantages for a select class, but slavery for the masses
-doomed to manual labor, which was made despicable. More
-wrote his “Utopia,”<a href="#circle4" id="anch_circle4" class="fnanchor">[4]</a> regarded by some as a kind of program
-for a needed social reform. It had little influence with his
-countrymen, most of whom ranked it with works of the imagination,
-where it belonged, whether so intended or not. Campanella,<a href="#circle5" id="anch_circle5" class="fnanchor">[5]</a>
-a radical communist of Stilo, in Calabria, wrote his Utopia,
-called “The City of the Sun,” a sensual paradise, in which
-there was to be a community of goods and of wives. For more
-than a century socialistic and communistic publications were
-numerous; many of them denouncing property as a sin, and
-advocating the greatest license in the intercourse of the sexes.
-Rousseau, in his discourse on the “Origin and Grounds of Inequality
-Amongst Men,” speaks with approval of “a state of
-nature,” something like that among our American Indians before
-they had any knowledge of civilization. He seems to have
-supposed there was no inequality, no vice, no misery, among
-untutored savages, and advised those who could, to return to a
-state of nature.</p>
-
-<p>The skeptical Owen,<a href="#circle6" id="anch_circle6" class="fnanchor">[6]</a> and the philosophical Fourier,<a href="#circle7" id="anch_circle7" class="fnanchor">[7]</a> more
-practical than others, attempted to establish communities as
-models or examples of what could be accomplished on their
-theory, but failure attended their enterprises, or the communities
-were saved from utter disintegration by the tacit admission
-of principles that were once disavowed.</p>
-
-<p>Modern socialism, akin to communism, and in all its tendencies
-subversive of good government, declaims over the
-poverty and misery of the unhappy masses, laments their insufficient
-shelter, food, and clothing, is sentimental on the subject
-of labor and wages, and seeks to rouse the abject sufferers
-to a sense of their sad condition. Its pictures of suffering are
-in many cases not overdrawn, and the greatest efforts can
-hardly exaggerate the facts. But socialism is not “social
-science.” It is utterly and perversely unscientific; it discusses
-effects, carefully leaving causes out of view; and would reform
-communities by corrupting and debasing individuals. With
-a vague notion that every man has a natural right to whatever
-he needs, it allows that the problem of equalization may be
-solved by violence, and thus all brought to a common level.
-The crimes against society, which have lately appalled us, are
-doubtless the result of the pernicious principles and teaching
-of “socialistic reformers.” But a reaction is sure to come,
-and the better instincts of the race will yet destroy the corrupt
-tree whose fruit is evil.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_382" id="Page_382">[382]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2>SUNDAY READINGS.</h2>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<p class="center">SELECTED BY CHANCELLOR J. H. VINCENT, D.D.</p>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<h3 id="APR5">[<i>April 5.</i>]</h3>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p>Ecclesiastics 7:29: “Lo, this only have I found, that God hath made
-man upright; but they have sought out many inventions.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>If we should stand amid the uncovered treasures which mark
-the site of ancient Nineveh or Babylon we would doubtless
-find in the objects, as they are this moment, very much to engage
-our most interested attention. We would regard with
-wonder and pleasure the specimens of beautiful architecture,
-the evidences of human skill and industry which modern exploration
-has disclosed to view. And yet, full of interest as
-such an occupation would be, we could not prevent our minds
-from engaging in another. Without any conscious exercise of
-will, our thought would revert to the day when these fallen
-structures stood in all their magnificence; when these halls,
-now filled with the sand of the desert, echoed to the strains of
-music and to the voices of the noblest and greatest of the
-land; when through these arches, now crumbling, armies
-marched gaily to battle, or returned in triumph, bearing the
-spoils of conquest. We would not be insensible to the value
-of the columns and capitals, the statuary and tablets before
-our eyes, and yet the very grandeur of these ruins would evoke
-the genius who would lead our thought by an irresistible constraint
-to look upon the prior vision of those cities in the day
-of their pristine perfection.</p>
-
-<p>My friends, we do stand amid ruins. We walk day after
-day amid shattered greatness, in comparison with which the
-prized relics of Nineveh and Babylon, of Thebes, and Luxor,<a href="#sunday1" id="anch_sunday1" class="fnanchor">[1]</a>
-and Troy, sink into insignificance. Far be it from me to underestimate
-the work of man, as we see him and know him
-to-day, or as we read of him in the records of the past. I am
-aware of what he is, and of what he has done. I am not insensible
-to his work, and yet I declare that man, great as he is—and
-he is great—is in certain respects not as great as he was.
-I mean that he is not what the progenitor of the race was. And
-viewed in comparison with that primitive condition—that condition
-at creation—man to-day, considered physically, intellectually,
-morally and spiritually, is a conspicuous instance of fallen
-grandeur—not worthless and valueless—far from that; but
-his perfection has departed; he is vastly inferior to what his
-great original was. Realizing this, we can not fail to revert in
-thought to that early day, and seek to see what the greatness
-was from which we have fallen.</p>
-
-<p>Before, however, we attempt to look upon that picture, it will
-be necessary to establish and defend the theory of man’s condition
-and history upon this earth, with which it is inseparably
-connected.</p>
-
-<p>A view of human history, which has been strongly advocated
-of late, is that our race began physically, intellectually, and
-morally at the lowest possible point. Some even maintain that
-the first men and women were but the latest and highest developments
-of certain species of brutes. But whether this
-phase of the theory of evolution be included in it or not, the
-essential idea of the view to which we refer is that the progenitors
-of our race were the lowest kind of savages, in their powers
-and capacities, their tastes and pursuits scarcely distinguishable
-from the brutes around them, and that from this low
-beginning men have gradually come to the height of attainment
-and improvement which they occupy to-day. If this
-theory be true, the statement which we have made, and which
-we proposed to consider, is false. If such were the origin of
-our race, if the first men and women were in all the parts of
-their nature but a shade removed above the brutes of the forest
-and the field, of course we of to-day are in no respect their
-inferiors—of course ours is not, as has been declared, a
-fallen race. We maintain, however, that the theory which
-makes our race begin in a condition of barbarism and imbecility
-is untrue. I know that it is supported by eminent names;
-I know, too, that it has been pressed upon public attention with
-much noisy and confident assertion; I know all this, and yet
-I declare that the theory is unproven; more, I declare that it
-is untrue.</p>
-
-<p>Let us look at a few considerations which may shed the light
-of truth upon this matter of the primitive condition of mankind,
-and by this I mean the condition of those who succeeded
-Adam himself on the stage of the world’s history:</p>
-
-<p>1. We all know how long, in families which have lost position
-or power, the memory of former greatness is cherished.
-You will find in your charitable institutions, in the depths of
-poverty, and, perhaps, of wickedness, those who will tell you
-by the hour of the fortunes of their house in remote days, of
-the distinction which some ancestor, far removed, conferred
-upon the name. Such memories are preserved with care, and
-transmitted from generation to generation, and they become
-more and more precious as the descendants themselves have
-less and less honor of their own. The same principle operates
-with nations and with the great tribes of men, particularly
-when they have themselves sunk so low that they are conscious
-of no ground of glorying in themselves. Now it is an
-instructive fact that the traditions of all nations have more or
-less reference to a golden age, from which men have fallen.
-This is true in India, in China, in Egypt, among our own Indians,
-among the inhabitants of Central and South America—wherever
-traditional knowledge is preserved. It is a vague
-memory—nevertheless a memory cherished by the race, handed
-down through the ages, not of an era when humanized monkeys
-rejoiced in their promotion, but of a golden age, when men
-as gods dwelt upon the earth. The only explanation of such a
-wide-spread tradition is that there must have been a fact corresponding
-to it; there must have been a substance to cast this
-shadow over so many generations. Those who hold that mankind
-began at the lowest point, can not satisfactorily account
-for this tradition of the race.</p>
-
-<p>2. Not only tradition, but history sustains our position. If
-the true explanation of man’s condition to-day, in the civilized
-countries, is that he has gradually raised himself from a state
-of absolute barbarism, we certainly ought to have in the records
-of authentic history the account of at least one nation,
-which, as matter of fact, before the eyes of the world, has
-done the same thing. But no such instance can be found,
-not one of a people, entirely barbarous, lifting themselves
-unaided, to the higher plane of even a comparative civilization.
-Archbishop Whately<a href="#sunday2" id="anch_sunday2" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> says: “We have no reason to believe
-that any community ever did or ever can, emerge, unassisted
-by external helps, from a state of barbarism unto anything
-that can be called civilization.” And we may follow the
-course of civilization from our own land back to western Europe,
-from western Europe to Italy, from Italy to Greece, from
-Greece to Egypt and the farther East, and still, as far as history
-takes us we see the barren portions of the earth continuing to
-be barren—continuing to bear only the wild fruits of barbarism,
-until the stream of knowledge, and culture, and civilization,
-is led to it from some other place. And that stream may
-be followed all the way back to the beginning of authentic secular
-history, and in no one instance does the dry ground yield<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_383" id="Page_383">[383]</a></span>
-fruit and flower of itself. We maintain that the vivifying
-stream began to flow because there was in the beginning, in
-the East, a fountain filled by God himself. Or, leaving the language
-of allegory, we assert that if our race was utterly barbarous
-at the beginning, it never would have risen from its
-barbarism, and authentic history can not adduce a single instance
-of a nation rising unaided from barbarism to overthrow
-this position. Mankind, therefore, did not begin at the lowest
-point, or, judged by all the analogy of history, it would be there
-still.</p>
-
-<p>3. Again, the records, outside of the Bible, which have come
-down to us from early times, are few and imperfect, but the
-oldest of those which do remain indicate the existence of nations
-in a high state of civilization in the earliest periods of human
-history. In Egypt, China, Chaldea, these earliest records,
-whether monumental or written, bear evidence, not of universal
-barbarism in the previous ages, but of powerful and enlightened
-nationalities. Such a state of things is inconsistent
-with the theory which makes the history of our race a gradual
-development from a brutal and degraded beginning.</p>
-
-<p>4. Still further, the science of paleontology comes forward to
-prove the same thing. There have been found in Belgium and
-in France, some human skulls and skeletons, unquestionably
-of very great antiquity. Concerning them one of the most
-competent of human judges, Principal Dawson, of McGill University,
-Canada, says: “These skulls are probably the oldest
-known in the world.” But what sort of men do they indicate as
-living at that remote day? “They all represent,” he says, “a
-race of grand, physical development, and of cranial capacity
-equal to that of the average modern European.” Further he
-says: “They indicate also that man’s earlier state was the best,
-that he had been a high and noble creature before he became a
-savage. It is not conceivable that their great development of
-brain and mind could have spontaneously engrafted itself on a
-mere brutal and savage life. These gifts must be remnants of
-a noble organization, degraded by moral evil. They thus justify
-the tradition of a golden and Edenic age, and mutely protest
-against the philosophy of progressive development, as applied
-to man.” Again, he concludes from a careful study of
-these remains: “The condition, habits and structure of Palæocosmic<a href="#sunday3" id="anch_sunday3" class="fnanchor">[3]</a>
-men correspond with the idea that they may be rude
-and barbarous offshoots of more cultivated tribes, and therefore
-realize, as much as such remains can, the Bible history of
-the fall and dispersion of antediluvian men. We need not
-suppose that Adam of the Bible was precisely like the old man
-of Cromagnon.<a href="#sunday4" id="anch_sunday4" class="fnanchor">[4]</a> Rather may this man represent that fallen yet
-magnificent race which filled the antediluvian earth with violence,
-and probably the more scattered and wandering tribes
-of that race, rather than its greater and more cultivated nations.”—<i>Nature
-and the Bible, pp. 174-179.</i></p>
-
-<p>5. In addition to these arguments from tradition and history,
-and monumental and written records, and an actual study of
-human remains, which experts pronounce to be older, probably,
-than the flood, we have evidence within ourselves. We
-are not unfamiliar with stories of children of noble, perhaps of
-royal, descent, who have been abducted and brought up among
-people of low tastes and habits. But ever and anon, in gesture
-or inclination or bent of life, the blood shows itself, and to an
-attentive eye tells of the gentler and loftier sphere from which
-it came. So with us. Our consciousness reveals within us
-remnants of a former greatness; aspirations which this world
-has never taught us, longings for peace and purity which we
-feel we ought to have, but which we know this world never imparts.
-These things are the impress of the joys of that golden
-age which all these centuries have been powerless to erase
-from the souls of Adam’s sons. Morally, we know we are not
-what we ought to be; we are conscious of our degradation.
-As regards intellect, we retain powers which have, indeed, accomplished
-marvelous results; and yet, let some abnormal
-stimulus affect the brain—whether it be that produced by sudden
-excitement or passion, or that caused by powerful artificial
-agencies, and we see flashes of power yet in reserve which intimate
-what this wondrous human mind may once have been.
-And physically, our frail bodies, quickly tired and quickly
-crumbling to dust, tell us daily that here, at least, the theory
-of development from imperfection to perfection has signally
-failed.</p>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<h3 id="APR12">[<i>April 12.</i>]</h3>
-
-<p>From these considerations we deem it evident that the theory
-of man’s development from a primitive condition of barbarism
-is untrue. The various glimpses which we have been
-able to obtain of the early ages reveal man as in an advanced
-condition. To all this the representations of the Bible correspond.
-It is not the design of the inspired volume to give a
-minute description of the customs, habits, knowledge, employments
-of the nations of the world. All that it says upon these
-subjects is incidental, yet no one in reading its accounts of
-those early times, and of the people then living, could possibly
-imagine that the men and women of whom it speaks were such
-as the rude Hottentot or the savage Caffre of to-day. The picture
-of man in the primitive times drawn from the Bible, is the
-same as that which is drawn from all these other sources;
-a being of physical and intellectual power; not a savage, not
-a barbarian, but an enlightened, capable, efficient man. How
-much he knew, how much he could accomplish, what acquaintance
-he had with the forces of nature, which we are now
-beginning to understand, must be matters of conjecture. Sin
-had commenced its blighting work, but we must remember
-that man in those early days had inherited from the first man
-splendid powers, and probably varied and extensive knowledge.
-His physical strength and his length of days were still
-great, and doubtless in all respects, save morally and spiritually,
-he was even yet a magnificent creature, and a power upon
-the earth.</p>
-
-<p>Still, this was not the point which, in this discussion, we
-wished to reach. All this was the greatness of man after he
-had begun to deteriorate, after the poison of sin had begun to
-do its certain and terrible work. This vision of primitive man
-in his physical and intellectual strength is the splendor which
-abides a little while in the sky after the sun has set. Nevertheless,
-the sun had set, and there is a world-wide difference
-between this picture and that unto which we would lead you—the
-picture of that sun in its glory—the picture of unfallen
-man—the first man—the perfect man. Now let us look upon
-it. The long ages of preparation have rolled away and the
-earth is a garden of loveliness. Upon the splendors of its
-landscapes, the beauty of its lakes, the grandeur of its mountains
-and oceans, the sun looked down from his pavilion in the
-sky by day, and the moon and the stars by night. The magnificent
-domain waited in harmony and beauty for its inhabitants,
-“And God said, let us make man in our image, after our likeness.”
-“So God created man in his own image: in the image
-of God created he him.” “And God saw everything that he
-had made, and behold it was very good.”</p>
-
-<p>In the place of honor and dominion in that waiting world of
-beauty, enthrone a being who shall be the counterpart of those
-words of infallible description—a <i>man</i>, made in the image of
-God, and receiving the unqualified commendation of his divine
-Creator. We may, without danger of mistake, consider
-him to have been physically a being of magnificent stature,
-and of matchless perfection of feature and form, with a body
-ignorant of weakness or disease, free from the seeds of sickness
-and of death. That a change would afterward have been
-necessary to fit his body of flesh and blood for its immortality
-is possible, but such change would not have been what we understand
-by death. Age would not have brought infirmity to
-him. Nature would have had no debt to pay to the grave.</p>
-
-<p>Enshrined in this perfect body as in a glorious temple was a
-mind corresponding, doubtless, in excellence to its habitation<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_384" id="Page_384">[384]</a></span>
-and to the terms which describe its creation. Intellectually as
-well as morally, he was created in the image of God. He was
-possessed of reason and of actual knowledge. When the various
-classes of animals were passed in review before him, he
-had such an apprehension of their distinctive characteristics
-as to be able to give to them all appropriate names. And as
-he knew thus much of nature, how shall we limit his familiarity
-with her mysteries? And what shall we say of the powers of
-discernment, of intuition, of memory, of judgment, of the facility
-in working, of the unwearied and the unending delights
-and achievements of a mind made in the image of God, and
-not yet marred or weakened by sin!</p>
-
-<p>But the crowning glory of that first man, that which marks
-his distance from us more than any physical or intellectual superiority,
-is that in his moral and spiritual nature he bore a
-likeness to his divine Creator. This being, whose body knew
-no imperfection, whose mind was rich in its possessions, and
-mighty in its power to acquire and enjoy every kind of truth,
-was holy. No thought arose in that heart which could not be
-published in heaven—none which could mantle his cheek with
-the blush of shame, or cause his manly eye to drop in consciousness
-of wrong, or make a ripple of disquiet in the sea of
-perfect peace which filled his soul. His thoughts were God’s
-thoughts. His loves, his wishes, his purposes, in harmony
-with God’s, ascended and descended like the angels Jacob saw,
-in perfect and blessed communion between heaven and earth,
-and earth was heaven begun. Of this world, with its abounding
-life, he was the acknowledged king. Within him was the
-consciousness of peace, and joy, and immortality. All about
-him was beauty, and amid the glories of his Eden home, God
-himself condescended to walk with him and be his friend.</p>
-
-<p>Such is a faint outline of the picture on which I would have
-you look—the picture of man as he was in the beginning.
-Does not the sight justify the assertion that we are a fallen
-race? Does it not confirm the teaching of our text, that “God
-hath made man upright, but they have sought out many inventions?”</p>
-
-<p>I need not delay to prove that this picture is not a representation
-of our present condition. Think of these frail physical
-existences, begun with a cry, continued in pain and weakness,
-and extended with difficulty to their three score years and ten.
-Think of the ages through which the intellect of the most favored
-portion of the world has been struggling to its present
-attainments. Think particularly of the moral and spiritual
-condition of the race, in comparison with that heavenly vision
-of Godlikeness which stands at the beginning of our history.
-I need not delay then to prove that mankind has fallen. I
-will, however, ask you to remember when you reflect upon the
-sad disorders of the present state, upon the sorrows and weaknesses
-and wickednesses of men to-day, that God did not thus
-create the progenitors of the race. If we see ruins about us
-and within us, let us remember that the temple as it was fashioned
-by the supreme architect was perfect. Let us remember
-also the real and only cause of this terrible catastrophe. It
-was sin—sin that always has ruined and always will destroy
-the beautiful, the pure, the true. Men did indeed go from that
-height of exaltation into the depths of barbarism; it is true
-enough that the pages of remote history show us men living
-in caves, and almost reduced to the level of the brutes—and
-sin led them there! Men did lose the moral beauty of our first
-parent; they did lose much of the intellectual and physical
-strength which lingered for a season in his immediate descendants—and
-sin was the despoiler that remorselessly stripped
-from them those glorious robes! You and I might have been
-as Adam—ignorant of sorrow and of suffering, and the world
-still an Eden about us, but sin has cast us down.</p>
-
-<p>But let us remember also, with infinite gratitude and hope,
-as we look upon that picture of primeval perfection which we
-have sought to restore, that that condition may be regained.
-The crumbled arches, the fallen walls, the shattered foundations
-of Nineveh’s or Babylon’s palaces can never by any human
-skill be made to reproduce the glory that has departed,
-and yet the temple of man’s Eden estate, though cast down
-with a more fearful destruction, can be restored! Yea, made
-more glorious than it was before, and established upon a foundation,
-so that through the eternal ages it can never again be
-moved! Thanks be unto God, this is possible to us. Jesus
-Christ has come from heaven and has undertaken the accomplishment
-of the stupendous task. Jesus Christ has promised
-to effect it for every one who will yield to his influences. And
-he can do it, for he is the Savior, he is the Redeemer, the
-buyer-back of that which was lost, and of nations and of regions
-as well as of individual souls. … His spirit is the inspiration
-of the life which here is lived. That is enough to
-lift up any place or any people. And just as certainly will it
-lift up any human soul. Just as certainly will it redeem it from
-the consequences of the race’s fall. Not in this life, indeed,
-may we expect to have again the perfection of power and the
-freedom from sorrow which our first parent had; but the work
-of bringing men back to all the blessedness which Adam enjoyed,
-with new elements of blessing added, will be done—yea,
-it is even now going on, through the power of an indwelling
-Christ in souls that are here to-day. Let us all take the loving
-and mighty hand which is extended for our uplifting; let us
-seek our birthright, and though, through the first Adam our
-Paradise was lost, let us yield ourselves to the second Adam,
-by whom a better Paradise shall be regained.—<i>The Rev. Dr.
-E. D. Ledyard.</i></p>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<h3 id="APR19">[<i>April 19.</i>]</h3>
-
-<p>Monarchs reign, but their dominion is merely external. They
-do not and can not enter into the realm of the soul; but
-“there is another king, one Jesus,” whose right it is to sit enthroned
-in every heart, to direct every conscience, and to have
-dominion over every thought and action. Have you given
-him the sovereignty of yourself?</p>
-
-<p>Sin reigns, and that king, alas! holds sway in many—I
-ought to say in the vast majority of human souls. But he is
-an usurper; for “there is another king, one Jesus,” who is the
-rightful lord of the heart. Under which king are you? He
-who repudiates the royalty of Jesus over him is guilty of treason
-against the majesty of heaven, and is but courting his destruction.</p>
-
-<p>Death reigns, and day by day he is sweeping in new multitudes
-into his silent realm. The mightiest and the meanest
-alike must yield to him who is the terror of kings, no less than
-he is the king of terrors. At one time he rides on the hurricane,
-and dashes the laboring vessel and the freighted souls
-within her on the roaring reef; at another he drives through
-the city streets riding on his pestilential car, and spreads desolation
-round him. Now he careers upon the boiling flood,
-and sweeps whole villages before him into swift destruction;
-and again he leaps in the lightning-flash upon some devoted
-building, and kindles a conflagration that burns many in its
-flames. He laughs at men’s efforts to elude his grasp; and
-as we look upon the settled countenance of the loved one
-whom we are preparing to lay in the grave, we are almost
-compelled to own him conqueror. But no! “there is another
-king, one Jesus,” who is “the Resurrection and the Life,” and
-“who hath abolished death and brought life and immortality
-to light by the Gospel.” Let us, then, be undismayed by this
-last enemy. He is a vanquished foe. Our Lord Jesus has
-gone into his domain, and having conquered him there, has
-brought him back with him to his palace, to be there the page
-who opens the door for his friends into the chamber of his
-presence. Yes! as we stand by the remains of our Christian
-dead, and under the influence of sight are moved to speak of
-Death as king, we recall in another sense than they were
-meant, but in a sense which faith recognizes as true, the
-words “There is another king, one Jesus.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_385" id="Page_385">[385]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Paradoxical as it may seem, these two things always go together.
-Where Christ is owned as the sole sovereign, there
-his service is perfect freedom; but where his supremacy is
-either ignored or given to another, there comes the slavery of
-superstition, or the tyranny of priestcraft, or the cold domination
-of philosophy, and it is hard to say which of these is the
-most degrading.—<i>W. M. Taylor.</i></p>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<h3 id="APR26">[<i>April 26.</i>]</h3>
-
-<p>He who would preach the Gospel with power must be himself
-a believer in the Lord. The secret of true, heart-stirring
-eloquence in the pulpit is, next after the power of the Holy
-Ghost, that which the French Abbé has very happily called
-“the accent of conviction” in the speaker. Behind every appeal
-that Paul made to sinners, there was the memory of that
-wonderful experience through which he passed on the way to
-Damascus; and therefore we are not surprised that he <i>so</i>
-preached as either to secure men’s faith or to rouse their antagonism.
-But his conversion alone, without his Arabian revelations,
-would not have made him the apostle he became.
-In the desert he met his Lord, and received from him many
-important spiritual communications. There, too, he meditated
-on the truths revealed to him, and poured out his heart in
-prayer for a thorough understanding of their meaning and a
-full realization of their power. Thus he came back to Damascus,
-if not with a face glowing like that of Moses when he
-descended from Sinai, at least with a heart filled and fired
-with love to Him who had there unfolded to him the mysteries
-of the Gospel. Now, what Paul thus received from the Lord
-has been given to us by evangelists and apostles in the New
-Testament Scriptures. Our Arabia, therefore, will be the study
-and the closet in which we pore over these precious pages, and
-seek to comprehend their many sided significance, as well as
-to imbibe the spirit by which they are pervaded. He who
-would preach to others must be much alone with his Bible and
-his Lord; else when he appears before his people, he will
-send them to sleep with his pointless platitudes, or starve them
-with his empty conceits. Get you to Arabia, then, ye who
-would become the instructors of your fellowmen! Get you to
-the closet and the study! Give your days and nights to the
-investigation of this book; and let everything you produce
-from it be made to glow with white heat in the forge of your
-own heart, and be hammered on the anvil of your own experience!—<i>W.
-M. Taylor.</i></p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<h2 id="EASY_LESSONS_IN_ANIMAL_BIOLOGY">EASY LESSONS IN ANIMAL BIOLOGY.</h2>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<h3>CHAPTER I.</h3>
-
-<p>Biology is the science of life, the true doctrine concerning all
-living things. Animal biology is that branch of the science
-which relates to animals, as distinguished from plants. It tells
-of these animals what we know about them, where and how
-they live, what food they eat, how it is received, and how they
-grow and multiply. Of all the sciences, this seems most extensive,
-having for its field a world of numberless forms, alike in
-that they all live, and have some characteristics in common,
-yet showing great diversity in their structure, appearance, and
-mode of life. In this summary of facts we shall simply classify,
-or methodically arrange in groups, according to their distinguishing
-peculiarities, the members of this vast family.</p>
-
-<p>The animal kingdom is divided into the following sub-kingdoms,
-each of which is subdivided into classes. The following
-table shows these divisions in their proper order, beginning
-with the lowest:</p>
-
-<table summary="Divisions of the animal kingdom" class="science" id="animal_table">
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Sub-kingdom I</span>—<i>Protozoa</i>.</td>
- <td>{ Class I—Monera.<br />
- { Class II—Gregarinida.<br />
- { Class III—Rhizopoda.<br />
- { Class IV—Infusoria.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Sub-kingdom II</span>—<i>Spongida</i>.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Sub-kingdom III</span>—<i>Cœlenterata</i>.</td>
- <td>{ Class I—Hydrozoa.<br />
- { Class II—Anthozoa.<br />
- { Class III—Ctenophora.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Sub-kingdom IV</span>—<i>Echinodermata</i>.</td>
- <td>{ Class I—Crinoidea.<br />
- { Class II—Asteroidea.<br />
- { Class III—Echinoidea.<br />
- { Class IV—Holothuroidea.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Sub-kingdom V</span>—<i>Vermes</i>.</td>
- <td>{ Class I—Flat Worms.<br />
- { Class II—Round or Thread Worms.<br />
- { Class III—Rotifera.<br />
- { Class IV—Polyzoa.<br />
- { Class V—Brachiopoda.<br />
- { Class VI—Annelidæ.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Sub-kingdom VI</span>—<i>Mollusca</i>.</td>
- <td>{ Class I—Lamellibranchiata.<br />
- { Class II—Gasteropoda.<br />
- { Class III—Cephalopoda.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Sub-kingdom VII</span>—<i>Articulata</i>.</td>
- <td>{ Class I—Crustacea.<br />
- { Class II—Arachnida.<br />
- { Class III—Myriapoda.<br />
- { Class IV—Insecta.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Sub-kingdom VIII</span>—<i>Tunicata</i>.</td>
- <td></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Sub-kingdom IX</span>—<i>Vertebrata</i>.</td>
- <td>{ Class I—Pisces.<br />
- { Class II—Reptilia.<br />
- { Class III—Aves.<br />
- { Class IV—Mammalia.</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<h3>SUB-KINGDOM I.</h3>
-
-<p><i>Protozoa</i> (first animals). These earliest formed animals
-are distinguished for the simplicity of their structure. In
-some cases their animal nature was long ago in doubt, and
-they were, for a time, put down as probably belonging
-to the vegetable kingdom. The border line between the
-two has never been very definitely located. Biologists may
-fail to tell just what special quality distinguishes the minute
-animal from the microscopic plant. This is not wonderful,
-when it is remembered that myriads of animals, known to
-be such, are so small that it requires a lens of strong magnifying
-power to discover them. Three thousand of them, placed
-side by side, would make a line but little over an inch long.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Class I.</span>—<i>Monera</i> (single). These are the simplest forms of
-microscopic aquatic animals. They are entirely homogeneous,
-and without any developed organs; mere particles, of a
-jelly-like, but living, or life-supporting substance, called protoplasm,
-or more properly, bioplasm. This, all admit, is the
-physical basis of life, and the medium of its manifestation, just
-as the conductor is a medium of manifestation of electricity.
-But is it not a stupid blunder to confound the mere medium of
-its manifestation with the life itself? In neither case is the recognized
-physical basis of the manifestation necessary to the
-existence of that manifested by its means. Electricity exists
-without the conductor, and life may exist without the bioplasm.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Class II.</span>—<i>Gregarinida</i> (living in herds). Minute animals
-which are found in the intestines of the lobster, clam, and
-cockroach. They are worm-like in form, and of a very simple,
-cell-like structure, the only organ being a nucleus.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Class III.</span>—<i>Rhizopoda</i> (root footed). The representative
-forms of this class are the <i>Amœba</i><a href="#animal1" id="anch_animal1" class="fnanchor">[1]</a> and <i>Foraminifera</i>. The
-amœba is an indefinite little bit of bioplasm, as structureless
-as the monera, only that it is made up of two layers of the substance,
-has an apparent nucleus, and a contractile cavity
-within. These first animals vindicate their right to be recognized
-as such, by moving, receiving food, growing, and reproducing
-their kind. They move by a contractile force, throwing
-out at will processes of their soft bodies, to serve them as
-feet and arms. True, these are blunt, and without digits, but
-they answer the purpose. They eat either by simple absorption,
-or by wrapping their soft bodies around the food, and
-holding it in the extemporized stomach till it is, in some way,
-assimilated.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_386" id="Page_386">[386]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The work of reproduction is carried on principally by self-division,
-and budding. The animal rends itself into two or
-more parts, each having all the elements of the whole, or it
-throws out buds that mature and drop from the parent mass,
-having the vital element, and a portion of the bioplasm, or medium
-necessary to its development.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 400px;">
-
-<img src="images/illus032.jpg" width="400" height="380" alt="" />
-
-<p class="caption">FORAMINIFERA, SHOWING ROOT-LIKE FEET.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The <i>Foraminifera</i> (perforated animals), of this class, have
-several peculiarities. The body is even more simple, being
-apparently without layers or cavity. The processes thrown out
-as arms and legs are not blunt or massive, but long and slender.
-And, moreover, small as it is, it has the wonderful property
-of secreting about itself an envelope, whose thin walls
-are built of the carbonate of lime. The delicate little structures
-are often singularly beautiful. Some are monads, having
-but a single shell; others, by a process of budding add new
-cells or chambers, often in a spiral coil. These are marine
-shells, and their numbers in many parts of the ocean are astounding.
-The bottom of the sea, for many degrees on both
-sides of the equator, wherever examined by dredging, is found
-covered with them, either still in their organic state, or ground
-by attrition to a fine lime dust. It is estimated that a single
-pound of the sea bottom in some localities contains millions of
-them, and they are the principal material of the chalk hills.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Class IV.</span>—<i>Infusoria.</i> This class includes <i>Vorticella</i>
-(wheel animals), <i>Flagellata</i> (whip-shaped animals), <i>Tentaculata</i>
-(having tentacles), and others. Their general characteristics
-do not differ widely from those already mentioned. As
-the name imports, they are mostly found in vegetable infusions
-that have been exposed for some time, and are directly the
-product of invisible cells or animal germs that were floating
-in the atmosphere till a lodgment was found favorable to their
-development. Those called <i>Vorticella</i>, to the eye seem simply
-mould on the plant to which they are attached, but under the
-glass their animal qualities appear; and they multiply with
-amazing rapidity. Every drop of water from a stagnant pool
-is full of these animalculæ, of various shapes and dimensions,
-some of them constantly in motion, propelled by numerous
-cilia, or slender, hair-like appendages that fringe the circumference,
-and are used as oars. Their whole organism, though
-delicate, and having a thin membranous covering, is imperfect.
-There are two contractile openings, with a slight depression
-at the mouth, leading to a funnel-shaped throat, into
-which the nutritive substances descend.</p>
-
-<h3>SUB-KINGDOM II.</h3>
-
-<p><i>Spongida</i>, or sponges, are especially worthy of mention.
-When much less was known of their nature and habits,
-they were classed with vegetables, but since their mode of
-reproduction has been discovered, they are known to be
-animals. The sponge is formed of an aggregation of ciliated
-cells, built together on a skeleton or framework of calcareous
-or silicious substance, that extends by slow external
-secretions as the animal body grows. There is a central cavity
-toward which there are numerous channels, from openings
-on the surface, through which water is continually received,
-and one through which it is discharged. The animal part is a
-sensitive, gelatinous film, extending through the growing mass,
-and spreads out over the surface. It is perforated, in places,
-and adapts itself to all the sinuosities and intersections of the
-canals that run in every direction. The little animals are provided
-with exceedingly fine cilia that they keep in almost constant
-motion; no one knows how, or for what, but it is supposed
-they thus sweep in the water that circulates through all the
-channels and chambers formed for it. After death, the soft matter,
-like all animal tissues, decays, or is dried up; and by beating
-and washing, it and any calcareous substances are removed.
-The horny, elastic fibers are found so exquisitely connected
-about the internal canals and cavities that water is
-freely admitted, or by pressure expelled. Sponges are found
-in every latitude, but are more numerous and grow larger in
-warm climates. Those in our markets are mostly from the
-Bahamas and the islands of the Mediterranean. They are obtained
-by diving, often to great depths.</p>
-
-<h3>SUB-KINGDOM III.</h3>
-
-<p><i>Cœlenterata</i> (hollow intestines). These are radiate animals,
-have a distinct digestive cavity, and always two
-layers of tissue in their walls. They have minute sacs containing
-a fluid, and barbed filaments capable of being
-thrown out as stings. The classes of the Cœlenterata are the
-<i>Hydrozoa</i>, <i>Anthozoa</i>, and <i>Ctenophora</i>. The best known representative
-of the former is the fresh water <i>hydra</i> (water animal).
-It gives but slight evidence of a nervous system, has no
-stomach, or digestive sac, but is a simple tube into which the
-mouth opens. The sensitive little body is in color and texture, to
-the casual observer more like a plant than an animal. It is attached
-at one end to a submerged aquatic plant, while the mouth
-at the free end is provided with tentacles,<a href="#animal2" id="anch_animal2" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> by which it feeds and
-moves. It buds, and also produces eggs. The young hydra,
-when hatched or thrown off, attaches itself to plants, as did its
-parents. Some hydroids attach themselves to shells, and are
-supported by horny, branching skeletons, specimens of which
-are numerous, and may be seen in almost any museum.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 400px;">
-
-<img src="images/illus033.jpg" width="400" height="350" alt="" />
-
-<p class="caption">HYDRA, SHOWING BUDS.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>A second representative of this class is the jelly fish. It has
-a soft, gelatinous, circular body, that floats or swims on the
-surface in calm weather, with the mouth downward. Tubes
-radiate from the center to the circumference that is fringed all
-around with pendant tentacles, sometimes of great length and
-of considerable contractile power. They are of various sizes,
-some quite small, others as much as eight feet in diameter.
-They move about by flapping their sides, after the manner of
-opening and shutting an umbrella. When dried, the thin, filmy
-covering is very light. One variety, called <i>Lucernaria</i>, is
-found attached to grasses along the Atlantic shore. But the
-ordinary jelly fish is free, and borne on the surface of the sea.</p>
-
-<p>The <i>Anthozoa</i> (flower animals) are small, but not microscopic<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_387" id="Page_387">[387]</a></span>
-animals, having a double cavity, the inner of which is the digestive
-sac. The best known of the class is the <i>Actinia</i> (rayed),
-or sea anemone, so called from its resemblance to a plant or
-flower of that name. The body is somewhat like a flower in
-shape. The disc has a central orifice, very contractile, and
-surrounded with tubular tentacles of various forms, which it
-elongates, contracts, and moves in different directions. They
-are so many arms by which the animal seizes its prey, and
-when expanded for the purpose, being tinted with brilliant colors,
-present an elegant appearance, and make vast fields of
-the ocean look like beautiful flower gardens. They feed voraciously
-on little crabs and mollusks, that often seem superior
-to themselves in strength and bulk, but they have power in
-their little tentacles to seize and hold their prey, and when they
-engulf large bodies the stomach is distended to receive them;
-and their digestion is good. The purple sea anemone is very
-common on the southern shores of England, and one species,
-found on the shores of the Mediterranean, is said to be esteemed
-a great delicacy by the Italians. At night, or when
-alarmed, the animal draws in its arms, shuts the door, and
-seems but a rounded lump of flesh, a huge oyster without a
-shell. The coral polyps (many footed), belonging to this
-class, are little folk, but of importance from their well-earned
-reputation as reef builders. They are very diminutive creatures,
-mere drops of animal jelly, often not larger than the
-head of a pin, but their works show unmistakable evidence
-of life, and an organic structure. They live in communities,
-closely united, but each, having a distinct individuality, by the
-sure process of secreting a portion of the calcareous matter
-within reach, prepares for himself a house, as all his ancestors
-have done, and his neighbors are now doing. They build together,
-their foundations having strong connections, and thoroughly
-cemented. There in his own little palace the polyp
-lives, his food being brought to his lips; and, having sent out
-a numerous progeny to do likewise for themselves, there he
-dies. Life and death, as in all mundane communities, being
-in close proximity, the old dying, a new generation builds
-houses over their sepulchres.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 400px;">
-
-<img src="images/illus034.jpg" width="400" height="525" alt="" />
-
-<p class="caption">SEA ANEMONE.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The great variety of corals seen in any extensive collection,
-some very beautiful, others rough and unsightly, are from different
-branches of a very extensive family. <i>Astrea</i> (star
-shaped), from the Fiji islands, is a kind of coral hemisphere,
-covered with large and beautiful cells.</p>
-
-<p><i>Mushroom coral</i> is disc shaped, not fixed or attached, and is
-the secretion, not of many, but of a single huge polyp.</p>
-
-<p><i>Brain coral</i> is globular, and the surface irregularly furrowed
-or corrugated.</p>
-
-<p><i>Madrepora</i> (spotted pores) <i>coral</i> is neatly branched, the
-branches having pointed extremities ending in single minute
-cells.</p>
-
-<p><i>Porites</i>, or sponge coral, is also branched, but the branches
-are not pointed, and the surface smoother.</p>
-
-<p><i>Tubipora</i>, or organ pipe coral, shows some very striking
-peculiarities. A section of the vast structures built by them
-resembles a collection of regular, smooth, red colored pipes,
-firmly bound together by cross sections.</p>
-
-<p>Coral rocks are of slow formation, but have attained prodigious
-dimensions; whole islands are of coral origin, and in
-some seas the concealed rocks make navigation dangerous.
-The reefs are often 2,000 feet thick, though it is estimated that
-not more than five feet are added in a thousand years. The
-little architects were at work early.</p>
-
-<p><i>Corallium rubrum</i>, or red coral, much sought after and precious,
-is shrub-like, of fine texture, and a beautiful crimson color. In
-a living state its branches are said to be covered over with
-bright polyps, and the skeleton receives a very fine polish. It
-is used for ornaments. Professor Dana says: “Some species
-grow in large leaves rolled round each other, like an open
-cabbage, and another foliated kind consists of leaves more
-crisped, and of more delicate structure. ‘Lettuce coral’
-would be a significant name; each leaf has its surface covered
-with polyp flowers. The clustered leaves of acanthus and
-oak are at once called to mind by this species.”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 400px;">
-
-<img src="images/illus035.jpg" width="400" height="350" alt="" />
-
-<p class="caption">CORAL ISLAND.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p><i>The Ctenophora</i> (comb-bearing) are considered the highest
-of the Cœlenterata, having a more complex digestive apparatus,
-and better developed nervous system. Their long tentacles,
-and comb-like cilia are used for swimming.</p>
-
-<h3>SUB-KINGDOM IV.</h3>
-
-<p><i>Echinodermata</i> (spiny skinned) have all their parts symmetrically
-arranged about a central axis, a contractile heart, good
-digestive organs, and a peculiar system of radiating canals
-extending through the organism. They are a numerous
-family of exclusively marine animals, and their characteristics
-furnish an interesting study. Most naturalists mention four
-classes.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Class I.</span>—<i>Crinoidea</i>, or sea lilies, now nearly extinct, are
-fixed to rocks, or the sea bottom, by what seems simply a
-stem, but is the body of the animal. At the top is the mouth,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_388" id="Page_388">[388]</a></span>
-resembling an expanding bud or flower that opens upward,
-surrounded by long tentacles, or arms, not unlike the sea
-anemone. It is supported by a calcareous skeleton consisting
-of many members, stiff-jointed, crossing and interlacing with
-one another. When living, the gelatinous animal partly envelops
-this framework.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Class II.</span>—<i>Asteroidea</i>, or star fish, have a flat disc, five or
-more radiating arms extending some distance from the body
-at the center, and containing a part of the viscera. The
-mouth is where the arms meet, and opens downward. The
-upper surface is studded over with rough knobs, between
-which are the openings of many little tubes, for the passage of
-water into and out of the body. The round mouth is very
-dilatable, enabling it to receive large and solid objects for its
-food, which there is no attempt to masticate. After the digestive
-organ is somehow wrapped around the shell fish on
-which it feeds, it is held in its firm embrace till the nutritive
-portion is disposed of, and then thrown out. They are
-voracious eaters, devouring all kinds of garbage that would
-otherwise accumulate along the shores, valuable as sea scavengers,
-though destructive of living crustaceans and shell fish.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Class III.</span>—<i>Echinoidea</i> (hedgehog-like) are covered with
-spines which they move either by the enveloping membrane or
-by small muscles properly situated for the purpose. The thin,
-horny, and, when dry, very light skin is peculiar, in that it is
-composed of regularly shaped, pentagonal plates, arranged in
-radiating zones, every alternate plate perforated with small
-holes; and among the spines, but capable of extending beyond
-them, are little arms, provided at
-the end with forceps, probably for seizing
-their prey, or for ridding themselves of
-troublesome parasites. These are also
-used for locomotion. They are less active
-than some others of the family, live near
-the shore among rocks, or under the seaweed,
-feed on crabs, and are oviparous.<a href="#animal3" id="anch_animal3" class="fnanchor">[3]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Class IV.</span>—<i>Holothuroidea</i> (whole
-mouthed). They are elongated, like a cucumber,
-and the head end terminates abruptly,
-the mouth being a circular opening
-surrounded with feathery tentacles.
-They have remarkable muscular power,
-by which they can disgorge the contents
-of the stomach, throw off their tentacles,
-and even eject most of their internal organs, and survive
-the loss, afterward producing others, perhaps more satisfactory
-or in a healthier condition. In tropical climates, they
-have been likened to the sea urchin, without a shell, but are
-proportionally longer, and their axis horizontal.</p>
-
-<h3>SUB-KINGDOM V.</h3>
-
-<p><i>Vermes</i> (worms). Animals having head and tail composed
-of segments. The digestive organ is tubular, and the nervous
-system a double chain of ganglia<a href="#animal4" id="anch_animal4" class="fnanchor">[4]</a> on the ventral<a href="#animal5" id="anch_animal5" class="fnanchor">[5]</a> surface.
-There are six classes of vermes. The animals differ greatly
-in appearance.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Class I.</span>—<i>Flat worms</i> are best known as the parasites that infest
-animals, such as the liver fluke of the sheep, and the tapeworm.
-The flat worms pass through a very peculiar metamorphosis,
-some varieties taking as many as seven different forms.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Class II.</span>—<i>Round or Thread Worms</i> are represented by the
-pin worm and <i>Trichina</i>. The latter is the dangerous worm
-which finds its way into the human system from pork flesh, in
-which it is imbedded.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Class III.</span>—<i>Wheel Animalculæ</i>, or <i>Rotifera</i>. A most interesting
-microscopic worm, abounding in fresh water and in the
-ocean. They will remain dried up for years, and then recover
-life. Their shapes are very peculiar.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Class IV.</span>—<i>Moss Animals</i>, or <i>Polyzoa</i>, are the animals which
-form a coral-like shell. They are abundant on the seashore,
-and are called sea mosses.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Class V.</span>—<i>Lamp Shells</i> (<i>Brachiopoda</i>). These worms are
-marine, and form a bivalve shell, the valves being on either side
-of the body. The body has long arms on one side of the mouth,
-which bear fringes; the motion of the fringes draws food into the
-mouth. They are also used in respiration. But few species of the
-Brachiopods are now living, though they were once very plenty.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Class VI.</span>—<i>Annelidæ.</i> This last class includes the leeches,
-a flat worm, whose body is divided into segments; the earth or
-angleworm, a familiar worm of many segments, and the marine
-worms. Each segment of the latter bears clusters of bristles,
-used in swimming.</p>
-
-<h3>SUB-KINGDOM VI.</h3>
-
-<p><i>Mollusca</i> (soft). General characteristics—Mollusks, a numerous
-branch of the animal kingdom, are so called from the
-softness of their bodies, which usually have no internal skeleton
-or framework to support them. They are covered with a
-tough, muscular skin, and generally protected by a shell.
-They have a gangliated nervous system, in some cases well
-developed, the medullary<a href="#animal6" id="anch_animal6" class="fnanchor">[6]</a> mass not enclosed in a cranium or
-spinal column—of which they are mostly destitute—but distributed
-more or less irregularly through the body. They
-have hearts, and an imperfect circulative system, the blood
-being pale or blueish. Some breathe in air, some in fresh,
-more in sea water. Some—both of those on land and those in
-water—are naked, others have a calcareous covering or shell.
-The larger marine mollusks are often guarded by very strong,
-heavy shells. Some are viviparous, others oviparous, and multiply
-rapidly.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 400px;">
-
-<img src="images/illus037.jpg" width="400" height="160" alt="" />
-
-<p class="caption">SNAIL.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Three general, and many subdivisions are recognized. The
-total number of living species is said to exceed twenty thousand,
-of which only a few can be mentioned. The classes
-under this division are <i>Lamellibranchiata</i>, <i>Gasteropoda</i>, and
-<i>Cephalopoda</i>. The chief representatives of the first class are
-all ordinary bivalves.</p>
-
-<p><i>Ostrea</i> (oysters) are well known bivalve mollusks. The
-shells are so irregular in surface and shape that it would be
-impossible, as it is unnecessary, to describe them. The animal
-itself is very simple in structure, proverbially stupid, low in the
-scale of animal life, but highly esteemed as a delicious article
-of food. They are found in almost all seas, and in water of
-from two to six fathoms, but never very far from some shore.
-They multiply so rapidly that, though the consumption increases
-with the increase of population and the facilities for
-distributing them, the supply is equal to the demand. Boston
-is mostly supplied from artificial beds, and the flats or shallow
-bays in the vicinity of our maritime cities abound in such
-“plants.” Baltimore and New York have each an immense
-local trade, and the oysters exported from the Chesapeake Bay
-fisheries amount to about $25,000,000 annually.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Class II.</span>—<i>Gasteropoda</i> (stomach-footed). This class, including
-the great snail family, is a very large division of
-terrestrial, air-breathing mollusks. Their light shells vary
-much in form; when spiral and fully developed they have as
-many as five or six whorls, symmetrically arranged. The<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_389" id="Page_389">[389]</a></span>
-shell can contain the whole body, but the animal often partially
-crawls out and carries the shell on its back. The locomotion
-is slow and accomplished by the contractile muscle of
-the ventral foot.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Class III.</span>—<i>The Cephalopoda</i> (head-footed) have distinctly
-formed heads, large, staring eyes, mouths surrounded with tentacles
-or feelers, symmetrically formed bodies wrapped in a
-muscular covering; they have all the five senses, and are carnivorous.
-This class is entirely marine, and breathes through
-gills on the side of the body. The naked <i>Cephalopoda</i> are
-numerous, and furnish food for many other animals. Those
-living in chambered shells, once numerous, are now known
-principally by their fossils, the pearly <i>Nautilus</i> (sailor) being
-their only living representative. This has a smooth,
-pearly shell, and is much prized as an ornament. It is a native
-of the Indian Ocean, dwelling in the deep places of the
-sea, and at the bottom. The shell is too well known to need
-description, and but few specimens of the living animal have
-been obtained.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 400px;">
-
-<img src="images/illus038.jpg" width="400" height="300" alt="" />
-
-<p class="caption">NAUTILUS.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The following facts as to the physical organization and
-habits of this interesting species of univalves are gleaned from
-the American Cyclopædia, and given for those who have not
-access to any extensive work on the subject; they were
-mostly copied for the Cyclopædia from Professor Owen’s celebrated
-memoir, and the “Proceedings of the Linnæan Society
-of London:”</p>
-
-<p>The posterior portion of the body containing the viscera is
-soft, smooth and adapted to the anterior chamber of the shell;
-the anterior portion is muscular, including the organs of sense
-and locomotion, and can be drawn within the shell. The
-mantle is very thin behind, and prolonged through the calcareous
-tube of the occupied chamber as a membranous
-siphon, and through all the divisions of the shell to the central
-nucleus; on the upper part of the head is a broad, triangular,
-muscular hood, protecting the head when retracted and
-used as a foot for creeping at the bottom of the sea, with the
-shell uppermost. … The mouth has two horny mandibles,
-like the beak of a parrot reversed, the lower overlapping the
-upper, moving vertically, and implanted in thick, muscular
-walls. … There are ninety tentacles about the labial processes
-and head. The internal cartilaginous skeleton is confined
-to the lower surface of the head, a part of the cephalic
-nervous system being protected in a groove on its upper surface,
-and the two great muscles which fasten the body to the
-shell are attached to it. The funnel is very muscular and is
-the principal organ of free locomotion, the animal being propelled
-backward by the reaction of the ejected respiratory
-current against the water before it. … The nautilus,
-though the lowest of the Cephalopods, offers a nearer approach
-to the vertebrate animals than does any other invertebrate,
-in the perfect symmetry of the organs, the larger proportion
-of muscle, the increased bulk and concentration of
-the nervous centers in and near the head, and in the cartilaginous
-cephalic skeleton. The mature nautilus occupies but
-a small part of the shell, the parts progressively vacated during
-its growth are one after another partitioned off by their
-smooth plates into air tight chambers, the plates growing
-from the circumference toward the center, and pierced by the
-membranous siphon. The young animal before the formation
-of these chambers can not rise from the bottom of the
-sea, but the older ones come to the surface by the expansion
-and protrusion of their bodies producing a slight vacuum in
-the posterior part of the chamber unoccupied, and, some say,
-by the exhalation of some light gas into the other deserted
-chambers. They rise in the water as a balloon does in the
-air, because lighter than the element surrounding them. They
-float on the surface with the shell upward, and sink quickly
-by reversing it. By a nice adjustment, in the completed
-structure, between the air chambers and the dwelling chamber,
-the house and its inhabitant are nearly of the same specific
-gravity as water. … In parts of the Southern Pacific,
-at certain seasons of the year, fleets of these little ships are
-carried by the winds and currents to the island shores, where
-they are captured and used for food.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 400px;">
-
-<img src="images/illus039.jpg" width="400" height="350" alt="" />
-
-<p class="caption">ARGONAUT.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p><i>The Paper Nautilus</i>, or argonaut, secretes a thin, unchambered
-shell in which its eggs are carried; has tentacles or
-arms with which it crawls on the bottom, and swims backward,
-usually with the back down, squirting water through its breathing
-funnel. The argonaut differs from the true nautilus in
-having larger arms of more complicated structure, with sucker
-discs, and partially connected by a membrane at the base. It
-has an ink gland and sac, for its secretion. It has a great
-number of little cells, containing pigment matter of different
-colors, whose contractions and expansions give it a remarkable
-power of rapidly changing its tints. There is no internal
-shell, and it is ascertained that the external shell is peculiar
-to the female, and is only an incubating and protective nest
-for the eggs. The eggs are attached to the involuted spire of
-the shell, behind and beneath the body of the female. From
-the fact that the animal has no muscular or other attachment
-to its shell, and has been known, after quitting it, to survive
-sometime without attempting to return, the argonaut has been
-supposed to be a parasitic occupant of the cast off shell of another,
-but is now pretty clearly proved to be the architect of
-its own shell, which it also repairs when broken by the agency
-of its palmated arms. It is said the argonaut rises to the surface,
-with the shell upward, turning it downward when it floats
-on the water; by drawing the six arms within the shell and
-placing the palmated ones on the outside, it can quickly sink.
-This explains why the animal is so seldom taken with the shell.
-The shell is flexible when in water, but very fragile when dry.
-The largest known specimen is in the collection of the Boston
-Society of Natural History; it is 10 by 6½ inches. For a full
-account of this animal see “Proceedings of the Boston Society
-of Natural History,” vol. v, pp. 369-381.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><i>End of Required Reading for April.</i></p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_390" id="Page_390">[390]</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<h2 id="JERRY_McAULEY_AND_HIS_WORK">JERRY McAULEY AND HIS WORK.</h2>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<p class="center">BY COLEMAN E. BISHOP.</p>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<p>Extremes of life meet in a great city. “Man, the pendulum
-betwixt a smile and tear,” here swings between the utmost
-extremes of squalor and splendor, misery and enjoyment, sin
-and virtue. That conflict between good and evil—old as the
-human soul, its arena—is waged nowhere as fiercely as here,
-where life is intense and assailable souls are legion. You have
-to go but a little below the surface of city life to find a worse
-than Dante’s “Inferno;” and if that were the whole story,
-if there were no compensating charities, one would feel it a
-mercy to call down on the city the desolation, and the peace of
-Sodom.</p>
-
-<p>But, thank God! there <i>are</i> those redeeming, reforming influences
-to give one new hope for civilization, new faith in humanity,
-or new faith in divine grace. Its missions and charities are
-the sunny side of New York. There are over one hundred and
-thirty established missions in the city, with a million and a
-half of dollars permanently invested, beside the other millions
-required to support them; and the eleemosynary and relief
-institutions of New York outshine the charities of all other
-cities, proportioned to numbers. Some liberal, devout souls
-seem to be looking after every conceivable phase of suffering
-and sin, and if the devil seems generally to be getting the advantage,
-let us believe that it is because his antagonists are
-not more numerous, rather than because he is any smarter or
-attends more strictly to business. Indeed, the ingenuity of
-some of the foes of sin, might put to confusion the proverbial
-originality of the great adversary. Of these exceptional efforts,
-perhaps there is none more unique than the work of the
-late Jerry McAuley, nor one that has wrought so great results
-with so little human aid; nor one to which the Christian believer
-can point as a testimony of divine agency with greater
-confidence.</p>
-
-<p>Yet, a thoughtful study of the man and his work will reveal
-the rationale of it, and help us to understand why it took hold
-of a certain class in the way it did; that is, why he proved so
-exact a means to that exact end. The characteristics and
-training that made Jerry McAuley a successful criminal made
-him, when his nature and purpose had been transformed, a
-successful missionary. The son of a counterfeiter, he was educated
-in the worst streets and dens, graduated a tippler and
-petty thief in his boyhood, and took his degrees of gambler,
-drunkard, burglar and wharf rat; and at the age of nineteen
-was convicted and sentenced to fifteen years’ imprisonment.
-Short and inglorious career of sin! To be followed by a long
-and glorious one of righteousness, and crowned at last with a
-triumphant death in faith! Here for seven years he hardened
-under perfunctory gospel ministrations and prison discipline,
-until at the right time Orville Gardner, known as “Awful Gardner,
-the Reformed Prize-fighter,” found Jerry and led him to
-that change which he always called his “transformation.” He
-was pardoned out, only to meet the killing, chilling reception
-that society gives to one who has passed the bars. Now followed
-seven years of struggles for an honest life. Only his soul
-and its Maker know what these were. At one time he relapsed
-into his old ways, but he was sought and reclaimed by agents
-of the Howard (“Five Points”) Mission. Strange, is it not, that
-good people are so much more alert to recall the fallen than to
-aid the struggling and keep the rescued secure? Why is it that
-interest in the unfortunate is deferred till interest seems useless?</p>
-
-<p>Jerry now conceived the plan of a mission to people of his own
-old life, men and women tempted in all points like unto himself.
-He applied for advice and help to one or two clergymen
-and some wealthy church members, only to meet with mortifying
-coldness or refusal. We can readily understand this caution,
-considering McAuley’s antecedents and qualifications. He
-could hardly read and write his own name. Churches are so
-fiercely criticised that they have to be very chary about espousing
-unpromising enterprises. It was a <i>natural</i> caution if not a
-<i>Christian</i> charity; worldly if not spiritual wisdom. Besides, are
-there not still things that He hides from the wise and prudent,
-and reveals unto babes? At length, McAuley found men able
-and willing to help, and with their aid he opened his Water
-Street Mission, in 1872. This situation is one of the worst in
-the lower part of the city, in the “Bloody Eighth Ward,” the
-haunt of river thieves, sailors and abandoned women of the
-lowest degree. It was a “rum start,” indeed, to the denizens
-of Water Street when one of their leaders was graduated from
-prison to prayer meeting; and by scores they “came to scoff,
-and remained to pray.” This mission was a success from the
-start, and to-day remains in full tide of beneficent operation.</p>
-
-<p>Two years ago Jerry was able to carry out his long-entertained
-desire to “do something for up-town sinners” by the
-establishment of the “Cremorne Mission.” It was a more
-daring undertaking because it had to do with more respectable
-sinners. He said it was a mistake to speak of those in the
-gutter as “hard cases;” their pride and reliance are gone,
-and they are not likely to be affronted or resistant when told
-they need a Savior; the prosperous and successful are the
-hard hearted; as you ascend the scale in means, intelligence
-and pretension, the harder the sinner becomes.</p>
-
-<p>On West Thirty-Second Street, just off Third Avenue, was
-the infamous Cremorne Gardens, one of the most dangerous
-because <i>not</i> one of the lowest resorts of abandoned men and
-women. In this vicinity are many houses of ill repute of the
-higher rank; gamblers and sporting men have their “runways”
-in that part of the city. Jerry “carried the war into Africa” by
-leasing a building next the “Cremorne Garden,” so that in
-all respects the sad satire of DeFoe was and is reversed,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">“Wherever God erects a house of prayer</div>
-<div class="verse i1">The Devil always builds a chapel there;</div>
-<div class="verse i1">And ’twill be found upon examination</div>
-<div class="verse i1">The latter has the larger congregation.”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>The passenger by the elevated railroad, or one of the several
-street car lines that converge at the intersection of Sixth Avenue
-and Broadway, may see any evening a brilliant prismatic
-sign of “Cremorne Garden,” and seemingly just above it this
-more brilliant legend:</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">Jerry McAuley’s Cremorne Mission</span>.</p>
-
-<p>He will reach the Mission first, as he approaches this strange
-conjunction of stars; Jerry said he wanted the Lord to have
-the first chance at a sinner when he could.</p>
-
-<p>The doors are open night and day, and some one is always
-there to welcome the visitor. A “protracted meeting” is held
-here all the year, and all the years, around. Going in, you stand
-in a long, narrow hall, with high ceilings modestly decorated;
-an aisle down the middle flanked by rows of oaken settees terminates
-at a low platform on which are chairs, a cheap desk, and
-a grand piano. The place seats five or six hundred. The hall is
-brilliant with electric lights, and the walls are illustrious with
-such Scripture quotations as, in the words of one of the converts,
-have been found most apt to “fetch ’em”—<i>i. e.</i>, sinners.
-By the platform are conspicuous notices that speeches are limited
-to one minute each, a rule that is easily enforced in the
-case of the converts, because they have only facts to tell, and
-do not seem to be in love with that sweetest music on earth,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_391" id="Page_391">[391]</a></span>
-the sound of their own voices. “One minute each,” Jerry
-would say: “Don’t be too long; cut off both ends and give us
-the middle; you need not get mad, as some people have done,
-if I ring this bell.” “All right,” replied one easy speaker;
-“If I get long-winded pull me down by my coat tails;” whereat
-all laughed heartily, as they frequently do.</p>
-
-<p>Jerry McAuley’s method, first and last, was unique, but simple
-and very effective. Testimonies are the great reliance.
-They teach salvation by object lessons, prove the truth of conversion
-by concrete examples. There is no argument, no exhortation,
-no didactics, no theological disquisition. What need
-of these in the presence of these living examples? A man
-stands up and says: “For twenty years I was a common
-drunkard and thief. Five years ago I found Christ here. I
-have not touched a drop nor stolen a thing since.” McAuley
-was won by <i>proof</i>. He said: “It was a testimony that brought
-me. I was ‘sent up’ for fifteen years and six months; I listened
-to preaching there for over seven years, but I was still
-unmoved. Then a man came along who gave his experience.
-He had been a wicked man. That man told just my history;
-but he was saved, and since there was hope for a desperate man
-like him, I knew there was hope for me. And there was! Now
-you have heard the biggest debtor to grace that is in the room,
-let the next heaviest debtor follow me.” Others were won by
-the undeniable transformation of Jerry. These things were
-irresistible. Men describe the effect on themselves of these
-living witnesses:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p>“The Bible reading and the prayer did not have any effect upon me,
-but the testimonies of some who had been, as I could not help admitting
-to myself, just as I then was, did affect me. I felt that I was in the
-same boat as they had been in. The conviction of my state forced itself
-upon me, whether I wanted to think of it or not.”</p>
-
-<p>“I came to this meeting three weeks ago. I was drunk when I came
-in here, but drunk as I was, those testimonies, such as you have heard
-to-night, reached me, and I went forward to those chairs. There I gave
-my heart to Christ after serving the devil forty-seven years.”</p>
-
-<p>“When I first heard the testimonies here I thought those who spoke
-had great impudence to tell all about their past lives, but by and by I
-felt that they were describing my case. Then, as they told how Jesus
-saved them, I felt I needed to be saved.”</p>
-
-<p>“As testimony after testimony was given I would say to myself:
-that’s me, that’s me.”</p>
-
-<p>Another said that the prayer and Bible reading did not affect him,
-but the testimonies were “like shot after shot fired at him.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>These effects are driven home and clinched by direct personal
-efforts with penitents, by attentions that follow them to their
-homes or shops, or into evil haunts, by relief and creature
-comforts—in a word, by an interest vigilant, ceaseless, and tender
-as divine love, because inspired by it.</p>
-
-<p>As the method is peculiar, the atmosphere of the meeting is.
-One familiar with ordinary devotional meetings, and, more,
-with revival efforts, can not fail to notice here the contrast.
-Speaking is uniformly in an ordinary tone, and in a conversational,
-matter-of-fact manner—an effect that is heightened by
-the use of phrases common in the resorts where some of the
-converts learned their vernacular. And prayer is specially
-subdued and low toned—the more impressive and reverential
-on account of it.</p>
-
-<p>Then, one feels the momentum of the exercises and the
-tone of cheerfulness and joy that prevail. There is none
-of that exhortation to “improve the precious time;” none of
-that dismal bewailing of spiritual barrenness and besetting
-doubts, fears and temptations, which sometimes make devotional
-exercises mechanical and dreary, and furnish stumbling-blocks
-to young believers. These converts do not dwell much
-on their <i>enjoyment</i> of religion; albeit, they do one and all give
-thanks without ceasing for their deliverance. One notes, too, the
-absence of cant, of quotations and set phrases; everything
-is original. There is little exhortation of others. In short,
-like Bartimeas, they know “Whereas I <i>was</i> blind, <i>now</i> I see;”
-and unlike the blind man, they know who worked the miracle.</p>
-
-<p>It was the founder and leader of the two missions who gave all
-this tone to their services. He was of a medium height and slender,
-with a heavy, wiry moustache, keen eyes, a nervous temperament,
-energetic, quick-witted, sympathetic; one readily
-caught good feeling and confraternity from his presence. He
-would flash out at a hymn, a text, or a testimony, with a bit of
-experience. Before two sentences had passed his lips he probably
-would leap down from his place on the platform, saying,
-humorously: “I can’t talk up on that stage,” and go down the
-aisle as if to hold pleasant converse with his audience. It was
-a strange <i>melange</i> of earnestness, experience, humility and
-wit, with not the least attempt at eloquence, and apparently no
-study of effects. He describes one case of conversion:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p>“This man had come into the meeting with his head about twice the
-usual size, and his eyes as red as a red-hot poker. You could have
-squeezed the rum out of him. He asked me to pray with him, but I
-hadn’t much faith in the man, but that’s just where God disappointed
-me. I was deceived. The man meant business.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The missions are supported entirely by voluntary contributions
-left in the boxes by the door. Sometimes these run
-low. One night Jerry asked all who were glad to be there
-to hold up their hands. All hands up. “Now,” said he,
-“when you take your hands down put them way down—down
-into your pockets, and fetch something out to put in the boxes
-by the door.” He said, that to run a mission successfully required
-“grace, grit and greenbacks.” I fancy considerable of
-his influence was due to his knowledge of the secret hearts, the
-personal experiences of his auditors; he was like a priest at
-confessional, when out of meeting. There are no <i>verbatim</i> reports
-of his talks extant, and if there were they would give the
-reader no proper idea of the man, because the grotesqueness
-of his language would probably be the most striking feature of
-them. He must have been heard to be understood, and even
-then I think he could not have been understood save by those
-whose experience and modes of life gave them the touchstone.</p>
-
-<p>Sister Maggie is a typical convert. At one of the Cremorne
-missions a Sunday-school worker from the East Side
-told of his class of fifteen street boys and girls. “I asked
-them,” he said, “how many of them drank beer, and all
-promptly put up their hands. I asked how many thought it a
-bad practice, and only four or five responded. I then told
-them of the evils that drink led to, and cited them numerous
-examples within their knowledge, and finally asked how many
-of them would resolve never to drink any more beer. About
-half of them kept their hands down, and in a way that showed
-they meant business.”</p>
-
-<p>This discouraging incident brought to her feet, on the platform,
-a tall, thick-set, strong-featured woman. She spoke with
-a strident, energetic voice, a Bowery accent, and a manner to
-which all thought of shrinking or embarrassment was a stranger.
-It was Sister Maggie. She said, as nearly as I recall
-the words: “This teaching children beer-drinking is the beginning
-of all the deviltry. I was passing a dive yesterday and
-I saw a little kid come out with a pail of beer that she had been
-sent for, and no sooner was she outside the door than the pail
-went to her head. That’s the way I used to do, and learned to
-drink and steal at the same time. But God can help us to reclaim
-even beings so badly educated. He helped me, and
-there can’t be a worse case on the East Side. There is not a
-dive over there that I haven’t been drunk in. Brother S.
-knows how often I have drank with him at old C.’s dead-house
-(rum-shop). Sixteen years ago I was a leper, a confirmed sot.
-If you had seen me you would not have believed that I could
-have been saved. Christians said I was too far gone; they said
-there was not enough woman left in me to be saved. I had
-had the jim-jams twicet. [Laughter.] The first time I had ’em I
-thought my back hair was full of mice—oh, that was awful!
-[More laughter.] I was just getting over the tremens when I
-first come in here. I was a walking rag-shop, and if you’d a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_392" id="Page_392">[392]</a></span>
-seen me you’d give me plenty of room on the walk. I staggered
-in and sat down on the very backest seat. Now they let
-me sit up here on the platform. What d’ye think of that? God
-helped me, and he has helped me now for sixteen years, and I
-am going through. I am happy. I have friends and good
-clothes, and more than all, I have <i>a good home</i>, and that is
-what I never knew before.”</p>
-
-<p>At the mention of the word “home,” all the woman’s instinct
-asserted itself, and for the first time her voice softened, and
-her manner melted; she sobbed, and sat down.</p>
-
-<p>I can give no complete idea of the effect of this, because the
-reader can know nothing of the surroundings, the antecedents
-of the speaker and of many of her listeners, and the keen rapport
-that ties them together. These worshipers are a class
-and an organization by themselves; they have no church
-affiliations, and their worship is <i>sui generis</i>; many of them
-were outcasts of society in former years, they stand alone since
-their reformation, and they are drawn close together in their
-isolation. True, there are many among them who were always
-respectable members of society; many who since their
-conversion here have joined churches; there are richly dressed
-and cultured-looking people scattered in these audiences; but
-the fact remains that the genius and distinctive <i>personnel</i>
-of the meetings are of the order of which Jerry McAuley
-and “Sister Maggie” and their ministrations are representatives.</p>
-
-<p>I know of no religious exercises better calculated to inspire
-the true religious feelings of faith, charity, humility, gratitude,
-and rejoicing—the distinguishing marks of the original Christian
-following. But they differ from the noisy demonstrations which
-sometimes are taken for “primitive Christianity,” as they do
-from the cold and conventional worship which advertises itself
-in brownstone structures and double-barred mahogany pews.
-If one wants to get a breath of vigorous faith and wholesome
-humility, he should attend the Sunday evening services at one
-of the McAuley Missions.</p>
-
-<p>Jerry McAuley died suddenly, but not unexpectedly, last
-September. His funeral, held at the great Broadway Tabernacle,
-was one of the largest ever seen in this city, and was attended
-by hundreds of abandoned characters who had been
-reclaimed through his instrumentality, and who were probably
-never inside of a church before, and may never be again.
-Women with painted faces, but with tears in their eyes and bits
-of crape fastened at their throats or arms, stood with downcast
-heads beside other women who, under other circumstances,
-would have shunned them. Thus did all classes testify to the
-power of simple faith and devotion in a poor, uncultured outcast.
-Over the platform in his chapels are his last, characteristic
-words:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p>“IT’S ALL RIGHT.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>“The workman dies, but the work goes on.” There is no
-calculating the power and extent of the influences this humble
-worker has set in motion. Beside the hundreds of living examples
-of his labor here, the seed has scattered to the four
-winds of heaven, and sprung up in various forms to bless the
-world—in other cities and other lands. The Missions publish
-<i>Jerry McAuley’s Newspaper</i>, which, extensively circulated,
-especially in prisons and “the slums” of cities, carries the glad
-tidings of the testimonies to do a silent and unknown work.
-An affecting feature of the private work of these converts is their
-efforts to hunt out and reclaim missing boys and girls. Letters
-are received from agonized parents, from distant points as well
-as the city, imploring the help of missionaries to find these
-estrays; and their efforts are often successful.</p>
-
-<p>I close with one example of this radiating, ramifying influence:
-Michael Dunn was an English thief by inheritance, for
-his parents were thieves, and as he expresses it, “he had thieving
-on the brain.” He had spent the greater part of thirty-five
-years in different prisons, and continued the same life after
-coming to this country. One evening an unconverted man
-sent him into the McAuley Mission as a joke, but it proved to
-Dunn a blessing, for he found a Savior, and the desire for
-stealing was all cast out. He was moved to undertake that
-most important work, the provision of a home for refuge and
-work for his brother ex-convicts. After many trials and difficulties
-he finally established the Home of Industry, No. 40
-Houston Street, New York, where many lost men who were a
-terror to society, have been made honest Christian citizens, and
-are working to save others. Nor did the work stop here.
-In the autumn of 1883, Dunn was called to San Francisco, California,
-to open a similar Home in that city, where his labors
-are as successful as they were in New York.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<h2 id="EIN_FESTE_BURG_IST_UNSER_GOTT">EIN FESTE BURG IST UNSER GOTT.</h2>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<p class="center">TRANSLATION OF LUTHER’S FAMOUS HYMN.</p>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">Our God’s a fastness sure indeed,</div>
-<div class="verse indent1">A trusty shield and weapon;</div>
-<div class="verse">He helps us free in every need</div>
-<div class="verse indent1">That unto us may happen.</div>
-<div class="verse indent3">The old wicked foe</div>
-<div class="verse indent3">Now in earnest doth go,</div>
-<div class="verse indent3">Deep wiles and great might</div>
-<div class="verse indent3">In his fell store unite,—</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">The earth holds not his fellow.</div>
-</div><div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">By strength of ours is nothing done,</div>
-<div class="verse indent1">Full soon are we dejected!</div>
-<div class="verse">But on our side’s a champion</div>
-<div class="verse indent1">By God himself elected.</div>
-<div class="verse indent3">And who may that be?</div>
-<div class="verse indent3">Christ Jesus is he,</div>
-<div class="verse indent3">The Lord God of Hosts!</div>
-<div class="verse indent3">All gods else are vain boasts,</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">Our camp is in his keeping.</div>
-</div><div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">Though demons rage both far and near</div>
-<div class="verse indent1">And gape our souls to swallow;</div>
-<div class="verse">Not all too great shall be our fear;</div>
-<div class="verse indent1">Success our steps shall follow.</div>
-<div class="verse indent3">The prince of this world,</div>
-<div class="verse indent3">Though threats he hath hurled,</div>
-<div class="verse indent3">To us can do nought,</div>
-<div class="verse indent3">For if to judgment brought</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">One word declares his sentence.</div>
-</div><div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">To let the word stand they are fain,</div>
-<div class="verse indent1">And small thereby their merit;</div>
-<div class="verse">He dwells among us on the plain</div>
-<div class="verse indent1">With gifts and with his spirit.</div>
-<div class="verse indent3">What though they take life,</div>
-<div class="verse indent3">Goods, name, child, and wife,</div>
-<div class="verse indent3">We need not rebel—</div>
-<div class="verse indent3">No profit those to hell,</div>
-<div class="verse indent2">While ours must be the kingdom.</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_393" id="Page_393">[393]</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-<h2 id="THE_WEATHER_BUREAU">THE WEATHER BUREAU.</h2>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<p class="center">BY OLIVER W. LONGAN,<br />
-Of the War Department.</p>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<p>In an article on the “War Department” in <span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span>
-for December, mention was made of the weather observations
-by the Signal Corps of the army. This novel service—novel
-both in its character and in its assignment to a military
-department—was commenced in 1870, under a resolution
-of Congress, approved February 9th of that year, which required
-the Secretary of War “To provide for taking meteorological
-observations at the military stations in the interior of
-the continent, and at other points in the states and territories
-of the United States, and for giving notice on the northern
-lakes and on the sea coast, by magnetic telegraph and marine
-signals, of the approach and force of storms;” and in June,
-1872, the provisions of the service were extended to include
-“the agricultural and commercial interests” of the country.
-The plan of organization and the superintendence of the service
-were imposed upon the chief signal officer of the army,
-then General Albert J. Myer,<a name="FNanchor_1" id="FNanchor_1"></a><a href="#Footnote_1" class="fnanchor">[A]</a> to whose memory the signal and
-the weather services are living monuments.</p>
-
-<p>If failures are of value in guiding succeeding attempts in
-the same line, General Myer had the advantage of a number,
-both in this country and Europe, but attributing those failures
-to a want of proper agents rather than to mistakes of method,
-and being thoroughly imbued with the idea that efficient service
-from a body of men employed in the same enterprise can
-be obtained only by enrolling them under the oath of enlistment
-as subjects of military discipline, he could adopt all the
-methods of operation which had already been tried by others,
-and, uniting with them his own, could undertake the work with
-a confidence in men as much as in measures, and make sure
-progress over the same road that had been too difficult for
-others to travel. The signal service, which had been organized
-by him as a special and distinct department of the army, was
-well prepared to operate the most important agent in the work,
-the magnetic telegraph, and it has constructed its lines over a
-great extent of country not yet reached by civilization, connecting
-frontier military posts with each other and with the
-lines owned and operated by private companies.</p>
-
-<p>The office division first established under the law of Congress,
-which has been mentioned, was called by the appropriate
-but too extensive name of “Division of Telegrams and
-Reports for the Benefit of Commerce,” but great works which
-have been proved and not found wanting may, like great
-men, afford to adopt simpler titles without loss of favor, or if
-they will not do so voluntarily, such titles will be fashioned
-for them and fastened to them by the people, who have not
-time to regard the official proprieties that would hold them off
-at a respectful distance by an appearance of gravity of demeanor
-or by an impressive name, so the office has come to
-be familiarly known as the “Weather Bureau,” and the officials
-in charge have accepted the designation without objection.
-It detracts nothing from the appreciation of the work
-they accomplish in giving information—premonitory—of wind
-and rain, heat and cold, frost and snow, river flood and ocean
-tide, and much more of interest and value day by day—yes,
-and night by night as well—for the inhabitants of this continent,
-and in adding to the knowledge of meteorology which is
-eagerly sought by the scientists of the world.</p>
-
-<p>The service contemplated by Congress was at first intended—if
-we may judge by the language of the law—only to benefit
-persons interested in the commerce upon the great lakes and
-the ocean. Then the agriculturists were permitted to take
-share in the advantage afforded by a prevision of the weather.
-But we are all too greatly interested personally in the kind of
-weather expected to-morrow or the next day not to seek to
-profit by the work done for those engaged in special business
-when there may be great gain for us as individuals without
-robbery of their peculiar rights. Our interest moves us to
-speech almost unconsciously, as we meet our friends by the
-way and tell them, what they already know as well as we,
-about the kind of weather then prevailing, or express our
-hopes or fears for what soon will be. Work and play are
-sources of profit and pleasure, according to the influences of
-the weather, and the signs of olden time are numberless, to
-which we give our confidence, whether they come from the
-beasts of the field, or the fowls of the air, or the fishes of the
-sea, or are indications based upon a correct philosophy, well
-known but not well understood. The masses of the people
-will not give up their attachment to these signs, nor for the old-fashioned
-almanac which their fathers consulted for their
-weather predictions, but now that they have the aid of a great
-government institution conducted by men who study the
-weather as a science, and who have patiently held out to them
-the benefit of their investigations until the good natured skepticism
-and the raillery of the multitude who dubbed the genius
-of the weather service “Old Probabilities,” has all been banished
-and has given place to full faith and credit, they ought to
-acknowledge, and no doubt do, that their personal wants in
-this respect have been recognized, and they will take interest
-in the methods by which they are met and satisfied.</p>
-
-<p>Every feature of the signal service has been brought into
-requisition and use for the work of weather observations and
-storm warnings, and the original bureau seems to have been
-so wholly absorbed in the new one that the corps will be
-known, except perhaps in official circles, only by its operations
-in this special field, until war shall call for the more frequent
-use of the flags and rockets and lights, by the aid of
-which a great part of the rapid communication pertaining to
-the business of warfare is carried on. The <i>personnel</i> of the
-corps comprises a chief signal officer (brigadier-general),
-twelve second lieutenants, one hundred and fifty sergeants,
-thirty corporals, and three hundred and twenty privates.
-Prior to 1878 there were no signal officers in the regular establishment
-except the chief, but in that year authority was
-given to appoint two second lieutenants annually from the
-sergeants, and the selection for these appointments is made
-by competitive examination. Officers are assigned to duty
-with the corps by detail from the regiments of the army, and
-after a course of instruction return to their proper stations, and
-are succeeded by others. A few civilians are employed in the
-office in Washington city, in various capacities, including that
-of professional scientist and instructor, but the great work of
-observation is done by the army force, so called because every
-member of it is ready at any moment to lay aside his special
-duties and take up arms for any emergency. The pay of the
-officers is that of their grade in the army: $5,500 per annum
-for a brigadier-general; $1,400 for a second lieutenant, with
-an increase of ten per centum after each five years of service,
-until the increase reaches forty per centum (after twenty
-years’ service), when no more is added. (This increase, called
-longevity pay, is not given to any officer above the rank of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_394" id="Page_394">[394]</a></span>
-colonel.) As the government is supposed to furnish a habitation
-of a certain number of rooms for each commissioned officer,
-there is quite an augmentation of the pay when the duty
-requires a station where there are no public quarters, as is the
-case in most of the service for the weather bureau, and commutation
-is paid. The pay of the enlisted men varies according
-to their rank and station of duty, but is based upon the
-army pay table. The pay of a sergeant, including all allowances,
-averages monthly within a few cents of the following
-amounts: At a military post where quarters and rations are
-provided in kind, $40; at an observing station, $80; at the
-office in Washington city, $100; that of a corporal $25, $65,
-and $85; that of a first class private $22, $62 and $82, and a
-decrease of four dollars for a second class private, the respective
-stations being those mentioned for the sergeant. The
-great difference in the pay of the same man at different places
-is made by the “extra duty pay,” and commutation of allowances
-(rations, quarters, fuel and clothing) when they can not
-be furnished in kind. The entrance into the service is by an
-enlistment of five years. Every man must pass a rigid examination
-into his physical and educational qualifications. The
-service presents advantages not found in any other branch of
-the army. The inducements attract a well educated class of
-men, many of them graduates of colleges, who find in the
-scientific part of the work at least, a congenial pursuit.</p>
-
-<p>The school of instruction is at Fort Myer (formerly Fort
-Whipple), a military station in Virginia, on the bank of the
-Potomac river, nearly opposite Washington city. The course
-embraces the drill and discipline of the soldier, the code of
-signals, the construction and operation of telegraph lines, the
-use of meteorological instruments, and the method of taking
-observations. The central office in Washington occupies an
-ordinary looking brick building of uncertain age, half a square
-west of the War Department building. It was originally two
-two-story dwelling houses, but has received an additional
-story and “Mansard” roof, and has been fitted for its present
-use. The plain and dingy exterior escapes critical notice by
-the display of the mysterious looking machinery and fixtures
-upon the roof. An immense arrow (anemoscope), with broad
-feather-tip end, turns its point ever “in the wind’s eye,” and is
-imitated by two smaller ones at a lower elevation. Several
-sets of spinning instruments of various sizes stand in different
-places. These are the anemometers for measuring the velocity
-of the wind. The part of each visible from the ground
-is simply a vertical rod with four branches on the top, each
-branch having a hemispherical shaped cup upon its outer end,
-so placed as to catch the wind in its convex side. The force
-of the wind gives the cups a rotary motion in a horizontal
-plane, which causes the vertical rod to revolve and record by
-connecting mechanism and dials the velocity of the wind in
-miles per hour. Near the center of the roof may be seen a
-vessel with a funnel shaped top into which the rain falls and
-is measured to ascertain the depth in inches, of which accurate
-record is kept. Close by is a framework supporting a small
-cage-like structure with lattice sides and tight roof, within
-which are hung the thermometers, barometers, and other instruments
-consulted regularly at intervals, to ascertain the temperature,
-pressure, and humidity of the atmosphere. These fixtures
-and instruments are used for the purpose of obtaining indications
-of the weather, and for the instruction of “Observers,”
-and serve as well for standards by which instruments to be
-sent to other places may be tested. Only a portion, however,
-of the business of the office is done in the building mentioned,
-a number of others in the vicinity being occupied for the several
-departments of the work.</p>
-
-<p>The central office is connected by telegraph with stations in
-the principal cities of the country, at the sea and lake ports,
-and at points along the Atlantic and gulf coasts, uniting with
-stations of the United States Life Saving Service, for it is
-there that the work of greatest value, the saving of human
-life, is done. The number of stations is limited only by the
-amount of money provided by Congress for their maintenance.
-The top of Pike’s Peak and the summit of Mount Washington
-both contribute their share of upper air phenomena, and the
-lowest valleys in the interior give up their secrets of the atmosphere
-at its greatest depth. What an ocean it is, with its
-surface which we are told is a certain number of miles above
-us, and its bottom, which we know is under our feet, its shoreless
-currents, some as gentle as the breath of an infant, others
-more fierce and swift than the whirlpool rapids of Niagara.
-To learn of these currents their force and direction, whence
-they come and whither they go, the laws to which they are
-subject, has been the fascinating study of amateur meteorologists
-and the pursuit of men of professional attainments in
-science for many years. But their discoveries were of little
-practical value before Professor Morse, on a May day forty
-years ago, sent over a telegraph wire between Washington
-and Baltimore, his first message in the form of a question
-which since has been answered in wonders by the same agent
-then employed, and the same now used to send warning of
-the coming storm, whose swift wings have no other rival.</p>
-
-<p>The weather stations are distinguished under a classification
-made by a special service performed at each, and are
-known as telegraph, printing, display, special river, cotton
-region, and sunset stations. A number of them may have all
-the special features indicated by the different names, while
-others may have but the one feature which gives it its place in
-the class. The last mentioned are so called, not, as the name
-may possibly suggest, because they are located away off toward
-sundown, but because of the special observation taken at
-the time of sunset which affords so good an indication of the
-probable weather for to-morrow. It recalls the fact that the
-Jews were reminded more than eighteen hundred years ago of
-their habit of observation in this particular, which was a rebuke
-for their failure to read “the signs of the times.” A
-great number of reports are received at the Weather Bureau
-weekly and monthly, by mail from volunteer observers, from
-medical officers at military posts, from agricultural and scientific
-societies, and at regular times from meteorological societies
-in the old world, but as none but the telegraphic reports
-have more than a relative connection with the work of
-weather indications for which we are looking day after day, it
-is sufficient for the purposes of this article to simply mention
-the fact that there are several hundred of these mail reports
-from which record of permanent and daily increasing value is
-made for study and information of the climate in various sections
-of the country.</p>
-
-<p>The station service necessarily commenced under the disadvantage
-of having no observers of experience, but there was
-only one way to get them, and the beginning of the work was
-the commencement of the education of the men who were to
-perform it. At this time there is not only the course of instruction
-at Fort Myer, but men as assistants at stations are perfecting
-themselves to occupy the places of those who have become
-masters in the profession, or to take charge of new
-places. The telegraph stations number about one hundred
-and fifty, and at each one is an “Observer Sergeant,” with one or
-more assistants. Their equipment in instruments is similar to
-that which has been mentioned in connection with the central
-office, viz.: For ascertaining the temperature of the air; the
-weight or pressure and relative humidity of the atmosphere;
-the direction, force, and velocity of the wind; and the depth
-of the rainfall; also at river stations for taking the temperature
-of the water, and for measuring its rise or fall; and at display
-stations signal flags and lanterns are included. The
-observers take the record from their instruments at regular
-intervals every day and night, Sundays and holidays included.
-There are three of these observations—taken at 7:00 a. m.,
-3:00 p. m., and 11:00 p. m., Washington time—telegraphed to
-the central office. Those taken at other hours are not telegraphed<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_395" id="Page_395">[395]</a></span>
-unless called for, but are recorded and enter into
-the weekly and monthly mail reports. The dispatch is in
-cipher, which permits the sending of a long message in from
-five to twelve words, giving pressure, temperature, direction,
-and velocity of wind, depth of rain or snow fall, appearance
-and movement of clouds and any special meteorological
-phenomena present, and adding from river and coast stations
-the stage of water in the rivers and the ocean swell. By preconcerted
-arrangements with telegraph companies, the reports
-pass over the wires without delay or interruption, and all
-reach the central office within about forty minutes after the
-observations are taken. They are at once translated and entered
-upon graphic charts—outline maps of the United States—on
-which each station is marked by its geographical location.
-By the use of symbols and figures all the meteorological
-conditions of each locality are exhibited, and so perfect is the
-system of arrangement for reporting and drafting that in less
-than two hours from the time the record was taken by the
-“Observers,” the officer who is to make the weather predictions
-has all the reports before him in the central office.</p>
-
-<p>The ever-changing conditions of weather are in a manner
-photographed, and serve as guides for the work which immediately
-follows the making up of the charts. First the “synopsis”
-of conditions is made up, then the predictions or
-“indications” of the kind of weather expected, and the places
-where storm warnings are to be shown are determined, and
-in the form of a bulletin they are telegraphed to all parts of
-the country as the “Press Report,” to observing stations to
-be reproduced and furnished to local papers, posted in public
-offices and mailed to postmasters for exhibition in their offices,
-several hundred postoffices in some instances being supplied
-from one station. They are also placed in railroad stations and
-distributed from trains at points along their lines. Thus the people
-are advised of the kind of weather prevailing over the district
-of country in which they live, and informed of the changes
-that may be expected within twenty-four or forty-eight hours.</p>
-
-<p>“Observers” at their several stations publish in connection
-with the “indications” telegraphed from the central office, the
-conditions prevailing in their own localities, and in large cities
-where weather maps are hung in the rooms of boards of trade,
-merchants’ exchange, or other important offices, they place or
-change the symbols used to indicate the conditions at all the
-stations, as they receive them from reports passing them to the
-central office or repeated from the latter.</p>
-
-<p>The development and progress of all storms are as clearly
-delineated upon the charts prepared in the central office as it
-is possible for sensitive instruments to reveal them, and special
-attention is given to indications of high winds approaching
-the coasts. Orders are sent by telegraph to the maritime stations
-within a region likely to be visited by dangerous winds,
-and a “cautionary signal”—a square white flag with a square
-red center by day, or a red-center light by night—is displayed,
-remains out until notice is received from the central office that
-the danger has passed. This signal is used as the storm approaches.
-As the general direction of storms upon the Atlantic
-coast, or approaching it, is easterly or northeasterly, and
-the direction of the wind is circular and opposite to the motion
-of the hands upon a watch, with an inward tendency toward
-the “storm center,” as the storm departs from a station the
-wind will probably blow from the north or west, and a “cautionary
-off-shore signal,” a square white flag with square black
-center above the red flag, by day, or a white light above the
-red by night, may be ordered. Special record of the velocity
-of the wind is made at the stations when storm signals are ordered,
-and if it reaches twenty-five miles an hour the display
-of the signal is regarded as “justified.” These signals have
-become a necessity, and the occasions are exceedingly rare in
-which a vessel will leave port with one in sight until the captain
-or master has first made inquiry at the station for “particulars.”
-Coasting vessels are dependent in a great measure
-upon them; if they pass a station with the storm-signal displayed,
-they frequently escape encountering destructive gales
-by putting into the nearest port until the danger has passed.</p>
-
-<p>The coast telegraph lines connecting the signal and the life
-saving stations have been constructed by the government, and
-are operated by the signal corps. The weather stations are
-equipped for making connections with the main line at any
-point, and many instances may be found recorded in the official
-reports, of shipwrecks on the coast to which relief has
-been brought in a very few hours by the prompt action of “Observers”
-opening telegraphic communication from a point
-abreast the wreck, direct to the central office in Washington,
-and sending information to be repeated, with the weight of official
-authority, to the nearest port from which steamers could
-be sent to the rescue. A vessel in distress, or in need of any
-information, if in possession of the international code of marine
-signals—a number of nations have adopted the American
-code—may communicate with the shore stations. By this code
-a number of small flags of various shapes and colors, used
-singly or together, answer to certain words and sentences, and
-these being translated into other languages, convey from the
-American or Englishman to the Frenchman, German, or Spaniard
-the question or answer desired, as plainly as an affirmative
-nod of the head from one to the other would mean yes.</p>
-
-<p>The river reports are an important feature of the service.
-The temperature of the waters, surface and deep, taken regularly,
-makes a record for the benefit of those engaged in the
-propagation of food fishes, which is becoming an important
-government work. The stage of water taken in connection
-with the reports of rainfall and temperature of the atmosphere in
-their influence upon deep beds of snow and ice-locked streams
-affords ground for warnings, when needed, to persons engaged
-in any river traffic, or exposed to floods upon the banks.</p>
-
-<p>The “waves” of temperature have become as real to us as
-those upon the ocean, and the prosecution of very many kinds
-of business, or the transportation of perishable produce is
-guided by the reports of the Weather Bureau, as it foretells
-the coming of heat or cold. The interior of the country will
-no doubt soon have the benefit of signals, as well as “bulletins.”
-A large, white flag, with a square black center, is now
-displayed at stations in advance of an expected “cold wave,”
-and before a great while we may expect the “limited express”
-upon the different railroads will be made the bearer of signals
-to forewarn the inhabitants of the country through which it
-passes of the change of weather rapidly following its track.
-The possibilities of the service seem to be unlimited, but the most
-careful watchfulness of the “Observers,” and the keen vigilance
-of the officers who direct them have not yet brought the
-elements to reveal all their movements. Sometimes, as a wary
-foe, a storm will steal in between the sentinels, or descend
-from the upper air, and gathering all its strength into one narrow
-channel, will drive destruction through town and country,
-and leave behind it evidences of power which we can hardly
-credit, except by sight.</p>
-
-<p>One of the many specimens exhibited in the National Museum
-at Washington is a section of a young oak tree four inches in
-diameter, with a pine board, one inch thick, four inches wide at
-one end, and twelve inches wide at the other, which has been
-driven through the tree more than half its length (eight feet,
-the label states), and is now held as in a vise, the tree above
-and below the board being unbroken. This has been deposited
-in the Museum as an evidence of the force of the wind in
-a tornado that visited the vicinity of Wesson, Mississippi,
-April 22, 1883.</p>
-
-<p>The progress of work in the Weather Bureau has been
-first toward encompassing great interests in the fields indicated
-by law, then to take up the smaller needs pertaining to individual
-benefit and pleasure, and as time passes and the service widens
-there will be personal contact that will give an intimate knowledge
-and impression of its value which narrative can not.</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes">
-
-<h3>FOOTNOTES</h3>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_1" id="Footnote_1"></a><a href="#FNanchor_1"><span class="label">[A]</span></a> Died at Buffalo, New York, August 24, 1880.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_396" id="Page_396">[396]</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<h2 id="HOW_TO_WIN">HOW TO WIN.</h2>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<p class="center">BY FRANCES E. WILLARD,<br />
-President National W. C. T. U.</p>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<h3>CHAPTER II.</h3>
-
-<p>Last month, taking the Past for a background, I tried to picture
-the opportunity which the Present holds up before the
-daughters of America. Let me now, for a brief space, coming
-freshly from the field of active service, where banners wave and
-squadrons wheel, try to talk about the conditions of success,
-in this wonderful battle of life. First, then, I would give this
-not at all startling bit of advice: <i>Keep to your specialty</i>; to the
-doing of the thing that you accomplish with most of satisfaction
-to yourself, and most of benefit to those about you.
-Keep to this, whether it is raising turnips or tunes; painting
-screens or battle pieces; studying political economy or domestic
-receipts; for, as we read in a great author who has a genius
-for common sense: “There is not one thing that men ought to
-do, there is not one thing that ought to be done, which a
-woman ought not to be encouraged to do, if she has the capacity
-for doing it. For wherever there is a gift, there is a
-prophecy pointing to its use, and a silent command of God to
-use it.” Such utterances as these are assertions of the “natural
-and inalienable rights” of the individual as such. They
-are deductions of the Christian philosophy which regards you
-and me, first and chiefly, as human beings, and makes the
-greatest possible account of personal identity. In all ages
-there have been minds that saw this truth. The intellects
-which towered like Alpine peaks above the mass of men, were
-the first to reflect its blessed light. Two thousand years ago,
-Juvenal made the heroine of a famous “Satire” say to the
-hero: “I like our Latin word for <i>man</i>, which equally includes
-your sex and mine. For you should not forget that, in all
-things highest, best, and most enduring in our natures, I am
-as much a man as you are.” The sun of truth looms high
-above the far horizon in our day, and even the plains of human
-thought and purpose are glowing with the light of this new
-inspiration. “Personal value,” “personal development,” these
-will be the noontide watchwords, “when the race out of childhood
-has grown.” Only yesterday I heard a fashionable butterfly,
-in the surroundings of a luxurious home, saying with sudden
-enthusiasm: “Of one thing I am sure; every woman that
-lives is bound to find out what is the very best thing she can
-do with her powers, and then she’s bound to do it.” In creating
-each of us with some peculiar talent, God has given us
-each “a call” to some peculiar work. Indeed, the time is almost
-here when the only call that will be recognized as valid,
-in any field, must involve in him who thinks he hears it, both
-adaptation and success. Each one of us is a marvelous bundle
-of aptitudes and of capacities. But, just as I prefer the
-active to the passive voice, I prefer to put the aptitudes first in
-my present inventory. Besides, the world has harangued us
-women on our capacities, from the beginning, and it is really
-refreshing to take the dilemma of our destiny by the other horn,
-at last! Civilization (by which I mean Christianity’s effect on
-the brains and hands of humanity), wonderfully develops and
-differentiates our powers.</p>
-
-<p>Among the Modocs there are but four specialties—assigned
-with remarkable fairness, in the proportion of two for the
-squaws and two for the braves. The last hunt and fight; the
-first do the drudgery and bring up the pappooses. Among
-the Parisians, on the contrary, the division of labor is almost
-infinite, so that the hand perfectly skilled in the most minute
-industry (as, for instance, in moulding the shoestrings of a porcelain
-statuette), needs no other resource to gain a comfortable
-livelihood. Among the Modocs, skins are about the only
-article of commerce. Among the Parisians, evolution has
-gone so far in the direction of separating employments formerly
-blended, that you can not buy cream and milk in the
-same shop.</p>
-
-<p>By some unaccountable perversion of good sense, the specialties
-of human beings who are women, have been strangely
-circumscribed. But they were <i>there</i>, all the same, and now,
-under the genial sun of a more enlightened era, they are coming
-airily forth, like singing birds after a thunder storm. And
-wonderfully do they help some of us to solve the toughest of
-all problems: <i>What is life for?</i></p>
-
-<p>Let us see. Lift the cover of your sewing basket; there are
-thimble, scissors, spools of thread, and all the neat outfit needful
-to a seamstress, but minus the needle they have no explanation
-and no efficiency. Unlock your writing desk: what
-are paper, ink, and sealing-wax, without the pen? They are
-nothing but waste material and toys. So it is with you and me.
-We have no explanation that is adequate; we have no place
-in the work-box and portfolio of to-day; no place in the great
-humming hive of the land we live in, save as some predominating
-aptitude in each of us explains why we are here, and
-in what way we are to swell the inspiring song of voluntary toil
-and beneficent success. Suppose that here, and now, you
-proceed to take an “inventory of stock,” if you have not
-been thoughtful enough to do that already. Made up as you
-are, what is your <i>forte</i>, your “specialty,” your “best hold,” as
-men phrase it? Be sure of one thing, at the outset: The great
-Artificer, in putting together your individual nature, did not
-forget this crowning gift, any more than he forgets to add its
-own peculiar fragrance to the arbutus, or its own song to the
-lark. It may not lie upon the surface, this choicest of your
-treasures; diamonds seldom do. Miners lift a great deal of
-mere dust, before the sparkling jewel they are seeking gladdens
-the eye. Genius has been often and variously defined.
-I would call it <i>an intuition</i> of one’s own best gift. Rosa Bonheur
-knew hers; Charlotte Cushman recognized hers; George
-Eliot was not greatly at a loss concerning hers. As for us, of
-less emphatic individuality, sometimes we wait until a friend’s
-hand leads us up before the mirror of our potential self; sometimes
-we see it reflected in another’s success (as the eaglet,
-among the flock of geese, first learned that he could fly, when
-he recognized a mate in the heaven-soaring eagle, whose
-shadow frightened all the geese away); sometimes we come
-upon our heritage unwittingly, as Diana found Endymion, but
-always it is there, be sure of that, and “let no man take thy
-crown.” As iron filings fall into line around a magnet, so
-make your opportunities cluster close about your magic gift.
-In a land so generous as ours, this can be done, by every
-woman who reads these lines. A sharpened perception of
-their own possibilities is far more needed by “our girls” than
-better means for education. But how was it in the past? If there
-is one thought which, for humanity’s sake, grieves me as no
-other can, it is this thought of God’s endowment bestowed upon
-us each, so that we might in some especial manner gladden
-and bless the world, by bestowing upon it our best; the thought
-of his patience all through the years, as he has gone on hewing
-out the myriad souls of a wayward race, that they might
-be lively stones in the temple of use and of achievement, and
-side by side with this, the thought of our individual blindness,
-our failure to discern the riches of brain, heart and hand, with<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_397" id="Page_397">[397]</a></span>
-which we were endowed. But most of all, I think about the
-gentle women who have lived, and died, and made no sign of
-their best gifts, but whose achievements of voice and pen, of
-brush and chisel, of noble statesmanship and great-hearted
-philanthropy, might have blessed and soothed our race through
-these six thousand years.</p>
-
-<p>There is a stern old gentleman of my acquaintance, who, if
-he had heard what I have felt called upon to say, would have
-entered his demurrer, in this fashion: “That’s all fol-de-rol,
-my friend; a mere rhetorical flourish. If women could have
-done all this, why didn’t they, pray tell? If it’s in it’s in, and will
-come out, but what’s wanting can’t be numbered. You can’t
-pull the wool over my eyes with your vague generalities. I
-went to the Centennial; I saw Machinery Hall, and what’s
-more for my argument (and less for yours), I saw the ‘Woman’s
-Pavilion,’ too.”</p>
-
-<p>He would then proceed to ask me, with some asperity, if I
-thought that any of my “gentle myriads” could have invented
-a steam engine? Whereupon I would say to him, what I now
-say to you, “most assuredly I think so; why not?” And I
-would ask, in turn, if my old friend had studied history with
-reference to the principle that, as a rule, human beings do not
-rise above the standard implied in society’s general estimate
-of the class to which they belong. Take the nations of Eastern
-Europe and Western Asia; “civilized” nations, too, be it
-remembered; study the mechanic of Jerusalem, the merchant
-of Damascus and Ispahan; in what particular are the tools of
-the one or the facilities of commerce familiar to the others,
-superior to those of a thousand years ago? Surely, so far as
-oriental inventions are concerned, they have changed as little
-as the methods of the bee or the wing-stroke of the swallow.
-We hear no more of man’s inventiveness in those countries
-than of woman’s. Why should we, indeed, when we remember
-that both are alike untaught in the arts and sciences which
-form the basis of mechanical invention? They are inspired
-by no intellectual movement; no demand; no “modern spirit.”
-It is not “in the air” that <i>men</i> shall be fertile of brain and
-skilled of hand as inventors there, any more than it is here
-that women shall be, and where both knowledge and incentive
-are not present, achievement is evermore a minus quantity.
-None but a heaven-sent genius, stimulated by a love of science,
-prepared by special education and inspired by the <i>prestige</i> of
-belonging to the dominant sex, ever yet carved types, tamed
-lightning or imprisoned steam. Besides, in ages past, if some
-brave soul, man or woman, conscious of splendid powers,
-strove to bless the world by their free exercise, what dangers
-were involved! Was it Joan of Arc? the fagot soon became
-her portion; or Galileo? on came the rack; or Christopher
-Columbus? the long disdain of courtiers and jealousy of ambitious
-coadjutors followed him; or Stephenson? his fetter
-was the menace of the law; or Robert Fulton? he faced the
-sarcasm of the learned and the merriment of boors. Even for
-the most adventurous inventors of to-day (as the aeronaut experimenters),
-what have we but bad puns and insipid conundrums,
-until he wins, and then ready caps tossed high in air
-and fame’s loud trumpet at his ear—when death’s cold finger
-has closed it up forever.</p>
-
-<p>Times are changing, though. The world grows slowly better
-and more brotherly. The day is near when women will
-lack no high incentive to the best results in every branch of
-intellectual endeavor and skilled workmanship. Not a week
-passes but from the Patent Office comes some favorable verdict
-as to woman’s inventive power. Wisdom’s goddess deems
-herself no longer compromised because places are assigned
-us in her banquet hall. “The world is all before us where to
-choose,” and I, for one, appeal from the “Woman’s Pavilion”
-of the first, to that which shall illustrate the second hundred
-years of this republic.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-
-<h2 id="FORTRESS_PALACE_AND_PRISON">FORTRESS, PALACE AND PRISON.</h2>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<p class="center">BY EDITH SESSIONS TUPPER.</p>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<p>It is believed by many that the Tower of London is, as its
-name would seem to indicate, but a single lofty pile, while in
-reality it is a vast collection of grim towers and frowning bastions;
-a great walled town in the heart of busy London.</p>
-
-<p>The Tower, or the White Tower, built in the time of the
-Conqueror, is surrounded by twelve smaller towers—Bloody,
-Bell, Beauchamp, Devereux, Flint, Bowyer, Brick, Martin,
-Constable, Broadarrow, Salt and Record. In turn, these are
-environed by the ballium walls and bastions, and the moat
-guarded by Middle, Byward, St. Thomas, Cradle, Well and
-Devlin towers.</p>
-
-<p>As one descends Tower Hill, the eye takes in the whole immense
-and hoary mass, fit emblem of the stormy and tempestuous
-times in which each separate tower arose. Like
-black shadows of the past casting their gloom over the present,
-rise the lofty turrets above the roofs of modern buildings.
-Sternly they look down upon throbbing London, each with its
-own history, each with its own awful secrets locked in its
-stony breast.</p>
-
-<p>Amid the terrific conflict of the days when the Norman was
-trampling the Saxon under foot, the Tower, the Great Tower,
-or the White Tower, as it was variously called, arose.</p>
-
-<p>William the Conqueror caused it to be built as a fortress for
-himself in case his Saxon subjects might rebel against his hard
-and iron rule. Among the ecclesiastics who possessed the
-richest sees of those days was Gundulph, bishop of Rochester,
-who was also a fine military architect. To him the
-Conqueror gave the commission to build his New Fortress in
-1079-80. Gundulph selected the site just without the city then,
-and to the east, on the northern side of the Thames. The
-tower is quadrangular in shape, one hundred and sixteen feet
-from north to south, ninety-six from east to west, ninety-two
-feet in height, and its external walls are fifteen feet in thickness—an
-imposing and superb specimen of Norman architecture.
-It is three stories high, not counting the vaults.
-There are some slight traces remaining of the grand entrance
-on the north side, but visitors enter by modern doors on both
-the north and south sides.</p>
-
-<p>In the northeast corner of the White Tower is a massive
-staircase, connecting the three stories. The column around
-which the stairs wind is a remarkable and well preserved
-specimen of ancient masonry. A wall seven feet in thickness
-runs north and south, which divides the tower from base to
-summit. Another wall extending east and west subdivides the
-southern portion into unequal parts, forming in each story
-one large and two small rooms. The smallest division on the
-ground floor is called Queen Elizabeth’s Armory, being filled
-with armor and trappings of her day. On the north side of
-this room, one is shown a cell formed in the thickness of the
-wall, ten feet long and eight wide, receiving no light save from
-the entrance. In this dark and dismal room was imprisoned
-for twelve long years the gay and brilliant courtier, Sir Walter
-Raleigh, on suspicion merely of being implicated in a plot to
-place the Lady Arabella Stuart, the niece of the unfortunate
-Queen of Scots, on the throne of England. This ill-fated lady
-also perished in the tower, her reason having been dethroned<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_398" id="Page_398">[398]</a></span>
-by her long and cruel captivity. In the year she died, Sir
-Walter was released and sent to South America to search for
-gold mines; returning unsuccessful he was remanded to the
-Tower, and beheaded in 1618 to please the Spaniards. James
-First wished to gain their favor, as his son Prince Charles was
-to be married to the Infanta. Raleigh’s bravery and valor
-had been too often directed against the Spaniards for them
-not to exult over his cruel fate. In this wretched and gloomy
-cell, it is said, he wrote his “History of the World.” In the
-center of this armory are various instruments of torture; about
-the room are stands of weapons, halberds, battle axes, maces
-and bills, and military instruments for cutting the bridles of
-horses; at the end of the room is a figure on horseback, representing
-Queen Bess. Her dress is copied from an ancient
-portrait, and she is attended by officers and pages. Just back
-of these figures hangs a very old picture of St. Paul’s cathedral.
-But the most terribly fascinating objects in this room
-are the block, the headsman’s hideous, grinning mask and the
-original axe. With horror the visitor looks upon the block,
-dented here and there where the executioner’s nervous blows
-struck wide of the mark, and upon the ponderous axe, whose
-blade has cleft the necks of so many royal and noble victims.</p>
-
-<p>One is glad to leave this chamber of horrors and go above
-into St. John’s Chapel, which is considered one of the finest
-specimens of Norman architecture left in the kingdom. It
-terminates in a semi-circle, and the twelve enormous pillars
-are arranged in similar fashion. These pillars are united by
-arches which admit the light into the nave from the windows.
-In the reign of Henry III. three immense windows of stained
-glass were added to the chapel. It is not known at what time
-or from what cause it ceased to be used for religious purposes.
-A large room directly above, on the third floor, was used as a
-council chamber by the kings, when they held their court in
-the Tower. It was in this room that the infamous Richard,
-Duke of Gloucester, ordered Lord Hastings to instant execution
-in front of St. Peter’s Chapel.</p>
-
-<p>This room is now used as a depository for small arms, and
-the arrangement of weapons in the form of various flowers is
-wonderful and artistic, the entire ceiling being covered by
-curious and intricate combinations of these arms.</p>
-
-<p>Encircling the great White Tower, as has been said, is a
-row of twelve smaller towers. Perhaps the one first in interest
-is that directly opposite the Traitor’s Gate, and rightly named,
-known as the Bloody Tower. It is rectangular in form, being
-the only one of that shape in the inner ward. It closely
-joins Record or Wakefield Tower on the west. Its grand
-gateway was built in the reign of Edward III., and is the entrance
-proper to the inner ward. The massive portcullis
-gives signs of immense age. It was in this tower in 1483, that
-the most infamous order of the hateful Gloucester, the murder
-of the innocent princes, the children of Edward IV., was consummated.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">“The tyrannous and bloody act is done—</div>
-<div class="verse i1">The most arch deed of piteous massacre</div>
-<div class="verse i1">That ever yet this land was guilty of.”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>The little victims are supposed to have been buried at the
-foot of the staircase in the White Tower, but a strange mystery
-surrounds their fate.</p>
-
-<p>Joining Bloody Tower is the tower next in size to the Great
-or White Tower, known as the Record Tower, from its having
-been for many centuries the depository for the records of the
-nation, and Wakefield Tower, from the imprisonment there
-of the Yorkists, after the victory of Margaret of Anjou, the
-Amazonian queen of the good but weak Henry VI., at Wakefield,
-in 1460. This victory gave the House of Lancaster the
-ascendency for a short time. The next year the Yorkists
-were successful, Henry was remanded to the tower, and was
-soon after found dead, murdered by Gloucester’s command,
-it is supposed.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">“Within the hollow crown</div>
-<div class="verse i1">That rounds the mortal temples of a king</div>
-<div class="verse i1">Keeps death his court; and there the antic sits,</div>
-<div class="verse i1">Scoffing his state and grinning at his pomp;</div>
-<div class="verse i1">Allowing him a breath, a little scene,</div>
-<div class="verse i1">To monarchise, be fear’d and kill with looks;</div>
-<div class="verse i1">Infusing him with self and vain conceit,</div>
-<div class="verse i1">As if this flesh which walls about our life</div>
-<div class="verse i1">Were brass impregnable; and humor’d thus,</div>
-<div class="verse i1">Comes at the last, and with a little pin</div>
-<div class="verse i1">Bores through his castle wall—and farewell, king!”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Wakefield Tower is very ancient, having been built in the
-time of William Rufus, in 1087.</p>
-
-<p>On the opposite side of the inner ward looms up the gloomy
-and famous Bowyer Tower, so named from its having been
-the residence of the Master Provider of the King’s Bows. In
-a dungeon-like room of this tower, “false, fleeting, perjured
-Clarence,” younger brother of Edward IV., was drowned in a
-butt of Malmsey. Together with the detestable Gloucester,
-he stabbed the young son of Henry VI. in the field at Tewkesbury,
-but retribution was swift. He soon incurred the displeasure
-and jealousy of his royal brother, and perished in this
-wretched manner.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">“O Brackenbury, I have done these things</div>
-<div class="verse i1">That now give evidence against my soul—</div>
-<div class="verse i1">For Edward’s sake, and see, how he requites me.”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>But a short distance from the Bowyer is the Brick Tower,
-which acquires a mournful interest from the fact that tradition
-has assigned this as the prison of the martyr of ambition, the
-lovely Lady Jane Grey. Fuller says of her that at eighteen
-she possessed the innocence of childhood, the sedateness of
-age, the learning of a clerk, and the life of a saint. Gentle,
-modest and retiring, fond of her studies and books, little
-dreamed she of her short-lived honor and cruel fate. Forced
-upon the throne by the insatiable ambition of Northumberland,
-she ruled for ten days. It is asserted that Mary wished
-to spare her cousin’s life, but that Wyatt’s rebellion so alarmed
-her that she determined to make an example of Lady Jane and
-her boy husband, Guildford Dudley.</p>
-
-<p>Not only her piety, grace and beauty excite our admiration,
-but also her sublime heroism, which caused her to refuse to
-bid her young lover and husband farewell, lest the parting
-should unman him. Dudley was executed on Tower Hill, and
-the same day the lofty spirit of his wife joined his.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">“Now boast thee, death; in thy possession lies</div>
-<div class="verse i1">A lass, unparallel’d.”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Next to the Brick is the Jewel or Martin Tower, where the
-crown jewels were formerly kept. They are now preserved in
-the Record Tower. On the wall of the Martin Tower we saw
-inscribed the name of Anne Boleyn. It is said that one of the
-unfortunate gentlemen who lost their heads on her account
-traced it there. Diagonally across the inner ward rises the
-Bell Tower, thus named from the alarm bell which crowned it.
-This was the prison of Princess Elizabeth during her enforced
-stay in the tower. Some little children used to bring her
-flowers here, until it came to the ears of Mary, who forbade this
-innocent service.</p>
-
-<p>Only a short walk from Bell loom up the frowning walls of
-Beauchamp Tower, than which there is no more interesting
-place in the entire enclosure. Its architecture is of the reign of
-John and Henry III. Its name is derived from Thomas De
-Beauchamp, Earl of Warwick, imprisoned here during the reign
-of Richard II. This tower is in the center of the western side
-of the inner ward, and in a half circle projects from the strong
-ballium walls, and is two stories in height. Its walls are covered
-with inscriptions made by different prisoners; some indicative
-of their mental agony during their captivity; many,
-indeed the most, expressing Christian fortitude and pious resignation
-to their hard lot.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_399" id="Page_399">[399]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The first name noticed is that of Marmaduke Neville, near
-the entrance. He was one of the Nevilles, Earls of Westmoreland,
-and was implicated in a plot to place Mary Stuart upon
-the throne during Elizabeth’s reign. In the southern recess
-is shown an inscription in old Italian: “Dispoi che voie la
-fortuna che la mea speranza va al vento pianger, hovolio el
-tempo per dudo; e semper stel me tristo, e disconteto. Wilim:
-Tyrrel, 1541.” The mournful burden of which comes like a
-sigh of despair from out the past, “Since fortune hath chosen
-that my hope should go to the wind to complain, I wish the
-time were destroyed; my planet being ever sad and unfavorable.”
-Alas, unhappy one! Your words no doubt were but
-the echo of many sad hearts that found the times were indeed
-out of joint.</p>
-
-<p>Over the fireplace is a beautiful and touching inscription:
-“Quanto plus afflictionis pro Christo in hoc sæculo, tanto plus
-gloriæ cum Christo in futuro. Arundell, June 22, 1587,”
-which being interpreted is, “The more affliction for Christ in
-this world, the more glory with Christ in the next.”</p>
-
-<p>This was written by Philip Howard, Earl of Arundel, whose
-devotion to the Romish church during Elizabeth’s reign,
-brought so much odium upon him, and made for him so many
-enemies that he at last resolved to leave his country, friends,
-and his wife, to whom he was devotedly attached, and go into
-voluntary exile for his better safety. He informed the Queen
-in a most pathetic letter of his intention, designing she should
-not receive it until he was well out of way, but by some freak of
-fortune, the letter fell into the hands of his foes, and he was
-seized as he was setting sail from the coast of Sussex. He was
-sent to the Tower and kept a close prisoner for forty years,
-when worn out with his long and cruel confinement and sorrow
-he died, realizing at the end, we hope, the truth of the
-touching words he traced upon his prison walls.</p>
-
-<p>There are several interesting inscriptions made by Arthur
-and Edmund Poole, great-grandsons of the Duke of Clarence.
-These young gentlemen were also accused for conspiring for
-Mary Stuart, adjudged traitors, and pined away their lives in
-hopeless captivity. Well might the White Rose of Scotland
-have said with Helen of Troy:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">“Many drew swords and died; where’er I came,</div>
-<div class="verse i1">I brought calamity.”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>One inscription reads:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p>“IHS. A passage perillus maketh a port pleasant. Ao. 1568.
-Arthur Poole, Æ sue 37, A. P.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>A passage perilous indeed, hadst thou, poor soul; God grant
-thou madst a fair haven at last.</p>
-
-<p>Another contains these words:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p>“IHS. Dio semine in lachrimis in exultatione meter. Æ. 21, E.
-Poole, 1562.” “That which is sown by God in tears is reaped in joy.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>In all the inscriptions left by these ill-starred gentlemen,
-there breathes the same spirit of noble and pious submission.</p>
-
-<p>The greatest interest clusters about one little word, supposed
-to have been traced by the hand of one to whom that name
-was sacred. Directly under one of the Poole autographs is
-the word “IANE,” supposed to have been the royal title of
-Lady Jane Grey, written there by her husband, Lord Dudley,
-who was confined in this tower. Scarcely can the eyes
-be restrained at this touching reminder of the fate of those two
-unhappy children, the victims of circumstance and greedy
-ambition.</p>
-
-<p>In the corner next the Beauchamp is the Devereux Tower,
-named from the brilliant Robert Devereux, Earl of Essex, the
-chivalric soldier and courtier, first a petted favorite, then a
-victim of Queen Elizabeth. His story is one of thrilling and
-fascinating interest. Meteor-like he flashed through his court
-and army life, and after gaining the zenith of his power, sank
-as suddenly as he had risen. It is said that he was one of the
-many with whom the royal and fickle spinster coquetted, and
-that he really touched her haughty heart. The government
-of Ireland was in his hands, but enemies at court plotted his
-overthrow. He in turn plotted against these foes and rashly
-attempted to cause their removal. He was arrested and arraigned
-in Westminster Hall for high treason, pronounced
-guilty, and doomed to the block.</p>
-
-<p>Elizabeth had a terrific struggle between revenge and affection,
-but the baser passion got the victory, and the accomplished
-general, statesman, and courtier trod the same hard
-road to death that so many knew full well.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">“I have reached the highest point of all my greatness!</div>
-<div class="verse i1">And from that full meridian of my glory,</div>
-<div class="verse i1">I haste now to my setting: I shall fall</div>
-<div class="verse i1">Like a bright exhalation in the evening,</div>
-<div class="verse i1">And no man see me more.”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>The towers of the outer ward are comparatively of but little
-interest, with the exception of St. Thomas’s Tower or the
-Traitor’s Gate. This is a large, square building over the moat,
-the outside of which is guarded by two circular towers, which
-exhibit specimens of the architecture of the time of Henry III.
-The gate through which state prisoners entered the Tower is
-underneath this building.</p>
-
-<p>The rain was falling drearily on the day we visited the
-Tower. Somber and heavy skies looked sullenly down on the
-gloomy scene. Thoughts as somber and heavy weighed down
-our minds as we stood before the Traitor’s Gate; thoughts of
-countless numbers that had gone in at that gate never to come
-forth again. In the clang of those iron portals behind them
-they heard their death knell. The royal, the noble, the illustrious,
-the pious passed under these frowning battlements,
-leaving behind grandeur, brilliancy of courts, dreams of glory,
-home, friends, all that makes life sweet, to receive in exchange,
-the dungeon, the scaffold, the block, the axe.</p>
-
-<p>They who entered there left hope indeed behind.</p>
-
-<p>Through this gate went Elizabeth, expecting naught but
-death; dreaming little of the hour when all England should
-lie within the hollow of her white hand. Under these portals
-three short years after she issued from the Tower in all the full
-flush of her pride and triumph, received by lords and dukes,
-amid the blare of trumpets, and peal of bells and roar of guns.
-Elizabeth’s hapless mother, Anne Boleyn, returned to the
-Tower. No nobles in her train now; no burst of music; no
-chime of bells nor roar of artillery; alone, save with her jailers;
-her fair fame blackened; her triumphs, glories—all
-shrunk to this little measure. The husband she had stolen
-from another, in turn lured from her, wearied of her, longing
-to be rid of her, hurrying her to her fearful doom with brutal
-haste.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">“A dream of what thou wast; a garish flag,</div>
-<div class="verse i1">To be the aim of ever dangerous shot;</div>
-<div class="verse i1">A sign of dignity, a breath, a bubble;</div>
-<div class="verse i1">A queen in jest only to fill the scene.</div>
-<div class="verse i1">…</div>
-<div class="verse i1">Where is thy husband now?</div>
-<div class="verse i1">…</div>
-<div class="verse i1">Who sues and kneels and says God save the queen?</div>
-<div class="verse i1">Where be thy bending peers that flattered thee?</div>
-<div class="verse i1">Where be the thronging troops that followed thee?</div>
-<div class="verse i1">…</div>
-<div class="verse i1">For one being sued to, one that humbly sues;</div>
-<div class="verse i1">For queen, a very caitiff crowned with care;</div>
-<div class="verse i1">Thus hath the course of justice wheeled about</div>
-<div class="verse i1">And left thee but a very prey to time;</div>
-<div class="verse i1">Having no more but thought of what thou wert,</div>
-<div class="verse i1">To torture thee the more, being what thou art.”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>What thoughts must have chased each other in lightning rapidity
-through the mind of beautiful, brilliant, witty Anne Boleyn,
-during those short seventeen days she passed in the
-Tower before she was led out to execution. What experience<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_400" id="Page_400">[400]</a></span>
-of life had she not compressed into those three little years of
-usurpation, during which she spurned “heads like foot balls,”
-laughed, danced, and jested away her poor, butterfly life?
-What remorse must have been hers when the sad, pale face of
-Katharine arose before her! What unspeakable anguish
-when the coquettish features of Jane Seymour swam before her
-weeping eyes!</p>
-
-<p>On the 19th of May, 1536, when hedge and field were bursting
-into bloom, when birds sang and soft breezes played, when
-all nature must have breathed of beauty, hope and life—Anne
-Boleyn went forth the second time from the Tower to receive
-her crown; not this time an earthly diadem, glittering with
-jewels, but the thorny crown of martyrdom. Not in cloth of
-gold and blazing with gems, but in sable robes went she to this
-coronation, and her only salute was the dull boom of the cannon
-which announced to the royal ruffian waiting at Richmond
-that he was free.</p>
-
-<p>The Tower of London has been used not alone for a fortress
-and prison, but also for a palace. All of the kings from William
-to Charles II. held occasional court in the Tower. A palace
-occupied a space in the inner ward, between the southwest
-corner of the White Tower and the Record, Salt and Broadarrow
-Towers. The queens had a suite extending from the
-Lanthorn to the southeast of the White Tower. And near the
-Record Tower was a great hall which demanded forty fir trees
-to repair it at the time of the marriage festivities of Henry III.
-and Eleanore of Provence.</p>
-
-<p>When Edward the Black Prince took prisoner King
-John of France, he lodged his royal captive in this palace,
-and King John gave an entertainment for his captor in this
-great hall. The beautiful Elizabeth of York, daughter of Edward
-IV., and queen of Henry VII., resided for a time in this
-palace, and passed from thence to her coronation. Sixteen
-years later she lay in state twelve days in the royal chapel in
-the White Tower, where her knights and ladies kept solemn
-vigil beside her bier. What an impressive scene it must have
-been! The windows all ablaze with lights, and an illuminated
-hearse holding the royal dead.</p>
-
-<p>Queen Mary held court in the Tower directly after she had
-defeated Northumberland and the Dudleys. The ancient custom
-of a state procession from the Tower to Westminster was
-observed for the last time at the coronation of Charles II.</p>
-
-<p>Very near the Devereux Tower is a plain, unpretentious
-building—the chapel of St. Peter Ad Vincula. It is small,
-having but one nave and one side aisle, and is quite without ornamentation.
-But marvelous interest invests it. Here Lady
-Jane was buried; here the body of poor Anne Boleyn was
-thrust into an old chest and hastily interred in the vaults; here
-lies the dust of Northumberland, Thomas Cromwell, Somerset,
-Surrey, and Essex, teaching the terribly solemn lesson that
-ambition, talents, fame, form no sure bulwark against death.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">“To-morrow, and to-morrow, and to-morrow</div>
-<div class="verse i1">Creeps in this petty pace from day to day,</div>
-<div class="verse i1">To the last syllable of recorded time;</div>
-<div class="verse i1">And all our yesterdays have lighted fools</div>
-<div class="verse i1">The way to dusky death. Out, out, brief candle.”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Just in front of this chapel is the spot on which the scaffold
-was built; the spot where the best blood of England flowed
-like water; the spot which mars the escutcheon of the Tudors
-with an ineffaceable stain; the spot where Englishmen first
-looked upon the spectacle of the blood of their countrywoman
-flowing beneath the blows of a foreign headsman. Here fell the
-heads of two of the wives of Henry VIII.; here the hapless Lady
-Jane was despatched, and the gallant Essex met his death by
-orders of Henry’s daughters, fit representatives of their father;
-here was enacted that revolting scene, the butchery of the
-venerable mother of Cardinal Pole, the Countess of Salisbury.
-She was sister of the Earl of Warwick, and daughter of the
-murdered Clarence. Her only crime seems to have been her
-royal blood. When brought out to execution, she refused to
-lay her head on the block, saying haughtily, “So do traitors
-use to do, and I am no traitor.” The sequel is almost too sickening
-to be rehearsed. The executioner pursued his victim
-around the scaffold, striking at her with his axe, and finally
-dragged her by her white hairs to the block. Thus miserably
-perished the last of the Plantagenets.</p>
-
-<p>Heavier fell the rain and wilder blew the wind as we slowly
-took our way toward the outer entrance to the Tower. In the
-patter of the rain upon the stone flagging beneath us, we
-seemed to hear the footsteps of a countless, headless throng; in
-the slow drip, drip of the raindrops from the gloomy walls,
-the drip, drip of warm life blood trickling down and ebbing
-away; borne on the wail of the wind there seemed to come
-sighs of anguish, moaning voices long since silenced, voices
-from out a dreadful past, voices that cried aloud for vengeance.
-And as the great gates of the Tower clanged behind us, in a
-tremendous peal of thunder, there seemed to come an answering
-voice from heaven, “Vengeance is mine, I will repay.”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<h2 id="GEOGRAPHY_OF_THE_HEAVENS_FOR_APRIL">GEOGRAPHY OF THE HEAVENS FOR APRIL.</h2>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<p class="center">BY PROF. M. B. GOFF,<br />
-Western University of Pennsylvania.</p>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<h3>THE SUN,</h3>
-
-<p>With its immediate attendants, Mercury, Venus, Earth, Mars,
-etc., has been the “theme of our discourse” for the last eighteen
-months. Except an occasional reference to one of the
-planets as being located near some fixed star, or in some constellation,
-little has been said about the 3,391 “fixed” stars,
-visible to the naked eye, many of which are located on maps
-of the heavens, just as villages, cities, mountains, rivers and
-plains are located on maps of the earth; nor of the somewhere
-between 30,000,000 and 50,000,000 which are visible only
-through powerful telescopes, and whose distances from the sun
-are so great as to make that of Neptune appear like a little
-walk “across lots” to visit a neighbor. Nor is it proposed
-now to enter upon such an extensive subject, except so far as
-may be necessary to present a single thought. As we know,
-our sun is a bright body, whose light and heat (so great is
-their power) we can hardly estimate. Both these qualities render
-it visible to us and make us realize its presence. The
-other bodies, as Mars, Jupiter and the Moon are seen only by
-reflected light, and were they as distant as the fixed stars,
-would not be at all visible. These 30,000,000 to 50,000,000
-stars must be suns. How many satellites has each? We do
-not know, for they can not be seen. Suppose each had as
-many as our sun. Then instead of 30,000,000 to 50,000,000 of
-heavenly bodies, we have within reach of the telescope from
-240,000,000 to 400,000,000. How many are outside of these?
-No man can number them. We shall have to wait till our
-minds can grasp the infinite. Are these millions of bodies
-standing still, or are they in motion? Does our sun stand
-still and permit us to go around him once every year, or is he,
-and are we along with him, making our way through other
-vast multitudes and moving around some other central orb?<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_401" id="Page_401">[401]</a></span>
-Observation proves that the sun is only a sergeant in a great
-army of generals, and marches his squad in an appointed way
-to their assigned duties. How do we know? The records of
-patient watchers for centuries reveal the fact. “If we suppose
-the sun, attended by planets, to be moving through space, we
-ought to be able to detect this motion by an apparent motion
-of the stars in a contrary direction, as when an observer
-moves through a forest of trees, his own motion imparts an
-apparent motion to the trees in a contrary direction. All the
-stars would not be equally affected by such a motion of the
-solar system. The nearest stars would appear to have the
-greatest motion, but all the changes of position would appear
-to take place in the same direction. The stars would appear
-to recede from that point of the heavens <i>toward</i> which the sun
-is moving, while in the opposite quarter the stars would seem
-to crowd more closely together.” Proceeding upon this principle,
-Sir William Herschel was in 1783 enabled to announce
-that the observed proper motion of a large portion of the stars
-could be accounted for on the supposition that the sun was
-moving toward the constellation <i>Hercules</i>. Later investigations
-not only established the fact that the sun moved, but
-that it was moving nearly toward the star <i>Rho</i>, in <i>Hercules</i>,
-and Struve estimated its motion at about five miles per second;
-though Professor Airy places it at about twenty-seven
-miles per second. It is also highly probable that its motion is
-not in a straight line, but in obedience to the same laws that
-govern the motions of its own satellites, it with other suns revolves
-about a center located nearly in the plane of the Milky
-Way, and with an orbit so great “that ages may elapse before it
-will be possible to detect any change in the direction of its
-motion.” Meantime, finite beings are interested in knowing
-how its light and heat affect their interests, and how these
-qualities may be made most profitable to mankind. For ourselves,
-we must at present be content to know that on the 1st
-our sun has reached a point 4° 48′ north of the equator, and
-that by the 30th he will be 14° 58′ north, an increase in northern
-declination of 10° 10′, and, as a consequence, our daylight
-will be increased about one hour and thirteen minutes, and
-the time “from early dawn to dewy” twilight will be seventeen
-hours and thirty-five minutes. On the 1st sunrise occurs at
-5:43 a. m., sunset, 6:24 p. m.; on the 16th, sunrise, 5:19, sunset,
-6:40; on the 30th, sunrise, 4:59, sunset, 6:54.</p>
-
-<h3>THE MOON.</h3>
-
-<p>The phases for the month are as follows: Last quarter, 7th,
-at 9:34 a. m.; new moon, 15th, at 12:43 a. m.; first quarter, 21st,
-at 6:12 p. m.; full moon, 29th, at 1:06 a. m. Rises on the 1st,
-at 8:38 p. m.; sets on the 16th, at 8:28 p. m.; rises on the 30th,
-at 8:21 p. m. In latitude 41° 30′ north, least elevation on the
-6th, and equals 30° 20′; greatest elevation on the 19th, equals
-66° 44′ 29″.</p>
-
-<h3>MERCURY</h3>
-
-<p>Will be an evening star during the month; it will have a direct
-motion of 12° 25′ 59″ up to the 17th, after which, to the
-end of the month, a retrograde motion of 5° 22′ 11″. On the
-8th, at 2:00 a. m., will be at its greatest eastern elongation
-(19° 26′); on the 16th, at 11:55 a. m., will be 6° 21′ south of the
-moon; on the 17th, at 5:00 a. m., will be stationary; on 27th,
-at 10:00 p. m., will be in inferior conjunction with the sun—that
-is, will be between the earth and sun; and next day, at
-1:00 p. m., will be 1° 42′ north of Venus. A few days before
-and after the 8th may be seen as a pale, light star, near the
-western horizon. Its times of rising and setting are as follows:
-On the 1st, rises at 6:21 a. m., sets at 7:51 p. m.; on the
-16th, rises at 5:50 a. m., sets at 8:00 p. m.; on 30th, rises at
-4:53 a. m., sets at 6:29 p. m. Diameter increases from 6.4″ to
-11.8″.</p>
-
-<h3>VENUS,</h3>
-
-<p>Like Mercury, will be evening star throughout the month, and
-near the 28th the two will keep “close company,” but will so
-completely hide themselves in the light of “Old Sol” as to be
-entirely indifferent to the gaze of the “vulgar crowd.” On
-the 1st Venus rises at 5:34 a. m., and sets at 5:34 p. m., being
-just twelve hours above the horizon; on the 16th, rises at 5:19
-a. m., sets at 6:09 p. m.; on 30th, rises at 5:06 a. m., sets at
-6:42 p. m. Diameter diminishes during the month two tenths
-of a second; motion, 34° 38′ 45″ eastwardly; on the 14th, at
-3:00 p. m., six minutes north of the moon.</p>
-
-<p>MARS</p>
-
-<p>Has a direct motion of 21° 13′ 16″, and his diameter increases
-two tenths of one second. On the 14th, at 12:27 a. m., 12′
-south of the moon. On the 1st, rises at 5:29 a. m., sets at 5:25
-p. m.; on the 16th, rises at 4:56 a. m., sets at 5:24 p. m.; on the
-30th, rises at 4:27 a. m., sets at 5:23 p. m.; on the 14th, at 12:27
-a. m., twelve minutes south of moon.</p>
-
-<h3>JUPITER</h3>
-
-<p>May well be called this month the “Ruler of the Night.”
-From twilight till near the dawn his broad face looks condescendingly
-upon our little world, and by his example cheerily
-bids us “pursue the even tenor of our way.” Jupiter rises on the
-1st at 2:26 p. m., sets next morning at 4:02 a. m.; on the 16th,
-rises at 1:24 p. m., sets on 17th at 3:02 a. m.; rises on 30th, at
-12:29 p. m., and sets next morning at 2:07 a. m. Before the
-21st, retrograde motion amounts to 36′ 26″; after that date to
-end of month, direct motion equals 8′ 42″; diameter diminishes
-three seconds, from 40.4″ to 37.4″. On 21st, at 3:00 p.
-m., stationary; on 23d, at 2:05 p. m., 4° 37′ north of the moon.
-It might be observed in passing that as a mean result of five
-years’ observations at the Dearborn Observatory, Chicago,
-the time of Jupiter’s rotation has been discovered to be greater
-by three seconds than was supposed in 1879.</p>
-
-<h3>SATURN</h3>
-
-<p>Sets at the following times: On the 1st, at 11:49 p. m.; on
-16th, at 10:57 p. m.; on the 30th, at 10:09 p. m.; is, therefore,
-an evening star, and will remain so till the 18th of June. On
-the 18th, at 8:20 p. m., 4° 1′ north of the moon. Diameter
-diminishes from 16.6″ to 16″. Makes a forward (direct) motion
-of 3° 2′ 30″. For observation, this month is preferable
-to May. Can be found a little northwest of <i>Zeta</i>, in the constellation
-<i>Taurus</i>.</p>
-
-<h3>URANUS,</h3>
-
-<p>Unlike Saturn, retrogrades nearly one degree of arc during the
-present month, and shines from early eve to break of day, rising
-on the 1st at 5:18 p. m., and setting on the 2d at 5:22 a. m.;
-on the 16th, rising at 4:17 p. m., and setting next morning at
-4:21; and on the 30th, rising at 3:19 p. m., and setting May 1st at
-3:23 a. m., and can be seen all night by those who know
-where to find him (a little southwest of <i>Eta</i>, in the constellation
-<i>Virgo</i>). On 26th, at 12:16 a. m., 1° 17′ north of moon.</p>
-
-<h3>NEPTUNE,</h3>
-
-<p>Not only the father of waters, but water himself, scarcely visible
-at best, “hangs out” all day, rising soon after the sun, and
-setting as follows: On the 1st, at 9:36 p. m.; on the 16th, at
-8:40 p. m.; on the 30th, at 7:46 p. m. Has a retrograde motion
-of 58′ 16″; and on the 16th, at 8:42 p. m., is 2° 13′ north
-of the moon.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>We have now passed the boundary of the first century of
-our existence as an independent nation. We are as a people
-engaged in a confused struggle with the problem of our own
-national self-consciousness. We want to know what is the
-spirit that is in us as a nation. We must know this in order to
-be properly master of ourselves and of our destiny. We must
-know this in order to know our place in universal history.—<i>George
-S. Morris.</i></p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_402" id="Page_402">[402]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 id="ENGLAND_AND_ISLAM">ENGLAND AND ISLAM.</h2>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<p class="center">BY PRESIDENT D. H. WHEELER, D.D., LL.D.</p>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<p>Within two years there have been three prophets in Egypt.
-Arabi Pasha is in exile; Chinese Gordon is dead; El Mahdi, the
-mysterious voice in the Soudan wilderness, mutters his prayers
-in the mosque of Khartoum. England bombarded Alexandria;
-Arab loss in dead perhaps 5,000. Then England fought and
-conquered Arabi in the open field, captured him, and sent him
-into exile; Arab loss in dead perhaps 7,000. Next there is trouble
-on the Red Sea, and another English army killed perhaps 9,000
-Arabs. And last a battle or series of battles in the heart of the
-Soudan; Arab loss in dead perhaps 12,000. Probably not less
-than 30,000 have been slaughtered by Englishmen in less than
-two years. English loss, a few hundreds. The butchers have
-been liberally rewarded; one soldier has become a “lord;” promotions
-and extra pay and pensions have fallen in a silvery
-shower on “our brave fellows” in Egypt. Only one Englishman
-got nothing. He disappeared one day in the desert, and
-his dromedary was said to carry the destiny of England; and
-perhaps it did. He was a soldier seeking peace at the meeting
-place of the Niles. Chinese Gordon entered Khartoum in
-triumph, and almost at once there rose a cry: “We must rescue
-Gordon.” Then came the long delayed march of an army
-in search of the English prophet at Khartoum; then the butcheries,
-called battles of Metemneh, and what not. And then in
-the last days of January there was a slaughter, not this time by
-Englishmen in person, and perhaps 5,000 more Moslems perish
-by Moslem steel in the sack of Khartoum. Then a wail
-rises on every breeze in Christendom; “<i>Alas! alas! Gordon
-is dead!</i>” The story of his death is a parable: “Stabbed in
-the back while leaving his house.” Make the “house” stand
-for England, and the knives that pierced him the indecisions,
-tergiversations, and infidelities of an English ministry with a
-great Christian statesman at its head. The world has supped full
-of the horrors of that kind of Christian statesmanship. We have
-believed in it; we have hoped that it meant something, even
-in those bloody Egyptian campaigns.</p>
-
-<p>We are nearly at the end of our confidence. It is not
-merely the shade of Disraeli which calls mockingly for explanations;
-the world that believed in Gladstone when Disraeli was
-playing at fantastic military statesmanship, wants to know why
-Christian statesmanship in Egypt has, in a short time, spilt
-almost as much blood as was shed by one army in that American
-conflict which Mr. Gladstone thought so cruel and so useless.
-We can not even condone Mr. Gladstone’s offense
-against civilization by saying that it has been a less bloody
-assault on humanitarian ideas and plans than Disraeli’s was;
-for Gladstone has butchered twenty men to Disraeli’s one.
-There has, in fact, been nothing so bloody in this century—I
-mean no such large butchery by a small army. Ten years of
-such statesmanship would fill the Nile valley with human bones.
-It is high time to call for a full explanation. What does Mr.
-Gladstone mean? What does he expect to accomplish? If he
-has intended something exalted and noble, which we should
-wish to believe, it is time to say so with the breadth of statement
-and accuracy of detail by which he obtained renown. The
-personal question stands at the front, because England is governed
-by one man. It is a happiness of Englishmen that they
-are able to know whom to blame when things go wrong. Mr.
-Gladstone is the head of a government for whose acts and
-failures to act he is perfectly responsible. What England does
-in Egypt Gladstone does. It is the one governmental luxury of
-the English people—they know exactly who governs them.
-Mr. Gladstone has not been compelled to do this or that by
-parties or circumstances. If he turns butcher in the Delta, on
-the Nile, or on the Red Sea, he alone does it, and he does it
-because he chooses to do it. For, at any moment, he can shift
-disagreeable duties to another; three lines in the form of a
-resignation will relieve him of the burden of responsible government.
-So long as he remains at the head of the English
-ministry he is the man who shoots down Arabs by the thousand.
-In this country politicians have divided, dispersed and
-destroyed responsibility to such an extent that the people know
-not whom to blame for evil events. It is a devil’s art, from
-whose manipulations England has by some special favor of
-heaven escaped. There the ghosts of murdered men and
-things can “shake” their “gory locks” at the Prime Minister;
-and he may not reply:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">“Thou canst not say I did it.”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Many of us have expected Mr. Gladstone to retire when
-each of these bloody episodes in Egypt has begun. His retention
-of power may be explained as an old man’s insane appetite
-for office, or as the surrender of a statesman to the logic of
-a situation. The first explanation we respect Mr. Gladstone
-too much to accept; the second is embarrassed by the absence
-of a clearly defined policy. We should understand Disraeli;
-but he would help us to understand him by making distinct
-proclamation of his purpose to govern and bless the Moslem
-world. He would have butchered less, but he would have
-planted an imperial stake on every battle-field. We should
-have known that he meant conquest and dominion. There
-would have been no meaningless carnage. A humanitarian
-war is a difficult conception; but it is not impossible to conceive
-of wars that produce beneficent results. We could conceive
-of the subjugation of Islam to British sway, and rejoice to
-see the Soudan like India, slowly but surely rising into civilization
-under English rule. But an army thrusting down no
-imperial stakes, going home after each slaughter to be paid,
-promoted and fêted, is not doing work which opens any vistas
-of smiling peace and advancing light. It is only a bloody
-carnival. No petty cabinet differences, no outcry of public
-opinion, no Jingoism in the army or the royal family, no temporary
-exigencies of party, no domestic dangers nor foreign
-rivalries can explain and justify the responsible man’s conduct.
-Mr. Gladstone’s garments are dripping with Moslem
-blood, and the world can not find an explanation which explains.</p>
-
-<p>It seems to the spectators that England is doing the one
-thing she should most carefully avoid doing. She is uniting
-Islam, and teaching Islam how to make war. In each new
-campaign the Soudanese are better armed, fight with better
-method, and kill more Englishmen. England is training them
-into sturdy and disciplined soldiers. A Moslem victory is proclaimed
-in every Arab tent, and in every Indian village. Such
-a victory is not merely a victory for El Mahdi; it is a hope for
-the whole Moslem world. Moslem defeats travel less swiftly,
-and mean only a delayed victory. What fierce resolutions are
-begotten in Moslem bosoms by Mr. Gladstone’s campaigns of
-butchery, we can easily imagine. Meanwhile, Christendom
-can only say: “Premier of England, your garments are soaked
-with blood; and, may God forgive you, the blood is not your
-own. We can not understand you, but we are painfully certain
-that you are arousing all Islam against us.” Meanwhile,
-the ancient spears are giving place in the Prophet’s armies to
-repeating rifles, and Krupp guns may soon guard every height
-along the Nile. Islam is strong in numbers. There are 75,000,000
-of Soudanese, with a very large proportion of men
-just civilized enough to make terrible soldiers. It may happen<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_403" id="Page_403">[403]</a></span>
-some day that a military leader will arise in the front of this
-vast army, and that an effeminate Europe may find that its
-military science has gone over to the Moslems. Probably no
-one man’s policy could effect its transfer more rapidly than
-Mr. Gladstone’s. When that dark wave of the Moslem millions
-is gathered into conquering masses by a capable leader,
-it will have mighty winds of religious enthusiasm behind it,
-and plenty of room before it. The southern and eastern
-shores of the Mediterranean would be swept clean of the petty
-European military establishments in a month. Morocco,
-larger than France, holds at least half of the western gate of
-the Mediterranean, while the Turk holds the eastern gate; and
-a month’s campaign might convert that sea into a Moslem
-lake, and leave its Italian, French, and Spanish and Greek
-shores to be ravaged again as in the crusading centuries, by
-Moslem piracy and brigandage. The one thing the Arab can
-learn thoroughly is the art of war. He was once great on the
-sea. That man may exult too soon, who, remembering the
-leviathans of the deep which destroyed Alexandria, trusts Europe’s
-safety to the great navies of Europe. Islam has some great
-ships in the Bosphorus, and is rapidly learning where the great
-ships grow. It is true that if splendid leadership does not
-arise, Islam may continue to bleed and die in vain; but wars
-produce great soldiers as regularly as oaks bear acorns. There
-<i>is</i> danger. Ten years of Gladstoneism in the Nile valley would
-make the danger a terrible reality. Christendom should rise
-up and condemn the bloody education which England is imparting
-to Islam.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile, Germans and Frenchmen are in the armies of
-the Prophet, teaching the rude but vigorous men of the desert
-how to use arms of precision with deadly effect. In the process
-of creating a terrible peril for Europe, greed, personal
-ambition, and national jealousies are contributing to perfect
-the lessons in modern warfare which England is giving to
-Islam. No doubt it is true that a great man is needed to weld
-together the forces of Islam. But why should no strong man
-be expected to arise in a race so rich in warlike memories?
-When the Prophet is once crowned with the diadem of military
-success, there is an army of Mohammedans in India wearing
-the queen’s uniform, there are vast resources at Constantinople
-ready to fall from the helpless hands of the Sultan; there
-are millions of soldiers who require no pay, and have no scruples
-about the rights of private property. If one gives rein
-to his imagination, he is soon in a world of awful possibilities.
-There are two hundred millions of Mohammedans waiting for
-a leader to restore the glories of Islam.</p>
-
-<p>The relations of England to Islam are logically and historically
-friendly. England has a Moslem army in India, and
-has long protected the head of Islam at Constantinople, from the
-consequences of his vices, extravagances and follies. The Indian
-mutiny had a religious source, but this was denied, and
-the spring covered up so successfully that, until Mr. Gladstone
-attacked Disraeli’s policy in the name of Christianity (such as
-it is) in Bulgaria, England had successfully encountered the
-difficulties of her position as a Christian power ruling directly
-and indirectly half the Moslem world.</p>
-
-<p>Does Mr. Gladstone foresee an “irrepressible conflict” between
-England and Islam? Is he instinctively bringing on a conflict
-which will be the less perilous the sooner it comes? Will history
-add to his rare good fortune by making him glorious as the beginner
-of a defense of Christendom which he has never
-dreamed of organizing? Disraeli’s conception followed logic
-and history. He made a Christian queen empress of India,
-and he contemplated with composure a time when the descendant
-of Victoria should be born in India, and be reared in the
-faith of Mohammed, the center of the British empire having
-gone to its proper place. Against such ideas Christian England
-revolted. Is Mr. Gladstone reversing centuries of history
-and setting the Moslem and Christian worlds by the ears
-again? If he is moving on that line, his armies should conquer
-and hold Egypt and the Soudan, the Nile and the Red
-Sea, the ancient Delta and its modern canal, with the grip
-England once laid on North America. The audacity of the
-conquest would provoke diplomatic criminations; but it were
-easier far to face them than to answer the hard questions which
-are provoked by fruitless slaughter in Moslem lands. England
-is only the heart of the British empire. A quiet and gentle
-England is a possible dream; but the empire is war, conquest,
-dominion, at the expense of weak peoples. The empire can
-not survive the definitive abandonment of an imperial policy.
-The empire must dominate by force or fall to pieces.</p>
-
-<p>It is not worth while to seek in the history of the Egyptian
-debt, and the “grasping disposition of the English bondholders,”
-for the key of the present situation. Those who make a
-religion, or at least a philanthropy, of heaping abuse on bondholders
-anywhere and everywhere, are the least reasonable of
-Christians. It is not a crime to deny ourselves, save money and
-lend it to others. To refuse to pay debts freely contracted is
-not the first of virtues or the best of policies. The bondholders
-are commonly poor people who have saved a little by pinching
-themselves, and have bought bonds for the holy purposes
-of family forethought. Repudiated debts are baptised in the
-self-renouncing spirit which is at the heart of our religion, and
-repudiators make war on the foundations of character and society.
-In so far as England protects her money lenders, she
-protects her noble middle class, whose honest thrift lies at the
-foundation of her wealth. It is among the strangest perversions
-of feeling that prodigals and prodigal governments
-should get the sympathy of mankind. Let England foreclose
-her mortgage on Egypt, and the honest world will thank her
-for abolishing one nest of spendthrifts. Much is said of the miserable
-Egyptian peasants, from whom the taxes to pay interest
-are wrung with every form of despotic oppression. Let us not
-be deceived by such false-toned appeals for sympathy. The
-fellaheen of the Nile are oppressed irrespective of the bondholders.
-Arabi or El Mahdi would maintain the oppressive
-systems if they were in power. If there were no bondholders,
-the backs of the miserable fellaheen would smart under the
-lash of the oppressor. The despotism is Egyptian, not English.
-English rule would gradually emancipate the oppressed
-classes. Nowhere, not even in Ireland, has England conquered
-a people without improving the condition of the poor.
-The interest on debts which she surrenders in the valley of the
-Nile does not go to the relief of the peasants; it is squandered
-in the harems of Cairo and Alexandria. The issue is strictly
-between the splendid, many-concubined lords in Egypt and
-the honest and self-denying people who have lent honest
-money on the faith of England.</p>
-
-<p>Which way, then, will events march? Toward a war between
-Islam and Christendom, or back to the old imperial policy of
-England? It would seem that the world’s hope lies in a restoration
-of the ancient policy of the British empire. The events
-of 1885 in Moslem land will be full of interest, perhaps pregnant
-with destiny. A larger English army, perhaps 25,000
-men, will soon be in Egypt. It will probably face a better
-trained foe. There will be more English graves in Egypt. To
-what end? The London <i>Times</i> says: “Gordon must be
-avenged.” England repeats the cry. But what end will the
-vengeance serve? And what if Arabi Pasha and the Emirs
-killed in the late battles, and the 30,000 to 40,000 Moslems
-slain, should be avenged? Soon or late—if she does not attempt
-it too late—England must return to her historical policy and
-stand among Christian powers the foremost ally of the sons of
-Mohammed. It is the inexorable logic of her greatness. Let
-us shut our eyes upon the horrible vision of the new crusades,
-as useless as the old and far bloodier. Christendom can hope
-for no more fortunate disposition of Mohammedanism than
-that it should be locked fast in the iron arms of the British
-empire; and on the other hand the failure of the British empire
-would involve the greatest possible disasters for Christendom.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_404" id="Page_404">[404]</a></span>
-Many foolish things have been promised in the name of
-“manifest destiny.” Perhaps destiny is never so manifest
-that it may be read off by uninspired prophecy; but there is
-no other Power which seems fitted to play England’s imperial
-rôle; and it does not appear how the progress and happiness
-of mankind can go forward without such an imperial force as
-England has been for two centuries. While we deprecate the
-effects of the Jingo spirit which Disraeli fostered, and repudiate
-the indifference to the progress of Christianity which the Hebrew
-statesman scarcely concealed, we can not look with complacency
-upon changes of British policy which would disintegrate
-the empire. Let England’s drum-beat go round the earth with
-the sun; for the sunrise of progress and civilization will awaken
-wherever that martial music falls upon the ear of mankind.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<h2 id="THE_ART_OF_FISH_CULTURE">THE ART OF FISH CULTURE.</h2>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<p class="center">BY PROF. G. BROWN GOODE.</p>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<h3>PART I.</h3>
-
-<p>When any portion of the earth is colonized by civilized man,
-an era of change and readjustment at once begins. The untilled
-plain, the primeval forest, the bridgeless river, the
-malaria-breathing swamp, and the jungle—lurking place for
-beasts of prey—are all obstructions which must be removed
-from the highway of social and industrial progress. Until a
-new environment had been created, the colonists of Virginia
-and New England were like helpless children, compared with
-the Indians whom they had come to disinherit. The hills
-were soon cleared, and the water-courses dried up, swamps
-were drained, and lakes were made in the valleys, the plains
-were plowed and planted with exotic vegetation, and great regions
-of land were entirely changed in character by irrigation
-and the use of manure. The New World has in two centuries
-become in very truth a new world, for its physical features
-have been entirely reconstructed. The aboriginal man retreated
-before the advancing strides of civilization, and has
-now been practically exterminated, at least east of the Mississippi
-River.</p>
-
-<p>The manner in which the man of European descent has
-eliminated and replaced the son of the soil is fairly typical of
-changes which have occurred in the animal and vegetable life
-of the continent. Bear, moose, caribou, deer, wolf, beaver,
-and all other large animals have been entirely destroyed in
-many parts of the country, and the time is not far remote when
-they will exist among us only in a state of partial or entire
-domestication. The prairie chicken once reared its brood in
-Massachusetts, but is now never seen east of the Alleghenies.
-The alligator is fast being exterminated in Florida and Mississippi,
-and the buffalo is now rarely to be seen except in
-captivity. The sea cow of the north Pacific, the great auk
-of New England and Newfoundland stand with the dodo, the
-moa, and the zebra in the list of animals which have become
-extinct within the memory of man, and the list will continue
-to increase. A similar story might be told for birds, reptiles,
-and plants. The rattlesnake is retreating to the mountain
-tops, the turkey, the pigeon, the woodpecker and hosts of
-others are disappearing, the medicinal plant ginseng, once so
-important in the Alleghenies, is almost a rarity to botanists.</p>
-
-<p>The aboriginal animals and plants go. They are replaced
-by others, which in that struggle for existence which plays so
-important a part in determining careers for plants and animals,
-have become particularly well fitted to be man’s companions.
-The clover, the ox-eye daisy, the buttercup, the
-thistle, the mullein, the dandelion, followed the European to
-America, and with them the broad-leaved plantain, which, as
-every one knows, the Indians called “the white man’s foot,”
-because it sprung up at once in every meadow where the soles
-of his shoes had touched. With these came the European
-mouse, the rat, the cat, the dog. The browsing herds of
-deer and buffalo were replaced by oxen, horses and sheep,
-and the greedy, quarrelsome, impertinent sparrow was permitted
-to drive out the native birds which many of us would have
-been glad to keep as relics of the old dispensation.</p>
-
-<p>Not less important in many regions have been the changes
-in the life in the waters. In many of our streams and lakes
-the fish, formerly abundant, have been entirely exterminated.
-Sometimes, perhaps we may charitably say usually, this has
-been the result of ignorance, but often, I fear, it may be
-ascribed to recklessness or cupidity.</p>
-
-<p>Fishes may be grouped, according to their habits, into two
-classes—resident and migratory. Representatives of each of
-these classes may be found both in fresh water and in the sea.
-Among resident fresh water fishes may be mentioned the
-perch, the catfish, suckers and dace, the pike and pickerel,
-the black bass. Resident sea fishes are typified by the flounders,
-cod, sheepshead, blackfish and sea bass, which are found
-near the shore in winter as well as summer. In cold climates,
-resident fishes always retreat in winter into deeper water to
-avoid the cold, and if they can not get beyond its reach they
-subside into a state of torpidity or hibernation, in which all
-the vital functions are more or less inert. The carp, and
-many other kinds of fish, at this time, burrow into “kettles”
-or holes in the mud in the bottom of the pond, where they remain
-for months. A hybernating fish may be frozen solid in
-the middle of a cake of ice, and emerge when thawed out, unharmed.</p>
-
-<p>Migratory fishes, on the other hand, are those which wander
-extensively from season to season. There are migrating fish
-in the sea, which, like the mackerel, the bluefish, the menhaden
-and the porgy come near our northern coasts only in the
-summer, and in winter retreat to regions either in the south or
-far out at sea unknown; others, like the smelt and the sea
-herring, which retreat northward in summer and only appear
-in quantity on the Atlantic coast of the United States in the
-colder months of the year.</p>
-
-<p>Then there are migratory fishes which live part of the year
-in the rivers. Such are the shad and the river-herrings or
-alewives, which leave the sea in the spring and ascend to the
-river heads to spawn, and the salmon, which does likewise, to
-spawn in the brooklets in November and December. Still
-more remarkable is the eel, which breeds in the sea, where the
-male eels always remain, while the young females, when as
-large as darning needles, ascend in the spring to inland lakes
-and streams, there to remain, until, after three or four years,
-they are grown to maturity, when they descend to salt water,
-to reproduce their kind and die.</p>
-
-<p>There are also migratory fish in fresh water, like the white
-fish, the salmon, trout, and the siscowet, which live in the
-abyssal depths of the great lakes and swim up into the shallows
-and creeks in winter to spawn their eggs, and the brook
-trout and dace, which for a similar purpose ascend from the
-pools and quiet meadow stretches to the pebble-paved ripplets
-near the spring sources of the brooks in which they live.</p>
-
-<p>Having, in a general way, classified fish according to their
-habits, we are in a position to consider the manner in which
-man has succeeded in exterminating them. As a general rule,
-fish deposit their eggs in shallow water, and the time of egg-laying
-is very closely dependent upon the temperature of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_405" id="Page_405">[405]</a></span>
-water. The eggs of a fish are, as every one knows, enclosed
-in two sacs, or ovaries, which are situated close to the walls
-of the abdominal cavity, and separated from the water by
-thin walls of skin and flesh, rarely, even in the largest fish,
-more than a sixteenth of an inch in thickness. Experiment
-has shown that the temperature of the blood in the abdomen
-of a fish deviates very little from that of the water in which it
-is floating. Experiment has also shown that as soon as the
-water has reached a certain degree of warmth, variable with
-each kind of fish, the eggs are sure to be laid within a very
-few hours. This being the case, it usually happens that great
-schools of fish always congregate together at one time upon
-the spawning grounds. Since the spawning grounds of many
-kinds of fish are in shallow water, and the fish are at that time
-most easily caught, it happens that many of the most extensive
-fisheries are carried on in the spawning season. The delicious
-little smelts which our neighbors in Maine and New
-Brunswick send us by the hundred car-loads each winter,
-packed in little boxes of snow, are always full of eggs—so are
-the lake white fish, when they are caught, and the shad, and
-the Potomac herrings, and the cod, and the mullet, and the
-herring, and in early spring the mackerel.</p>
-
-<p>Now consider how easy it is, taking these fish so much at a
-disadvantage, to diminish their numbers, simply by catching
-them. The man who catches a spawning cod destroys anywhere
-from 5,000,000 to 7,000,000 of eggs, a spawning halibut
-at least 2,000,000, a shad from 50,000 to 2,000,000. Is not the
-American breakfasting on broiled shad roe a modern representative
-of him who killed the goose which laid the golden egg?
-When we consider that the yearly catch of mother-fish along
-the New England coast does not fall short of ten to fifteen millions
-of individuals, we may gain an adequate idea of the destruction
-of fish life by the fisheries.</p>
-
-<p>Still it is not necessary to be alarmed at these figures. They
-are presented simply in illustration of the immense possibilities
-of destruction when the fisheries are carried on at the spawning
-season. As a matter of fact, cod are just as abundant
-along our coasts as they ever were, and it has not yet been
-demonstrated that any kind of sea fish has ever been diminished
-in numbers by hook and line fishing or by netting them
-at a distance from the shore.</p>
-
-<p>Some kinds of fishes, however, enter narrow bays and estuaries
-to spawn, and if they are there recklessly destroyed,
-the local supply at least may be permanently interfered with.
-This has apparently been the case with certain species in Narragansett
-Bay, Rhode Island. For instance, the scuppaug or
-porgy has been seriously diminished in numbers in certain
-seasons, years ago; the supply will probably be replenished
-from adjoining waters by the reparative tendencies of nature,
-if this indeed has not already been done. So, too, the halibut
-has been exterminated in Massachusetts, where it was once so
-abundant as to be regarded as a nuisance by the fishermen.
-It is in the inland or freshwater fisheries, however, that the
-work of extermination has been thorough, and here, from the
-nature of the case, the work once accomplished, it is beyond
-the power of nature to remedy the damage. If I could take
-the reader with me next May to one of the many little streamlets
-of Cape Cod, flowing southward into Nantucket Sound, I
-could show him a scene which he would never forget. The
-little rill has been encased at bottom and sides with planks,
-so that it flows for a mile or two, down to its junction with the
-sea, in a straight trough not over fifteen inches wide, and a
-foot in depth. At a convenient level place a shed has been
-built over the trough, and in the floor is a kind of cistern,
-through which the waters of the brook flow as it goes on its
-course. In the shed stand two men, each with a great scoop
-of netting, with which they labor, dipping the fish out of the
-cistern as they fill it, swimming up the trough from the sea.
-Several barrels are taken out every day, and in some of these
-streams one or two thousand barrels always reward a season’s
-work, the brook being the property of the township, and the
-privilege of fishing being sold at auction for the benefit of the
-public. Dip! dip! dip it is all day long, and as the little alewives
-are tumbled into barrels and carts, the eye of the practiced
-observer notes the plump sides and the brilliant iridescent
-coloring of the silvery scales, which indicate that the fish
-are loaded with a precious burden of eggs, to deposit which in
-the pond at the head of the stream is the motive which leads
-them to press forward so blindly into the trap men have set
-for them.</p>
-
-<p>In these enlightened days the town laws generally require
-that the brooks shall be unobstructed for one or two days each
-week, and so a few fish get by the barriers and are allowed to
-perpetuate their kind. In the past, however, many excellent
-“herring brooks” have been completely deprived of their
-fish.</p>
-
-<p>This illustrates how completely man has the destinies of
-river fish under his control. Suppose that instead of a fish
-house with movable barriers, an impassable dam had been
-built. Of course the fish would have been locked out, and
-their kind exterminated in that immediate region. This is precisely
-what has happened in almost every river and stream on
-the Atlantic coast of the United States. Shad and salmon
-were formerly abundant in every river of New England—and
-shad and alewives in every considerable stream south to Florida.
-Now, they are excluded, either entirely or in great part from
-the waters in which they once swarmed in great schools.
-Take, for instance, the Connecticut River. In colonial days,
-salmon were there in immense numbers. All summer long
-they were swimming up from the sea to the headwaters of the
-river, to Massachusetts, New Hampshire, and Vermont, where
-they deposited their eggs in the cool, clear rapids of the main
-river and its tributaries. They were so abundant that the shad
-fishermen used to require their customers to take one salmon
-with every shad, and, as the hackneyed old story goes, the apprentices
-were accustomed to stipulate in their papers that
-they should not be required to eat salmon above three times a
-week. In 1798 a dam was built across the river at Miller’s
-Falls. Next year many salmon were seen at the base of the
-dam, the following year a smaller number, and in less than
-ten years salmon had entirely disappeared from the Connecticut.
-Not a salmon was seen in those waters until seventy
-years later, when, in 1871, a single artificially bred fish was
-caught at Saybrook. I could show you a map prepared by an
-associate of mine, in which the present and former limits of
-the shad are shown, and you would see how they once ranged
-clear up into the mountains, far up the Susquehanna into New
-York State, up the Connecticut into New Hampshire and Vermont,
-and how now, in many rivers, they are confined to very
-restrictive stretches at the river mouths.</p>
-
-<p>The dams operate in still another way. We have considered
-hitherto only their influence upon the sea fish which ascend
-the rivers to spawn. Their effect upon the resident fish is
-quite as baneful. As the suckers, and the bass, and the cat
-fish, and dace, and trout, grow large, they naturally go down
-stream in search of deeper water and wider pools, where they
-get more room and better food. If they luckily escape the
-baskets and traps set for them in every dam, they never can
-get back. The streams are gradually sifted out and left tenantless.</p>
-
-<p>Little need be said of the manner in which ponds are drained
-dry in order to get all the fish in them, in which immense
-seines are hauled in little lakes, clearing out everything, great
-and small, of the use of explosives, lime, or <i>cocculus indicus</i>,
-in the work of wholesale destruction. The fact stands undisputed
-and undisputable, that in many parts of the United
-States the native fish are actually exterminated, and the mud
-turtles, muskrats and fresh water clams left as sole occupants.
-Even the harmonious bull-frog has been devoured by man,
-and only his diminutive cousins, the cricket frogs and hylas<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_406" id="Page_406">[406]</a></span>
-left—the aquatic choir can henceforth perform only soprano and
-contralto songs, unless the fish culturist finds some way of
-bringing back the basso whose obligatos we once admired.</p>
-
-<p>Oysters, scallops, and lobsters are going the same way.
-Although they live in free waters, they are stationary in their
-habits, and wholesale gathering will soon complete the work of
-extermination so recklessly begun. The forthcoming census
-reports on the fisheries will show conclusively the need of immediate
-protection.</p>
-
-<p>What is the remedy for these great evils? One hundred
-thousand men are actively engaged in the fisheries of the
-United States, and at least one fiftieth of the entire population
-of the country are, to a large extent, dependent on the fishery
-industry. Fish is the poor man’s food, for unlike any other
-food product it may be had for the taking. A fish swimming
-in the water has cost no man labor. There floats four pounds
-of savory shad, fifty pounds of nutritious sturgeon, a hundred
-barrels of whale oil; there lies a bushel of oysters, or a barrel
-of sponges. They are God’s gift, and man has only to gather
-them in, and possibly submit them to a very simple process of
-preparation, to be the possessor of a valuable piece of property.
-If the matter can be properly regulated, good fish ought
-to be sold in every town and village for two thirds or half the
-price of beef and pork. As it is, poor fish often cost more
-than beef and pork, and in many localities good fish can not
-be had at any price. It is a great problem in political economy,
-and one which we are, as yet, far from thoroughly understanding.</p>
-
-<p>We are confronted with the question, What can be done to
-neutralize these destructive tendencies?</p>
-
-<p>There are evidently three things to do.</p>
-
-<p>1. To preserve fish waters, especially those inland, as nearly
-as possible in their normal condition.</p>
-
-<p>2. To prohibit wasteful or immoderate fishing.</p>
-
-<p>3. To employ the art of fish breeding.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p><i>a.</i> To aid in maintaining a natural supply;</p>
-
-<p><i>b.</i> To repair the effects of past improvidence, and</p>
-
-<p><i>c.</i> To increase the supply beyond its natural limits, rapidly
-enough to meet the necessities of a constantly increasing population.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The preservation of normal conditions in inland waters is
-comparatively simple. A reasonable system of forestry and
-water purification is all that is required, and this is needed not
-only by the fish in the streams, but by the people living on the
-banks. It has been shown that a river which is too foul for
-fish to live in is not fit to flow near the habitations of man. Obstructions,
-such as dams, may, in most instances, be overcome
-by fish ladders. The salmon has profited much by these devices
-in Europe, and the immense dams in American rivers
-will doubtless be passable, even for shad and alewives, if the
-new system of fish-way construction devised by Col. McDonald,
-and now being applied on the Savannah, James, and Potomac,
-and other large rivers, fulfills its present promises of success.</p>
-
-<p>Up to the present time, however, although much ingenuity
-and expense have been lavished upon fish-ways by the various
-state fish commissions of this country, there has been little
-practical outcome from their use. Our dams are too high, and
-the shad and alewives, which we are especially desirous to
-carry over these obstructions, do not seem to take kindly to
-the narrow, tortuous defiles of the fish ladders.</p>
-
-<p>The protection of fish by law is what legislators have been
-trying to effect for many centuries, and we are bound to admit
-that the success of their efforts has been very slight indeed.
-Protective legislation rarely succeeds. The statute books of
-each state are crowded with laws which no one understands,
-least of all the men who made them, and which the state
-governments are powerless to enforce. Every one remembers
-Whittier’s grand old hero, Abraham Davenport, the Connecticut
-statesman, who, “on a May day of that far old year
-1780,” when the earth was shrouded in darkness, and he and
-all his colleagues in the State Assembly felt that the judgment
-day had come, stood up, “albeit with trembling hands and
-shaking voice, and read an act to amend an act to regulate
-the shad and alewife fisheries”—and then went on to rebuke
-those around for their fearfulness and desire to leave the post
-of duty. Connecticut is as much at a loss now as then to
-know how to regulate her shad and alewife fisheries. Under
-a republican form of government, restrictive laws are not popular,
-and money would never be voted to enforce such laws,
-which, without an extensive police force, would be powerless.
-Some one has sagely remarked that the salmon is an aristocratic
-fish, which can only thrive under the shadow of a throne.
-Many states now have laws protecting fresh water fish in the
-breeding season, and numerous game protective associations
-are laboring with some success for their enforcement. Sales
-of fish out of season are also successfully prevented in certain
-city markets.</p>
-
-<p>The attempts to regulate the fisheries at the mouths of rivers,
-so that spawning fish may be allowed free passage for a few
-hours, generally from Saturday evening to Monday morning,
-are meeting with but little success.</p>
-
-<p>Maryland and Virginia attempt to some extent the protection
-of their oyster beds, and the former state keeps up an expensive
-police organization. The oyster law is founded in ignorance,
-however, and the chief effort being to keep away
-fishermen from other states, for the benefit of their own, there
-are small results except frequent quarrels and occasional
-bloodshed.</p>
-
-<p>Connecticut is making the experiment of giving to individuals
-personal title to submerged land, to be used in oyster culture,
-and this, perhaps, is the wisest step taken. Oyster production
-must soon cease to be a free grabbing enterprise, and
-be placed upon the same footing as agriculture, or the United
-States will lose its beloved oyster crop, and in this country, as
-in England, a fresh oyster will be worth as much as a new-laid
-egg. Great Britain has, at present, two schools of fishery
-economists, the one headed by Professor Huxley, opposed to
-legislation, save for the preservation of fish in inland waters,
-the other, of which Dr. Francis Day is the chief leader, advocating
-a most strenuous legal regulation of the sea fisheries.
-Continental Europe is by tradition and belief committed to the
-last named policy. In the United States, on the contrary, public
-opinion is generally antagonistic to fishery legislation, and
-our Commissioner of Fisheries, after carrying on for fourteen
-years investigations upon this very question, has not yet become
-satisfied that laws are necessary for the perpetuation of
-the sea fisheries, nor has he ever recommended to Congress
-enactment of any description. Just here we meet the test
-problem in fish culture. Many of the most important commercial
-fisheries of the world, the cod fishery, the herring
-fishery, the sardine fishery, the shad and alewife fishery, the
-mullet fishery, the salmon fishery, the whitefish fishery, the
-smelt fishery, and many others, owe their existence to the fact
-that once a year these fishes gather together in closely swimming
-schools, to spawn in shallow water, on shoals, or in estuaries
-and rivers. There is a large school of <i>quasi</i> economists,
-who clamor for the complete prohibition of fishing during
-spawning time. This demand demonstrates their ignorance.
-Deer, game birds, and other land animals may easily
-be protected in the breeding season, so may trout and other
-fishes of strictly local habits. Not so the anadromous and pelagic
-fishes. If they are not caught in the spawning season,
-they can not be caught at all. I heard a prominent fish culturist
-recently advocating before a committee of the United
-States Senate, the view that shad should not be caught in the
-rivers, because they came into the rivers to spawn. When
-asked what would become of our immense shad fisheries if
-this were done, he said that doubtless some ingenious person
-would invent a means of catching them at sea.</p>
-
-<p>The fallacy in the argument of these men lies in the supposition<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_407" id="Page_407">[407]</a></span>
-that it is more destructive to the progeny of a given fish
-to kill it when its eggs are nearly ripe, than to kill the same fish
-eight or ten months earlier.</p>
-
-<p>We must not, however, ignore the counter argument. Such
-is the mortality among fish that only an infinitesimal percentage
-attain to maturity. Möbius has shown that for every
-grown oyster upon the beds of Schleswig-Holstein, 1,045,000
-have died. Only a very small percentage, perhaps not greater
-than this, of the shad or the smelt ever come upon the breeding
-grounds. Some consideration, then, ought to be shown to
-the individuals which have escaped from their enemies and
-have come up to deposit the precious burden of eggs. How
-much must they be protected?</p>
-
-<p>Here the fish culturist comes in with the proposition “<i>that
-it is cheaper to make fish so plenty by artificial means that every
-fisherman may take all he can catch, than to enforce a code
-of protective laws</i>.”</p>
-
-<p>The salmon rivers of the Pacific slope, and the shad rivers
-of the east, and the whitefish fisheries of the lakes, are now so
-thoroughly under control by the fish culturist, that it is doubtful
-if any one will venture to contradict his assertion. The question
-now is, whether he can extend his domain to other species.</p>
-
-<p>Legislation and fish-ways, then, are, as yet, of little practical
-importance. Actually, they repeat the proverbial act of the
-clown who locked the stable door after his horse had been
-stolen. No one makes laws or builds fish-ways until he is of
-the decided opinion that the fish are pretty nearly gone.</p>
-
-<p>Artificial fish culture seems to offer the only remedy for the
-evils which have been described.</p>
-
-<p class="center">[TO BE CONTINUED.]</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<h2 id="THE_LIFE_OF_GEORGE_ELIOT">THE LIFE OF GEORGE ELIOT.</h2>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<p>There is now and then a biography so written that the reader
-is able to become intimately acquainted with the subject,
-to feel after reading that he has had a personal contact, and
-has formed a friendship which is warm and living. Such
-“Lives” are rare. Most works of this kind are so biased by the
-interpretations of the author, so full of facts and opinions that
-the reader loses all feeling of companionship in reading; he
-closes the book, knowing much about the subject, but rarely
-understanding him. A book which presents a man or woman in
-that personal way which makes a friendship through the medium
-of the book possible, confers a great gift upon the reading
-public.</p>
-
-<p>The peculiar fitness of Mr. Cross’s “Life of George Eliot”<a name="FNanchor_2" id="FNanchor_2"></a><a href="#Footnote_2" class="fnanchor">[B]</a>
-for giving us a new friend, must be attributed to the really remarkable
-taste and skill of his editing. The work bears the
-mark of a reverential hand. It is an <i>In Memoriam</i> whose
-only object has been to lay before the world a memory too
-strong and precious to be kept secret. But no such a biography
-could have been given the world had it not been for the
-peculiar nature of George Eliot herself. The material for this
-“Life” grew out of two strong elements in her character: the
-affectionate and persistent friendship which led her to reveal
-herself so fully to those she loved in her letters, and that constant
-introspection which made her journal often a mirror of
-her inner life. These materials make up the book, which is
-largely a study of her character, and, too, of her character as
-she understood it. She has verily written her own life. The
-interpretation remains for the readers.</p>
-
-<p>It would have been possible for Mr. Cross to have given much
-information about her character which he has withheld, her
-opinions and much of her conversation; but he has wisely given
-the world only what she herself chose to reveal to her friends.</p>
-
-<p>The story begins early. The first revelations in character
-are the strongest; the happiness and misery of the future life
-are revealed in the childhood traits. The earliest revelations
-which we find in George Eliot’s life are of affection and ambition;
-either, if strong enough to become a passion, drives its
-possessor along a thorny path until it is itself mastered, and
-where both exist in a nature, continual collision must occur
-between them. Before each is satisfied there must be a life
-struggle of the keenest sort. Such a struggle was presaged
-for Marian Evans very early. She herself tells how, when
-she was but four years of age, she played on the piano, of
-which she did not know a note, in order to impress the servant
-with a proper notion of her acquirements and generally distinguished
-position. As eager, too, she was for love as for
-recognition. In her reminiscences of her early life most
-vividly she portrays her earliest passion—one very common
-among affectionate girls—her love for her brother. “She used
-always to be at his heels, insisting on doing everything that he
-did.” When his first boyish craze took possession of him in
-shape of a pony, and she found it was separating them, she
-was nearly heart broken. Impressible, eager for work and
-ambitious for knowledge, she began life under an emotional
-pressure, which drove her into incessant distress lest those she
-loved should fail her, and which brought her devotion to her
-loved ones in constant collision with her ambition. At twenty-one,
-writing to a very intimate friend, she said: “I do not
-mean to be so sinful as to say that I have not friends most undeservedly
-kind and tender, and disposed to form a far too
-favorable estimate of me, but I mean I have no one who enters
-into my pleasures and griefs, no one with whom I can
-pour out my soul.” Eight years after this, having lost her
-father, she went abroad for a few months’ residence, and her
-letters home were full of eager longing for their sympathy and
-restless fear lest they should forget her. No change in her life
-diminished this feeling. She became an editor of the <i>Westminster
-Review</i>, and while overwhelmed with manuscripts and
-proofs she wrote: “You must know that I am not a little desponding
-now and then, and think that old friends will die off,
-and I shall be left with no power to make new ones again.”
-Undoubtedly this feeling tended to make her morbid in her
-younger days, and consequently dwarf her power. It is an
-important study of her life to trace the gradual melting of
-this disposition, and the final growth into a healthy happiness.
-When quite past the heyday of her life, she wrote a friend of her
-girlhood: “I am one of those, perhaps, exceptional people
-whose early childish dreams were much less happy than the
-outcome of life,” and again, but four years before her death:
-“I have completely lost my <i>personal</i> melancholy. I often, of
-course, have melancholy thoughts about the destinies of my
-fellow creatures, but I am never in the mood of sadness, which
-used to be my frequent visitant, even in the midst of external
-happiness; and this, notwithstanding a very vivid sense that
-life is declining, and death close at hand.” This release from
-morbidness had two causes. She had taught her strong, affectional
-nature to find satisfaction in that commonplace, but
-little understood duty, loving her neighbors, and she had
-learned to enjoy things on their own account. The first article
-in this creed of happiness became George Eliot’s religion.
-She had abandoned her belief in the Christian religion when
-twenty-one years of age. She could not believe fully, and she
-was too independent and too reliant upon her own mind to
-conform to a religion she did not believe. The steps she took
-did not destroy the religious sense in her life. The earnestness
-which led her to write at nineteen, “May the Lord give
-me such an insight into what is truly good, that I may not rest<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_408" id="Page_408">[408]</a></span>
-contented with making Christianity a mere addendum to my
-pursuits, or with tacking it as a fringe to my garments;” which
-induced her to consider the novel and even oratorio as dangerous
-to spiritual development still remained, though without
-form. She was intensely in earnest, but it was many years
-before her love for mankind became a religion to her. A less
-strong character would have become flippant or scornful under
-this loss; hers only became more serious. She seems
-never to have forgotten what she had abandoned.</p>
-
-<p>Though radically differing from most of her friends on religious
-questions, she never was uncharitable. “Of all intolerance,
-the intolerance calling itself philosophical is the
-most odious to me,” she wrote, and she lived out this opinion,
-in no way allowing the widest diversity to separate her from
-her friends. Her sympathy and charity indeed seem to increase,
-even if the breach in their opinion widened.</p>
-
-<p>This habit of thought and feeling resulted in much personal
-moral benefit. “My own experience and development deepen
-every day my conviction that our moral progress may be
-measured by the degree in which we sympathize with individual
-suffering and individual joy.”</p>
-
-<p>As she grew older, she comforted herself with the thought
-that “with that renunciation of self which age inevitably
-brings we get more freedom of soul to enter into the life of
-others.” She tried for “a religion which must express less care
-for personal consolation and a more deeply awing sense of
-responsibility to man, springing from sympathy with that
-which of all things is most certainly known to us, the difficulty
-of the human lot.” This was the great lesson in her growth
-toward happiness. A secondary step was her appreciation of
-the value of things in themselves. It is a serious obstacle to
-the happiness of women, that in the main they care for exterior
-life only as it is of value in the personal life. A book is dear
-because a friend has read or recommended it. This verse is
-fine from association; this strain of music because they heard it
-in a certain connection. Take the <i>personal</i> out of Art and Nature,
-and too often women care little for them. George Eliot learned
-to appreciate and love things for their own value. Music, to
-which she was from childhood deeply susceptible, she cultivated
-thoroughly, and no fine rendering of <i>good</i> music ever
-was missed by her. She took the true, high view of life, which
-declares that from every good all possible enjoyment should
-be gained. Art was very dear to her, and we find in these
-quotations from her journal, notes on all the leading galleries
-of Europe, but in the very midst of her art studies she drops
-this comment, after noting a sight she had had of the snow
-covered Alps: “Sight more to me than all the art in Munich,
-though I love the <i>art</i> nevertheless. The great, wide-stretching
-earth, and the all-embracing sky—the birthright of us all—are
-what I care most to look at.”</p>
-
-<p>But it would have been impossible for even her deep love
-for mankind, her fine enjoyment of the good and beautiful, to
-have completed her life. These things satisfied her affections,
-but there was another quality we have mentioned as prominent
-in her life: it was her ambition. At twenty she wrote
-despondently: “I feel that my besetting sin is the one of all
-others most destroying, as it is the faithful parent of them all—ambition,
-a desire insatiable for the esteem of my fellow-creatures.”
-Whatever she did, was done with all her might. Her
-mother died early, and she became housekeeper. Her struggles
-with the knotty questions of housewifery kept her in a
-constant worry, but she would do things right—whether it be
-currant jelly or a German translation. The same perfection
-marked her novels. Her progress was soon marked; it recommended
-her to people of standing, and gradually she had a
-circle of friends—people of strong minds and much culture—about
-her. Eager to do something, a way opened to her in
-1844, when she was twenty-five years old. It was to translate
-into English a work of the German philosopher, Strauss. She
-did it, and what was better, did it well. Five years later she
-writes: “The only ardent hope I have for my future life is to
-have given me some woman’s duty.” The ambition to excel
-is already bending to the stronger emotion of affection. For
-a long time she worked, eager and anxious, but nothing seemed
-to open. In 1851 she went to London as assistant editor of
-<i>Westminster Review</i>, and here most satisfactory opportunities
-for culture opened. She formed lasting friendships with Herbert
-Spenser, Harriet Martineau, Florence Nightingale, and
-indeed with all the people worth knowing, who filled London
-in the ’fifties. But her editing left no opportunity to do that
-special work to which she was looking, and which she did not
-understand. She wrote many reviews and essays. This writing
-was a sort of safety valve for her intellect, but it was not
-until September, 1856, that the new era began in her life. It
-was when she began to write fiction. The popular idea of fiction
-as stories which will do to kill time, but which for serious
-reading are quite useless, was not the idea of George Eliot. A
-nature so intensely serious, so anxious for noble work, could
-not content itself with trivial story telling; she did not aim at
-that, but at studies of life. As she finely writes to Mr. John
-Blackwood, who became her publisher: “My artistic bent is
-directed not all to the presentation of irreproachable character,
-but to the presentation of mixed human beings, in such a
-way as to call forth tolerant judgment, pity, and sympathy.
-And I can not step aside from what I <i>feel</i> to be <i>true</i> in character.”
-And again: “I should like to touch every heart among
-my readers with nothing but loving humor, with tenderness,
-with belief in goodness.” The story of her great success is
-familiar—her books are well known. In rapid succession she
-sent out “Scenes of Clerical Life,” “Adam Bede,” “The Mill
-on the Floss,” “Silas Marner,” “Romola,” “Felix Holt,”
-“The Spanish Gypsy,” “Middlemarch,” “Daniel Deronda,”
-and “Theophrastus Such.” Her convictions about how she
-should work were intense. She wrote and <i>lived</i> her story,
-and once when urged to re-write a tale, replied that she could
-no more re-write a book than she could live over a year in her
-own life. Her novels are the embodiment of what she had
-felt, written that they might strengthen others. The conscientiousness
-with which she labored made her work sometimes
-most painful to her. Despondency lest she should fail, fear
-lest she had misinterpreted a character, depression lest this
-chapter should fall below a preceding in merit, tortured her
-in succession, but she worked because she believed she had
-found her place, and to do her best for mankind was her religion.
-The slow-growing nature struggling with eager desire for
-human love, and with a mastering ambition, not often reaches
-so ripe a stage as did hers. The rigid system of self-culture
-which she pursued through her life was the outgrowth of her
-ambition and of her intense interest in things, an interest
-which we have noticed as being one of the leading elements in
-her happiness. Reading, study, conversation, observation,
-writing, travel, were in turns employed in her course of self-discipline.
-She read incessantly, and <i>thoroughly</i>. Notice this
-list of books, the work of one month, and that when she was
-nearly fifty years of age: First book of “Lucretius;” sixth book
-of the “Iliad;” “Samson Agonistes;” Warton’s “History of
-English Poetry;” “Grote,” second volume; “Marcus Aurelius;”
-“Vita Nuova,” vol. iv; chapter one of the “Politique
-Positive;” Guest on “English Rhythms;” Maunce’s “Lectures
-on Casuistry.” Few months fell below this in reading,
-and this, too, while she was writing, seeing people, conversing,
-and suffering, for she had the misfortune to know, as she says,
-that “one thing is needful: a good digestion.”</p>
-
-<p>As a life of earnest purpose, of continued struggle for a high
-living, of deepest desire to make the most of everything, and
-for everybody, there is none more marked than that of George
-Eliot. Non-conformity to the religion and the law in which we
-believe, must sadden her life for all, but an honest student of
-her character must, after reading this “Life,” accord to her
-what she herself never failed to give to the erring—charity.</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes">
-
-<h3>FOOTNOTES</h3>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_2" id="Footnote_2"></a><a href="#FNanchor_2"><span class="label">[B]</span></a> George Eliot’s Life, as related in her Letters and Journals. Arranged and edited
-by her husband, J. W. Cross. In three volumes. New York: Harper &amp; Brothers.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_409" id="Page_409">[409]</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<h2 id="ARBOR_DAY">ARBOR DAY.</h2>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<p class="center">BY THE HON. B. G. NORTHROP, LL.D.</p>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<p>Recent spring floods and the diminished flow of rivers in
-summer have called public attention to the cause and the remedy
-as never before. At the opening of the last session of
-Congress, its attention was called to the subject of Forestry,
-for the first time in any presidential message. Bills for the protection
-and extension of forests are now before Congress, and before
-many state legislatures. The last census presents striking
-facts which prove this to be a question of both state and national
-importance. The recent action of the national government
-shows a new appreciation of forestry. The marvel now
-is, that the general government did not earlier seek to protect
-its magnificent forests, once the best and most extensive
-in the world. Their importance to the nation was little understood.
-Even after a century of reckless waste, the United
-States government still owns 85,000,000 acres of timber—a mere
-fraction of what has been cut, or burned, without a thought
-of reproduction. The Forestry Division of the United States
-Department of Agriculture, though organized but six years
-ago, has already spread much valuable information before the
-country by its reports and by those of its special agents, commissioned
-to investigate the forests of the country and the
-means of their protection and extension. Ex-Governor R. W.
-Furnas, of Nebraska, for example, investigated the forests of
-California, Oregon, Washington Territory, and the western slope
-of the Rocky Mountains. His official reports on the stealing
-and reckless destruction of those timber lands, and also in regard
-to the new and extensive timber growing on the treeless
-plains of Nebraska, were of great public interest. The reports
-of Dr. F. B. Hough of New York, and F. B. Baker, of Kansas—also
-agents of the United States Forestry Division—have
-been extensively circulated and still more widely summarized
-in the press.</p>
-
-<p>The National Forestry Congress is another index of the
-growth of popular interest on this subject. A large volume of
-the proceedings of that association at its meeting in Montreal
-was officially published by the Dominion of Canada. The best
-papers given at its three subsequent meetings have been published
-by the United States Department of Agriculture. The
-subject has been ably discussed in State Agricultural Reports,
-and many state and local associations have been formed to
-further this interest. The passage of the Timber Culture Act
-has greatly increased the area of planted woodland.</p>
-
-<p>But of all these agencies no one has awakened so general
-an interest in agriculture as the appointment of Arbor Day, by
-governors of states, by legislatures, and by state, county and
-town superintendents of schools. The plan of Arbor Day is
-simple and inexpensive, and hence the more readily adopted
-and widely effective. In some states the work has been well
-done without any legislation. The best results, however, are
-secured when an act is passed requesting the Governor, each
-spring, to recommend the observance of Arbor Day, by a special
-message. The chief magistrate of the state thus most effectually
-calls the attention of all the people to its importance,
-and secures general and concerted action. <i>How</i> forests conserve
-the water supplies and lessen floods is aside from the
-topic of this paper. While the fact of the increase of spring
-freshets is everywhere admitted, and scientists agree as to the
-cause, the popular disbelief of the true theory is the great
-hindrance to remedial action. The bills for the protection of
-the Adirondack forests, in the legislature of New York, in 1884,
-failed by reason of the opposition of the lumbermen, and the
-common doubt and denial of the benefits of forests in the conservation
-of the rainfall. I often met the same skepticism in
-the Ohio valley, even among the sufferers from the flood disasters.
-They were attributed to the extensive use of tile drains.
-But both in 1883 and 1884, these floods occurred when the
-ground was frozen deep, and the drains were therefore inoperative.</p>
-
-<p>That so simple a cause as forest denudation should produce
-such disastrous results seems at first incredible. It is only
-when the vast areas contributing to a single river are considered,
-that the proof of the forest theory seems clear. Take the
-Ohio River, for illustration. The area drained by it is 214,000
-square miles, or twenty-two times as much as that which in
-Vermont, New Hampshire, Massachusetts and Connecticut is
-drained by the Connecticut River; an area which includes portions
-of New York, Pennsylvania, Ohio, Indiana, Illinois, West
-Virginia, Virginia, North Carolina, Georgia, Alabama, Mississippi,
-Tennessee, and Kentucky. The length of the Ohio is
-about 1,000 miles, and that of its ten leading tributaries nearly
-4,000, and that of the many minor affluents as much more.
-The smallest influences working over such immense regions,
-and ultimately combining in one stream, may enormously
-swell its volume. As the destruction of forests has been
-going on for centuries, the remedy must be the work of time,
-for it must include slow processes and agencies, each <i>separately</i>
-minute, which become important when multiplied by
-myriads and extended over broad areas. Arbor Day has
-proved such an agency.</p>
-
-<p>A brief history of Arbor Day will show its aims. The surprising
-results already accomplished promise a still broader
-influence in the near future. The plan originated with ex-Governor
-J. Sterling Morton, the pioneer tree-planter of Nebraska.
-He secured the coöperation of the State Board of Agriculture,
-some thirteen years ago, when the Governor was induced to
-appoint the second Wednesday in April as a day to be devoted
-to economic tree-planting. By pen and tongue, as editor and
-lecturer, with arguments from theory and facts from his own
-practice, Mr. Morton succeeded in awakening popular enthusiasm
-in this work, in which he was ably seconded by Ex-Governor
-Furnas, of Nebraska, who has long served as Forest
-Commissioner for the United States Department of Agriculture.</p>
-
-<p>In Nebraska a remarkable interest was awakened in the observance
-of her first Arbor Day, and over 12,000,000 trees were
-planted on that day. That enthusiasm was not a temporary
-effervescence. Each successive Governor has annually appointed
-such a day by an official proclamation, and the interest
-has been sustained and even increased from year to year.
-The State Board of Agriculture annually awards liberal prizes
-to encourage tree-planting. Hence Nebraska is the banner
-state of America in this work, having, according to official reports,
-as I am informed by ex-Governor Furnas, 244,353 acres
-of cultivated woodland, or more than twice that of any other
-state. The originator of Arbor Day is now recognized as a
-public benefactor, and hence, during the last campaign, as a
-candidate for Governor, ran some three thousand ahead of his
-party ticket. Though at first aiming at economic tree-planting,
-Nebraska now observes Arbor Day in schools. The example
-of Nebraska was soon followed by Kansas, which had
-over 120,000 acres of planted woodland. The Governor of that
-state issues an annual proclamation for Arbor Day, and it is observed
-by teachers and scholars and parents, in adorning both
-school and home grounds.</p>
-
-<p>Four years ago the legislature of Michigan requested the
-Governor to appoint an Arbor Day. Such an appointment has
-been repeated each succeeding April. For the last three years<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_410" id="Page_410">[410]</a></span>
-a similar day has been appointed by the Governor of Ohio.
-Many schools, especially those of Cincinnati and Columbus,
-fitly kept the designated day. No man in this country has had
-a better opportunity of observing the influence of Arbor Day in
-schools than Superintendent Peaslee, who, after a trial of three
-years, says: “The observance of Arbor Day is the most impressive
-means of interesting the young in this subject. Should
-this celebration become general, such a public sentiment
-would lead to the beautifying by trees of every city, town, and
-village, as well as the public highways, church, and school
-grounds, and the homes of the people. If but the youth of
-Ohio could be led to plant their two trees each, how, by the
-children alone, would the state be enriched and beautified
-within the next fifty years. By our Arbor Day observance the
-importance of forestry was impressed upon the minds of thousands
-of children who then learned to care for and protect
-trees. Not one of those 20,000 children in Eden Park on Arbor
-Day injured a single tree.”</p>
-
-<p>West Virginia furnishes another illustration of the influence
-of observing Arbor Day in schools. In the face of many difficulties,
-State School Superintendent Butcher appointed an
-Arbor Day in schools in April, 1883. Without waiting for any
-legislative or gubernatorial sanction, solely on his own responsibility,
-he invited the school officers, teachers, parents,
-and pupils on the designated day to plant trees on the grounds
-of their schools and homes. He made the April number of
-his <i>School Journal</i> an “Arbor” number, and circulated it
-gratuitously over the State. The results exceeded his expectations.
-It started good influences on <i>minds</i> as well as
-grounds. This great success prompted a similar observance
-last April, for which greater preparations were made, with
-still better results. When called to advocate this measure
-In various parts of West Virginia last spring, I found the
-people and the press most responsive in encouraging this
-practical movement. On the day after the celebration, the
-papers of Wheeling, for example, commended the work in
-such terms as the following: “Arbor Day was gloriously celebrated
-yesterday, and was a splendid success. All—the oldest
-and the youngest—evinced the liveliest interest. Arbor
-Day will be one of the institutions of our schools.”</p>
-
-<p>At the annual meeting of the State Teachers’ Association of
-Indiana, held in December, 1883, a kindred plan was recommended
-and unanimously adopted, and an efficient committee
-appointed to carry it out. The State Board of Horticulture
-heartily endorsed the measure. After a statement of the plan,
-the State Board of Agriculture invited me to prepare a resolution
-in its favor, which they promptly adopted. Governor Porter
-received my suggestions with special interest, and said the
-measure should have his cordial support. He soon after gave
-it his official sanction, and issued a proclamation to the teachers
-and people of the state, in which he predicted that the appointed
-day would be a memorable one, and “the beginning of
-a movement for a much more extended system of tree-culture,
-and the restoration of the varieties of trees, useful and beautiful,
-which have been so recklessly sacrificed that nature cries
-aloud for redress,” closing by calling on “the teachers to do
-all in their power to make Arbor Day a day of the most ardent
-and inspiring interest.” State School Superintendent Holcombe
-gave his personal and official influence heartily to this
-work. The lectures given by his invitation on this subject
-were fully reported by the press, for the newspapers of Indiana
-cordially coöperated in this movement. These combined influences
-secured the general observance of the appointed day,
-and the results were most gratifying. Such combined agencies
-in nearly every state of the Union would promise similar
-results.</p>
-
-<p>At the last annual Convention of the State Teachers’ Association
-of Wisconsin, the presentation of Arbor Day in schools
-led to the adoption of a resolution in favor of such an observance,
-and to the appointment of an efficient committee to carry
-out the plan. At the National Educational Association held
-in Madison, Wisconsin, with an attendance of over five thousand,
-a resolution recommending the observance of Arbor
-Day in schools in all our states was unanimously adopted.
-Such a day has been observed with great interest in some of
-the provinces of Canada.</p>
-
-<p>The American Forestry Congress, which includes the leading
-arborists of Canada and the United States, adopted, at my
-suggestion, the following resolution: “In view of the wide-spread
-results of the observance of Arbor Day in many states,
-this Congress recommends the appointment of such a day in
-all our states and in the provinces of the dominion of Canada,”
-and appointed a committee, consisting of the Chief of
-the Forestry Division of the United States Department of Agriculture,
-the State Superintendent of Schools of West Virginia,
-and myself to secure the general adoption of this plan, and
-especially Arbor Day in schools. As chairman of that committee,
-I have already presented this subject to the Governors
-of many states, and the proposition has met a favorable
-response.</p>
-
-<p>It may be objected to Arbor Day, or to any lessons on forestry
-in schools, that the course of study is already overcrowded,
-and this fact I admit. But the requisite talks on trees, their
-value and beauty, need occupy but two or three hours. In
-some large cities there may be little or no room for tree-planting,
-and no call for even a half-holiday for this work, but even
-there such talks, or the memorizing of suitable selections, on
-the designated day, would be impressive and useful. The essential
-thing is to <i>start</i> habits of observation and occupation
-with trees, which will prompt pupils in their walks, or when at
-work, or at play, to study them. The talks on this subject,
-which Superintendent Peaslee says were the most interesting
-and profitable lessons the pupils of Cincinnati ever had in a
-single day, occupied only the morning of Arbor Day, the afternoon
-being given to the practical work. Such talks will
-lead our youth to admire trees, and realize that they are the
-grandest products of nature, and form the finest drapery
-that adorns this earth in all lands. Thus taught, they will
-wish to plant and protect trees, and find in their own happy
-experience that there is a peculiar pleasure in their parentage,
-whether forest, fruit, or ornamental—a pleasure which never
-cloys, but grows with their growth. Like grateful children,
-trees bring rich filial returns, and compensate a thousand fold
-for all the care they cost. This love of trees, early implanted
-in the school, and fostered in the home, will make our youth
-practical arborists.</p>
-
-<p>They should learn that trees have been the admiration of
-the greatest and best men of all ages. The ancients understood
-well the beauty as well as the economic and hygienic
-value of trees. The Hebrew almost venerated the palm. It
-was the chosen symbol of Judea on their coins, and was graven
-on the doors of the Temple as the sacred sign of justice. The Cedar
-of Lebanon was justly the pride of the Jews, and became
-to them the emblem of strength and beauty. The Egyptians,
-Greeks, and Romans were proficients in tree-planting. Hence
-Thebes, Memphis, Athens, Carthage, Rome, Pompeii and Herculaneum,
-as their ruins still show, had their shaded streets or
-parks. Two thousand years ago, the richest Romans maintained
-a rural home, as does the wealthy Londoner, Viennese,
-or Berliner to-day, and their ancient villas were lavishly
-adorned. The Paradise of the Persians was filled with trees
-and roses. This taste for beautiful gardens was transplanted
-from Persia to Greece, and the Greek philosophers held their
-schools in beautiful gardens, or groves. The devastations of
-parks, the destruction of shade trees, the neglect of public
-streets and private grounds, the decay of rural tastes, and the
-utter slight of home adornments, were clearer proofs of the
-great relapse to barbarism than the vandalism which destroyed
-the proud monuments of classic art and literature.</p>
-
-<p>Arbor Day has already initiated a movement of vast importance<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_411" id="Page_411">[411]</a></span>
-in eight states. In tree-planting, the beginning only
-is difficult. The obstacles are all met at the outset, because
-they are usually magnified by the popular ignorance of this
-subject. It is the first step that costs—at least, it costs effort to
-set this thing on foot, but that step once taken, others are sure
-to follow. This very fact that the main tug is at the start, on
-account of the inertia of ignorance and indifference, shows
-that such start should be made easy, as is best done by an Arbor
-Day proclamation of the Governor, which is sure to interest
-and enlist the youth of an entire state in the good work.
-When the school children are invited each to plant at least
-“two trees” on the home or school grounds, the aggregate
-number planted will be more than twice that of the children
-enlisted, for parents and the public will participate in the work.</p>
-
-<p>Tree-planting is fitted to give a needful lesson of forethought
-to the juvenile mind. Living only in the present and for the
-present, youth are apt to sow only where they can quickly
-reap. A meager crop soon in hand, outweighs a golden harvest
-long in maturing. They should learn to forecast the
-future as the condition of wisdom. Arboriculture is a discipline
-in foresight—it is always planting for the future. There
-is nothing more ennobling for youth, than the consciousness
-of doing something for future generations, something which
-shall prove a <i>growing</i> benefaction in coming years. Tree-planting
-is an easy way of perpetuating one’s memory long
-after he has passed away. The poorest can in this way provide
-himself with a monument grander than the loftiest shaft
-of chiseled stone which may suggest duty to the living, while
-it commemorates the dead. Such associations grow in interest
-from year to year and from generation to generation. By
-stimulating a general interest in tree-planting among our
-youth, Arbor Day will yield a rich harvest to future generations.
-George Peabody originated the motto, so happily illustrated
-by his munificent gifts to promote education: “Education—the
-debt of the present to future generations.” We owe
-it to our children to leave our lands the better for our tillage
-and tree-planting, and we wrong ourselves and them, if our
-fields are impoverished by our improvidence.</p>
-
-<p>Arbor Day in school has led youth to adorn the surroundings
-of their homes, as well as of the schools, and to extensive
-planting by the wayside. How attractive our roads may become
-by long avenues of trees! This is beautifully illustrated
-in many countries of Europe. In France, for example, the
-government keeps a statistical record of the trees along the
-roads. The total length of public roads in France is 18,750
-miles, of which 7,250 are bordered with trees, while 4,500 are
-now being, or are soon to be, planted. Growing on lands otherwise
-running to waste, such trees are grateful to the traveler,
-but doubly so to the planter.</p>
-
-<p>The influence of Arbor Day in schools in awakening a just
-appreciation of trees, first among pupils and parents, and then
-the people at large, is of vast importance in another respect.
-The frequency of forest fires is the greatest hindrance to practical
-forestry. But let the <i>sentiment</i> of trees be duly cultivated,
-first among our youth, and then among the people, and
-they will be regarded as our friends, as is the case in Germany.
-The public need to learn that the interests of all classes are
-concerned in the conservation of forests. Through the teaching
-of their schools this result was long since accomplished in
-Germany, Switzerland, Sweden, and other European countries.
-The people everywhere realize the need of protecting trees.
-An enlightened public sentiment has proved a better guardian
-of their forests than the national police. A person wantonly
-setting fire to a forest would there be looked upon as an outlaw,
-like the miscreant who should poison a public drinking
-fountain.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<h2 id="HOW_TO_WORK_ALONE">HOW TO WORK ALONE.</h2>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<p class="center">BY CHANCELLOR J. H. VINCENT, D.D.</p>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<p>Not all members of the “C. L. S. C.” can enjoy the benefits
-of a local circle. Some live in the country, or in remote parts
-of the city. They can not get out at night, through lack of
-company, or because the house, the boys, or the baby must
-not be left alone; the local circle is not under wise direction,
-and is unprofitable; or it may be that the only accessible local
-circle is a close corporation, and is “inaccessible.” Father
-or husband objects to the time wasted, or the long walk, or
-something else. So the student is solitary. Whatever is done
-must be done alone.</p>
-
-<p>This is not an unmixed evil, because it may develop power
-in the student, or drive him or her to find associates at home,
-associates who are not enrolled in Plainfield as “regulars,”
-and some of whom are quite too young to be enrolled at all.
-No deprivation in this world that does not make a place for
-some other unsought, unexpected blessing.</p>
-
-<p>I purpose to offer a few hints to these solitary readers, who
-may, I trust, find much profit out of the restrictions of providence,
-and do their work well even though it be done alone.
-On the blank pages of your necessity you may make records
-of your own, worth more to you than volumes of other people’s
-print.</p>
-
-<p>1. Although alone, remember that you are associated with
-a great Circle numbering thousands and tens of thousands of
-members. You are not alone, but one of many. This thought
-helps you. It sets currents of sympathy in motion. It annihilates
-distance. It fills the very air about you with companions
-with whom you are in sweet fellowship, although you
-have never seen them. They are a great cloud of witnesses.
-They march under the same banner; put their names on the
-same great record book in the central office; read the same
-pages; sing the same songs; answer the same questions; recite
-the same mottoes; observe the same memorial days; and
-turn with tender hearts to the same heavens, under the mystic
-spell of the vesper hour; experience the same longings after
-true culture, and have hearts full of sympathy for their fellow-students
-everywhere. This thought of oneness in work gives
-feelings of kinship and companionship. The solitary student
-in the little room—kitchen, sitting room, library, or bed chamber—is
-surrounded by thousands of fellow-students. They
-seem to look over the page with you. They seem to whisper
-words of good will and faith, and some of them, I assure you,
-are royal people. They would give you such greeting, if they
-had opportunity, as would make you proud and glad of your
-connection with the Circle. Indeed, solitariness is impossible to
-the thoughtful member of the C. L. S. C.</p>
-
-<p>2. This sense of fellowship is increased, and a helpful stimulus
-given to the solitary worker, by reflecting on the character
-of the great fraternity of which you are a part. We now
-enroll more than seventy thousand members. Perhaps twenty-five
-thousand have practically given up the readings. Only
-fifty thousand remain with us. Many thousands of readers
-are connected with local circles who have never joined as
-“regulars” at the central office in Plainfield, N. J. There are
-thousands who are reading a part of the course, but who
-neither belong to the local nor general circle. I believe that
-these non-recorded and irregular readers make up for the
-lapsed thousands, so that to-day we have nearly or quite seventy
-thousand people doing all or a part of the required reading.
-This, therefore, becomes a great institution. Its territorial<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_412" id="Page_412">[412]</a></span>
-extent is as vast as its numerical strength. There are
-“C. L. S. C.s” in all parts of the world. Our office records
-contain names from India, China, Japan, the Sandwich
-Islands, and many other outlying regions, while the list in
-Canada and on the Pacific coast runs up among the thousands.
-In every state and territory members are to be found.</p>
-
-<p>And who are these with whom you, my solitary student, are
-associated? They represent every calling in life, and almost
-every grade, social and intellectual. Here are lawyers, judges,
-physicians, clergymen, doctors of divinity, college graduates,
-literally by the thousand, who seek through our course to review
-the studies of other and earlier years. Here are seminary
-and high school graduates, and people old and young who
-dropped out of the grammar school when they were too young
-to understand their folly in doing so. Here are business men,
-mechanics and farmers who have been prospered, and who
-covet now a measure of culture to fit them for society, that
-their money may gain for them and their families more than
-a mere social recognition. Here are mothers good and true,
-who do not want to part hands with sons and daughters as
-they enter the higher schools, but who propose by our course
-of reading to keep in the literary and scientific world where
-their children are to be at home. Here are people of “low degree,”
-who toil for bread, with lengthened hours of service, that
-they may help those who are dependent upon them. They
-are in shops and kitchens, and have souls that would put
-honor into palaces. They want outlook as they go weighted
-down through busy and weary years. They do not expect always
-to be slaves to society and circumstance. There is
-blood-royal in every heart-beat, and power to hold princedoms
-in some near future. So, despised of men who live, they hold
-converse through books with gifted and kingly souls who,
-though dead, yet live, and who work in other kingly souls.
-There are many of these disguised princes and princesses in
-your Circle.</p>
-
-<p>Here too are sufferers in homes of bereavement and pain,
-where arms are empty and hearts are full, where love calls
-but receives no answer, where disease binds the body but
-leaves the mind free to grieve over its loss; where lack of
-work gives place to temptation, and renders occupation of
-some sort a moral and religious necessity; where worldliness,
-that makes the soul barren, needs thoughtfulness to moisten,
-beautify and fructify the life.</p>
-
-<p>In such great and gracious companionship you sit down for
-solitary study. Dismiss the thought, therefore, that this is
-solitude. Reach out your soul to greet the currents of invisible
-and loving influence that pour in upon you from every
-quarter.</p>
-
-<p>3. Select and furnish your Chautauqua corner. Do not be
-too anxious to have it harmonize with other corners of the room.
-Put shelves for your books “required” and for “review.” On
-the lowest shelf pile <span class="smcap">The Chautauquans</span>. On the wall put up
-the motto cards, the list of memorial days, the Chautauqua
-calendar, the photograph or engraving of the Hall of Philosophy,
-and such other Chautauqua views as you approve. Put
-up busts or engravings of the great leaders—Homer, Cicero,
-Dante, Milton, Goethe. Somewhere place a picture of Bryant,
-the earliest distinguished friend of the C. L. S. C. By gradual
-additions fill the Chautauqua corner with pictures and bookshelves,
-busts and mottoes, all in the line of your reading,
-until the other corners and the intervening walls shall be filled
-with reminders of Chautauqua and the world of literature,
-science and art it represents. And if somehow you can place
-on the wall that matchless engraving representing the great
-Master with his two disciples on the way to Emmaus, you will,
-in a sense, sanctify your room, and set forth most effectively,
-the aim, scope and spirit of the great Chautauqua movement.
-In such a room, or in such a corner, can students be solitary?</p>
-
-<p>4. You will greatly increase your power by systematic habits.
-One may “read up” at any time, but the regular daily reading
-which renders unnecessary what is called “reading up,” is
-much the better way. It renders the work comparatively light;
-it makes the C. L. S. C. a help to other less congenial work of
-the day into which it falls like a refreshing shower. It forces
-life into a system which always expedites and lightens labor.
-It schools the will. It brings lower duties into proper subjection
-to the higher. It is every way better to do each day’s
-work as each day comes. Thus working alone, but systematically,
-one keeps the hand in and does not lose grasp, taste
-or delight.</p>
-
-<p>5. Though compelled to work alone, make casual contacts
-with others afford opportunities for drawing them out, for finding
-out what they know, or for corroborating your own views.
-Ask questions. Elicit opinions. Start conversation. Try to
-tell what you know or think. Tell your children. Tell your
-neighbors. As you interest them, you set them in search of
-knowledge, which finding, they will later on report to you,
-and you thus give them a start in lines of self-improvement.</p>
-
-<p>6. This setting others at work in quest of knowledge for
-you is a most practicable way of getting knowledge and doing
-good to the finders thereof.</p>
-
-<p>Write out ten different questions, and give one to each of
-ten young boys and girls of a high school, for example. They
-will ransack libraries, consult teachers, find out and report what
-you want to know, and be immensely helped by the knowledge
-found and the service rendered. Though alone, you
-need not work alone.</p>
-
-<p>7. Practice talking to yourself about the things you have
-read. Put facts and dates into sentences. Now and then
-write out these sentences, or speak them off. Recite a lesson
-to yourself every day. Make a speech with yourself as audience.
-Put facts into recitative lullabies, by which you sing
-baby to sleep. Don’t do too much of all this, lest it weary you,
-but do a little of this sentence-framing and solitary speech-making,
-and nursery-crooning every day. You will then have a
-local circle of you, and yourself and your own soul. Now one’s
-self makes very good society sometimes; there are so many
-powers and voices and thoughts and projects in a single soul.</p>
-
-<p>8. Lift your soul up to its height, now and then, and breathe
-a thought of the heart that may grow into a prayer as you recall
-the great Circle of which you are a member. Think in
-silence of their multiplied and varied circumstances, perils,
-temptations and necessities. Think of the disheartened, the
-bereaved, the suffering, the doubting; those who have great
-power, but do not know how to use it; those who are sick of
-sin and worldliness, and do not know how to get into the path
-of holiness and peace. Think of all these, and then pray.
-Let your heart swell toward God in sympathy and longing.</p>
-
-<p>Thus will you find in your solitude the presence of the Spirit
-invisible and eternal, whose name is love, and whose home is
-heaven, and whose children are the lowly and meek and devout,
-who love souls—the world full of souls—and who daily
-bear them in tender sympathy to the throne.</p>
-
-<p>They who do these things can not be alone.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>If it were not for my love of beautiful nature and poetry,
-my heart would have died within me long ago. I never
-felt before what immeasurable benefactors these same poets
-are to their kind, and how large a measure, both of
-actual happiness and prevention of misery they have imparted
-to the race. I would willingly give up half my
-fortune, and some little of the fragments of health and bodily
-enjoyment that remain to me, rather than that Shakspere
-should not have lived before me.—<i>Lord Jeffrey (from a letter
-to Lord Cockburn, 1833).</i></p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_413" id="Page_413">[413]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 id="OUTLINE_AND_PROGRAMS">OUTLINE AND PROGRAMS.</h2>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<h3>OUTLINE OF REQUIRED READINGS FOR APRIL.</h3>
-
-<p><i>First Week</i> (ending April 8).—1. “Chemistry,” chapters
-XVIII, XIX and XX.</p>
-
-<p>2. “History of the Reformation,” from page 1 to 27.</p>
-
-<p>3. “The Circle of the Sciences,” in <span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span>.</p>
-
-<p>4. Sunday Readings for April 5, in <span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span>.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><i>Second Week</i> (ending April 15).—1. “Chemistry,” chapters
-XXI and XXII.</p>
-
-<p>2. “History of the Reformation,” from page 27 to 55.</p>
-
-<p>3. “Home Studies in Chemistry and Physics,” in <span class="smcap">The
-Chautauquan</span>.</p>
-
-<p>4. Sunday Readings for April 12, in <span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span>.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><i>Third Week</i> (ending April 22).—1. “Chemistry,” chapter
-XXIII.</p>
-
-<p>2. “History of the Reformation,” from page 55 to 88.</p>
-
-<p>3. “Easy Lessons in Animal Biology,” in <span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span>.</p>
-
-<p>4. Readings in <i>Our Alma Mater</i>.</p>
-
-<p>5. Sunday Readings for April 19, in <span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span>.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><i>Fourth Week</i> (ending April 30).—1. “Chemistry,” chapters
-XXIV, XXV and XXVI.</p>
-
-<p>2. “History of the Reformation,” from page 88 to 117.</p>
-
-<p>3. “Aristotle,” in <span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span>.</p>
-
-<p>4. Readings in <i>Our Alma Mater</i>.</p>
-
-<p>5. Sunday Readings for April 26, in <span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span>.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<h2 id="PROGRAMS_FOR_LOCAL_CIRCLE_WORK">PROGRAMS FOR LOCAL CIRCLE WORK.</h2>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<h3>FIRST WEEK IN APRIL.</h3>
-
-<p>1. Essay—Easter.</p>
-
-<p>2. Selection—“All Fool’s Day.” By Addison.</p>
-
-<p>3. A Paper on the Life of Martin Luther.</p>
-
-<p class="center">Music.</p>
-
-<p>4. Fifteen Minutes’ Talk on the Cause of the Present
-Troubles in the Soudan.</p>
-
-<p>5. Character Sketch—General Gordon.</p>
-
-<p>6. Debate—Resolved, that dynamite is more productive of
-evil than good.</p>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<h3>SECOND WEEK IN APRIL.</h3>
-
-<p>1. Selection—“Martin Luther.” From Robertson’s “History
-of Charles V.” Found also in Chambers’s “Cyclopedia of
-English Literature.”</p>
-
-<p>2. A Paper on the Inquisition.</p>
-
-<p>3. Recitation—“The Prisoner of Chillon.”—By Byron.</p>
-
-<p>4. Character Sketch—John Knox.</p>
-
-<p class="center">Music.</p>
-
-<p>5. Essay—The Vegetation of the Carboniferous Period.</p>
-
-<p>6. A General Talk on Socialism.</p>
-
-<p>7. Critic’s Report.</p>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<h3>THIRD WEEK IN APRIL.</h3>
-
-<p>1. Essay—The Massacre of St. Bartholomew.</p>
-
-<p>2. Recitation—“Robinson of Leydon.”—By O. W. Holmes.</p>
-
-<p>3. Character Sketch.—William of Orange.</p>
-
-<p class="center">Music.</p>
-
-<p>4. A Paper on Mount Cenis.</p>
-
-<p>5. Selection—“The Chambered Nautilus.” By O. W.
-Holmes.</p>
-
-<p>6. Conversation on New Books.</p>
-
-<p>7. Questions and Answers for the month in <span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span>.</p>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<h3>SHAKSPERE DAY.</h3>
-
-<p class="center">Music.</p>
-
-<p>1. Roll call—Quotations from Shakspere.</p>
-
-<p>2. A Paper on the Life and Times of Shakspere.</p>
-
-<p class="center">Music.</p>
-
-<p>3. The Story of “The Tempest.”</p>
-
-<p>4. Recitation—“Perseverance.” Selected from “Troilus
-and Cressida,” Act III., scene 3; beginning, “Time hath,
-my lord, a wallet,” etc.; ending, “One touch of Nature makes
-the whole world kin.”</p>
-
-<p>5. Essay—Characteristics of Shakspere’s Women.</p>
-
-<p class="center">Music.</p>
-
-<p>6. Analysis of “Winter’s Tale.”</p>
-
-<p>7. Court scene in “Merchant of Venice,” Act IV., scene 1;
-beginning, “Is your name Shylock?” ending with the exit of
-Shylock.</p>
-
-<p>The plan followed by many Shakspere clubs would afford a
-fine entertainment. They assign the characters in any one of
-the plays (that of “Julius Cæsar” being exceptionally fitting
-for an evening of this kind) to the different members of the
-circle, who read the parts assigned.</p>
-
-<p>To hold a Shakspere carnival would be a very interesting
-way in which to commemorate the day. Let each one come
-dressed in costume to represent any one of Shakspere’s characters
-and personate that character throughout the evening.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<h2 id="LOCAL_CIRCLES">LOCAL CIRCLES.</h2>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<h3>C. L. S. C. MOTTOES.</h3>
-
-<p>“<i>We Study the Word and the Works of God.</i>”—“<i>Let us keep our Heavenly Father in the Midst.</i>”—“<i>Never be Discouraged.</i>”</p>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<h3>C. L. S. C. MEMORIAL DAYS.</h3>
-
-<p>1. <span class="smcap">Opening Day</span>—October 1.</p>
-
-<p>2. <span class="smcap">Bryant Day</span>—November 3.</p>
-
-<p>3. <span class="smcap">Special Sunday</span>—November, second Sunday.</p>
-
-<p>4. <span class="smcap">Milton Day</span>—December 9.</p>
-
-<p>5. <span class="smcap">College Day</span>—January, last Thursday.</p>
-
-<p>6. <span class="smcap">Special Sunday</span>—February, second Sunday.</p>
-
-<p>7. <span class="smcap">Founder’s Day</span>—February 23.</p>
-
-<p>8. <span class="smcap">Longfellow Day</span>—February 27.</p>
-
-<p>9. <span class="smcap">Shakspere Day</span>—April 23.</p>
-
-<p>10. <span class="smcap">Addison Day</span>—May 1.</p>
-
-<p>11. <span class="smcap">Special Sunday</span>—May, second Sunday.</p>
-
-<p>12. <span class="smcap">Special Sunday</span>—July, second Sunday.</p>
-
-<p>13. <span class="smcap">Inauguration Day</span>—August, first Saturday after first
-Tuesday; anniversary of C. L. S. C. at Chautauqua.</p>
-
-<p>14. <span class="smcap">St. Paul’s Day</span>—August, second Saturday after first
-Tuesday; anniversary of the dedication of St. Paul’s
-Grove at Chautauqua.</p>
-
-<p>15. <span class="smcap">Commencement Day</span>—August, third Tuesday.</p>
-
-<p>16. <span class="smcap">Garfield Day</span>—September 19.</p>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<p>The difficulty of holding a circle together is sometimes very
-great. Not a little thorough study of the needs and natures of
-the members must tax the leader who would hold a circle
-which has no interest in its work. At <span class="smcap">Richmond, Maine</span>, our
-friends have experienced this difficulty. A circle of fifteen
-was formed in January, 1884, but did not continue its meetings.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_414" id="Page_414">[414]</a></span>
-The lukewarmness of a few broke the interest of all;
-but ten of the members did their reading apart. These ten took
-matters into their own hands last fall, and now Richmond has a
-“Merry Meeting” circle, of twenty-two members, interested
-and promising.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Nashua, New Hampshire</span>, has a Chautauqua circle. It has
-been in existence for two years past, with varying fortunes.
-Last fall, when reorganized for the season, it consisted of ten
-ladies, but now numbers fourteen. Though this number is
-less than one half that of the last year, the interest and enthusiasm
-are much greater. The weekly meetings are occasions
-of great interest and instruction. They follow, with frequent
-modifications, the program arranged in <span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span>,
-making the roll call and question box regular features. The
-only difficulty with which they meet is that they are all so
-busy that they can scarcely prepare for each program. They
-also derive much pleasure and profit in observing the memorial
-days. The circle is called the “Raymond” circle, in
-honor of the Rev. B. P. Raymond, president of Lawrence
-University, Appleton, Wis., founder of this branch.</p>
-
-<p>The “Athenian Chautauqua Literary and Scientific Circle” of
-<span class="smcap">West Enosburgh, Vt.</span>, has entered upon its first year in the
-Chautauqua course. Although in its infancy, it shows a great
-deal of interest and enthusiasm. The circle was organized
-September 29, 1884. The officers are president, vice president
-and secretary. The circle began with eight members
-and has increased to thirteen. One of the most interesting
-exercises of this circle is the pronouncing match, each
-person being allowed to try once; if he misses he sits down.
-The words for the next match are the names of the sixty-six
-elements in chemistry.</p>
-
-<p>Our travels through <span class="smcap">Massachusetts</span> this month furnish much
-interesting circle news. The “Star” circle, in <span class="smcap">Foxboro</span>, reorganized
-in October with twenty-eight members, which includes
-all the graduates with one exception. They believe there in
-once a C. L. S. C. always a C. L. S. C. The weekly meetings
-are reported in the local paper, and more are inquiring about
-the work than in previous years. One reason may be that they
-are but eighteen miles from the “Hall on the Hill,” which is
-in process of erection in South Framingham.——The
-“Henry M. King” circle, connected with the Dudley Street
-church, <span class="smcap">Boston</span>, was organized in November, and has twenty-five
-members. Of these the larger part are gentlemen, not of
-leisure, but business men, who bring with them into the bi-weekly
-meetings the same energy and perseverance that characterize
-a successful business enterprise. These are certainly
-the ones who might with a good show of reason say: “No
-time.” But on the contrary they <i>have</i> time, not only for the
-regular work, but for the preparation of papers requiring
-much time and research.——At <span class="smcap">North Attleboro</span> the new
-“Bryant” circle is four months old, and numbers twenty-six
-members. They open the meetings with reading Scripture
-lessons and singing Chautauqua songs. Roll call is responded
-to by quotations from a standard author, followed by essays,
-recitations, blackboard exercises, questions, discussions,
-etc., as the committee of instruction has arranged. The secretary
-writes: “If we are not great, our hopes are.”——“Profit
-as well as enjoyment we are getting from our studies,”
-says a member of the circle at <span class="smcap">North Weymouth</span>. This organization
-is a circle of ’83, and has had time to thoroughly
-test the course. They have had recently a pleasant memorial
-service, and have been favored with chemical experiments by a
-chemist.——Pleasant notes of the work at <span class="smcap">West Madford</span>
-have been sent us by the secretary: “Through the influence
-of one sturdy little lady, six or eight people met together last
-October and talked up the feasibility of the C. L. S. C. They
-elected a president and secretary, drew up a few by-laws, and
-are now in good running order. They meet once in two
-weeks. Their membership was limited to twenty, which was
-quickly reached. The opinion of these members seems to
-be that this circle is as good, if not better, than any reported
-in your magazine. We all work with a will, cull the best from the
-programs given for the local circles, and add original ideas.
-Each member, in the order of his enrollment, makes out the
-program. This gives each one an opportunity to do his share,
-as well as to add his own ideas. We think this feature much
-superior to the general mode of allowing the ‘chair’ to prepare
-all programs.”——<span class="smcap">Amesbury</span> has a circle of unusual
-strength. We have been so fortunate as to receive a letter
-which gives an account of a delightful entertainment held by
-them in December. Our friend says: “Thinking perhaps
-you might like to hear from us once again, we are glad to
-write you of our pleasant and prosperous winter of literary
-work, brought about by the grand C. L. S. C. movement. Our
-meetings are held on the second and fourth Tuesday of each
-month, the programs comprise essays, music, readings and
-conversation, and are social and very delightful, showing a
-marked improvement on our ‘feeble beginning’ a year ago.
-Two new circles have been formed this winter, one, the ‘Delphic,’
-having forty or more members. On the 18th of December
-we held our first public meeting in honor of ‘Our Poet’s’
-(Mr. John G. Whittier) birthday, to which we invited the ‘Delphic’
-circle, also the ‘Thursday Evening Club,’ an older literary
-society of Amesbury, and other friends, about three hundred
-in all. Members from the three circles took part in the
-program, which had been carefully prepared. We were greatly
-pleased to receive from Mr. W. C. Wilkinson a paper entitled
-‘Whittier at the Receipt of Customs,’ which was read to us by
-his friend, the Rev. P. S. Evans, of Amesbury. As Mr. Whittier,
-owing to a previous engagement, could not be present with
-us, resolutions were drawn up and sent to him, as follows:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p>“‘<span class="smcap">Dear Mr. Whittier</span>;—The three literary circles, together with a
-goodly company of the citizens of Amesbury as their invited guests, are
-met to celebrate the return of your birthday. We have talked together
-of all that you have done and suffered in the cause of freedom and of
-truth. We have listened to many of your words, rendered by living
-voices. We have looked at your ‘counterfeit presentment’ as it has
-hung before us covered with evergreen—our New England laurel.
-Because you were not with us in person, to receive them, we desire to
-send you our most hearty congratulations on the completion of your
-seventy-seventh year. We rejoice that after your “Thirty Years’ War”
-you have been spared to enjoy so many years of peace, and that in the
-prolonged “Indian Summer,” the “Halcyon” days of your life, you are
-receiving a well deserved tribute of reverence and affection. We think
-ourselves happy to have known you, not merely as a poet, but as a citizen,
-a neighbor, and a friend.</p>
-
-<p>“‘We feel we can not better voice our sentiments than by retaliating
-upon you the words you once so fitly spoke of one who has been a co-laborer
-with you in the cause of humanity—the mild “Autocrat of the
-Breakfast Table.”</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">“‘“The world may keep his honored name,</div>
-<div class="verse">The wealth of all his varied powers;</div>
-<div class="verse">A stronger claim has love than fame,</div>
-<div class="verse">And he himself is only ours.”’</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>“‘In the name and by the request of three hundred citizens of your own
-village.’</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>“To which Mr. Whittier responded with the following charming
-letter:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p class="right">“‘<span class="smcap">Oak Knoll, Danvers, 12 Mo., 23, 1884.</span></p>
-
-<p>“‘<span class="smcap">My Dear Friend</span>:—Thy kind letter in behalf of the literary associations
-of Amesbury and Salisbury has just been received, and I hasten
-to express my thanks for the generous appreciation of my life work by
-“mine own people,” who know the man as well as the writer. That I
-am neither a prophet myself, nor the son of a prophet, may account
-perhaps for the rather remarkable fact that I am not without honor in
-my own country. I scarcely need say that among the many kind testimonials
-of regard which, on the occasion of my birthday, have reached
-me from both sides of the water, none have been more welcome than
-that conveyed in thy letter. If the praise awarded me is vastly beyond
-my due, I am none the less grateful for it.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_415" id="Page_415">[415]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“‘I know too well my own deficiencies and limitations, but my heart
-is warm with thankfulness to the Divine Providence which so early led
-me to consecrate the ability given me to the cause of heaven, freedom,
-and the welfare of my fellowmen. The measure of literary reputation
-which has come to me is as far beyond my expectation as my desert,
-and I am glad to share the benefit of it with my home friends and
-neighbors. With thanks to thyself personally, and to those whom thee
-represents, I am, very truly, thy friend,</p>
-
-<p class="right">“‘<span class="smcap">John G. Whittier</span>.’”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>The “Crescent” circle, of <span class="smcap">Wakefield</span>, grew out of a meeting
-held last September, and addressed by Mr. Fairchild, of
-Malden, in the interest of the Chautauqua movement. A
-circle was formed as a result of their meeting. About twenty
-members are now recorded on the books, although more than
-that proposed at first to join. The meetings are quite interesting,
-the programs being varied.——The “Alpha,” of
-<span class="smcap">Uxbridge</span>, is a new name on the books. This cutting from a
-recent letter is suggestive of their spirit: “We start with six
-members only, but all are <i>very</i> enthusiastic. We propose to
-do thorough work. Our object is improvement and genuine
-culture. We shall use the best means to bring in others to
-reap with us the golden harvest, and not be selfishly content
-with ‘our set.’”——There are in <span class="smcap">Fall River</span> about sixty
-members of the C. L. S. C., but the “Amity” circle is the first
-organization in the city. It at present numbers only thirteen
-members. A larger number certainly ought to be in the organization.
-The “Amity” will undoubtedly soon bring them
-in.——From <span class="smcap">Pittsfield</span> a friend writes: “I am happy to
-report to you a constantly increasing interest in the C. L. S.
-C. work in Pittsfield. Our circle reorganized in October for
-another year’s work. To the leadership of our efficient president,
-the Rev. Geo. Skene, we owe our present prosperity.
-We have now sixty-four members, twenty-three of whom belong
-to Class ’88. We have one graduate, our president, who
-took his diploma at Chautauqua last summer. We also have
-one member of Class ’85, making five classes represented in
-our circle. Our meetings are full of interest, and the attendance
-is excellent, the smallest number present at any meeting
-this year being twenty-five. Programs are arranged by a
-board of seven managers, who serve for three months. Singing,
-prayer, roll call, with responses by quotations and reading
-of minutes of last meeting, always form the opening exercises.
-We have also used the Chautauqua vesper service,
-and enjoyed it. Our pastor has had the Sunday vesper service
-several times, and we have found it very enjoyable in
-both church and circle. We have had, too, experiments in
-chemistry, illustrating some of the articles on that subject in
-<span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span>. As another specialty we have had
-‘pronunciation of Greek names,’ conducted as the old fashioned
-spelling matches. This proved highly entertaining, as
-well as instructive. We have recently changed our name to
-‘Bryant Chautauqua Circle.’ We think it particularly appropriate,
-as Cummington, the birthplace of Mr. Bryant, and
-where he spent much of his life, is situated only twenty miles
-from this town. Another circle has been formed here since
-November, taking as a president one of the members of our
-circle. They have at present thirty members. On Monday
-evening, February 2d, Dr. Vincent gave a lecture, both circles
-attending, and after the lecture a joint reception was given
-him. It is expected that arrangements will soon be made for
-occasionally holding union meetings. Thus the C. L. S. C.
-prospers in Pittsfield. We find that here, as elsewhere, the C.
-L. S. C. is promoting the best interests of the people.”——For
-several years the two or three members of the C. L. S. C.
-in <span class="smcap">Marshfield</span> have been accustomed to meet weekly for
-reading, study and conversation, but they never dignified the
-gathering by the name of a local circle. Within a few months
-they have organized under the name of the “Webster” circle,
-inasmuch as they are the nearest members of the C. L. S. C.
-to the home and burial place of that great statesman. They
-meet once in three weeks, and have a membership of eight or
-ten, including representatives of nearly every class.</p>
-
-<p>The “Phelps” local circle, of <span class="smcap">New Haven, Connecticut</span>,
-of the C. L. S. C., started in November with five Chautauquans,
-and now numbers twenty-six, with a number of others who are
-reading. So far they have kept very closely to the Greek part
-of the course, and in the meetings have had a number of map
-exercises, which they find very interesting.——<span class="smcap">West Winsted</span>,
-of the same state, has a year-old circle, from which we
-have had our first letter: “Our local circle numbers sixty, thirty
-of whom are regular members of the central Circle. Nearly all
-of these members belong to the ‘Pansy’ class, and are loyal
-to it. We have never labored under great difficulties, always
-having had good meetings. We have a most efficient lady
-president, to whom, in a large degree, the success of our circle
-is due. Early in the fall of 1883 a few enterprising men and
-women sent for the books for the year and commenced reading,
-hardly daring to hope that a circle would be formed. Our
-village is not lacking in literary circles, having an almost
-countless number of different kinds, and for this very reason
-it seemed that another one would not meet with success, but
-at the first call nearly forty responded. We organized our
-circle that night and continued the meetings during the year,
-taking up the work in essays, questions and readings, and observing,
-as far as possible, the memorial days, by appropriate
-exercises. This year we reorganized in October, and, if possible,
-have had more interesting meetings than last year.
-Some of our members who have a long distance to walk in
-order to attend have proved themselves filled with the Chautauqua
-enthusiasm by their regular attendance, whatever the
-condition of the weather. At our last meeting we had chemistry
-for the topic, and devoted the evening to experiments,
-having twenty or more, nearly all of which are given in <span class="smcap">The
-Chautauquan</span>. We have had sometimes, in addition to the
-regular literary work of the evening, a personation of some
-author given by a member, the remaining members guessing
-the author personated. One feature of our program for January
-20th was a match, similar to an old-fashioned spelling
-match, upon the questions on ‘Preparatory Greek Course’ in
-<span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span> for October and November. From the fact
-that new members join our ranks at almost every meeting, we
-are encouraged in the feeling that though popularity is not the
-winning feature, the good ‘Idea’ has taken deep root.”</p>
-
-<p>A <span class="smcap">Rhode Island</span> friend writes from <span class="smcap">Warren</span>: “To the
-numerous reports from local organizations, I am pleased to
-add a few lines from the ‘Delta’ circle, organized last October,
-in this part of ‘Little Rhody.’ It consists of nineteen
-‘regular’ and four ‘local’ members, assembling on
-the second and fourth Monday evenings of each month.
-Our president and vice president are enthusiastic Chautauquans,
-respectively of the classes of ’86 and ’87, the remainder
-belonging to the class of ’88. Our programs are arranged by
-‘the committee of instruction’ during the intermission, and
-reported to the circle before its adjournment each evening.
-In the arrangement of these great help is rendered by those
-published in <span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span>. Our memorial days have
-been pleasantly observed, and we shall shortly have a Sunday
-evening vesper service. We also intend to have a supper, the
-cooking of which is to be ‘<i>à la</i> <span class="smcap">Chautauquan</span>.’ While waiting
-for the Chautauqua songs our president has carefully prepared
-by hektograph, for our use, both notes and words of
-several selected from his copy, and we are delighted with the
-harmonies. Should we discover any new departure that
-would be helpful to local circles, we shall write again.”</p>
-
-<p>Almost as numerous reports reach us this month from the
-“Empire State” as we received last; several are of circles
-hitherto unknown to our columns. The “DeKalb” circle, of
-<span class="smcap">Brooklyn</span>, is one of these. It was organized in the fall of
-1883, with fifteen members. Since that time the membership
-has increased to twenty-six.——At <span class="smcap">Batavia</span> a local circle<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_416" id="Page_416">[416]</a></span>
-was formed in October last, and consists of about fifty members.
-These are mostly beginners in the Chautauqua course,
-with a few who will finish next year. They have done some
-good work in the way of essays, readings and experiments,
-and hope to do more. The work upon Greece has been made
-particularly interesting, from the fact that the leader, the Rev.
-C. A. Johnson, has described so faithfully many of these landmarks
-of the past as seen by him in recent years.——In October,
-1884, a new C. L. S. C. was organized at <span class="smcap">Whitestown</span>.
-It is called the “Hestia” circle, and has fifteen enthusiastic
-members, all ladies. At one meeting leaders are appointed
-to conduct the exercises on the various readings at the next
-meeting, having as many different leaders as there are different
-subjects in the readings for the week. The leaders are
-appointed in alphabetical order, so each member is required
-to lead in some exercise as often as once in every three or four
-weeks.——The “Lakeside” circle, of <span class="smcap">Fair Haven</span>, is to be
-counted “one of us.” Many readers have been at Lakeside,
-but the circle is a new organization. Thus far the work has
-been, most of it, on the Greek course; they take the questions
-in <span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span>, have essays on the leading characters,
-selections, questions, discussions, etc. The president drew
-for them a large map of Greece, which was a great help in fixing
-the position of the different places in their minds—an admirable
-plan, which more presidents would do well to follow.——A
-delightful circle of seventeen exists in the pleasant
-city of <span class="smcap">Rome</span>. Unfortunately, they have recently lost their
-president, a gentleman of scholarly taste, to whom the success
-of the first two years of their life was largely due.——At
-<span class="smcap">Little Genesee</span> there is an enthusiastic circle of sixteen
-members. At each circle one of the members presents a program
-for the next session, every member taking his turn in
-the order in which his name stands on the secretary’s book.
-Although not formally made a rule, it is understood that no
-member shall refuse to undertake any work assigned on the
-program. Chautauqua songs, roll call, and “Questions and
-Answers” from <span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span> are the standard features
-of the programs. Essays, discussions, select reading, questions,
-etc., furnish variety, and conversation is always in order.
-At the last circle the responses were to be from “Kitchen
-Science.” The responses assumed form, as well as expression,
-and a bountifully spread table gave opportunity for
-practical tests of kitchen science.</p>
-
-<p>At <span class="smcap">Latrobe, Pennsylvania</span>, a C. L. S. C. was properly organized,
-and went earnestly to work October 1, 1884, with
-twenty-five members. It being the first Chautauqua circle in
-the place some difficulties had to be overcome before getting
-rightly started. The circle is now under good progress, and
-doing a good work. They have enjoyable monthly meetings,
-where a regular program is carried out, consisting of readings,
-recitations, music, etc. The benefit gained by the members
-is far beyond expression. Both old and young are alike profited
-and pleased with the readings. October 22, 1884, the
-circle was called to mourn the sad death of Miss Alice Newcomer,
-one of their most beloved members.——A very interesting
-variation from the usual response by roll call has been introduced
-into a program of the <span class="smcap">Harrisburg</span> circle. It is that
-each person respond by mentioning some one important event
-which has occurred in the past month. This circle sends a
-very skilfully prepared program.——At <span class="smcap">Berwick</span> the C. L.
-S. C. pursues the plan of study laid down in <span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span>,
-finding it admirably adapted to complete the required
-reading in the given time. A friend telling of their prosperity
-says: “We have lost a few members by removals, and one or
-two have withdrawn, after a year’s study, but the backbone
-and sinew of the circle remain, and the body is growing vigorous
-and symmetrical. At the dawn of the Chautauqua
-year we were compelled to part with our learned and valued
-preceptor, Prof. L. H. Bower, who was called to the Dickinson
-College Preparatory School. The circle, with appropriate ceremony,
-presented him with a copy of ‘Knight’s Illuminated
-Pictorial Shakspere,’ in eight volumes, as a token of their appreciation
-of his services. His talented brother, Prof. A. V.
-Bower, was elected to succeed him as president of the circle,
-and the change was made without any friction whatever. We
-congratulate ourselves upon being members of the Class
-of ’86.”</p>
-
-<p>The outlook which a friend from <span class="smcap">Maryland</span> sends of the
-new circle at <span class="smcap">Frederick</span> is very encouraging: “Through the
-energy of a lady of the Methodist church we have organized a
-C. L. S. C. local circle under the name of ‘Mountain City.’
-We organized November 24, 1884, with nine members, elected
-a president, vice president, secretary and treasurer. We are
-glad to say we now have thirteen members, and hope soon to
-increase this number. We have enthusiastic meetings every
-week at the homes of the members; read in the circle some
-of <span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span> required readings, and carry out as far
-as practicable the programs for local circles, and expect to observe
-all memorial days.”</p>
-
-<p>We have just received a very encouraging report from the
-<span class="smcap">Madisonville, Ohio</span>, circle which was organized last year.
-They have twenty-five members, all of whom take a great interest
-in the circle. The committee of instruction, composed
-of the officers, has a full program prepared for each meeting.
-Two ministers of the town belong and take an active part.
-Miscellaneous questions have been introduced, and beside a
-question on the lesson, each member is required to bring one
-on outside matters. All questions remaining unanswered are
-distributed, to be answered at the following meeting. There
-is no doubt that if the interest in the circle still continues there
-will be a second circle started in the town next year.——At
-<span class="smcap">Defiance</span> a local circle was organized October 1st, with a
-membership of twenty, all of whom belong to the general Circle
-of the C. L. S. C. The president is the Rev. B. W. Slagle,
-pastor of the Presbyterian church in the town. They have
-prepared special programs for the memorial days, which have
-proved very delightful, as well as instructive. There is a good
-prospect of doubling the membership by next year.</p>
-
-<p>The annual report of the work of Calvary church, <span class="smcap">Detroit,
-Michigan</span>, for last year, includes an account of the work done
-by the “Calvary” circle, a society which has been made a part
-of the church organization. From it we learn that the society
-has thirty-three active members. They have held twenty-two
-meetings; the programs have included—essays, 36; select
-readings, 28; music—instrumental pieces 21, vocal pieces 17;
-general talks, 4; debates, 2. The regular <span class="smcap">Chautauquan</span> review
-questions have been taken up at each meeting. There has
-been a great deal of interest manifested in the meetings and a
-disposition on the part of officers and members to make them
-a success; every one who has attended them has been benefited,
-not only in the improvement of his or her mind, but also
-in some degree morally.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Indiana</span> reports two circles: the “Wide Awakes,” of <span class="smcap">Moscow</span>,
-a circle of four, and the “Laconia,” of <span class="smcap">Gumfield</span>. Some
-five years ago, when the “Chautauqua wave” was moving
-westward, it reached Gumfield in a modified form. Eight persons
-began taking <span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span>, but did not perfect an
-organization; only one of the number matriculated and kept
-up the required reading. In the fall of 1882 they began the
-work vigorously, organizing a promising circle. As time advanced
-their influence gradually widened and extended, until
-this year there are over twenty enthusiastic Chautauquans enrolled
-at the Plainfield office. The “Laconia” meets weekly,
-and has endeavored to make thoroughness one of the characteristics
-of its work. It is composed entirely of housekeepers,
-but they feel more than compensated for sacrifice of time by
-inspiration received from the reading and study. Most memorial
-days have been observed. By this means the public
-has become interested in the C. L. S. C., and a similar society
-has been organized among the young people.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_417" id="Page_417">[417]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>One of the most enthusiastic circles of <span class="smcap">Illinois</span> is a quartette
-of “Irrepressibles,” at <span class="smcap">Nokomio</span>. The circle had the
-novel experience of graduating in a body at Chautauqua last
-August. Now they are working more vigorously than ever,
-trying to cover their diplomas with seals.——<span class="smcap">Elgin</span> has four
-large circles, the result of the “Alpha” circle, an organization
-formed in December, 1883, with six members. Last fall this
-society increased its numbers to nine, and most zealous has
-been their work. A sad loss recently befell them in the death
-of one of the charter members, Miss Mary Warde.——The
-circle at <span class="smcap">Sullivan</span>, was organized in October, with a membership
-of eleven—one “Progressive” and ten “Plymouth
-Rocks.” They meet once a week at the homes of the members.
-The president appoints the members in turn to act as
-leaders, and the circle is composed of enthusiastic workers.
-Seven members visited New Orleans in the holidays, and two
-are spending this month in the “Crescent City.”——From
-<span class="smcap">Prophetstown</span> a friend writes: “We are a modest bouquet
-of ‘Pansies,’ counting only seven, but we feel the charm of the
-Chautauqua Idea, and propose to ‘Neglect not the gift that
-is in us.’ One of our number, Mrs. Amelia K. Seely, passed
-‘beyond the gates’ December 15, 1884. We sadly miss her
-cheery presence and unfailing interest in the work.”——Wednesday,
-January 21st, was a “red-letter” day for the
-Chautauquans of <span class="smcap">Hinsdale</span>. Their usual enthusiasm was
-raised to a high key by the long-looked-for visit to their suburb
-of Chancellor Vincent, who made a stop of two hours on his
-way to Aurora. He was received by the class, who were out
-in full force, at the residence of the secretary. A lunch was
-served, and the time was most agreeably and profitably spent
-in conversation upon topics of interest connected with the
-C. L. S. C.</p>
-
-<p>The “Oak Branch” circle was organized at <span class="smcap">Oakfield, Wisconsin</span>,
-in November. There are only seven members, and all
-are busy people, but they are zealous and interested in the work,
-and thankful that they may enjoy the benefits of the C. L. S.
-C. They meet once in two weeks, their circle being conducted
-similarly to others which have been reported in <span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span>.</p>
-
-<p>The “Centenary” local circle, of <span class="smcap">Minneapolis, Minnesota</span>,
-writes us: “Our city boasts no less than twelve circles, but
-Centenary, the pioneer circle, still lives, and while our
-members are about one half what they were when ours was
-the only one in the city, we are going on quietly and promptly
-with all our work, and expect to furnish ten graduates for the
-class of ’85. We have our cottage engaged for the coming
-Assembly at Chautauqua, and hope to send a good delegation
-next summer. We have some eight or nine members of the
-class of ’88, and several representatives of classes of ’86 and ’87.”——At
-<span class="smcap">Spring Valley</span>, a circle of seventeen members organized
-last fall, the president being from the class of ’84, but
-the members from ’88. The interest in the circle is decidedly
-increasing.</p>
-
-<p>The friends of <span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span> in <span class="smcap">Iowa</span> have been
-unusually kind this month. The following brief clippings
-from their letters give an excellent outlook on the work
-there: “A circle was organized at <span class="smcap">Afton</span>, in October last,
-consisting of eleven regular and fifteen local members. Although
-nearly a month behind in organizing, we intend continuing
-our society through July, so as to be able to commence
-the next year at the regular time. In making out our program
-for local circle work we usually follow the one given in <span class="smcap">The
-Chautauquan</span>, and find it a great help, but occasionally vary
-our exercises to adapt it to peculiar circumstances. The average
-attendance is good, and most of the members seem to
-take quite an interest. We hope the society will prove of
-lasting benefit to each member.”——“Through the energetic
-efforts of our village doctor, there was started last October a
-C. L. S. C. circle at <span class="smcap">Le Grand</span>, and we feel worthy of mention
-in your columns. The circle consists of eleven members of the
-great Circle, and four or five local members. We appoint a new
-teacher for each book. We are learning much, and very much
-enjoy the circles. We have chosen for our name ‘Philohellemon.’”——“The
-‘Ladies’ Chautauqua Reading Circle,’ of
-<span class="smcap">Sioux City, Iowa</span>, has seventeen members. We organized in
-October, 1884. Our society is full of earnest enthusiasm. We
-meet once a week, following with slight variations the programs
-suggested in <span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span>. Chemistry is a favorite
-study, made specially interesting by the fact that a gentleman
-familiar with the subject gives us lectures with illustrative
-experiments.”——The “Kelly Humboldt” circle, of <span class="smcap">Humboldt</span>,
-was reorganized last fall with renewed energy and vigor.
-About fourteen new members were admitted. “Our circle being
-now so large (numbering about twenty-six) as to almost
-require dividing, next season we intend organizing one in the adjoining
-town, just half a mile from here; then those living in that
-vicinity can withdraw from our circle to their own, leaving
-room for more to join us. To say that we enjoy our study,
-would be saying but very little; we can hardly wait for Monday
-evening to come, so anxious are we to meet and discuss
-the topics prepared for us. The programs arranged in <span class="smcap">The
-Chautauquan</span> are a great help to us, although we vary them
-a little, generally opening by prayer and music; then, as a
-sentiment, we each give a current event of the week. We observe
-all the memorial days, and are now making extensive
-preparations to hold a public meeting in the church on Longfellow’s
-day. So that we may not be confused with the other
-‘Humboldt’ circle, we have, in honor of the originator, Miss
-Mary Kelly, named our circle the ‘Kelly Humboldt’ C. L. S. C.”——<span class="smcap">Wapello</span>
-has the “Qui Vive” circle, which enjoys the
-work. It was organized in September, 1884, and is composed
-almost entirely of members of the class of ’88.——In a recent
-letter from <span class="smcap">Burlington</span>, we find some entertaining news
-from still another Iowa friend: “You always have something
-in the local circle column from Iowa. You know Iowa has two
-great staples, corn and Chautauquans, and we think you would
-surely be glad to hear of our flourishing circle, as well as others
-of the thousands of Chautauquans. Our circle was organized
-for the year’s work on Garfield day. We have the best circle
-we ever had, and are conceited enough to think there are no
-better ones anywhere. Our president is a busy lawyer. Indeed,
-our circle is composed of the busiest people in the town.
-We meet <i>regularly</i> and <i>promptly</i> every Monday evening. Burlington
-is a city of seven hills. Then you understand what
-regular meetings are here, for the circle is comprehensive and
-takes in all the hills. Our chemistry lessons are taught by a
-practicing physician who is a thorough chemist and teaches intelligently
-and enthusiastically. We have the willing coöperation
-of many of the educated people of the city, and when
-necessary for either our own advancement, or more perfect instruction
-on a topic, we find them ready to give us an address
-or essay. Our most enthusiastic members are graduates of
-colleges, or advanced academies. We recognize each memorial
-day. One of our daily papers freely makes any announcement
-we have to make, and aids us all it can. I can not undertake
-to tell you the good our circle is doing for us individually.
-Some of us, deprived of early advantages, can not be
-too thankful for the C. L. S. C. It is an influence for good that
-enters into our everyday life, and overbalances and counteracts
-some of the <i>other</i> influences that every soul must encounter.”</p>
-
-<p>With an excellent program of a regular meeting has come
-to us a notice of a circle at <span class="smcap">Hatboro, Tennessee</span>. The secretary
-says: “With great pleasure I report a local circle in
-our little town. We started with two members; we now enroll
-thirteen. We all are deeply interested, and think the Chautauqua
-Idea a grand one. We call ourselves ‘Golden Flower’
-(Chrysanthemum) local circle, and our badges are clusters of
-chrysanthemums.”</p>
-
-<p>From <span class="smcap">Greenville, South Carolina</span>, come very cheering<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_418" id="Page_418">[418]</a></span>
-reports: “Our circle was organized in the fall of 1883, and we
-are therefore of the ‘Pansy’ order. We have twelve members,
-six young ladies and six young men. Most of the members
-are college graduates, and take the course to keep bright in
-their studies. We adhere, with occasional changes, to the following
-order of business: First, roll call and reading of minutes;
-second, examination of question box, in which each
-member is required to deposit at least three questions, bearing
-directly on the subjects for the time in the regular course;
-third, an essay; fourth, reading by two members appointed by
-the president; fifth, twenty minutes allowed for informal discussion
-of the lessons. We of course celebrate the memorial
-days with appropriate ceremonies. Some additional interest
-is given by having some extra literary entertainment. A Dickens
-party we had recently was very enjoyable. The book we
-selected was ‘Our Mutual Friend.’ Each member represented
-one of the leading characters in the book. Besides we acted
-several scenes, which added much to the enjoyment. We are
-all enthusiastic in our interest in Chautauqua, and fully determined
-to finish the course.”</p>
-
-<p>At <span class="smcap">Atlanta, Georgia</span>, there is a circle of fifteen in West
-End, the largest suburb of Atlanta. The Rev. H. C. Crumley,
-a pastor of the city, deserves the credit of founding this organization.</p>
-
-<p>A very kindly and graceful courtesy has been extended to
-those Chautauquans visiting New Orleans, by the “Longfellow”
-circle, of that city. It is an invitation prettily framed, which
-has been hung in the Chautauqua alcove. The placard reads:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p class="center">C. L. S. C.</p>
-
-<p class="center">GREETING OF THE LONGFELLOW CIRCLE OF NEW ORLEANS.</p>
-
-<p><i>To any and all Fellow-Chautauquans who may be visiting
-The World’s Industrial and Cotton Centennial Exposition,
-we offer a cordial invitation to attend the meetings of our
-Local Circle, which are held every Tuesday afternoon, at
-five o’clock, at No. 393 South Rampart Street, corner of
-Erato Street.</i></p>
-
-<p><i>Also, we extend a like invitation to all Resident Chautauquans
-to join our Circle, wishing to awaken renewed
-interest in the Great Movement.</i></p>
-
-<ul>
-<li><span class="smcap">O. F. Groat</span>, Secretary.</li>
-<li><span class="smcap">J. Hasam</span>, Cor. Sec’y.</li>
-<li><span class="smcap">K. L. Riggs</span>, President.</li>
-</ul>
-
-<p class="right"><span class="smcap">New Orleans</span>, January 26, 1885.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>A very encouraging report of the circle at <span class="smcap">Eureka Springs,
-Arkansas</span>, has reached us: “We organized the Eureka
-Springs Chautauqua Literary and Scientific Circle October 1st,
-1884. Our circle has about thirty members, half of whom are
-reading the books. We follow the programs given in <span class="smcap">The
-Chautauquan</span>. A great many spectators attend. Everybody
-is interested in our circle. We are talking of establishing a
-lecture course at this place for the summer months, probably in
-July, in the interest of the Chautauqua Circle. We always have
-between 4,000 and 6,000 people here, in the summer many
-more. We have very suitable grounds, near the purest water
-in the place. Our town is easy of access from Missouri and
-Kansas, as well as from other parts of this State. So far as
-known, we are the only organized Chautauquans in this State.
-Probably many persons are reading the course at different
-places, but we know of no circle.”</p>
-
-<p>From <span class="smcap">Clarksville, Missouri</span>, a lady writes: “This Pansy
-bed by the ‘Father of Waters’ has much for which to be thankful:
-Fifteen earnest workers compose our number. We are
-all teachers and scholars, by turns. We attempt as much
-thoroughness as practicable in the readings, brought out by
-recitations and conversation. We carry out some parts of the
-programs in <span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span>. Some of the Pansies hope
-to be transplanted for a time to Chautauqua in ’87.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Ottawa, Kansas</span>, circle was organized in time for the October
-work, with a membership of fourteen. “Our circle has
-increased, until now we are twenty-eight in number. Our
-meetings, held twice a month, are both pleasant and profitable,
-each member faithfully doing his part. We respond to
-roll call by quotations or class mottoes. We find the programs
-in <span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span> quite beneficial. The essays, recitations
-and music form a pleasing variety. We adopted the
-question match, also the question box, and find these not only
-amusing but profitable. This month we will try some of the
-chemical experiments in connection with a lecture. We are
-all looking forward to the Sunday-school Assembly, which
-meets here in June, and to the meetings of the circle conducted
-by the Rev. Hurlbut. The spirit of the C. L. S. C. is
-spreading, and we hope to report a large circle to you next
-year.”</p>
-
-<p>A friend writes from <span class="smcap">Seattle, Washington Territory</span>:
-“I notice in your January number a communication from Mr.
-K. A. Burnell, in which he states that at Seattle and Tacoma he
-found but a single reader and one family reading the Chautauqua
-course, a statement from which one might infer that he
-was indeed so much under the ‘shadow of Mount Tacoma’ as
-to obscure his vision. There are at Seattle as many as forty
-readers, at least, who have been pursuing the Chautauqua
-course of study since October last. There are three regularly
-organized circles in this place, holding weekly meetings, and
-a general semi-monthly meeting in which the members of all
-the circles join. One of the circles, named ‘Alki,’ has a membership
-of sixteen. This circle has the honor and advantage
-of numbering among its members a noted linguist and scientist
-in the person of Dr. John C. Sundberg. Considerable interest
-is being awakened throughout the whole of the Puget
-Sound country in the Chautauqua readings, and it would not
-be surprising if, in another year, the regular Chautauquans
-in this section of country are numbered by hundreds.”</p>
-
-<p>The “Washakie” circle, of <span class="smcap">Evanston, Wyoming</span>, was
-organized on the 10th of last October. The names of twenty-six
-members have been enrolled. Starting late, they were behind
-with their studies until lately, consequently the program
-for each week as laid down in <span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span> was not followed.
-The meetings, however, have been very interesting.
-The leaders appointed for the different subjects on each evening
-came well prepared. Essays on Milton, Burns, and others,
-have been read. Prof. Halleck, of the public schools, has
-delivered short lectures on the scientific subjects. Prof.
-Capen has given experiments in chemistry. Music, and recitations
-from the classic authors by a fine elocutionist, have
-rendered the meetings more entertaining. The enthusiasm has
-grown with the year.</p>
-
-<p>The first circle that was regularly organized in <span class="smcap">Portland,
-Oregon</span>, was that established by the Y. M. C. A., last October.
-This circle is composed of about twenty members. The other
-two circles which have joined the class of ’88 are those connected
-with the Taylor Street and Grace Methodist Episcopal
-Churches. The latter was organized during the month of December,
-and is composed of about twenty-five members, who
-seem to be now deeply interested in their work. The former
-is the largest circle in the State, composed of about forty active
-and progressive young men and women, who are now deeply
-interested in their studies, and a notable fact of this circle is
-that there is no restraint in thought by the members, as is often
-the case where freedom of opinion is withheld, thus repelling
-the progress of the meeting. The able secretary of their
-circle deserves great credit for the time and trouble he has exercised
-performing that office, and volunteering to assume all
-responsibility with regard to books, dues, and pamphlets. The
-Rev. G. W. Chandler, the efficient president, is the originator
-of this circle. Their efforts and untiring energies have made
-this circle most interesting, and have brought into it some of
-the best scholars in the State. By perseverance and thorough
-study, with the watchword “Forward,” they are determined to
-ever press onward and upward in this grand work, and receive
-their reward.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_419" id="Page_419">[419]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 id="THE_C_L_S_C_CLASSES">THE C. L. S. C. CLASSES.</h2>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<h3>CLASS OF 1885.—“THE INVINCIBLES.”</h3>
-
-<p class="center">“<i>Press on, reaching after those things which are before.</i>”</p>
-
-<h4>OFFICERS.</h4>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p><i>President</i>—J. B. Underwood, Meriden, Conn.</p>
-
-<p><i>Vice President</i>—C. M. Nichols, Springfield, Ohio.</p>
-
-<p><i>Treasurer</i>—Miss Carrie Hart, Aurora, Ind.</p>
-
-<p><i>Secretary</i>—Miss M. M. Canfield, Washington, D. C.</p>
-
-<p><i>Executive Committee</i>—Officers of the class.</p>
-
-<p>Class badges may be procured of either President or Treasurer.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>The members of the Chautauqua circles have now a third
-of a year only in which to finish their readings and fill out
-their papers for the current year. So far as we have been
-able to learn, a much larger number of persons have been
-pursuing the C. L. S. C. course this year than have been in
-the ranks during any previous corresponding period. Those
-connected with journalism, in looking over their exchanges,
-rarely pick up a local paper that does not have some reference
-to the doings of a local Chautauqua circle. Then it has been
-discovered that those who read the Chautauqua books and
-periodicals have been led to go beyond the lines, and to search
-for intellectual treasures in “pastures new”—in books, reviews,
-public journals of character and excellence, and, also,
-to seek association with people of culture. Indeed, it is pleasantly
-and encouragingly apparent that the Chautauqua system
-is becoming, from month to month, broader, deeper, more
-far-reaching in its wholesome and really powerful influence,
-in promoting moral as well as intellectual culture.</p>
-
-<p>The members of the Class of 1885 should bear these facts in
-mind, and accept the special degree of responsibility involved.
-Let this class be not only the best, but the largest that has
-ever passed within the Golden Gate on Commencement day!
-Why should it not be three thousand strong? If we begin
-now, in April, to make our plans and preparations, perhaps
-we can all “get there,” and present a solid phalanx of honest,
-thorough, intelligent and aggressive Chautauquans, marching
-toward and through the Gate and into the Hall, with banners
-and songs, that will promise largely and grandly for the moral
-and mental improvement of thousands of communities
-throughout the land.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>“What would be the result if we report to Miss Canfield
-our intentions to be at Chautauqua to receive our diplomas,
-and something should happen to prevent?”</p>
-
-<p>The only result would be that those who expected you would
-be as sadly disappointed as you would be in not being able to
-come. The fact that you intended to come and were detained
-by good cause would be accepted, and you would “stand excused,”
-and would receive your diploma in good time.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Missouri.</span>—As one of the “Invincibles,” I would add my
-testimony with others of Class ’85 as having received pleasure
-and benefit beyond computation in pursuing the C. L. S. C.
-course. I commenced alone, but after a few months succeeded
-in organizing a circle for ’86, which keeps up a large membership,
-persistent and thorough in study, with rigid class
-drill; also remembrance of memorial days.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Pennsylvania.</span>—What a well-spring of joy is the C. L. S. C.
-in the homes of those who have not enjoyed the advantages
-of a liberal education! The students born of this great
-movement are rising up all over this great land with blessings
-for the founder of this happy Circle. I am reading alone, as
-there are no members near me, but at some little distance I
-have interested some bright young friends of mine in the work,
-and I am glad to know that they are so much pleased with it.</p>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<h3>CLASS OF 1886.—“THE PROGRESSIVES.”</h3>
-
-<p class="center">“<i>We study for light, to bless with light.</i>”</p>
-
-<h4>CLASS ORGANIZATION.</h4>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p><i>President</i>—The Rev. B. P. Snow, Biddeford, Maine.</p>
-
-<p><i>Vice Presidents</i>—The Rev. J. C. Whitley, Salisbury, Maryland; Mr. L.
-F. Houghton, Peoria, Illinois; Mr. Walter Y. Morgan, Cleveland,
-Ohio; Mrs. Delia Browne, Louisville, Kentucky; Miss Florence Finch,
-Palestine, Texas.</p>
-
-<p><i>Secretary</i>—The Rev. W. L. Austin, New Albany, Ind.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>The new badge, bearing the motto and emblem of the class,
-is now ready to be sent out. The design meets hearty approval.
-The cost, including postage, will be 15 cents. For
-badges, address the president or the secretary.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>The New England branch of the class will have superior
-headquarters at the Framingham Assembly in July. This important
-section of ’86 have plans and arrangements in view
-that will insure a most pleasant and successful class gathering
-at the Assembly.</p>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<h3>CLASS OF 1887.—“THE PANSIES.”</h3>
-
-<p class="center">“<i>Neglect not the gift that is in thee.</i>”</p>
-
-<h4>OFFICERS.</h4>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p><i>President</i>—The Rev. Frank Russell, Mansfield, Ohio.</p>
-
-<p><i>Western Secretary</i>—K. A. Burnell, Esq., 150 Madison Street, Chicago,
-Ill.</p>
-
-<p><i>Eastern Secretary</i>—J. A. Steven, M.D., 164 High Street, Hartford,
-Conn.</p>
-
-<p><i>Treasurer</i>—Either Secretary, from either of whom badges may be
-procured.</p>
-
-<p><i>Executive Committee</i>—The officers of the class.</p>
-
-<p>Class paper may be procured from Mr. Henry Hart, Atlanta, Ga.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>The attention of the members of ’87 is called to the letter by
-Mrs. Alden in the March number of <span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span>,
-page 353.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>President Russell had charge of the Sunday-school Normal
-Department at the Florida Chautauqua, Lake de Funiak, and
-is one of the Board of Managers.</p>
-
-<p>At Milton, Mass., recently, the representatives of the Class
-of ’87 had a table at a church fair and cleared over $100.</p>
-
-<p>It is our painful duty to record the death of two members of
-the Class of 1887: Miss Mary Dayton, of Binghamton, N. Y.,
-and Mrs. Lou L. Dunn, of Bonham, Texas. The deepest sympathy
-not only of the class, but of all members of the C. L. S.
-C. is with the sorrowing friends.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="smcap">To New England ’87s.</span>—The second mid-year reunion of
-New England ’87s will be held on Friday, April 3d, in Union
-Congregational Chapel, Stewart Street, Providence, R. I.
-The business meeting will be held at half-past one o’clock p.
-m.; the literary and musical entertainment at two o’clock. A
-social reunion will precede and follow the regular exercises.
-Will all New England members of ’87 please make a special
-effort to attend this reunion? Providence Chautauquans are
-enthusiastic, and will doubtless strive to make this meeting
-thoroughly enjoyable. Let us, by our presence, show our appreciation
-of their efforts. Our Providence classmates have
-kindly offered to meet at the station any strangers who will
-communicate the hour of their arrival to Miss Nellie F.
-Crocker, 6 Kepler Street, Providence.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_420" id="Page_420">[420]</a></span></p>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<h3>CLASS OF 1888.—“THE PLYMOUTH ROCKS.”</h3>
-
-<p class="center">“<i>Let us be seen by our deeds.</i>”</p>
-
-<h4>CLASS ORGANIZATION.</h4>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p><i>President</i>—The Rev. A. E. Dunning, D.D., Boston, Mass.</p>
-
-<p><i>Vice Presidents</i>—Prof. W. N. Ellis, 108 Gates Avenue, Brooklyn, N.
-Y.; the Rev. Wm. G. Roberts, Bellevue, Ohio.</p>
-
-<p><i>Secretary</i>—Miss M. E. Taylor, Cleveland, Ohio.</p>
-
-<p><i>Treasurer</i>—Miss M. E. Taylor, Cleveland, Ohio.</p>
-
-<p>All items for this column should be sent, in condensed form, to the
-Rev. C. C. McLean, St. Augustine, Florida.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>The “Chautauqua Quartette,” Avon, Indiana, organized
-December 5, 1884, writes: “We are four country girls, living
-two to three miles apart, but hold weekly meetings, alternately,
-at our homes.”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>In Harlem, N. Y., is a class of seven, organized October 1,
-1884. The secretary writes: “Each member in turn takes
-charge, assigning lessons and questioning the class.” In addition
-to the required study they take some prominent author,
-giving biography and quoting from works.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>From Portland, Maine, we learn that they have a large and
-interesting circle, meeting semi-monthly.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>The “Castalian,” of Philadelphia, ten members, was organized
-October, 1884. This circle thinks too many members make
-each other timid, and therefore advocates many circles of
-few members. They are fortunate in having a president who
-makes chemical experiments.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>A flourishing circle of fifty members was organized in Batavia,
-New York, October, 1884.</p>
-
-<p>The Rev. J. D. Gillilan, of Toocle, Utah, writes that “here
-among the Mormons a class of three is formed; one of the
-number was a Mormon when he joined the circle, but has
-since united himself with the M. E. Church.” There is a flourishing
-circle in Salt Lake City.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>The “Wilkesbarre” circle, of Wilkesbarre, Pa., was organized
-October, 1884, with sixty members. This circle meets every
-alternate week, each member responding to roll call with a
-quotation from the “readings.” A physician makes fine experiments
-in chemistry.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>A circle has been organized in Topeka, Kan., with thirty members.
-The secretary says: “Most of us are busy girls, figuring
-as teachers, office and store clerks, but find time to take the
-reading course thoroughly, and hope to graduate with the 88s.”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Kansas.</span>—“I am well pleased with our class motto and
-name. I am a sculptor by profession and wish a higher aim,
-a sculptor of life, for I have caught that angel vision. I am
-pursuing my studies with energy and enthusiasm, and life to
-me is more pleasant since I have taken up the course. Whenever
-I feel vexed and comfortless I only need to read over
-Chancellor Vincent’s articles in <span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span> for encouragement.”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>From Buffalo, Pa., a friend says that “<i>all</i> dislike the Class
-name, and desire it changed.”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>Toronto, Canada, raises a protesting voice against our name,
-saying, “I am well aware of the fact that the name stands on
-history’s page as a synonym for grand and noble qualities,
-but I am forced nevertheless to object to it on account of its
-‘fowl’ association. Could we not have a name <i>unwinged</i>,
-<i>unplumed</i>, and of no marketable value.”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>One of the ’88s, who is reading alone, tells us, “In the study
-of the past four months I have received more instruction and
-enjoyment than in any amount of the general reading done in
-the same number of years.”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>“Vincent” circle, of Portland, Maine, sends us an interesting
-program of a meeting held January 16th. A most exquisite
-Plymouth Rock engraving graces its first page.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>“Longfellow” circle, of Eastern Promontory, Portland,
-Maine, sends us their constitution and by-laws, including the
-names of its 103 members.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Kansas.</span>—I am pursuing the course alone, and feel that I
-need the stimulus of outside aid and correspondence. Since
-my school days were over my reading has been of too miscellaneous
-a character to result in the profit it should have
-done. I am enjoying the Greek History and the Preparatory
-Course very much. My husband has been brushing up his
-knowledge of the Greek language, and comes to my assistance
-occasionally, so it is a source of profit to him as well. Even
-my eleven-year-old boy has caught the spirit, and begs me to
-mark all the battles for him to read, and is learning the Greek
-alphabet. I am pleased with the name of our class—“The
-Plymouth Rocks.” My ancestors were among those that
-landed on the bleak old Rock, and I know something of the
-sturdy perseverance and uprightness of their character. I can
-only hope that the “mantle” of those old pilgrims will fall
-upon us as “Plymouth Rocks,” and that, like them, we may
-grow strong in wisdom and goodness.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<h2 id="QUESTIONS_AND_ANSWERS">QUESTIONS AND ANSWERS.</h2>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<p class="center">BY A. M. MARTIN,<br />
-General Secretary C. L. S. C.</p>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<h3>I.—SEVENTY-FIVE QUESTIONS AND ANSWERS ON “SHORT HISTORY
-OF THE REFORMATION.”</h3>
-
-<p>1. Q. What is the Reformation? A. It is that great religious
-and intellectual revolution which marks the boundary line between
-the Middle Ages and the Modern Period.</p>
-
-<p>2. Q. What was the first aim of the reformers, and which
-proved a total failure? A. The purification of the church
-within itself, and by its own servants.</p>
-
-<p>3. Q. What was the next step, and one which succeeded?
-A. To withdraw from the fold, and establish an independent
-confession, and a separate ecclesiastical structure.</p>
-
-<p>4. Q. Who planted the first seeds of Protestantism in France?
-A. The Paris reformers.</p>
-
-<p>5. Q. Who were three prominent Paris reformers? A.
-D’Ailly, Gerson, and Clémanges.</p>
-
-<p>6. Q. What was the most obvious cause of the failure of the
-Paris theologians? A. They never withdrew from the Roman
-Catholic Church, or took steps to establish a separate ecclesiastical
-organization.</p>
-
-<p>7. Q. How did the Mystics of the fourteenth and fifteenth
-centuries arise? A. As a spiritual reaction against the supremacy
-of the scholastic philosophy.</p>
-
-<p>8. Q. What was the central scene and native country of the
-most notable reformatory Mystics? A. Germany.</p>
-
-<p>9. Q. What four names are prominent among the early Mystics
-of Germany? A. Eckart, Ruysbroek, Suso, and Tauler.</p>
-
-<p>10. Q. Who were the two most notable members of the
-school of St. Victor? A. Hugo and Richard.</p>
-
-<p>11. Q. What was the chief of important general movements,
-without connection with prominent characters, in progress to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_421" id="Page_421">[421]</a></span>
-hasten the approach of reform? A. In the field of intellectual
-progress, was the revival of literature, which took the name of
-Humanism.</p>
-
-<p>12. Q. In this revival, what were the studies, as distinguished
-from the theological themes which had long held sway in all
-the universities and learned circles of Europe? A. They were
-purely human and literary.</p>
-
-<p>13. Q. Who were three prominent champions of the new
-Humanism? A. John Reuchlin, of Germany, Erasmus, of
-Rotterdam, and Thomas More, of England.</p>
-
-<p>14. Q. What three councils were formal acknowledgments, on
-the part of the Roman Catholic Church, of the evils within its
-pale, and the necessity of relief from them? A. The councils
-of Pisa, Kostnitz, and Basel.</p>
-
-<p>15. Q. With what bitter controversy did the fourteenth century
-open? A. A controversy between the church and the
-leading civil rulers. It was the old question of authority—whether
-pope or king was the supreme head.</p>
-
-<p>16. Q. Why was the Avignon papacy popularly called by
-the Romanists “The Babylonian Captivity?” A. From the
-light in which it was held as an ecclesiastical calamity, and
-from its continuance of nearly seventy years—from 1309 to 1377.</p>
-
-<p>17. Q. Although the three councils failed of their prime object,
-what fact did they reveal to the world? A. The fact that
-no prospect for reform could exist in any new council.</p>
-
-<p>18. Q. What way was it now clear was the only one open for
-improvement? A. The independence of the individual reformer.</p>
-
-<p>19. Q. What now became the theater for the Reformation?
-A. Central Germany.</p>
-
-<p>20. Q. Who responded to the universal aspiration for a leader
-to guide into new and safe paths? A. Martin Luther.</p>
-
-<p>21. Q. When and where was Luther born? A. In Eisleben,
-Saxony, November 11, 1483.</p>
-
-<p>22. Q. What wealthy lady befriended Luther in youth, and
-gave him the advantages of an excellent teacher? A. Ursula
-Cotta.</p>
-
-<p>23. Q. After finishing his course at the University of Erfurt,
-what did Luther then do? A. He bade the world farewell, and
-in 1505 entered the Augustinian cloister as a monk.</p>
-
-<p>24. Q. In 1508 to what place was Luther called as professor?
-A. To Wittenberg.</p>
-
-<p>25. Q. After two years in Wittenberg to what city did he
-make a visit? A. Rome.</p>
-
-<p>26. Q. What effect did this visit have upon Luther? A. He
-took with him, when he left Rome, an abhorrence of the superstition
-and immorality of the church at its fountainhead,
-which never left him.</p>
-
-<p>27. Q. In what bill of charges did Luther subsequently arraign
-the church? A. His ninety-five theses, directed principally
-against the sale of indulgences.</p>
-
-<p>28. Q. In an “Address to the Nobles of the German People”
-what did Luther declare which led to his excommunication
-by the pope? A. That the time had come when Germany
-ought to cast off allegiance to Rome, to start out on an independent
-religious and national life, and take care of its own
-interests.</p>
-
-<p>29. Q. Before what body was Luther summoned, where his
-doctrines were condemned, and the sentence of ban and
-double ban pronounced against him? A. The Diet of
-Worms.</p>
-
-<p>30. Q. To what place was Luther taken for safety after leaving
-Worms? A. To the Wartburg Castle, where he remained
-for eight months.</p>
-
-<p>31. Q. About how many separate writings appeared from
-the pen of Luther? A. About one hundred and twenty, among
-them a translation of the Bible.</p>
-
-<p>32. Q. To whom did Luther commit the task of formulating
-a systematic treatment of doctrine? A. To his nearest friend,
-Melancthon.</p>
-
-<p>33. Q. Of what do the annals of literature and theology not
-furnish a more beautiful illustration than we find in the case
-of Luther and Melancthon? A. Of the manner in which a
-great work can be performed by the combined action of two
-men.</p>
-
-<p>34. Q. To what were the labors of Melancthon directed, in
-the great cause of reform? A. To the improvement of the
-methods of study in the university of Wittenberg. He urged
-the students to the fountain-heads of truth, and placed before
-them the Bible as the only source of real knowledge.</p>
-
-<p>35. Q. What five princes of Saxony were devoted friends of
-the new movement for the liberation of the conscience? A.
-George, Maurice, Frederick the Wise, John, and John Frederick.</p>
-
-<p>36. Q. Who was the leader of the new movement in Switzerland?
-A. Ulric Zwingli.</p>
-
-<p>37. Q. Into what did the religious conflict in the eastern
-cantons of Switzerland grow? A. Into an appeal to arms, that
-resulted in civil war.</p>
-
-<p>38. Q. What followed the battle of Cappel, where Zwingli
-was killed? A. The peace of Cappel, which declared that
-each canton should decide its religion for itself.</p>
-
-<p>39. Q. What name is most prominent in connection with the
-Reformation in French Switzerland? A. John Calvin.</p>
-
-<p>40. Q. What work did Calvin publish in 1536, which became
-the doctrinal standard for all the Reformed Churches of the
-Continent and Great Britain? A. “The Institutes of the Christian
-Religion.”</p>
-
-<p>41. Q. By what great reformer was the work, left unfinished
-by Calvin at his death, taken up? A. Beza.</p>
-
-<p>42. Q. In the history of the Reformation, what honor belongs
-to England? A. That of having discovered the need of a universal
-religious regeneration in Europe.</p>
-
-<p>43. Q. In whom did the beginnings of reform in England
-center? A. Wyckliffe, who was born about 1324.</p>
-
-<p>44. Q. What were Wyckliffe’s greatest services to the coming
-Reformation? A. First, his translation of the New Testament,
-and afterward the whole Bible, into English.</p>
-
-<p>45. Q. What was a striking feature of the English Reformation,
-from the outside? A. Its political character.</p>
-
-<p>46. Q. What three names are prominent in the first period of
-the English Reformation? A. Colet, Sir Thomas More, and
-Cranmer.</p>
-
-<p>47. Q. What was the most powerful single agency in bringing
-about the English Reformation? A. The publication of
-the Bible in the language of the people.</p>
-
-<p>48. Q. What followed the ascension of Mary to the throne
-of England? A. A violent persecution of the Protestants,
-during which, it is estimated, about eight hundred persons were
-burned at the stake.</p>
-
-<p>49. Q. What faith did Elizabeth, the successor of Mary, recognize
-as national? A. Protestantism.</p>
-
-<p>50. Q. From what sect did the puritan Pilgrims of America
-come? A. The Brownist sect.</p>
-
-<p>51. Q. Who was the first Protestant leader in Scotland? A.
-Patrick Hamilton. He suffered martyrdom.</p>
-
-<p>52. Q. Who was the natural successor to Hamilton? A.
-John Knox. By the time of his death the triumph of the Scotch
-Reformation was complete.</p>
-
-<p>53. Q. What was the chief aim of the Brothers of the Common
-Life, a society of the Netherlands, founded in 1384? A.
-To improve the morals of the people, and looked intently upon
-a thorough reform.</p>
-
-<p>54. Q. What preparation was there for the Reformation in
-the Netherlands? A. In no land was there such a complete
-and popular preparation for the Reformation as in the Netherlands.</p>
-
-<p>55. Q. What character did the Reformation assume in the
-Netherlands? A. A political character.</p>
-
-<p>56. Q. What order against all sympathy with the Protestant<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_422" id="Page_422">[422]</a></span>
-cause was made binding upon the Netherlands? A. The Edict
-of Worms.</p>
-
-<p>57. Q. Who, of Rotterdam, belongs to the front rank of reformers?
-A. Erasmus.</p>
-
-<p>58. Q. How alone was Erasmus important as a Reformer?
-A. As a profound and versatile scholar.</p>
-
-<p>59. Q. What is one of the most unpleasant chapters in the
-history of the Reformation? A. The unfraternal relationship
-between Erasmus and Luther.</p>
-
-<p>60. Q. From what did the real danger to the French Protestants
-come? A. From a firm alliance between the authorities
-at Rome and the French throne.</p>
-
-<p>61. Q. What were the Protestants in France called? A.
-Huguenots.</p>
-
-<p>62. Q. What great massacre of the Protestants took place
-in France on the 24th of August, 1572? A. The Massacre of
-St. Bartholomew.</p>
-
-<p>63. Q. By whom were the Italians prepared to give hearty
-credence to the new doctrines of the Reformation? A. Savonarola.</p>
-
-<p>64. Q. What causes led to the failure of the Reformation in
-the Spanish Peninsula? A. Protestantism was largely a measure
-of scholars and thinkers, while the persistent energy of the
-Spanish authorities, reinforced from Rome, made thorough
-work of suppression.</p>
-
-<p>65. Q. In what was the groundwork of Protestantism in the
-three Scandinavian countries—Sweden, Denmark, and Norway—already
-laid? A. In the dissatisfaction of the people
-with the prevailing order of civil and ecclesiastical government.</p>
-
-<p>66. Q. Into what two Scandinavian countries was the Reformation
-introduced and formally adopted? A. Sweden and
-Norway.</p>
-
-<p>67. Q. Who was the great reformer of Bohemia? A. John
-Huss.</p>
-
-<p>68. Q. As what did his followers afterward become known,
-under Zinzendorf? A. As the United Brethren.</p>
-
-<p>69. Q. What was the political effect of the Reformation? A.
-To elevate the people to a thirst for liberty, and a higher and
-purer citizenship.</p>
-
-<p>70. Q. Of what did the Reformation become the mother?
-A. Of republics.</p>
-
-<p>71. Q. To what does the American Union owe a large measure
-of its genesis? A. To the European struggle for reform.</p>
-
-<p>72. Q. What was one of not the least benefits conferred upon
-the world by the Reformation? A. The promotion of learning.</p>
-
-<p>73. Q. What sprang up throughout Germany, as an immediate
-fruit of the Reformation? A. Universities.</p>
-
-<p>74. Q. By what celebration have the memories of the Reformation
-been recently renewed? A. By the celebration on
-November 11, 1883, of the four hundredth anniversary of the
-birth of Luther.</p>
-
-<p>75. Q. How was the day observed? A. With becoming festivities
-in all the Protestant countries of the world.</p>
-
-<h3>II.—TWENTY-FIVE QUESTIONS AND ANSWERS ON “CHEMISTRY,”
-FROM PAGE 157 TO THE END OF THE BOOK.</h3>
-
-<p>76. Q. What are some of the most important uses of borax?
-A. In the manufacture of porcelain, and in other of the industrial
-arts, and as a remedial agency in medicine.</p>
-
-<p>77. Q. In addition to the well known substances sodium and
-oxygen, what element does borax contain? A. A special and
-peculiar element, called boron.</p>
-
-<p>78. Q. What are two of the most important sources of borax?
-A. Borax Lake, in California, and the borax lagos in
-Tuscany.</p>
-
-<p>79. Q. What element constitutes about eighty per cent. of
-our atmospheric air? A. Nitrogen.</p>
-
-<p>80. Q. As a simple and uncombined substance, by what is
-nitrogen characterized? A. By extreme inactivity. It does
-not burn; it does not support combustion; it can not be made
-to enter into chemical union with other substances, except by
-specially devised and circuitous processes.</p>
-
-<p>81. Q. Of what is nitrogen a constituent? A. Of a very
-large number of compounds, which are themselves often characterized
-by a high degree of activity.</p>
-
-<p>82. Q. What are two important compounds of nitrogen? A.
-Ammonia gas and nitric acid.</p>
-
-<p>83. Q. In addition to oxygen and nitrogen what are some of
-the other substances always present in atmospheric air? A.
-Vapor of water, carbon di-oxide, and ammonia gas; minute
-quantities of a vast multitude of other gaseous substances; and
-it is likewise charged most of the time with still more minute
-quantities of solid dust materials of various kinds.</p>
-
-<p>84. Q. To what do the principal explosives owe their activity
-to a very large degree? A. To the presence of nitrogen in
-them.</p>
-
-<p>85. Q. What are the four explosives of chief importance?
-A. Gunpowder, the fulminates, gun cotton, and nitro-glycerine.</p>
-
-<p>86. Q. What are the three principal constituents of gunpowder?
-A. Potassic nitrate, charcoal, and sulphur.</p>
-
-<p>87. Q. Why is phosphorus a most interesting chemical
-element? A. Because of its exceptional chemical properties,
-the very important part it plays in the chemistry of animal
-and vegetable life, and its employment in the friction
-match.</p>
-
-<p>88. Q. In what country is the manufacture of friction matches
-carried on to a very large extent? A. In Sweden; and that
-country, it is now stated, produces about seventy-five per cent.
-of all the matches made in the world.</p>
-
-<p>89. Q. What is probably the most familiar and representative
-form of carbon? A. That known as charcoal.</p>
-
-<p>90. Q. How is lamp-black produced? A. It is a product of
-the imperfect combustion of substances like oil, tar, resin, and
-the like, which are very rich in carbon.</p>
-
-<p>91. Q. What are two well known compounds of carbon? A.
-Anthracite coal and bituminous coal.</p>
-
-<p>92. Q. Of what origin do both of these combustibles, when
-carefully studied, show distinct evidences? A. Of their vegetable
-origin.</p>
-
-<p>93. Q. What is the diamond? A. It is nearly pure carbon,
-crystallized.</p>
-
-<p>94. Q. What are some of the other natural forms in which
-carbon is found in large quantities? A. In petroleum, marble,
-and limestone.</p>
-
-<p>95. Q. When combined with oxygen alone, what two compounds
-only does carbon form? A. Carbon mon-oxide and
-carbon di-oxide.</p>
-
-<p>96. Q. What is the material on which the manufacture of
-illuminating gas is based? A. Bituminous coal.</p>
-
-<p>97. Q. In the distillation of coal for the manufacture of gas,
-what three distinct classes of substances are produced? A.
-Solids, which are left in the retorts; liquids, which are condensed
-in the various coolers; and gases, which pass on to the
-gas holder.</p>
-
-<p>98. Q. What coloring matters are obtained from the liquids
-produced by these processes? A. Alzorine, affording
-Turkey red and other colors, and the well known analine colors.</p>
-
-<p>99. Q. To what quantity does silicon exist in our globe? A.
-In a quantity equal to about one fourth its entire weight, including
-its atmospheres and its oceans.</p>
-
-<p>100. Q. What is the principal earthy matter of our planet?
-A. The compound of silicon and oxygen, existing either alone
-in the form of sand, quartz crystal, and similar minerals, or
-else in combination with other well known abundant earth materials,
-such as oxides of calcium, magnesium, and aluminum.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_423" id="Page_423">[423]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 id="EDITORS_OUTLOOK">EDITOR’S OUTLOOK.</h2>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<h3>PUBLIC MEN IN LITERATURE.</h3>
-
-<p>Until recently Americans have had good grounds for complaining
-that their public servants were almost a minus quantity
-in literature. The complaint had an especially sharp edge
-in view of the fact that at an earlier period our Washington,
-Jefferson, Hamilton, Adams, and others, had been among the
-foremost writers of the country; and it was still further aggravated
-by the contrast we seemed to present to France, England,
-and Germany, where a public man is usually also a literary
-man. The rule in France is that an eminent politician
-is an author, and the most distinguished statesmen and princes
-have written books. Even Louis Napoleon wrote a book on
-Cæsar, and one of the best accounts of our late war is the stately
-volumes of Count de Paris. In England, the rule is the same.
-The queen herself takes pride in the books she has produced.
-John Bright is almost alone in having no literary tastes, but
-his speeches will long survive in the volumes they will fill.
-Disraeli and Gladstone, Bulwer and Macaulay, Fawcett and
-Dilke, are only a few contemporary names in along list of distinguished
-statesmen who have excelled as writers for periodicals
-and as producers of books. In this country, from about
-1830 to 1880, our public men wrote little. Benton’s “Thirty
-Years,” Webster’s speeches, and Sumner’s orations, and some
-other less famous works, do indeed redeem the half century;
-but when we have said all that can be said in praise of exceptions,
-the rule seems to have been that an American politician
-was not a writer, and a phrase of contempt attributed to an eminent
-Senator expresses the feelings of our politicians against
-“them literary fellers” in a form which is full of a significance
-from which we prefer to turn away our ears. Too many
-of our public men have despised literature, and justified literature
-in returning the sentiment with interest.</p>
-
-<p>We are entering upon a happier period. The American
-statesman is returning to authorship. It is a wholesome
-change. Mr. Blaine’s history will occur to many readers as an
-illustration. It is hardly less noteworthy that his late associate
-on the Republican ticket has written for <span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span>
-able papers on a public question which is a living issue.
-A very long list might be made of public men who are in good
-fame as writers. The witty S. S. Cox will at once occur to all
-our memories, and another eminent Democrat is said to be
-writing a history of his times. General Grant finds relief from
-the terrible strain of his financial misfortunes in writing the
-history of his battles. We have employed some of our most
-gifted authors as diplomats; as, for example, Motley, the historian,
-James Russell Lowell, the poet and literary critic, and
-George P. Marsh, the man of universal knowledge; but it may,
-probably will, come to pass that some of their stamp will more
-and more appear in our public life at home. We have kept
-poets, philosophers, and novelists alive by giving them clerkships
-in Custom Houses. Nathaniel Hawthorne, Howells, “Ik
-Marvel” (Donald G. Mitchell), and others, rose to the dignity
-of consulships. Francis Lieber was tolerated in a Custom
-House clerkship in New York. We are probably coming to
-the time when such men may be members of Congress and
-shape the legislation of the country. Literary men are usually
-the most practical of men; that they are dreamers of impossibilities
-is the strangest of our popular delusions. A few exceptions
-have been carelessly considered as making the rule
-for the class. The sort of practicality—tempered by philosophy—which
-the literary man brings to affairs is what our public
-life most needs. All clean knowledge is a light where it
-abides, and the value of unclean knowledge (such as some
-practical politicians boast themselves in), is a forlorn minus
-quantity.</p>
-
-<p>The advantages to be anticipated from the increase of the
-literary spirit in our public men are too numerous to be here
-set forth in detail. A few suggestions must suffice for our present
-purpose. In the first place, public men are experts, and
-have therefore valuable knowledge to impart. We are all well
-aware that General Grant knows important things about his
-battles which other men do not know. It is equally true that
-any clerk in a department, or any member of Congress has an
-intimate acquaintance with many concernments of considerable
-moment. A man who has served ten years in Congress
-could instruct and please us all if he had the art of describing
-the methods of law making. It is not a pleasant fact that the
-writing of a book on “Congressional Government,” which is at
-once philosophical and entertaining, should have been left to
-a college professor; nor is it pleasant to feel that the author of
-this book, Professor Woodrow Wilson, is probably the last
-man whom Baltimore will think of sending to Congress. The
-men who see the meaning of things and connect them with
-principles, and align them with historical precedents, are
-needed in Congress to give it dignity and character. In short,
-we ought to send our best men to Congress, and we are approaching
-an era when “best men” will generally be possessed
-of literary tastes and habits. Our public life is rich in materials
-for useful books and entertaining novels. Most of these
-materials lie neglected because we send inferior men to our
-public work. Another distinct advantage will be found in the
-preservation of many bright men whom we send to Congress
-from rusting out of intellectual brightness and becoming mere
-political workers. The majority of men sent to Congress are
-college men; they have had some literary tastes and habits.
-They have often been journalists. The public opinion
-which hedges them in converts them into office hunters
-and office peddlers, and consumes their lives in routine and
-political anxiety, to the detriment of all generous and aspiring
-manhood. The man whose brain work, in periodicals and
-books, will secure his position before his constituents, is a man
-saved.</p>
-
-<p>The change which is going on is mainly the work of the enterprising
-managers of periodicals. Most good literary work in
-our day first reaches the public in periodicals. Much excellent
-work is found only in periodicals. The editors have discovered
-that there is valuable matter to be had by encouraging
-public men to write. Our articles by General Logan, for example,
-contain a view of a great question which is best seen in
-all its aspects by a public man who has seen all sides of it in a
-Congressional committee. Many similar articles have in recent
-years appeared in literary periodicals. An invitation to
-present his views to the public through such a periodical as
-<span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span> is a challenge to candor and a stimulus to
-thoroughness. The work done educates the statesman while
-it informs the people. It creates an intelligent sympathy between
-public servants and those whom they serve. It carries
-on that form of education in which light and wisdom are put
-into the first place, while turgid bombast and self-seeking buncombe
-are rendered odious to the people whom they have deceived.</p>
-
-<h3>THE DECLINE OF SPIRITUALITY IN THE CHURCH.</h3>
-
-<p>Among the unpleasant reflections which the reading of
-Bishop Hurst’s “History of the Reformation” will be apt to
-awaken in many minds is that there has been a great decline
-in the spirituality of the church. In those days religious earnestness
-was at its maximum; we seem to be passing through
-a period when it is at a minimum. How far the seeming is
-accurate, it may not be easy to determine; but appearances<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_424" id="Page_424">[424]</a></span>
-are against the modern church. All our religious services lack
-in spirituality. The lack is in the sermon, the song, the
-prayer. Family religion has <i>apparently</i> little of the intense
-power of the former days. The conversation of Christians is
-less frequently on religious subjects. We are carefully weeding
-out of familiar speech the old references to Providence,
-Death and Judgment. We fall into silence when one among
-us introduces such themes. Religious feeling and expression
-have disappeared <i>from the surface</i> of our life in a most astonishing
-way. We are not made, the unconverted are not made,
-to feel the force and warmth of religious conviction. The sermons
-are logical, literary and cold; if there be warmth, it
-seems to be rather intellectual than religious. The more able
-religious editors complain that they can not get written for
-them articles which are at once readable and spiritual; while
-other editors condemn any articles of that type as savoring of
-a “dreary religiosity;” and others say that the expression of
-religious experience has “hopelessly gone into the keeping of
-cranks and weak-headed and morally-unsound persons.” One
-man says: “I can imagine nothing sweeter to hear than religious
-experience ought to be; but when I listen to it I hear
-either out-worn phrases or senseless fanaticism; and these
-have been driven from the respectable churches and are monopolized
-by ignorant egotists in the out-of-the-way corners of
-the country.”</p>
-
-<p>A partial explanation of the facts lies in the statement just
-quoted. But it is very partial. Why should fanatical zeal kill
-genuine earnestness? If we think and feel earnestly in religion,
-why do we not talk of what is burning in our hearts, as
-the fathers did, in language of our own? A round of set
-phrases does denote vacancy of spirit, but the earnest spirit is
-not banished from our heart by the formalism of another’s
-speech. It may be pleaded for us that we are in a transition
-state; that the Reformation did develop a form of earnestness,
-and that our earnestness can not work in that harness and is
-reverently silent because appropriate speech is wanting. But
-why do not hundreds of ministers who have all gifts of intellect
-utter spiritual thought and emotion? Why are they forever
-dealing rather with opinions than facts of the spiritual
-life? We ask such questions in no censorious spirit; they are
-pressed home to many anxious hearts, and the wonder grows
-whether modern Christianity is tongueless respecting its experience
-because it is backslidden and even skeptical. We
-could frame, as has often been done, explanations; but we
-still doubt whether they really explain. The spiritual activity
-is of all inner motions the one least likely to lose all power to
-express itself.</p>
-
-<p>It is true that a vast body of believers have the spirit of giving
-and of work. They make noble offerings, they teach the
-children in Sunday-schools, they make sacrifices of time and
-ease and money to carry on churches. In these things no
-former generation had so glorious a record. It is probably
-true that this vast body of believers contains as large a proportion
-as any Reformation body of persons who would die
-for their faith. It can not be said of such a body of persons
-that faith is not in it. Making all allowances for conventionality
-and religious fashion, there remains proof enough that
-the modern church believes. Nor can we doubt its spiritual
-poverty. It is poor in the divine life. This state of things
-can not last. We are in a condition where faith must fail if
-love does not come to the rescue. The greatest of all revivals
-may be at the door. The church wants nothing but vital godliness—experience
-of divine things. It has so much of zeal,
-benevolence, self-sacrifice, philanthropy, that we can not so
-much as hint at despair. Is it possible that some of our philanthropies
-are too consuming and exhaust us? If we will
-stop to think and take account of ourselves, we shall probably
-find that we lack spirituality because we do not want it. That
-discovery may be the one thing needed to arouse us to strenuous
-spiritual endeavor.</p>
-
-<h3>THE SHAKSPEREAN ANNIVERSARY.</h3>
-
-<p>The fourth century of Shakspere will be remembered either
-as the century of Shaksperean skepticism or as the one in
-which the play-actor was stripped of Bacon’s clothes and reduced
-to his proper condition of play-actor. That we can so
-much as entertain this latter thought proves that the skepticism
-has made considerable progress. We do not believe that
-Bacon wrote the Shaksperean plays; but we are obliged to
-pay to those who do believe it such respect as is paid to Strauss
-with his theory that Jesus is a mythical person. Another
-Shaksperean year is completed on the 23d of April, and its
-most significant event is an increase of skeptics. We are
-doubtless to have a thorough sifting of the facts and a large
-debate. No lover of the great dramas need regret the discussion.
-It will provoke the study of them and enlarge their
-fame. They are the great dramas of the world. No others
-equal them in breadth and fervor. Whatever stimulates the
-study of them must be useful to the higher forms of literature.
-One way of looking at the subject of the authorship of these
-plays is to regard the question as of no absolute importance.
-The plays are what they are, whoever wrote them; just as the
-Homeric poetry does not lose a line through the Homeric
-skepticism. It is an audacious thing to attack Shakspere as a
-wearer of another man’s clothes, after three centuries of his
-renown. He lived in the public eye. All London knew him.
-Some envied and sneered, but none doubted him until some
-three hundred years after his birth; if there were doubts they
-were so feeble that nothing came of them. Is it the function
-of the press and the reporter—making great and small seem
-alike—which has made Shaksperean skepticism almost respectable,
-if not entirely so? Whatever be the cause, “the news”
-spreads that Bacon wrote our Shaksperean works, and the debate
-is growing into bulk, if not into a serious concernment.
-We are not a bit touched with the skepticism; it seems to us
-unreasonable, beyond ordinary measure in unreason; and yet
-we must recognize the growth of the new theory of the authorship
-of our glorious drama.</p>
-
-<p>The change next to the foregoing in importance which
-marks the fourth Shaksperean century is the new way in which
-the great mass of his admirers come to know and enjoy him.
-He has passed from the stage to the study, the parlor, the
-school-room. He is acted a little; he is read a great deal.
-In his first and second centuries he was known almost exclusively
-through the stage; in his third, the stage and the book
-divided about equally the office of making him known; in the
-fourth, Shaksperean acting has become insignificant in comparison
-with the general reading and teaching of Shakspere.
-His works are coming to be studied in all high schools, academies
-and colleges. Shakspere is in nearly all libraries, be
-they large or small. One may almost say that he is at home
-in nearly every house where English is read. There is hardly
-a town in the country which does not boast at least one well-established
-“Shakspere Club.” Year after year the members
-meet weekly to read and talk over the merits of the one writer
-who never tires them. The scholars of all lands know him in the
-printed page; all the great tongues have books of criticism in
-which he occupies a conspicuous place. One view of this
-transition from the stage to the study and the school is that
-Shakspere was always too large for the theater. It was in the
-largest sense impossible to act his plays. All acting narrowed
-and misrepresented him. The larger field of the book is his
-proper home. He gains by the liberty and healthfulness of the
-modern environment. The two changes which we note will
-bear on each other. Too many persons are coming to know
-what and how Shakspere wrote to permit any star-chamber of
-criticism to settle the authorship of these plays in darkness and
-secrecy; the power to form a judgment is being created in the
-minds of the great jury whose verdict will probably kill off the
-Shaksperean skepticism. We do not believe it will survive to
-1964, the end of Shakspere’s fourth century.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_425" id="Page_425">[425]</a></span></p>
-
-<h3>ART IN THE UNITED STATES.</h3>
-
-<p>If it is <i>possible</i> for this nation to become artistic in tastes
-and habits, we shall not fail. There is no branch of special
-education more enthusiastically advocated and patronized. Of
-course the end in view will require more advocacy and more patronage—a
-great deal more—but we are doing so much that the
-necessary more will doubtless be done. It should be remembered
-too, that if blood tells in the matter of art culture we
-have no lack of blood drawn from the artistic nations. Flemings,
-Germans, Italians, Spaniards, and even Greeks, come to
-New York in large numbers; and if Anglo-Saxon blood were
-condemned as unartistic by inevitable natural incapacity, we
-should still be able to produce great artists in abundance—if
-method, zeal, and patronage could do this thing. We will not
-prophesy; let us wait and see. It is understood, of course,
-that much, perhaps most of our art, is industrial. We need to
-educate a large corps of designers for useful goods, which are
-also ornamental; and this type of artist is so well rewarded when
-he displays inventive faculty that we are likely to surpass all
-other peoples in this department of work. It is not easy to
-separate completely in our thinking this branch of art from
-that which aims only at artistic pleasure. A design for goods
-may be perfect art, and satisfy all the requirements of the
-æsthetic sense. But it is obvious that decorative art is very close
-to industrial art in nature and purpose. And the purpose has
-always been condemned by high art, for it looks straight at the
-sale of the goods at good prices.</p>
-
-<p>It is complained every year in New York, when the art exhibitions
-come on for criticism, that the pecuniary motive for
-work, and the avidity of artists for good sales, depress the imagination
-of the lovers of good work. In substance, then, our
-trouble as to art—that we are a commercial race—seems to get
-into the schools and infect their atmosphere. The evil is not
-that success is rewarded; but that success is not possible to
-an artist who thinks always of his reward. Art, like religion,
-requires a spirit of self-renunciation. Success in art is not
-possible to one who consumes his energy in thinking about
-the sale of his pictures. To become rich by art one must be
-first willing to starve to death in the service of art truth. We
-are not demanding such sacrifices; we are only suggesting
-that without the spirit of them the pure art of this country will
-not attain the eminence which our enthusiasm seeks to
-reach.</p>
-
-<p>“Sordid treatment” of themes is inevitable in the sordid
-atmosphere which, we are told, is breathed in all our circles
-of art. Besides, the museums are founded by good natured
-people who are poor guides and directors and yet must control,
-because they are patrons. One art journal declares that
-enough energy has in the last five years been expended in behalf
-of art to have given it a firm establishment. It adds that
-most of this energy has been wasted. Art students and art
-teachers and art institutions and publications multiply, but
-they do not give us high art. We read this complaint and recall
-the story of the oil-king in western Pennsylvania who
-ordered the teacher of his daughter to “buy her a capacity, without
-regard to expense.” If art comes to us to stay it will come
-by a slow change of thought, feeling, and aspiration. It is
-probable that this change has begun; let us hope that it will
-ripen to a gracious and mellowed maturity. The art-life will
-find ample room in our hospitable civilization, if it can acquire
-the courage to live its own life and escape being a parasite
-on the robust body of our commercial life.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<h2 id="EDITORS_NOTE-BOOK">EDITOR’S NOTE-BOOK.</h2>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<p>The force of the “Chautauqua Idea” is not abating; on the
-contrary it works its way into new homes and distant fields—for
-instance, we have the C. L. S. C. Class of 1888, which commenced
-to form last July, and now numbers about 20,000
-members. The “Florida Chautauqua,” in Florida, is a new
-plant, and now our C. L. S. C. friends in Canada are raising a
-fund of $50,000 with which to purchase and furnish grounds
-near Niagara Falls, for an Assembly after the Chautauqua
-fashion.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>Many prominent Chautauqua workers are at the Florida
-Chautauqua now in session at Lake de Funiak. Among them
-are the Rev. Frank Russell, Mrs. G. R. Alden (Pansy), the
-Rev. A. A. Wright, Dean of the Chautauqua School of Theology,
-Prof. W. D. Bridge, Prof. W. F. Sherwin, Mrs. Juvia C.
-Hull, the Rev. S. G. Smith, D.D., the Meigs-Underhill Combination,
-Prof. C. E. Bolton, Mrs. Emily Huntington Miller, Dr.
-O. P. Fitzgerald, Prof. R. L. Cumnock, Wallace Bruce, Hon.
-John N. Stearns, Col. G. W. Bain, Mrs. Emma P. Ewing, Hon.
-Lewis Miller, etc. Many prominent lecturers, singers and
-readers as yet not known publicly at Chautauqua, are at this
-Southern Chautauqua, or on the program for the closing week.
-Dr. Gillet, in preparing the royal feast of four weeks’ continuance,
-has subsidized the country generally for his purposes,
-and all prominent denominations are tributary thereto.
-Nearly or quite all the departments (save the C. S. L.),
-known at Chautauqua, are in successful operation. The Assembly
-already takes high rank in design and desire, and
-professors, lecturers, readers, singers, helpers, are among the
-very best. No Assembly in the land starts off with a more
-brilliant outlook, or with such strong financial backing.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>In our December issue we called attention to the effort being
-made to establish an Assembly in Canada, at Niagara.
-The plan is developing very satisfactorily. The proposition
-involves the acquirement from the Dominion Government of
-the piece of land known as Paradise Grove, containing about
-eighty acres, situated upon the bank of the Niagara River just
-outside the town of Niagara. The company which holds the
-lease has signified its willingness to consent to a transfer. Toronto
-is also thoroughly aroused to the importance of the movement,
-so much so that at a very largely attended public meeting
-called in February to discuss the matter the citizens
-pledged themselves almost unanimously to give a bonus of ten
-thousand dollars to the company. In addition to this promises
-of stock subscriptions have been made of at least as much
-more. It is easy to see that, if carried out, this project will
-prove a great boon to the old town. Already a large number
-of persons on both sides of the line have signified their intention
-to erect cottages and make it their summer home.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>The Chautauqua Circle has just added a new and important
-branch to the many into which it is already divided.
-This is an art “circle,” to be called the Chautauqua Society of
-Fine Arts, in which it is proposed to give lessons in drawing
-and painting by correspondence. Every branch of art will be
-taught, from elementary drawing to oil-painting. The plan is
-a thoroughly practical one, and will be carried out in the best
-interests of the fine arts. Mr. Frank Fowler has been appointed
-director, and Messrs. R. Swain Gifford, Thomas Moran
-and Will H. Low will act as a committee of award. The
-course of study will extend over two years, at the end of which
-time diplomas will be given and prizes awarded for the best
-work in the different classes. The membership fee is fifty
-cents a year. Application for circulars and further information
-should be made to Miss K. F. Kimball, Plainfield, N. J.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>With the fall of Khartoum, the death of General Gordon,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_426" id="Page_426">[426]</a></span>
-the Irish dynamiteurs and their explosions in London, together
-with the land troubles in Ireland, a growing dissatisfaction
-with the Gladstone ministry, and the threatening aspect of
-Russia, England has enough of perplexing questions on hand
-to keep her Queen, Ministry and Parliament employed for an
-indefinite period of time. To be an English politician to-day
-is to have unrivaled opportunities for strong and vigorous action.
-Apropos of the Soudan trouble our readers will find
-the article by Dr. Wheeler, on England and Islam, in this impression,
-both spirited and profitable reading.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>Roller skating is now claiming the attention of, first, physicians,
-who seem to be divided in their verdict as to the injurious
-physical effects of the exercise; second, of clergymen and
-laymen in the churches, who object to the “rink” on account of
-the associations, quite as much as the doctors do to the skating;
-third, of economists. In a railroad car bound west recently, we
-overheard a conversation between two cattle drovers on the
-“Roller Rink,” one of whom held up a paper named the
-<i>Rink and Roller</i>, the organ of the new sport. These two men
-discussed the financial side of “roller skating,” one insisting
-thus: “A boy will chop wood for seventy-five cents a day, or
-work at the bench for that amount, and then spend fifty cents
-in the evening for himself and girl to attend the rink; they
-keep it up; what’s the good; it is a craze.” Rinks are being
-built in all our towns and cities, but it will come to an end like
-every craze. Some will be injured physically—perhaps some
-will date a moral lapse to an unfortunate acquaintance made
-in the promiscuous company; while all who go will spend
-their money. <i>What is the profit?</i></p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>The venerable Mr. George Bancroft, having passed his
-eightieth birthday, still preserves his physical vigor and looks
-like one of the patriarchs of Washington. His mind is active
-and retains its strength, though now enjoying a much needed
-respite from literary work. Mr. Bancroft has finished his “History
-of the United States,” which has been a long and laborious
-task. Some new historian must appear, who can live in the
-midst of political changes, and like this great man, preserve
-an impartial judgment, as a historian, to continue Bancroft’s
-standard history of the United States.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>The closing act of President Arthur’s term of office was one
-of simple justice to a worthy man. The following note explains
-it all:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p><span class="smcap">To the Senate of the United States</span>—I nominate Ulysses S. Grant,
-formerly General Commanding the armies of the United States, to be
-General on the retired list of the army, with full pay of such rank.</p>
-
-<p class="right"><span class="smcap">Chester A. Arthur.</span></p>
-
-<p>Executive Mansion, March 4, 1885.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Congress had passed an act which made it possible that
-General Grant could be placed on the retired list. The Senate
-by a unanimous vote confirmed the President’s nomination.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>The number of books and periodicals supported on a given
-subject, is a good sign of its interest to the public. Following
-this indication we conclude that the public interest in
-sports and amusements is fully double what it was a year ago.
-A tabulated statement of the publications of 1884, compared
-with the books issued in 1883, gives the works on sports in the
-two years as twenty-two in 1883 to fifty-one in 1884. This suggestive
-comparison is but one of many signs that we are awakening
-to the absolute necessity of healthful exercise, if we
-would lead useful lives ourselves, and would propagate a sturdy
-race.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>Every summer many ladies and gentlemen engaged in educational
-work make a vacation tour to the Old World. Those
-having such intentions for the coming summer will perhaps
-accept a few words of advice. In order to economize your
-time and derive the full benefit of your trip abroad, the best
-thing to be done is to join a party, the management of which
-is in the hands of an experienced traveler. The question naturally
-arises, Where is there a party formed in which we will
-find most advantages for the money expended? We do not
-hesitate in saying that we can recommend no better than Professor
-de Potter’s parties, organized each year in Albany, New
-York, and which have the reputation of being ably conducted.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>There is going on in the newspapers just now a very suggestive
-contest over the spelling of a word. Shall it be dynami<i>teur</i>
-or <i>ter</i>? Both forms have reliable followings, though
-no reasons have been advanced for either termination. The
-word is a good example of several interesting features of word-making.
-It illustrates how each new development in history requires
-a vocabulary, and how the vocabulary is formed from the
-facts involved. Further, the difference in the termination shows
-how each word must have its period of instability before usage
-selects the form which shall be permanent. This Irish agitation
-has, by the way, introduced several new words into the
-language.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>We Americans believe very firmly in ourselves. But sometimes
-we can not help wondering if this vigorous, athletic government
-of ours, and these growing institutions, seem to others
-a success. It will be gratifying to read Mr. Matthew Arnold’s
-opinion of us: “A people homogeneous, a people which had
-to constitute itself in a modern age, an epoch of expansion, and
-which has given to itself institutions entirely fitted for such an
-age and epoch, and which suit it perfectly—a people not in
-danger of war from without, not in danger of revolution from
-within—such is the people of the United States. The political
-and social problem we must surely allow that they solve successfully.”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>Last year women were for the first time admitted to the Oxford
-University examinations. Since they have been allowed to
-hear certain college lectures, and are now finally admitted to the
-classes. It is a surprising concession, but it is the course of
-the future. Women in England have proven conclusively their
-ability to cope with university studies. They have zealously
-and quietly improved each added liberty. This last recognition
-comes as the inevitable effect of a law which works
-through all human affairs, viz.: a demand creates a supply.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>President Arthur closed his term of service with the confidence
-and respect of the American people. He performed the
-difficult task of filling the highest office in the government with
-prudence and ability, when, in fact, he was not the choice of
-the people for the place, but it fell to his lot in the order of a
-mysterious providence. Among the Vice Presidents who have
-succeeded to the presidency Chester A. Arthur will be honored
-in history as a wise statesman, faithful to the people whom
-he served. President Cleveland’s administration is the dawn
-of a new political era in the country, but we believe that he
-will make a safe President.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>There has been recently organized in New York State a
-State Forestry Association. President White, of Cornell University,
-has accepted the presidency. The society proposes
-to make a vigorous effort to arouse the people to the necessity
-of laws which shall preserve their forests from the lawless destruction
-which has robbed thousands upon thousands of acres
-in the Adirondacks of their wealth of timber. Such a society
-is, without doubt, the only means by which a proper sentiment
-can be aroused. The cause of the wholesale depredations has
-been lack of thought. As one of the lumbermen put it: “It all
-comes to this—it was because there was nobody to think about
-it, or do anything about it. We were all busy, and all to
-blame. But I could do nothing alone, and my neighbor could
-do nothing alone, and there was nobody to set us to work together
-on a plan to have things better; nobody to represent
-the common object. Why did not you come along to talk to
-us about it years and years ago?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_427" id="Page_427">[427]</a></span></p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>A look through a railroad guide shows a list of names which
-are a sad criticism on our refinement. Think of going down
-to posterity as born in such a place as You Bet, Red Hot, Fair
-Play, Muddy Creek, Looking Glass, Lone Star, or Saw Tooth.
-These undignified, ill-sounding names are very common, and
-in the new portion of the country it seems to be a matter of
-pride to invent absurd names. A gentleman who had the
-misfortune to reside in a town which bore one of these unmelodious
-names recently said to us: “I am actually ashamed
-to register myself when traveling, as from ‘Goose Creek,’
-and for years I have had my mail sent to a town three miles
-away rather than endure the sight of that odious name on my
-letters.” There are ways of changing these names, and in the
-interest of good taste it should be done.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>In spite of the difficulties in his way, the Rev. Sheldon
-Jackson has succeeded in getting into his Industrial Training
-School for Indian Boys and Girls at Sitka, Alaska. Not the
-least of these difficulties has been getting lumber for the building.
-Here is the story as he writes us: “Since coming here
-last August, I sent a crew of three Indians in a canoe a round
-trip of 400 miles along the coast, with a letter to a saw mill.
-The trees were felled, the logs were sawed up, a schooner
-chartered to bring the lumber, and in due time 100,000 feet of
-lumber was rafted from the schooner on the beach, through
-the surf, carried on men’s shoulders to the building site, a
-three story building 130x50 feet in size erected, and so far completed
-that we were able to move into it the first week in January.
-I have also in the same time organized a church of seventy
-members, of whom sixty are natives, received on confession
-of faith and baptism. These converts are largely the
-fruit of the work of Mr. Austin, one of our teachers.”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>The Rev. H. M. Bacon, D.D., pastor of the Central Congregational
-Church, Toledo, Ohio, in a recent article on “Our
-English Tongue,” in which he quotes Richard Grant White’s
-statement in <span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span> for December, that “This
-modern English, which is the youngest, is also the greatest
-language ever spoken,” mentions several valuable confirmations
-of this opinion. Among them is the tribute of Jacob
-Grimm, the learned German lexicographer, who says: “In
-wealth, good sense, and closeness of structure, no other language
-at this day spoken, not even our German, deserves to be
-compared to it” (the English). He also calls attention to
-similar opinions expressed by the late Baron Humboldt, and
-by Guizot, and recalls the fact that once when the Academy
-of Berlin offered a prize for the best essay on a comparison
-of fourteen of the ancient and modern tongues, the prize was
-awarded to a writer who had given the first place to the English.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>On the 23d of February the Washington Monument was
-formally dedicated at Washington, D. C. Thirty-six years
-have elapsed since its corner stone was laid. Of the Senate
-which attended the ceremonies on that occasion but nine are
-still living, and since that date the most trying years of our
-national life have been passed. Though the delays in completing
-the work have been annoying, now that it is complete,
-it is gratifying to know that the monument is in every way
-worthy of its object. Indeed, we have no hesitancy in pronouncing
-it the most beautiful structure in the nation’s capital.
-An obelisk of light gray stone, at a distance it looks like a
-clearly defined cloud lying against the sky. Its great height
-(555 feet) is not realized, so perfect is the proportion. The
-location of the monument has been criticised. It stands on a
-Government reservation, adjacent to the Potomac River, and
-directly facing the Capitol. The land is low, and many believe
-it was a serious mistake not to have placed the obelisk
-on Capitol Hill. We can not agree with them. The advantage
-of having the monument on public grounds, where the
-view of the entire shaft will never be obstructed, is much
-greater than a higher location with an obstructed view would
-have been. Then, too, this site was one approved by Washington
-himself for a monument which, in 1783, the Continental
-Congress voted to be erected to him. Of course “going
-to the top” is, and will be, one of the chief features of sight
-seeing in Washington. Every half hour the steam elevator in
-the monument carries a crowded load to the top, allowing
-them ten minutes for looking around before the descent. The
-stairway is not yet open to the public, and even if it were most
-people would hesitate before undertaking to mount its 900
-steps. The interior of the shaft is lighted by incandescent
-electric lights. Not the least interesting feature of the monument
-is the number of marble tablets presented by different
-states and institutions, and which are being inserted in the inside
-walls. Several of these have considerable artistic and
-historic value.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<h2 id="C_L_S_C_NOTES_ON_REQUIRED_READINGS_FOR_APRIL">C. L. S. C. NOTES ON REQUIRED READINGS FOR APRIL.</h2>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<h3>SHORT HISTORY OF THE REFORMATION.</h3>
-
-<p>There is so much reading on the Reformation, and it is so well known
-and easily accessible that it seems almost unnecessary to give a list of
-supplementary readings. But among so many books it is hard to choose,
-so we append the names of a few, thinking we may perhaps help some to
-decide what to read. In order to enjoy this little “History of the Reformation”
-in the required course, one ought to read many larger ones.
-“History of the Reformation.” By G. P. Fisher. $3.00; D’Aubigne’s
-“History of the Reformation;” Burnet’s “Reformation in
-England;” “History of the Christian Church.” By W. W. Blackburn.
-$2.50; Motley’s “Rise of the Dutch Republic.” $6.00; “Protestantism.”
-By De Quincy. “Short Studies.” By J. A. Froude.
-“History of the Rise of the Huguenots.” By Henry M. Baird. $3.50;
-“John Knox.” By Thomas McCrie. $2.00; “Martin Luther and
-his Work.” By J. H. Treadwell. $1.00; “The Massacre of St. Bartholomew.”
-By Henry White. $1.75; “Schönberg-Cotta Family.”
-By Mrs. Charles. $1.00; “The Martyrs of Spain.” By Mrs. Charles.
-$1.00; “Savonarola.” By W. R. Clarke. $1.50; “Romola.” By
-George Eliot. (Treats of the times of Savonarola); “Christians and
-Moors of Spain.” By Miss Yonge. $1.25.</p>
-
-<p>P. 3.—“Council of Constance.” A council of the Roman Catholic
-Church, opened in 1414, and closed in 1418. In its earlier sessions the
-doctrines of Wycliffe were examined and condemned. John Huss was
-also condemned and executed, as was Jerome, of Prague. The council
-was called to consider measures to remedy the division arising in the
-church from the long residence of the popes at Avignon, and the consequent
-desire on the part of the French for a national church. See page
-89 in the “Short History.”</p>
-
-<p>“Julian, the Apostate.” (331-363.) A Roman emperor, the nephew
-of Constantine the Great. Immediately upon his accession he openly
-avowed his abandonment of Christianity, but he published an edict
-which granted perfect liberty to all sects and all religions. He, however,
-excluded Christians from civil and military offices, and compelled them
-to contribute toward sustaining pagan temples. He permitted the Jews
-to rebuild their temple at Jerusalem, and published a large volume
-against Christianity.</p>
-
-<p>P. 4.—“Medici,” māˈde-che. A distinguished Florentine family appearing
-in history since the close of the thirteenth century.</p>
-
-<p>P. 5.—“d’Ailly,” dāˈye; “John Chartier Gerson,” shär-te-ā zhair-soⁿᵍ.</p>
-
-<p>P. 6.—“Nicholas Clémanges,” clā-manj; “Gallican Church.” The
-name given to the Catholic Church in France.</p>
-
-<p>“Father Hyacinthe.” Charles Loyson, a French pulpit orator, born
-in 1827. At the age of twenty-two he was ordained a priest. He was<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_428" id="Page_428">[428]</a></span>
-highly educated. Suspicions as to his doctrines were awakened, and he
-was summoned to appear before the pope, but cleared himself. Shortly
-after some speeches of his gave offense, and he was ordered to change
-his manner or be quiet, but he paid no heed. He was soon forbidden
-to preach, and threatened with excommunication. In 1869 he
-visited America, where he was warmly welcomed by many Protestants,
-but he declared he had no intention of leaving the Catholic Church.
-He protested against the doctrine of the pope’s infallibility, and defended
-the right of the clergy to marry. In 1870, on his return to France, the
-pope relieved him of his monastic vows, and he became a secular priest.
-In 1872 he was married to an American lady. He is now pastor of a
-church in Paris, a sort of independent Catholic church.</p>
-
-<p>P. 7.—“Huguenots,” hūˈgē-nots. The name applied to the French
-Reformers. Its origin is uncertain, some asserting that it was derived
-from one of the gates of the city of Tours, named Hugons, where the
-Protestants held their first assemblies. Others say it came from the
-name of their first leader, Hugues.</p>
-
-<p>P. 8.—“Dominican Order.” An order founded by St. Dominic, in
-1216; “John Ruysbroek,” roisˈbrek.</p>
-
-<p>P. 12.—“Wittenberg,” vitˈten-bairg. A town in Prussia, in which
-there is an immense bronze statue of Luther, and not far from it one of
-Melancthon. It is the seat of a great university.</p>
-
-<p>“St. Victor.” A monastery in Paris.</p>
-
-<p>P. 13.—“Origen.” (185-253.) One of the fathers of the church,
-noted for his unwearied diligence and life of self-denial. For two years,
-during the persecution under Maximin, he lay concealed in a friend’s
-house, and here wrote his “Hexapla.” In the Decian persecution he
-was imprisoned and subjected to extreme torture. Many of his valuable
-writings have been lost.</p>
-
-<p>“Alexandrian school.” A name applied to the philosophers of Alexandria
-in the second century. It aimed to harmonize all philosophy and
-all religion.</p>
-
-<p>P. 14.—“Thomas à Kempis. (1379-1471.) A German writer, a
-prior in the monastery of Mount St. Agnes.</p>
-
-<p>“Kaisersheim,” kīˈzers-hīmeˌ; “Rheinfeld,” rīneˈfelt; “Pfaffenheim,”
-päfˈfen-hime.</p>
-
-<p>P. 17.—“Boccaccio,” bok-katˈcho. (1313-1375.) An Italian novelist,
-and friend of Petrarch; “Chrysoloras,” kris-o-loˈras.</p>
-
-<p>P. 18.—“Pa-læ-olˈo-gus;” “Bes-sāˈri-on.”</p>
-
-<p>P. 19.—“Argyropylus,” ar-ghe-ropˈoo-los; “Lasˈca-ris;” “Chalkondylas,”
-kal-konˈde-las; “Gemistus Pletho,” je-misˈtus pleˈtho; “Moschopylus,”
-mos-kopˈy-lus; “Gasperinus,” gäs-pä-reeˈnus; “Aurispa,”
-ow-rēsˈpä; “Poggius,” pojˈus; “Perothes,” perˈō-tēs; “Politianus,” po-lishˈā-nus.</p>
-
-<p>P. 20.—“Hierarch.” One who rules or has authority in sacred
-things.</p>
-
-<p>P. 21.—“Vulgate Bible.” One of the oldest Latin versions of the
-Scriptures. So called from its common use in the church. The Catholic
-Church claims this to be the only authentic translation.</p>
-
-<p>“Guizot,” gēˌzōˈ. (1787-1874.) A French historian.</p>
-
-<p>“Reuchlin,” roikˈlin. (1455-1522.)</p>
-
-<p>P. 23.—“Bordeaux,” bor-dōˈ; “Avignon,” ă-vē-nyoⁿᵍ.</p>
-
-<p>P. 27.—“Eisleben,” iceˈla-ben.</p>
-
-<p>P. 28.—“Eisenach,” īˈzen-näk.</p>
-
-<p>P. 30.—“Scala Santa,” sacred staircase. A staircase in the church
-and palace of the Lateran, so called because Christ was said to have ascended
-and descended it. This magnificent building was used as the residence
-of the popes, from 312 till their removal to Avignon in 1309. The
-staircase, according to tradition, belonged to the house of Pilate, and was
-brought to Rome by the mother of Constantine. It is composed of twenty-eight
-marble steps, which have been covered by order of the popes with a
-casing of wood. The wood has several times had to be replaced, having
-been worn through by the knees of ascending pilgrims. This staircase
-was preserved from the fire which destroyed the building in 1308. The
-Lateran was rebuilt, to be again burned in 1360. It was restored in
-1364, and completely modernized in 1559. This church has always
-been the cathedral of the bishops of Rome, and takes precedence of all
-other churches in the Catholic world.</p>
-
-<p>P. 32.—“Schlosskirche,” schlusˈkeer-ka. The church belonging to
-a castle; “Mos-celˈla-nus.”</p>
-
-<p>P. 33.—“Bull.” An edict of the pope, sent to the churches over
-which he is head, containing some decree or decision.</p>
-
-<p>“Hapsburg.” Originally a castle in Switzerland. It gave its name
-to the imperial house of Austria.</p>
-
-<p>P. 35.—“Frederick the Wise.” Frederick III., elector of Saxony.</p>
-
-<p>P. 37.—“Zwickaw,” tswikˈkow. A city in Saxony.</p>
-
-<p>P. 43.—“Augsburg Confession.” The first Protestant confession of
-faith.</p>
-
-<p>“Convention at Smalcald,” smälˈkält. A confederation of the Protestants
-held in 1531, in which they were secretly aided by England and
-France.</p>
-
-<p>P. 45.—“Melancthon,” me-lankˈthon; “Pforzheim,” pfortsˈhime;
-“Tüˈbing-en;” “Œcolampadius,” ĕkˌo-lăm-pāˈdĭ-us.</p>
-
-<p>“Terence.” (B. C. 195-159.) A Roman comic poet.</p>
-
-<p>P. 50.—“Ulrich von Hutten,” oolˈrik fon hootˈen; “Si-kingˈen;”
-“Cranach,” kräˈnäk.</p>
-
-<p>P. 51.—“Zwingle,” tswinˈgle.</p>
-
-<p>P. 52.—“Wittenbach,” vitˈten-bäk; “Glarus,” gläˈroos. A canton
-of Switzerland; “Einsiedeln,” īneˈze-deln.</p>
-
-<p>P. 53.—“Mariolatry,” mā-rí-olˈa-try. The worship of the Virgin
-Mary.</p>
-
-<p>P. 54.—“Helvetic Confession.” This differed materially from the
-Lutheran only in holding that Christ was not bodily present in the eucharist.</p>
-
-<p>P. 57.—“Viret,” vē-rā; “Froment,” frō-moⁿᵍ; “Farel,” fä-rel.</p>
-
-<p>P. 58.—“Bourges,” boorzh; “Angoulême,” aⁿᵍ-goo-laim.</p>
-
-<p>“Psychopannychia,” sī-kō-pan-nikˈi-a.</p>
-
-<p>P. 59.—“Tillet,” til-lā; “Martianus Lucanius,” mar-she-āˈnus lu-caˈni-us;
-“Courault,” coo-rō.</p>
-
-<p>P. 61.—“Neuenburg,” noiˈen-boorg. A town in Germany.</p>
-
-<p>P. 62.—“Bucer,” booˈtser. (1491-1551.)</p>
-
-<p>P. 64.—“Lausanne,” lō-zanˈ.</p>
-
-<p>P. 66.—“Archbishop of Canterbury.” This archbishop is the primate
-or ruling officer in the national Church of England, the first peer
-of the realm, and member of the privy council. It is he who places the
-crown upon the king.</p>
-
-<p>P. 67.—“Lambeth Palace.” The town residence of the Archbishop of
-Canterbury. It stands on the Thames River, and is surrounded by gardens
-twelve acres in extent.</p>
-
-<p>P. 68.—“Ochino,” o-kīˈno; “Fagius,” fäˈge-ŏos; “Anne Boleyn,”
-ann bulˈlen.</p>
-
-<p>P. 72.—“Froschover,” froshˈo-vair.</p>
-
-<p>P. 78.—“Act of Uniformity.” An act enforcing observance of the
-English Church service. Severe penalties were enforced against any
-one who should conduct religious service in any other way than that
-prescribed by the Book of Common Prayer.</p>
-
-<p>P. 80.—“Cardinal Beatoun,” bēˈtun. Usually written Beaton.
-(1494-1546.) A persecutor of the Protestants. On the death of King
-James, he conceived the idea of seizing the government, and forged a will
-of the king’s, naming himself as successor, but he was prevented from carrying
-out his plan and was imprisoned for a time. He was shortly afterward
-reëstablished in his ecclesiastical administration. His enemies
-seeing no release from his terrible persecutions put him to death.</p>
-
-<p>P. 84.—“Gerard Groot,” jĕ-rardˈ grōt; “Florentius Radewin,” flo-ronˈshe-us
-räˈde-win; “Herzogenbusch,” hairts-ōˈgen-boosh.</p>
-
-<p>P. 85.—“Yuste,” yoosˈtā.</p>
-
-<p>“Inquisition.” This was a court established for the purpose of examining
-and punishing heretics.</p>
-
-<p>P. 87.—Luther’s doctrine concerning the will was that it has no “positive
-ability in the work of salvation, but has the negative ability of
-ceasing its resistance under the general influence of the Spirit in the
-Word and Sacraments.”</p>
-
-<p>P. 88.—“Momus.” In Greek mythology the god of mockery and
-censure. He is represented as raising a mask from his face.</p>
-
-<p>P. 89.—“Vaudois,” vo-dwä.</p>
-
-<p>P. 90.—“Sorbonne,” sor-bun. A school of theology in Paris, founded
-in 1253, by Robert de Sorbonne, whence its name. The members were
-divided into fellows and commoners. The former were selected for
-their eminent learning, and took the position of teachers. The commoners
-were chosen from among those receiving instruction, after a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_429" id="Page_429">[429]</a></span>
-severe ordeal, and were supported by the college, but had no voice in
-its government. They ceased to be members when they graduated as
-doctors. No member of any religious body was allowed to enter this
-order. The large lecture halls of the institution were opened free of all
-charges, to all poor students, and the professors were directed never to
-refuse instruction to such. Students who had money were required to
-pay regular fees. The school was without a rival all through the Middle
-Ages. Its controlling power was felt everywhere. It was frequently
-appealed to in disputes between the civil power and the papacy. It opposed
-the claims of Henry VIII. for a divorce from Catharine; condemned
-the doctrines of Luther and other reformers, and declared that
-Henry III. had forfeited his crown. It was suppressed in 1789, and its
-buildings are now used by the University of France.</p>
-
-<p>“Meaux,” mō; “Angers,” âⁿᵍ-zhā; “Poictiers,” pwä-tyā.</p>
-
-<p>P. 91.—“Gallic Confession.” This was essentially Calvinistic in its
-import, as were also the system of government and method of discipline
-adopted. They were, however, modified somewhat, to suit a
-church—not like that at Geneva, in union with the state, but antagonistic
-to it.</p>
-
-<p>“Bourbons.” This line of kings in France began with Henry IV.
-Six of his descendants in direct line occupied the throne after him.
-The Louises XIII., XIV., XV., XVI., XVIII., and Charles X. The last
-representative of this line was the Count de Chambord, who died in
-1883. There is a younger branch known as the Orleans branch.</p>
-
-<p>“Guises,” gheez. A branch of the ducal family of Loraine, which
-took a prominent part in the civil and religious wars in France.</p>
-
-<p>P. 95.—“Sä-vo-nä-roˈlä,” “Brescia,” brāˈsha.</p>
-
-<p>P. 98.—“Chardon de la Rocette,” shar-doⁿᵍ dĕ lä rŏh-shĕt; “Brucioli,”
-broo-choˈlee; “Marmochini,” mar-mo-keeˈnee; “Teofilo,” tā-o-feeˈlo.</p>
-
-<p>P. 99.—“Mauricha,” mä-rēˈka; “Della Rovere,” delˈlä rō-vāˈrā;
-“Cherbina,” sher-beeˈna; “Gonzago,” gon-zäˈgō; “Ca-rafˈfa;” “Paschali,”
-pas-caˈlēe.</p>
-
-<p>P. 100.—“Paolo di Colli,” pä-oˈlo dē colˈlee; “Gratarole,” grät-ä-rōˈlee;
-“Cor-räˈdo;” “Teglio,” täˈglē-o.</p>
-
-<p>P. 103.—“Vives,” vēˈvace; “Ponce de la Fuente,” pōnˈthā dā lā
-fwenˈtā; “Enzinas,” en-zēˈnas; “Valladolid,” väl-yä-dō-leedˈ; “Varelo,”
-vä-rāˈlo; “Ægidius,” ē-gidˈē-us.</p>
-
-<p>P. 104.—“Hernandez,” her-nanˈdā; “Boborguez,” bō-borˈgā.</p>
-
-<p>P. 110.—“Cyriace,” si-rēˈä-see.</p>
-
-<p>P. 116.—“Dollinger,” dolˈling-er. A learned Catholic theologian,
-born at Bamberg, in 1799. He has published a church history, and
-several other works.</p>
-
-<h3>CHEMISTRY.</h3>
-
-<p>P. 169.—The formula (N₂O₂) shows that two atoms of nitrogen have
-united with two atoms of oxygen to form a molecule of nitrogen di-oxide.
-The formula Cu (NO₃)₂ shows that one atom of copper has united with
-two molecules, each composed of one atom of nitrogen and three atoms
-of oxygen, to form one molecule of cupric nitrate. In like manner
-Fe₂ (NO₃)₆ indicates that two atoms of iron have united with six molecules,
-each composed of one atom of nitrogen and three atoms of oxygen,
-to form one molecule of ferric nitrate.</p>
-
-<p>P. 173.—“Refractive power” of water. When a ray of light strikes
-the surface of a new medium, a portion of it is turned out of its original
-course or refracted. This gives rise to some well-known effects. When
-any object is placed in water and viewed obliquely it looks to be nearer
-the surface than it is, because the light in passing from the denser medium
-takes a direction more inclined to the horizontal, and an object
-always appears directly in line with the ray of light entering the eye.</p>
-
-<p>P. 178.—“Crécy,” kresˈse. This battle took place August 26, 1346,
-between the English under Edward III. and the French under Philip
-VI. It is said that Edward had six pieces of artillery. Artillery had
-probably not been used in the field before this time.</p>
-
-<p>P. 182.—“Trinˌi-tro-cĕlˈlu-lose.”</p>
-
-<p>P. 185.—“Mont Cenis,” mōⁿᵍ sŭh-nē. This tunnel under the Alps
-is in reality some sixteen miles from Mont Cenis, whose name it bears.
-The first mine was fired in 1857, and for four years the piercing was
-done by hand; the need of a quicker method led to the invention of a
-machine drill—a perforating machine worked by compressed air. The
-work was carried on by day and night, from both sides of the mountains,
-until the two bodies of workmen met, December 26, 1870. The tunnel
-was opened for railway travel September 17, 1871. Its length is nearly
-eight miles, and the cost of the tunnel was $15,000,000.</p>
-
-<p>“St. Gotˈhard.” This tunnel is also through the Alps. The length
-is nine and one fourth miles. Its construction was begun in 1872, and
-it was completed in eight years.</p>
-
-<p>P. 189.—“Phosphorus ne-croˈsis.” The latter term is derived from
-a Greek word, meaning to make dead, to mortify, and is a disease
-which attacks bony tissues, as gangrene effects the soft parts. “The
-acid fumes thrown off from phosphorus in the various processes of making
-matches, frequently cause among the people employed a terrible
-disease, which attacks the teeth and jaws.… Its natural course is to
-rot the entire jaw bone away.”</p>
-
-<p>P. 190.—“Al-lŏtˈro-pĭsm.” Dana says allotropism is “the property
-of existing in two or more conditions which are distinct in their physical
-or chemical relations. Thus, carbon occurs crystallized in octahedron,
-and other related forms, in a state of extreme hardness, in the
-diamond; it occurs in hexagonal forms, and of little hardness, in black
-lead; and again occurs in a third form, with entire softness, in lamp-black
-and charcoal. In some cases one of these is peculiarly an active state,
-and the others a passive one. Thus, ozone is an active state of oxygen,
-and is distinct from ordinary oxygen, which is the element in its passive
-state.”</p>
-
-<p>P. 194.—“Chemicking,” kemˈik-ing.</p>
-
-<p>P. 203.—Translation of French sentence: “This last virtue I believe it
-still to possess, if the husband is rich enough to buy the jewel which his
-wife is ambitious to own.”</p>
-
-<p>P. 217.—“Boussingault,” booˌsănˈgoˌ; Jean Baptiste. A noted French
-chemist of this century.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<h2 id="NOTES_ON_REQUIRED_READINGS_IN_THE_CHAUTAUQUAN">NOTES ON REQUIRED READINGS IN “THE CHAUTAUQUAN.”</h2>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<h3>ARISTOTLE.</h3>
-
-<p id="aristotle1"><a href="#anch_aristotle1">1.</a> “Schoolmen.” Philosophers and divines who in the middle ages
-adopted the principles of Aristotle and dwelt much upon abstract speculation.
-Scholasticism was a philosophy of dogmas. “Its elements
-were doctrines which the authority of the church made indisputable,”
-and which were looked upon as absolute truth. Facts in nature were
-set aside and an artificial, logical scheme developed. Scholiasts
-thought experiment only fit to follow and illustrate theories.</p>
-
-<p id="aristotle2"><a href="#anch_aristotle2">2.</a> “Haroun-al-Raschid,” Aaron the Just. (765-809.) The caliph
-who raised Bagdad to its greatest splendor, and whose reign was looked
-upon as the golden era of the Mohammedan nation. He reigned
-twenty-three years and performed the pilgrimage to Mecca nine times.
-He is famous as the hero of the Arabian tales. Tennyson wrote of him
-in his “Recollections of Arabian Nights.”</p>
-
-<p id="aristotle3"><a href="#anch_aristotle3">3.</a> “Ex post facto.” A Latin expression, meaning an after act or
-thing done afterward. An <i>ex post facto</i> law is a law enacted after the
-commission of a crime, for the purpose of being enforced upon the person
-having committed the crime, who could not be held a criminal, or
-at least a criminal in the same degree, until after the enaction of the
-law. All such laws are forbidden by the constitution of the United
-States.</p>
-
-<p id="aristotle4" class="tnote"><a href="#anch_aristotle4">4.</a> Transcriber’s Note: This note (presumably “Hypolais.”) was omitted in the original. <i>Hippolais</i> is a scientific genus of tree warblers.</p>
-
-<h3>CHEMISTRY.</h3>
-
-<p>[<span class="smcap">Errata.</span>—A few typographical errors in articles of this series have
-escaped correction. Page 254, change “300,000,000” to 3,000,000;
-for “alcohol,” thirty-third line, page 325, substitute paraffine; same
-page, eighth line, second column, use not for “but;” in “experiment,”
-same column, use heat for “sensation,” and in next to the last line of
-the article change “topics” to optics.—<i>Prof. J. T. Edwards.</i>]</p>
-
-<p id="chemistry1"><a href="#anch_chemistry1">1.</a> “Geysers,” gīˈsers. Intermittent hot springs, found in different
-parts of the world. Those of Iceland are the best known. More than
-one hundred of these springs are there found, within a space of two
-miles. The geysers of the Yellowstone are the most wonderful ever
-discovered. The country lying between latitude 43° and 47° north,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_430" id="Page_430">[430]</a></span>
-and longitude 110° and 114° west, is dotted with groups of springs.
-Some of them, when in action, send up columns of water to a height of
-200 feet.</p>
-
-<p id="chemistry2"><a href="#anch_chemistry2">2.</a> “Hugh Miller.” (1802-1856.) A British geologist. He was by
-trade a stone mason, but he devoted all his leisure hours to study.
-Soon “detecting the wonders of the fossil world” in the quarries in
-which he worked, he made them the special subject of his thought, and
-soon became an eminent geologist. He published many works, most
-of them bearing on this subject. He worked so incessantly, taking little
-sleep or exercise, that his mind was on the verge of giving way.
-Realizing this with terror, he took his own life. A note left for his
-wife read as follows: “A fearful dream rises upon me. I can not bear
-the horrible thought.”</p>
-
-<p>The old red sandstone is the name given to the rock in Great Britain
-formed in the Devonian age, or age of fishes. Its thickness is in some
-parts 8,000 to 10,000 feet. It includes sandstone, marlytes of red and
-other colors, and some limestone.</p>
-
-<p>The sandstone of the Triassic period, which includes the latest formations
-of the earth’s crust, is also characterized by fossils, and is often
-red in color; hence the name, new red sandstone, has been applied to it.</p>
-
-<p id="chemistry3"><a href="#anch_chemistry3">3.</a> “Dr. Hitchcock.” (1793-1864.) An American geologist and
-author.</p>
-
-<p id="chemistry4"><a href="#anch_chemistry4">4.</a> “Minute animals.” The carbonate of lime which is found in
-rocks is most of it formed directly of shells, corals, and other animal
-remains. These little creatures take their stony-like structures from
-the water or from their food through the power of secretion, just as man
-forms his bones, and after their death they are given over to be made
-into rocks. The great extent and thickness of the limestone rocks of
-the earth give some idea of the amount of life that flourished there in
-past time.</p>
-
-<p id="chemistry5"><a href="#anch_chemistry5">5.</a> “Anhydride.” For definition see “Chemistry,” page 151.</p>
-
-<p id="chemistry6"><a href="#anch_chemistry6">6.</a> “Old Stone Mill.” It is asserted by some antiquaries that this
-structure was built by the Northmen, 500 years before Columbus landed
-on these shores. Its purpose, as well as its origin, has been a theme of
-much discussion. Its present appearance is that of a large round tower
-overgrown with vines.</p>
-
-<p id="chemistry7"><a href="#anch_chemistry7">7.</a> “The Stone age.” One of the divisions of prehistoric time. In
-this age men were not acquainted with the use of metal and fashioned
-their rude implements exclusively out of stone.</p>
-
-<p id="chemistry8"><a href="#anch_chemistry8">8.</a> “Ceramic,” se-ramˈic.</p>
-
-<p id="chemistry9"><a href="#anch_chemistry9">9.</a> “Cesnola collection.” Cesnola was an American soldier and
-archæological explorer, born in Italy in 1832. He served in the Crimean
-war, and in the civil war, was for a long time in Libby Prison.
-At the close of the war he was sent as consul to Cyprus. Having his
-attention attracted by some fragments of terra cotta and some coins, he
-began making excavations in search of relics. He met with such rewards
-that he continued his work for three years, employing hundreds
-of men. Among his discoveries were statues, lamps, vases, coins,
-glassware, gold ornaments, bronzes, and inscriptions, in all about 13,000
-articles. This remarkable collection is now in the Metropolitan Museum
-of Art in New York.</p>
-
-<p id="chemistry10"><a href="#anch_chemistry10">10.</a> “The mound builders.” The race of people found in America
-by its first settlers had clearly been preceded by a race of higher type
-and attainments. Relics proving this have been discovered throughout
-the Mississippi valley. Earthworks are their principal testimony, of
-which many thousands have been found in Ohio alone. These mounds
-vary in size and shape, but are always regularly formed, sometimes being
-square, sometimes round, hexagonal, octagonal, or truncated. They
-are ascended by spiral paths, and frequently contain skeletons. Sometimes
-the earthworks are thrown up so as to represent in outline men
-and animals, and appear as huge “bas-reliefs on the surface of the
-ground.”</p>
-
-<p id="chemistry11"><a href="#anch_chemistry11">11.</a> “Humboldt,” Baron von. (1769-1859.) A German naturalist,
-the most distinguished scholar of the nineteenth century. After a thorough
-education, under the best masters in different universities, he determined
-to devote himself to finance as a business, and familiarized himself
-with everything pertaining to this calling. He changed his career and
-wished to engage in practical mining. And again he went through
-with a full preparation for this work. He was sent to explore several
-mining districts, and made many experiments to discover the nature of
-fire-damp. Later he made a great scientific expedition which only led
-the way to others, until he had visited as a scientist almost every land.
-He is distinguished for the comprehensiveness of his researches. During
-his travels he made astronomical, botanical and magnetic researches,
-measured elevations, investigated the nature of the soil, and the thermometrical
-relations; he also collected herbariums, and founded the
-new science of the geography of plants. Of his numerous published
-works, “Kosmos” has perhaps attracted public attention most widely.
-It has been without an equal in giving an impulse to natural studies.</p>
-
-<p id="chemistry12"><a href="#anch_chemistry12">12.</a> “Lord Lytton,” Sir Edward George. Earle Lytton, son of
-General William Earle Bulwer, born in 1805. Upon his succeeding to
-the vast estates of his mother, the heiress of the Lyttons, he by royal
-license assumed this name, writing it after his own. He is the author
-of several works, mostly of fiction.</p>
-
-<h3>THE CIRCLE OF THE SCIENCES.</h3>
-
-<p id="circle1"><a href="#anch_circle1">1.</a> “Syllogism.” Every argument, to be valid, must be placed in
-regular logical form, which consists of three propositions, two called
-the <i>premises</i>, and the third the <i>conclusion</i>. The conclusion follows
-from the premises, so that if the former are true, the conclusion must
-be. For example: Major premise—It was not lawful to scourge a
-Roman citizen; minor premise—Paul was a Roman citizen; conclusion—Therefore,
-it was not lawful to scourge Paul.</p>
-
-<p id="circle2"><a href="#anch_circle2">2.</a> “Dr. Porter.” An American scholar and author, born in 1811.
-The eleventh president of Yale College.</p>
-
-<p id="circle3"><a href="#anch_circle3">3.</a> “Ruskin,” John. (1819-⸺.) An English author. He has
-given much attention to the study of art, many of his numerous books
-being written on that subject.</p>
-
-<p id="circle4"><a href="#anch_circle4">4.</a> “Utopia.” See <span class="smcap">The Chautauquan</span> for February, 1885.</p>
-
-<p id="circle5"><a href="#anch_circle5">5.</a> “Campanella.” (1568-1639.) An Italian philosopher. He was
-suspected of joining a conspiracy against the Spanish government,
-was put to the rack, and finally imprisoned in Spain. Later he was
-transferred to the inquisition at Rome. On gaining his liberty he went
-to France. He was famous for undermining other systems of philosophy
-rather than for establishing one of his own.</p>
-
-<p id="circle6"><a href="#anch_circle6">6.</a> “Owen,” Robert. (1771-1858.) An English social reformer. He
-lived for a few years in Scotland, where he advocated his theory of
-communism, an absolute equality in all rights and duties. By the aid
-of his large fortune he was enabled to distribute great numbers of tracts
-explaining his views, and these soon won him a large following. He
-was, however, opposed and attacked on all sides. In 1823 he came
-to the United States, bought 20,000 acres of land in Indiana, intending
-to found his community there, but the scheme proved a failure and he
-returned to England. He spent the rest of his life as a traveler, advocating
-his views both by his books and public lecturing.</p>
-
-<p id="circle7"><a href="#anch_circle7">7.</a> “Fourier,” (foo-ri-ā) Charles. (1772-1837.) A French writer on
-social science.</p>
-
-<h3>SUNDAY READINGS.</h3>
-
-<p id="sunday1"><a href="#anch_sunday1">1.</a> “Thebes and Luxor.” Thebes was a celebrated Egyptian city,
-formerly the capital of Upper Egypt. Its ruins are among the most
-magnificent in the world, and comprise what form now nine villages,
-among which Luxor is one. The large and costly palaces of the Luxor
-quarter were founded by Amenophis III., and from here was taken the
-obelisk which stands in Place de la Concorde in Paris.</p>
-
-<p id="sunday2"><a href="#anch_sunday2">2.</a> “Archbishop Whately.” (1787-1863.) An English prelate. He
-was for some years a professor at Oxford, and in 1831 was consecrated
-archbishop of Dublin. He was the author of many important works.</p>
-
-<p id="sunday3"><a href="#anch_sunday3">3.</a> “Paˌlæ-o-cosˈmic.” Pertaining to the ancient universe.</p>
-
-<p id="sunday4"><a href="#anch_sunday4">4.</a> “Old Man of Cromagnon.” “In the <i>Reliquiæ Aquitanicæ</i>, by
-Messrs. Lartet and Christy, there is a full account of the archæology of
-the old Stone age, as exhibited in the south of France, especially in the
-caves in the valley of Cro-Magnon. … Bones of the reindeer
-are abundant, and the co-existence of man with this animal in latitudes
-so much lower than its present habitat implies a certain degree of elevation
-above savages, as not only food, clothing and implements, but
-materials for ornamentation were obtained from it. The domestic
-economy of these earlier races is shown by their hearths, boiling stones,
-rough hammers, and hollow, dish-like pebbles. … M. Pruner-Bey,
-from the examination of skeletons found in the cave of Cro-Magnon<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_431" id="Page_431">[431]</a></span>
-maintains that the crania of the reindeer age belong to a
-double series, one approaching the Lapp and the other the Finn of the
-present day. He concludes that they had massive bones, long, flat
-feet, comparatively short arms and long forearms, with powerful muscles,
-greatly developed jaws, widely opened nostrils, and were of unbridled
-passions.”</p>
-
-<h3>ANIMAL BIOLOGY.</h3>
-
-<h4>PRONUNCIATION OF NAMES IN <a href="#animal_table">TABLE</a>.</h4>
-
-<p>Pro-to-zoˈa, mo-neˈra, greg-a-rinˈi-da, rhiz-opˈo-da, in-fu-sōˈri-a,
-spon-gĭˈda, cœ(kē)lenˈte-rā-ta, hy-dro-zoˈa, an-tho-zoˈa, mad-re-poˈra,
-poˈrites, tuˌbi-pōˈra, cor-ralˈle-um, ruˈbrum, cte(te)-nophˈo-ra,
-e-chinˌ(kin)o-dermˈa-ta, crī-noidˈe-a, as-ter-oidˈe-a, e-chen(ken)-oidˈe-a,
-holˈo-thu-roidˌe-a, verˈmēs, ro-tifˈe-ra, pol-y-zoˈa, brachˌ(brak)-i-opˈo-da,
-an-nelˈi-dæ, mol-lusˈca, la-melˌle-bran(g)-chi(ki)-āˈta, gas-ter-opˈo-da,
-ceph(sef)-a-lopˈo-da, ar-ticˈu-lāˈta, crus-taˈcē(se)-a,
-a-rachˈ(rak)-ni-da, myr-i-opˈo-da, tu-ni-cāˈta, ver-te-brāˈta, pisˈ-cēs(sēs),
-aˈvēs.</p>
-
-<p id="animal1"><a href="#anch_animal1">1.</a> “Amœba.” This little animal is known to microscopists under
-the name of proteus, from the rapid and continuous changes of shapes
-which it presents to their notice.</p>
-
-<p id="animal2"><a href="#anch_animal2">2.</a> “Tentacles.” Processes usually slender and thread-like, proceeding
-from the head of invertebrate animals, such as insects, snails
-and crabs, being used for the purpose of feeling, prehension or motion.</p>
-
-<p id="animal3"><a href="#anch_animal3">3.</a> “Oviparous.” An adjective applied to all animals which produce
-eggs, as distinguished from <i>viviparous</i>, producing young in the living
-state.</p>
-
-<p id="animal4"><a href="#anch_animal4">4.</a> “Ganglia.” Collections of nerve cells, from which nerve fibers
-are given off in different directions. They are thought to be the organs
-in which all action originates.</p>
-
-<p id="animal5"><a href="#anch_animal5">5.</a> “Ventral surface.” The surface of the body opposite the back.
-The back is called the dorsal surface.</p>
-
-<p id="animal6"><a href="#anch_animal6">6.</a> “Medˈul-la-ry.” Consisting of marrow. The fibrous nervous
-matter of the brain contains nerve tubes, within which is a layer of thick,
-fluid, highly refractive matter, called the medullary layer.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<h2 id="PARAGRAPHS_FROM_NEW_BOOKS">PARAGRAPHS FROM NEW BOOKS.</h2>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Portraits from Carlyle.</span>—If Carlyle had taken to the brush instead
-of to the pen he would probably have left a gallery of portraits
-such as this century has not seen. In his letters and journals, reminiscences,
-etc., for him to mention a man is to describe his face, and
-with what graphic pen and ink sketches they abound. Let me extract
-a few of them. Here is Rousseau’s face, from “Heroes and Hero
-Worship:” “A high but narrow contracted intensity in it; bony
-brows; deep, straight-set eyes, in which there is something bewildered
-looking—bewildered, peering with lynx-eagerness—a face full of misery,
-even ignoble misery, and also of an antagonism against that; something
-mean, plebeian there, redeemed only by <i>intensity</i>: the face of
-what is called a fanatic—a sadly <i>contracted</i> hero!…”</p>
-
-<p>Here we have Dickens in 1840: “Clear-blue, intelligent eyes; eyebrows
-that he arches amazingly; large, protrusive, rather loose mouth;
-a face of most extreme <i>mobility</i>, which he shuttles about—eyebrows,
-eyes, mouth, and all—in a very singular manner while speaking. Surmount
-this with a loose coil of common-colored hair, and set it on a
-small, compact figure, very small, and dressed à la D’Orsay rather than
-well—this is Pickwick.”</p>
-
-<p>Here is a glimpse of Grote, the historian of Greece: “A man with
-straight upper lip, large chin, and open mouth (spout mouth); for the
-rest, a tall man, with dull, thoughtful brows and lank, disheveled hair,
-greatly the look of a prosperous Dissenting minister.”</p>
-
-<p>In telling Emerson whom he shall see in London, he says: “Southey’s
-complexion is still healthy mahogany brown, with a fleece of white
-hair, and eyes that seem running at full gallop; old Rogers, with his
-pale head, white, bare, and cold as snow, with those large blue eyes,
-cruel, sorrowful, and that sardonic shelf chin.”</p>
-
-<p>In another letter he draws this portrait of Webster: “As a logic-fencer,
-advocate, or parliamentary Hercules, one would incline to back
-him, at first sight, against all the extant world. The tanned complexion;
-that amorphous, crag-like face; the dull black eyes under
-their precipice of brows, like dull anthracite furnaces, needing only to
-be <i>blown</i>; the mastiff mouth, accurately closed; I have not traced as
-much of silent <i>Berserkir rage</i>, that I remember of, in any other man.”—<i>From
-John Burroughs’s “Fresh Fields.”</i></p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Scott at Work.</span>—I never can forget the description Sir Adam Fergusson
-gave me of a morning he had passed with Scott at Abbottsford,
-which at that time was still unfinished, and swarming with carpenters,
-painters, masons, and bricklayers, was surrounded with all the dirt and
-disorderly discomfort inseparable from the process of house-building.
-The room they sat in was in the roughest condition which admitted of
-their occupying it at all; the raw, new chimney smoked intolerably.
-Out-of-doors the whole place was one chaos of bricks, mortar, scaffolding,
-tiles, and slates. A heavy mist shrouded the whole landscape of
-lovely Tweed side, and distilled in a cold, persistent and dumb drizzle.</p>
-
-<p>Maida, the well beloved stag-hound, kept fidgeting in and out of the
-room. Walter Scott every five minutes exclaiming, “Eh, Adam! the
-puir beast’s just wearying to get out;” or, “Eh, Adam! the puir creature’s
-just crying to come in;” when Sir Adam would open the door to
-the raw, chilly air for the wet, muddy hound’s exit or entrance, while
-Scott with his face swollen with a grievous toothache, and one hand
-pressed hard to his cheek, with the other was writing the inimitably
-humorous opening chapters of “The Antiquary,” which he passed
-across the table, sheet by sheet, to his friend, saying, “Now, Adam,
-d’ye think that will do?” Such a picture of mental triumph over outward
-circumstances has surely seldom been surpassed. House-builders,
-smoky chimney, damp draughts, restless, dripping dog, and
-toothache form what our friend Miss Masson called a “concatenation
-of exteriorities,” little favorable to literary composition of any sort; but
-considered as accompaniments or inspiration of that delightfully comical
-beginning of “The Antiquary,” they are all but incredible.—<i>From Mason’s
-“Traits of British Authors.”</i></p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Paradise Found.</span>—Could it once be proven that the Arctic terminus of
-the earth has always been the ice-bound region that it is, and which for
-thousands of years it has been, it would of course be useless to entertain
-for a moment the hypothesis that the cradle of the human race was
-there located. Probably the popular impression that from the beginning
-of the world the far North has been the region of unendurable cold
-has been one of the chief reasons why our hypothesis is so late in claiming
-attention. At the present time, however, so far as this difficulty is
-concerned, scientific studies have abundantly prepared the way for the
-new theory.</p>
-
-<p>That the earth is a slowly cooling body is a doctrine now all but universally
-accepted. In saying this we say nothing for or against the so-called
-nebular hypothesis of the origin of the world, for both friends
-and foes of this unproven hypothesis believe in what is termed the secular
-cooling or refrigeration of the earth. All authorities in this field
-hold and teach that the time was when the slowly solidifying planet was
-too hot to support any form of life, and that only in some particular
-time in the cooling process was there a temperature reached which was
-adapted to the necessities of living things. On what portion of the
-earth’s surface, now, would this temperature first be reached? Or
-would it everywhere be reached at the same time? … We asked
-the geologist this question: “Is the hypothesis of a primeval polar
-Eden admissible?” Looking at the slowly cooling earth alone, he replies:
-“Eden conditions have probably at one time or another been
-found everywhere upon the surface of the earth. Paradise may have
-been anywhere.” Looking at the cosmic environment, however, he
-adds: “But while Paradise may have been anywhere, the <i>first</i> portions
-of the earth’s surface sufficiently cool to present the conditions of Eden
-life were assuredly at the Poles.”—<i>From Warren’s “Paradise Found.”</i></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_432" id="Page_432">[432]</a></span></p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Separation of De Long and Melville.</span>—De Long verbally directed
-both of us to keep, if possible, within hail, and reiterated his
-orders in case of separation: “Make the best of your way,” said he,
-“to Cape Barkin, which is eighty or ninety miles off, southwest true.
-Don’t wait for me, but get a pilot from the natives, and proceed up the
-river to a place of safety as quick as you can; and be sure that you and
-your parties are all right before you trouble yourselves about any one
-else. If you reach Cape Barkin you will be safe, for there are plenty
-of natives there winter and summer.” Then addressing me particularly,
-he continued: “Melville, you will have no trouble in keeping up with
-me, but if anything should happen to separate us, you can find your way
-in without any difficulty by the trend of the coast-line; and you know
-as much about the natives and their settlements as any one else.” This
-was our last conversation in a body.</p>
-
-<p>So when De Long waved me permission to leave him, I hoisted sail,
-shook out one reef, and as we gathered way the boat shot forward like
-an arrow, and the spray flew about us like feathers. Heretofore we had
-been running dead before the wind on our southwest course for the land,
-but the heavy sea and lively motion of the boat caused the sail to jibe
-and fill on the other tack, whereupon we would broach to and ship water.
-For this reason I hauled up the boat several points, or closer to the
-wind, and our condition at once improved. Now that we were separated
-I resolved to concern myself directly with the safety of my own
-boat; so that when one of the men said that De Long was signaling
-us, I told him he must be wrong, and further directed that no
-one should see any signals now that we were cast upon our own resources.</p>
-
-<p>When last seen, the second cutter was about one thousand yards
-astern of us, the first cutter probably midway between, and there is no
-doubt in my mind that she then foundered. A conversation with the
-only two surviving members of the first cutter (Nindemann and Noras)
-has confirmed me in this belief; for they witnessed the scene as I have
-described it, and state that it was the general opinion of DeLong’s
-crew that I had shared the same fate simultaneously with Chipp.—<i>Melville’s
-“In the Lena Delta.”</i></p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<h2 id="TALK_ABOUT_BOOKS">TALK ABOUT BOOKS.</h2>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<p>There can scarcely be a sadder story than that of the loss of the
-Jeannette and the subsequent search for DeLong and his party. No
-event of recent years has caused more horror in the public mind and led
-to more urgent expostulation against further Arctic exploration. We
-believe, however, that as a better knowledge of the aim and value of these
-undertakings grows on the public, censure will be removed. Certainly
-a careful reading of Melville’s “In the Lena Delta”<a name="FNanchor_3" id="FNanchor_3"></a><a href="#Footnote_3" class="fnanchor">[C]</a> produces this result.
-The book is perhaps more full of horror than most readers imagine,
-but after reading there can be but one opinion; terrible as it all is,
-it has been worth the suffering. It is worth while to have died bravely
-in carrying out orders. The unflinching resolution of those men places
-them among the heroes of modern history. You can not help feeling
-that there is a wonderful amount of unusual heroism in the story. The
-Jeannette expedition has furnished a much needed lesson on the nobility
-of endurance. The results to our knowledge of these regions have
-been considerable, the people of Siberia, the Russian exile, the homes
-and customs of various tribes are more fully explained to us in Melville’s
-notes than elsewhere; again, no future exploration will be open
-to equal dangers.</p>
-
-<p>We have never experienced a greater shock in our book reviewing
-than that which came to us when, on turning from Melville’s description
-of the Arctic regions, we were told that Paradise had been found<a name="FNanchor_4" id="FNanchor_4"></a><a href="#Footnote_4" class="fnanchor">[D]</a>—at the
-North Pole. It will be a long time before the public mind with its present
-ideas of the Pole will be willing to consent to this conclusion, even
-if President Warren is able to advance still more skillful arguments than
-he yet has in proof of his theory. And the arguments are skillful. He
-has quoted high authority to prove that Eden conditions once existed on
-every portion of the earth, and first of all at the Pole; he has done his
-best to remove our prejudices against a night of six months by showing
-that not more than “four fortnights” is the probable length of the night
-there; he shows us that palæontology teaches that life first began at the
-polar regions, and quotes the mythical lore of Egyptian, Assyrian, Babylonian,
-Buddhist, Greek, and Roman, to support his theory. The hypothesis
-is certainly entertaining, and this attempt at demonstrating it
-contains some very probable arguments.</p>
-
-<p>A book bearing the title “Personal Traits of British Authors”<a name="FNanchor_5" id="FNanchor_5"></a><a href="#Footnote_5" class="fnanchor">[E]</a> is sufficient
-of itself to win the attention and awaken the interest of all
-book lovers, but when, on turning its leaves, it is found that these traits
-have been noted and given to the world by other authors, the desire to
-know what they are is doubled. What great men think and say about
-other great men is a matter of interest to all well informed persons.
-That pardonable, commendable curiosity to know “what about” earth’s
-gifted ones, that lurks in human hearts, has a sort of double chance to
-satisfy itself with such an arrangement as this. The persons of whom
-this book treats are seven in number: Scott, Hogg, Campbell, Chalmers,
-Wilson, DeQuincey, and Jeffrey. In a tabulated form all the
-leading events of their lives are given. Several pages are devoted to
-sketches of each one, all filled with exquisite little pen pictures, drawn
-by master hands at widely differing periods, and from widely differing
-scenes in life, giving the greatest contrasts in attitudes, words, and expression.
-Indeed, one has hard work sometimes to make himself believe
-they were intended to represent the same person. It would be difficult
-to find a finer collection of character studies than Mr. Mason has given
-in this volume.</p>
-
-<p>There is considerable probability in the suggestion which Mr. Lang
-makes in his “Custom and Myth.”<a name="FNanchor_6" id="FNanchor_6"></a><a href="#Footnote_6" class="fnanchor">[F]</a> He has attempted to find the key
-to myths in customs which have prevailed among early tribes, in opposition
-to those scholars who find their solutions in the names which they
-claim were once applied to objects, and of which the original meaning
-has been lost. The essays are made valuable by a great deal of material
-gathered evidently by much research in the lore of remote tribes, but
-they are singularly unsatisfactory. The work is loosely done. The solutions
-are mere suggestions, although such interesting suggestions that
-one feels loath to give up the search without more work. In some cases
-the myths presented simply show that similar tales exist in many nations.
-Until Mr. Lang does more work on this entertaining theory he
-must not expect a very wide following.</p>
-
-<p>A good work on English cathedrals has for a long time been in demand.
-The interest in architecture which recent years has developed,
-the increase in travel and the large scale on which the English people have
-carried on the restoration of their cathedrals have made such a work
-necessary. “The Cathedral Churches of England and Wales”<a name="FNanchor_7" id="FNanchor_7"></a><a href="#Footnote_7" class="fnanchor">[G]</a> quite fills
-the demand. A book of superior make up, a very handsome parlor book,
-indeed, it is yet full of information. Thirty-five cathedrals are described,
-and so fully illustrated as to give very satisfactory ideas of the
-leading features of each. The articles, written in an encyclopedic style
-that seems slightly out of place in the company of such illustrations,
-paper, and letter press, are historic and architectural, concerning themselves
-very little with poetic associations and fine descriptions. They
-are, however, all the more useful for that.</p>
-
-<p>Two little books, helpful to all persons and bearing comfort for
-stricken hearts, and for those weary with the burdens of life, are to be<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_433" id="Page_433">[433]</a></span>
-found in “Meditations on Life, Death and Eternity.”<a name="FNanchor_8" id="FNanchor_8"></a><a href="#Footnote_8" class="fnanchor">[H]</a> They are like
-friends to whom one would turn for companionship. The books were
-translated and compiled from the larger work of a distinguished German
-writer, and were arranged in their present form at the request of Queen
-Victoria, who prizes them very highly, as the original was a great favorite
-of the Prince Consort.</p>
-
-<p>That Mr. Barnes fully accomplished what he set out to do when he
-produced the “Hand-Book of Bible Biography,”<a name="FNanchor_9" id="FNanchor_9"></a><a href="#Footnote_9" class="fnanchor">[I]</a> a brief examination of
-the work will satisfy any one. His aim was to produce a book that
-would be complete as to names, that should contain all the facts, and
-that should be within the means of all Bible students. Each biography
-is a story complete in itself, with many illustrations and maps.</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes">
-
-<h3>FOOTNOTES</h3>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_3" id="Footnote_3"></a><a href="#FNanchor_3"><span class="label">[C]</span></a> In the Lena Delta. A narrative of the search for Lieutenant Commander De
-Long and his companions. Followed by an account of the Greely Relief Expedition
-and a Proposed Method of Reaching the North Pole. By George W. Melville.
-Boston: Houghton, Mifflin &amp; Co. 1885.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_4" id="Footnote_4"></a><a href="#FNanchor_4"><span class="label">[D]</span></a> Paradise Found. The Cradle of the Human Race at the North Pole. By William
-F. Warren, S. T. D., LL D. Boston: Houghton, Mifflin &amp; Co. 1885.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_5" id="Footnote_5"></a><a href="#FNanchor_5"><span class="label">[E]</span></a> Personal Traits of British Authors. By Edward T. Mason. New York: Charles
-Scribner’s Sons. 1885.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_6" id="Footnote_6"></a><a href="#FNanchor_6"><span class="label">[F]</span></a> Custom and Myth. By Andrew Lang, M.A. New York: Harper &amp; Brothers.
-1885.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_7" id="Footnote_7"></a><a href="#FNanchor_7"><span class="label">[G]</span></a> The Cathedral Churches of England and Wales. Cassell &amp; Company. New
-York: 1884. Price, $5.00.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_8" id="Footnote_8"></a><a href="#FNanchor_8"><span class="label">[H]</span></a> Meditations on Life, Death and Eternity. By Johann Heinrich Daniel Zschokkè.
-Translated by Frederika Rowan. New York: Phillips &amp; Hunt. Cincinnati:
-Cranston &amp; Stowe.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_9" id="Footnote_9"></a><a href="#FNanchor_9"><span class="label">[I]</span></a> Hand-Book of Bible Biography. By the Rev. C. R. Barnes, A.B. New York:
-Phillips &amp; Hunt. Cincinnati: Cranston &amp; Stowe. Price, $2.25.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<h2 id="THE_CHAUTAUQUA_UNIVERSITY">THE CHAUTAUQUA UNIVERSITY.<br />
-<span class="smaller">WHAT ARE ITS CLAIMS?</span></h2>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<p class="center">BY PROF. R. S. HOLMES, A.M.</p>
-
-<hr class="shorter" />
-
-<p>We shall be careful in what we say to make no claim for the
-correspondence system of teaching, as against any other. We
-claim for it simply a place as a co-laborer in the work of education.
-Lest any one should be misled by any utterances we
-may have made, or may hereafter make, and think that here
-was cast up a royal road over which one could pass with flying
-feet to the goal of educational culture, and enter it, to find only
-a narrow path, rough, stony, and filled with difficulties, we wish
-to plainly state what we claim for this system of instruction.
-Lest any one should conceive that the need for university and
-college has passed, and that results can be obtained by a home
-correspondence-university course, as good or better than can
-be obtained from actual college residence, we wish to plainly
-state what we do not claim. It may place our positive claims
-in a stronger light, if we set them forth against what we do
-not claim, as a background. Accordingly, our first statements
-will be negatives, as follows:</p>
-
-<p>1. We do not claim that the correspondence system of teaching
-is the superior of oral teaching;</p>
-
-<p>2. Nor that it is destined to supersede oral teaching;</p>
-
-<p>3. Nor that it has wrought or will work any revolution in educational
-methods;</p>
-
-<p>4. Nor that it can compete with oral teaching, on anything
-like equal terms;</p>
-
-<p>5. Nor that by this method, years of study in classroom, under
-able, living teachers are made unnecessary;</p>
-
-<p>6. Nor that it uses newer and better methods of instruction
-than are used in the classroom;</p>
-
-<p>7. Nor that it is freer from defects than other existing systems;</p>
-
-<p>8. Nor that a class, school, college, or university, dependent
-for its entire work upon pen, paper and post, should be sought
-by the student in preference to established resident institutions;</p>
-
-<p>9. Nor that it is without serious disadvantages, even to the
-student most favorably circumstanced;</p>
-
-<p>10. Nor, finally, that it is able to teach all branches of study
-without other than postal facilities.</p>
-
-<p>We might carry this line of disclaimer farther, but are persuaded
-that enough has been said to enable us to make our
-claims for the correspondence system, without danger of being
-misunderstood. Still further, we desire the power of voice and
-pen, as far as it may reach, to be felt on the side of the college
-and university. To all who can go to college, our word is
-most emphatically—go; and having gone, stay; let nothing
-come between you and the completion of the course. Still
-further, we will say to such as are so limited by circumstances
-as to feel unable to devote the requisite time, means, and presence,
-to a college course, “If possible, let not circumstance
-compel you, but do you compel circumstance, till the desired
-way shall open; and this though years be occupied in the struggle.
-The goal is worth the race.”</p>
-
-<p>Here, then, we present what we claim for the correspondence
-system of teaching:</p>
-
-<p>1. We claim that the majority of those who are likely to
-avail themselves of this system, are men and women of mature
-mind, and hence are able to make the very best use of
-whatever advantages are offered them;</p>
-
-<p>2. That the majority of those who are likely to avail themselves
-of the advantages we offer, are actuated by an earnest
-purpose to obtain an advanced education, by <i>any</i> means which
-are available to them;</p>
-
-<p>3. That wise direction through correspondence, by competent
-and experienced teachers, is calculated to produce better results
-than can be expected ordinarily from unaided individual
-effort;</p>
-
-<p>4. That teaching by correspondence can be successfully applied
-to a course of study so wide and comprehensive that one
-who masters it will secure a culture that would be rightly called
-liberal;</p>
-
-<p>5. That this system of teaching is therefore entitled to a
-place, as associate, in the ranks of the teaching systems of the age;</p>
-
-<p>6. That as a system, it is no untried experiment, but has
-been so tested that it can point to tangible results with no fear
-of discomfiture if these results be examined;</p>
-
-<p>7. That it requires determined effort, and calls for rigid self-discipline,
-to insure success;</p>
-
-<p>8. That it tends to form critical habits of study;</p>
-
-<p>9. That it tends to produce self-reliance, and to develop individuality
-in methods of study;</p>
-
-<p>10. That it affords marked opportunity for deliberation, and
-so fosters the judicial habit in study;</p>
-
-<p>11. That it tends to systematize and render methodical all
-habits, whether of study or of life;</p>
-
-<p>12. That opportunities for <i>mal-application</i> are reduced to a
-minimum;</p>
-
-<p>13. That its possibilities are such as to warrant corporate effort
-to extend its advantages to those who would be otherwise
-deprived of any advanced educational opportunities;</p>
-
-<p>14. That such a corporation is entitled to be called a School
-of Liberal Arts;</p>
-
-<p>15. That it allows tests of the student’s acquirement, as rigid
-as can be desired by the highest standard of educational excellence;</p>
-
-<p>16. That the student who has submitted to such tests, and
-successfully borne them, is entitled to the reward of a diploma
-and a degree;</p>
-
-<p>17. Finally, that the corporation or institution which can
-prepare the student for such an ordeal is entitled to confer such
-diploma and degree.</p>
-
-<p>The claims which we have now presented are sufficient to show
-the spirit and belief which have led to the incorporation of the
-Chautauqua University. We have attempted to state them logically,
-clearly, and forcibly. There is in them no element of
-disputation.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_434" id="Page_434">[434]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>We appeal to a vast, an eager and earnest constituency.
-To know, only to know, is the earnest cry of multitudes of our
-fellows. Lament for lack of early opportunities, and consequent
-self-depreciation, is the undertow that sweeps to ruin the
-possibilities of many a life. High purposes and noble ambitions
-have been thwarted on life’s threshold by the cruel limitations
-of circumstance. Mistaken views of life’s best aims, in
-days when opportunities were possible, have been dispelled
-when the opportunities have long been left behind. To each
-of these classes the Chautauqua University brings the correspondence
-system of teaching, and says: for you, it is possible
-to supplement the lack of early years; for you, to realize your
-ambitions, even within the bond by which circumstance has
-bound you; and for you, in the new light which experience
-has given, to see other opportunities for obtaining that culture
-which, years ago, you neglected and passed by.</p>
-
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<h2 id="SPECIAL_NOTES">SPECIAL NOTES.</h2>
-
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p class="right"><span class="smcap">The Academy of Latin and Greek</span>,<br />
-Summer Term of Six Weeks.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">To The Chancellor of Chautauqua University</span>:</p>
-
-<p class="unindent"><i>My Dear Doctor Vincent</i>:</p>
-
-<p>It gives me great pleasure to be able to offer this summer, at
-Chautauqua, a course in Latin and Greek of unusual merit. Of
-the assistant teachers, Mr. Otto is already favorably known to
-our pupils of last summer, and to many correspondence students
-as an energetic and thorough teacher. Dr. Bevier will
-be a great acquisition for Chautauqua. He was graduated from
-Rutgers with first honors, having also during his course won
-honors in Latin and Greek at the inter-collegiate contest. After
-graduation he studied at Johns Hopkins University (which
-conferred on him the degree Ph.D.), and then continued his
-studies in Europe. He was a student at the American School
-at Athens, Greece, and is now an enthusiastic and successful
-teacher.</p>
-
-<p>Although our session in Latin last year began a week late,
-and we suffered from other disadvantages, I believe our numbers
-in Latin reached a total unparalleled in the history of
-Chautauqua.</p>
-
-<p>What was, however, especially gratifying, was the improved
-quality of scholarship manifested by students.</p>
-
-<p>For this summer we offer the following course:</p>
-
-<p>1. <span class="smcap">Roman Law</span> (using the Institutes of Justinian) with information.
-Not only every lawyer, but every teacher of Latin
-to-day should familiarize “<i>thon</i>”self with Roman law, lying,
-as it does, <i>at the base of Roman civilization</i>.</p>
-
-<p>2. <span class="smcap">The Latin of the early Church Fathers.</span>—Recent
-publication and discussion have rendered so prominent the influence
-of the early Latin Fathers on church doctrine that <i>every
-clergyman</i>, present or prospective, will do well to examine
-this question for himself.</p>
-
-<p>3. <span class="smcap">Comparative Philology.</span>—(Every student preparing to
-enter either of these three classes should at once communicate
-with the principal, that there may be no delay at the opening
-of the session, in securing apparatus.)</p>
-
-<p>4. <span class="smcap">Plato.</span>—Apology and Crito, Tyler’s Ed. (Appletons.)</p>
-
-<p>5. <span class="smcap">Cicero.</span>—<i>De Natura Deorum</i>, Stickney’s Ed. (Ginn,
-Heath &amp; Co.)</p>
-
-<p>6. <span class="smcap">Homer.</span>—Odyssey.</p>
-
-<p>7. <span class="smcap">Virgil.</span>—Æneid.</p>
-
-<p>8. <span class="smcap">Horace.</span>—Chase’s Ed. (Eldridge &amp; Bro’s.)</p>
-
-<p>9. <span class="smcap">Cicero.</span>—Orations.</p>
-
-<p>10. <span class="smcap">Xenophon.</span>—Anabasis.</p>
-
-<p>11. <span class="smcap">Cæsar.</span>—<i>De Bello Gallico</i> (two hours per day).</p>
-
-<p>12. <span class="smcap">Beginners in Greek.</span> Harkness’s Text-Book, last ed.
-(Appletons.)</p>
-
-<p>13. <span class="smcap">Beginners in Latin (three hours per day by the induction
-method).</span></p>
-
-<p>🖙 Latin students must have the “Hand-Book of Latin
-Synonyms.” (Ginn, Heath &amp; Co.)</p>
-
-<p>I hope you will give us at Chautauqua zealous students, who
-will concentrate their work on Latin and Greek, but especially
-two classes: <span class="smcap">Teachers</span> of Latin and Greek, and those who
-are absolutely <span class="smcapuc">BEGINNERS</span>. A clear-headed student who
-doesn’t know a word of Latin, can, by devoting six weeks to
-it, secure <span class="smcapuc">FIVE HOURS</span> per day (<i>Beginners</i> and <i>Cæsar</i>) or <span class="smcapuc">ONE
-HUNDRED AND FIFTY HOURS</span> in six weeks—quite as much time
-as the average school gives in one year.</p>
-
-<p>It is thought that teachers of Latin and Greek will find not
-only the method of value, but also the inspiration which indubitably
-does arise when teachers gather.</p>
-
-<p class="center">Your ob’t servant,</p>
-
-<p class="right"><span class="smcap">Edgar S. Shumway</span>, Principal.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Rutgers College</span>, February 23, 1885.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>The C. L. S. C. Correspondence Department, though not
-often heard from publicly, is doing an important work. Several
-hundred students are enrolled upon its books, and the
-work is being prosecuted this year with renewed vigor. An
-Illinois lady writes: “Having enjoyed and been benefited by
-the letters of my C. L. S. C. correspondent, I very much wish
-to continue that branch of the work this year. We followed
-no special plan, but the letters I received encouraged and
-strengthened me, and kept me from falling by the wayside. I
-love the C. L. S. C. and am proud to say I have gained for it
-some members. In my judgment the Correspondence Circle
-is grand, good and beneficial.” From New Hampshire comes
-the following: “I tender hearty thanks to the originator of
-the Correspondence Circle. The frequent letters of my two
-correspondents are a continual stimulus. The sympathetic
-words, the exchange of essays, the comparing of work done,
-I find very helpful, while the questions of my bright girl correspondent
-have led me to search for and find many items of
-information I should have otherwise neglected.” These and
-many similar letters received from members of the Correspondence
-Department show how helpful this work is proving to
-many isolated members of the Circle, shut out from all other
-means of communication with their fellow students.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>From a circle in Connecticut numbering five members comes
-the suggestion that Local Circles be put in communication
-with each other, the correspondence to be carried on, of
-course, through the respective secretaries. There is no reason
-why a correspondence of this sort should not prove both interesting
-and valuable, as it will serve to increase the feeling
-of fraternity among local circles, give opportunities for the exchange
-of programs, the discussion of difficulties, and in other
-ways make the circles of practical benefit to each other.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>Members of the C. L. S. C. or local circles wishing to join
-the Correspondence Department should report to the office of
-the C. L. S. C. at Plainfield, N. J.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>The list of C. L. S. C. graduates in the Class of ’84 has been
-lengthened by the following names:</p>
-
-<table summary="Additional graduates">
- <tr>
- <td>Daniels, Mrs. Margaret P. S.</td>
- <td>New York.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td>Longee, Mrs. Mary P.</td>
- <td>New Hampshire.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td>McConnell, Edward B.</td>
- <td>Pennsylvania.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td>Smith, Miss Anna</td>
- <td>Michigan.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td>Van Ingen, M. Gertrude</td>
- <td>New York.</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>Communications intended for the “Local Circles” of <span class="smcap">The
-Chautauquan</span> should be sent directly to our office. Any circle
-which has not reported this year we should be glad to have
-do so at once.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<div class="tnote">
-
-<p class="center"><b>Transcriber’s Notes:</b></p>
-
-<p>Obvious punctuation errors repaired.</p>
-
-<p>Page 388, “II” changed to “IV” (Class IV.)</p>
-
-<p>Page 389, “carniverous” changed to “carnivorous” (they have all the five senses, and are carnivorous)</p>
-
-<p>Page 398, “Fate” changed to “Gate” (Traitor’s Gate)</p>
-
-<p>Page 398, “Tewksbury” changed to “Tewkesbury” (in the field at Tewkesbury)</p>
-
-<p>Page 403, “ahd” changed to “and” (and have bought bonds)</p>
-
-<p>Page 405, “extirminated” changed to “exterminated” in two places (and their kind exterminated / the native fish are actually exterminated)</p>
-
-<p>Page 406, “extirmination” changed to “extermination” (extermination so recklessly begun)</p>
-
-<p>Page 406, “their” changed to “the” (the narrow, tortuous defiles)</p>
-
-<p>Page 407, “neans” changed to “means” (by artificial means)</p>
-
-<p>Page 408, “Mariner” changed to “Marner” (Silas Marner)</p>
-
-<p>Page 413, “Easer” changed to “Easter” (1. Essay—Easter.)</p>
-
-<p>Page 424, “make” changed to “made” (which has made Shaksperean skepticism almost respectable)</p>
-
-<p>Page 429, “with” added (two atoms of nitrogen have united with two atoms of oxygen)</p>
-
-<p>Page 429, “hydrogen” changed to “oxygen” (The formula Cu(NO₃)₂ … three atoms of oxygen)</p>
-
-</div>
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<pre>
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Chautauquan, Vol. V, April 1885, by
-The Chautauquan Literary and Scientific Circle
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE CHAUTAUQUAN, VOL. V, APRIL 1885 ***
-
-***** This file should be named 55061-h.htm or 55061-h.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/5/5/0/6/55061/
-
-Produced by Emmy, Juliet Sutherland and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
-will be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
-one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
-(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
-permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
-set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
-copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
-protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
-Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
-charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
-do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
-rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
-such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
-research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
-practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
-subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
-redistribution.
-
-
-
-*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
-http://gutenberg.org/license).
-
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
-all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
-If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
-terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
-entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
-and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
-or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
-collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
-individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
-located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
-copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
-works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
-are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
-Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
-freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
-this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
-the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
-keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
-a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
-the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
-before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
-creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
-Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
-the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
-States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
-access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
-whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
-copied or distributed:
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org/license
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
-from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
-posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
-and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
-or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
-with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
-work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
-through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
-Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
-1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
-terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
-to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
-permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
-word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
-distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
-"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
-posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
-you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
-copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
-request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
-form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
-that
-
-- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
- owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
- has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
- Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
- must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
- prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
- returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
- sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
- address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
- the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or
- destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
- and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
- Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
- money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
- of receipt of the work.
-
-- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
-forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
-both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
-Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
-Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
-collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
-"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
-corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
-property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
-computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
-your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
-your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
-the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
-refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
-providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
-receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
-is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
-opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
-WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
-WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
-If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
-law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
-interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
-the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
-provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
-with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
-promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
-harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
-that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
-or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
-work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
-Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
-
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
-including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
-because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
-people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need, are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
-To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
-and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
-Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
-http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
-permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
-Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
-throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
-809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
-business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
-information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
-page at http://pglaf.org
-
-For additional contact information:
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
-SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
-particular state visit http://pglaf.org
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
-To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
-
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
-with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
-Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
-
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
-unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
-keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
-
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
-
- http://www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
-</pre>
-
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/55061-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/55061-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 6bbc161..0000000
--- a/old/55061-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/55061-h/images/illus007.jpg b/old/55061-h/images/illus007.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index f0f48cc..0000000
--- a/old/55061-h/images/illus007.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/55061-h/images/illus008.jpg b/old/55061-h/images/illus008.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 56eeb84..0000000
--- a/old/55061-h/images/illus008.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/55061-h/images/illus009.jpg b/old/55061-h/images/illus009.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index d3807da..0000000
--- a/old/55061-h/images/illus009.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/55061-h/images/illus011.jpg b/old/55061-h/images/illus011.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 61b929d..0000000
--- a/old/55061-h/images/illus011.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/55061-h/images/illus012.jpg b/old/55061-h/images/illus012.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 455605a..0000000
--- a/old/55061-h/images/illus012.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/55061-h/images/illus013.jpg b/old/55061-h/images/illus013.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index c3883c1..0000000
--- a/old/55061-h/images/illus013.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/55061-h/images/illus014.jpg b/old/55061-h/images/illus014.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 57e31c1..0000000
--- a/old/55061-h/images/illus014.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/55061-h/images/illus032.jpg b/old/55061-h/images/illus032.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 4f0e623..0000000
--- a/old/55061-h/images/illus032.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/55061-h/images/illus033.jpg b/old/55061-h/images/illus033.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 296da29..0000000
--- a/old/55061-h/images/illus033.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/55061-h/images/illus034.jpg b/old/55061-h/images/illus034.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index d4dd79f..0000000
--- a/old/55061-h/images/illus034.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/55061-h/images/illus035.jpg b/old/55061-h/images/illus035.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 75fcb43..0000000
--- a/old/55061-h/images/illus035.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/55061-h/images/illus037.jpg b/old/55061-h/images/illus037.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 9c363c2..0000000
--- a/old/55061-h/images/illus037.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/55061-h/images/illus038.jpg b/old/55061-h/images/illus038.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 6f7d768..0000000
--- a/old/55061-h/images/illus038.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/55061-h/images/illus039.jpg b/old/55061-h/images/illus039.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index a322a16..0000000
--- a/old/55061-h/images/illus039.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ